Digitized by the Internet Archive
in 2007 with funding from
IVIicrosoft Corporation
http://www.archive.org/details/bunyanprogressOObunyrich
/ ti J-'aiiitiiiyiiyJtltj' Feimtai
f.nqravt.l,h\
(ti:'i^^'p
,.r.c M £>; ci ice)::,'^ IF Ji 0 iJaiiii ^ ;i
J oiEirr "J3 O'v^f " iTj-x i
-77v^":'-- -">-^
/
yer?<?er- S J/a^' Scu7/^
THE
^^Fim^^lM^i ^^(©(^^^i^
THIS WORLD
THAT WHICH IS TO COME,
DELIVERED TWDER
THE sxi\ffzz.rruDx: of a dhxsajmc.
INTWOPARTS.
BY JOHN BUNYAN.
VriTM ORXaZNAL KOTES,
BY THOMAS SCOTT,
c HAPLAl'^r TO* -^MS • LO«j£» 60«WTAL/
HARTFORD :
PUBLISHED BY SILAS ANDRUS.
1827
I<
PREFACE.
THE high estimation, in which the Pilgrim's Progrks'^
has been held for much above a century, sufficiently evinceJ^
its intrinsic value : and there is every reason to suppose, thaJ:
it will be read with admiration and advantage for ages to come>
probably till the consummation of all things.
The pious Christian, in proportion to " his growth in grace,
and in the knowledge of Jesus Christ," derives more and more
instruction from repeated perusals of this remarkable book ;
while his enlarged experience and extended observation enable
him to unfold, with progressive evidence, the meaning of the
agreeable similitudes employed by its ingenious author : and
even the careless reader is fascinated to attention, by the sim*
pie and artless manner in which the interesting narrative is
arranged. Nor should this be represented as mere amuse-
ment ; for it has been observed, by men of great discernment
and acquaintance with the human mind, that young persons^
having perused the Pilgrim as a pleasing tale, often retain a
remembrance of its leading incidents, which, after continuing
perhaps in a dormant state for several years, has at length
germinated, as it were, into the most important and seasonable
instruction ; while the events of their own lives placed it be-
■ fore their minds in a new and affecting point of view. It may,
therefore, be questioned, whether modern ages have produced
any work which has more promoted the best interests of
mankind.
These observations indeed more especially apply to the
First Part of the Pilgrim's Progress ; as that is complete in
itself, and in all respects superior to the Second. Yet this
also contains many edifying and interesting passages : though,
in unity of design, in arrangement of incident, and in simphcit)'^
of allegory, it is not comparable to the other. Indeed the
author, in his first effort, had nearly exhausted his' subject ;
and nothing remained for his second attempt, but a few detach*
861091
ed episodes to his original design : nor could any vigour of
genius have wrought them up to an equal degree of interest.
It must, however, be allowed, that Mr. Bunyan here, in some
instances, sinks below himself, both in fertility of invention,
force of imagination, and aptness of illustration ; nay, he occa-
sionally stoops to a puerile play of fancy, and a refined nicety
in doctrine, which do not well accord to the rest of the work.
Yet the same grand principles of evangelical and practical re-
ligion, which stamp an inestimable value on the First Part, are
in the Second also exhibited with equal purity, though not with
equal simplicity : and, on many occasions, the author rises su-
perior to his disadvantages ; and introduces characters and
incidents, which arrest the attention, and deeply interest the
heart, of every pious and intelligent reader.
It would not perhaps be difficult to prove, that the Pilgrim's
Progress is as really an original production of vigorous native
genius, as any of those works, in prose or verse, which have
excited the admiration of mankind, through successive ages
and in different nations. It does not indeed possess those
ornaments which are often mistaken for intrinsic excellence :
but the rudeness of its style (which at the same time is aptly
characteristic of the subject) concurs to prove it a most extra-
ordinary book : for, had it not been written with very great
ingenuity, a religious treatise, evidently inculcating doctrines
always offensive, but now more unfashionable than formerly,
could not, in so homely a garb, have durably attracted the at-
tention of a polished age and nation. Yet it is undeniable,
that Bunyan's Pilgrim continues to be read and admired by
vast multitudes ; while publications on a similar plan, by per-
sons of respectable learning and talents, are consigned to almost
total neglect and oblivion.
This is not, however, that view of the work, which entitles
it to its highest honour, or most endears it to the pious mind :
for, comparing it with the other productions of the same author,
' (which are indeed edifying to the humble believer, but not
much suited to the taste of the ingenious,) we shall be led to
ronclude, that in penning this, he was favoured with a peculiar
measure of divine assistance : especially when we recollect,
that, within the confines of a jail, he was able so to delineate
the Christian's course, with its various difficulties, perils, con-
flicts, and supports, that scarcely any thing seems to have es-
caped his notice. Indeed, the accurate observer of the church
m his own days, and the learned student of ecclesiastical history ^
PREFACE. V
must be equally surprised to find, that hardly one remarkable
character, good or bad, or mixed in any manner or proportion
imaginable ; or one fatal delusion, by-path, or injurious mis-
take, can be singled out, which may not be paralleled in the
Pilgrim's Progress ; that is, as to the grand outlines ; for
the minutice, about which bigoted and frivolous minds waste
their zeal and force, are, with very few exceptions, wisely
passed over. This circumstance is not only very surprising,
but it suggests an argument, perhrps unanswerable, in confir-
mation of the divine authority of those religious sentiments,
which are now often derided under the title of orthodoxy : For
every pnrt of this singular bbok exclusively suits the ditierent
descriptions of such as profess those doctrines ; and relates
the experiences, mistakes, falls, recoveries, distresses, tempta-
tions, and consolations of serious persons of this class in our
own times, as exactly as if it had been penned from the obser-
vation of them, and for their immediate beneiit ; while, like the
sacred Scriptures, it remains a sealed book to idl who are
strangers to evangelical religion.
These remarks may very properly be concluded with the
words of a justly admired poet of the present day, who in the
following lines has fully sanctioned all that has been here ad*
vanced.
*■ O thou, wham, borne on fancy's ea-^-er win^
Back to the seasons of life's ha'^rpy spring-,
I pleas'd remember, and, while mem'ry yet
Holds fast her office here, can ne'er forget ;
Ingenious dreamer, in whose well told tale
Sweet fiction and sweet truth alike prevail ;
Whose hum'rous vein, strong sense, and simple style,
May teach the gayest, make the gravest smile ;
Witty, and well employ'd, and, like thy Lord,
Speaking in parables his slighted word ;
I name thee not, lest so despised a name
Should move a sneer at thy deserved fame ;
Yet e'en in transitory life's late day,
That mingles all my brown with sober gray,
Revere the man, whose Pilgrim marks the road
And guides the Progress of the soul to God.
'Twere well with most, if books, that could engage
Their childhood, pleas 'd them at a riper age ;
The man approving what had charm 'd the boy,
Would die at last in comfort, peace, and joy,
And not with curses on his art who stole
The gem of truth from his unguarded soul.'
COWTER TIROCINIUM, V. 129.
I*
VI PREFACE.
Several persons have already favoured the public with origi-
nal explanatory notes, of the nature of those here published ;
but the editor, on mature deliberation, did not think himself
precluded by this consideration, from communicating his sen-
timents on a favourite book, according to a plan he had formed
in his own mind. Every man who thinks for himself has his
own views of a subject, which often vary, more or less, from
the sentiments of others, whom he nevertheless esteems and
loves with great cordiality : and the great Head of the Church
has intrusted different talents to his servants, to qualify them
for usefulness among distinct descriptions of persons. It is in-
deed incontrovertible, that some men will receive the great
truths of Christianity with candour and docility, when exhibit-
ed in a style and manner suited to their peculiar taste, who
disregard and reject them, when conveyed in language which
numbers, perhaps justly, think far more interesting and affect-
ing. It need not, therefore, be apprehended, that the labours
of different writers on the same subject should materially in-
terfere with each other : rather we may indulge a hope, that,
as far as they accord to the standard of divine truth, they will,
in different circles, promote the common cause of vital god-
liness.
The editor's aim, in this attempt to elucidate the Pilgrim's
Progress, is, to give a brief key to the grand outlines of the
allegor}^, from which the attentive reader may obtain a general
idea of the author's design ; — to bestow more pains in fixing
the precise meaning of those parts, which might most perplex
the inquirer, and which seem to have most escaped the notice,
or divided the sentiments, of expositors ; — to state and esta-
blish, compendiously but clearly, those doctrinal, practical, and
experimental views of Christianity, which Mr. Bunyan meant
to convey ; to guard them carefully from those extremes and
perversions which he never favoured, but which too fre-
quently increase men's prejudices against them ; to delineate
the more prominent features of his various characters, with a
special reference to the present state of religious profession,
distinguishing accurately what he approves, from the defects
even of true Pilgrims ; and in fine, to give as just a represen-
tation, ^s may be, of the author's sentiments concerning the
right way to heaven, and of the many false ways and bye-paths,
which prove injurious to all who venture into them, and fatal
to unnumbered multitudes. In executing this plan, no infor-
mation that the editor could procure has been neglected ; but
PRE J. Ac fi. Vll
he does not invariably adhere to the sentiments of any man ;
and while his dependence is placed, as he hopes, on the pro-
mised teaching of the Holy Spirit, he does not think himself
authorized to spare any pains, in endeavouring to render the
publication acceptable and useful.
The text is printed, as it stands in the oldest editions, which
may be supposed to contain the author's own terms, which
later editors have frequently modernized. A few obsolete or
unclassical words, and unusual phrases, seem to become the
character of the Pilgrim ; and they are often more emphatical
than any which can be substituted in their stead. Some ex-
ceptions, however, have been admitted ; as the author, if liv-
ing, would probably change a very few expressions for such
as are less offensive to modern ears ; and in other instances
the slips of his pen, while taken up with things of vastly supe-
rior importance, would now be mistaken for errors of the
press. Great pains have been taken to collate different copies
of the work, and to examine every scriptural reference ; in
order to render this edition, in all respects, as correct as pos-
sible.— The editor has the satisfaction of adding, that he has
been favoured by Mrs. Gurney, Holborn, with the use of the
second edition of the First Part of the Pilgrim, by which he
has been enabled to correct many errors of subsequent edi-
tions. The author's marginal references seemed so essential
a part of the work, that it was deemed indispensably requisite
to insert them in their places. But as the marginal notes do
not appear to convey any material instruction distinct from
that contained in the text, and to be principally useful in
pointing out any passage, to which the reader might wish to
refer ; it was thought most advisable to omit them, and to
supply their place by a running title on the top of every page,
conveying as nearly as possible the same ideas : for, indeed,
they so incumber the page, and break in upon the uniformity
of printing, that all hope of elegance must be precluded while
they are retained.
Mr. BuNYAN prefaced each part of the Pilgrim's Progress
with a copy of verses : but as his poetry does not suit the
taste of these days, and is by no means equal to the work
itself, it hath been deemed expedient to omit them. That
prefixed to the First Part is entitled ' The Author's Apology
for his Book ; in which he informs the reader that he was
unawares drawn into the allegory, when employed about an-
other work ; that the further he proceeded, the more rapidly
did ideas flow into his mind ; and this induced him to form it
into a separate book ; and that, showing it to his friends —
' Some said, ' Jolin, print it,' others said, ' Not so ;'
Some said, ' It might do good ;' others said, ' No.'
The pubhc will not hesitate in determining whidh opinion
was the result of the deeper penetration ; but will wonder
that a long apology for so valuable a publication should have
been deemed necessary. This was, however, the case ; and
the author, having solidly, though rather verbosely, answered
several objections, and adduced some obvious arguments in
very unpoetical rhymes, concludes with these line^, \vhich
may serve as a favourable specimen of the whole : —
' Would'st thou divert thyself from melancholy ?
Would'st thou be pleasant, yet be far from folly ?
Woud'st thou read riddles and their explanation ?
Or else be drowned in thy contemplation ?
Dost thou love picking meat ? Or would'st thou see
A man i' th' clouds, and hear him speak to thee ?
Woud'st thou be in a dream, and yet not sleep ?
Or would'st thou in a moment laugh and weep ?
^ Or would'st thou lose thyself, and catch no harm ?
And find thyself again without a charm ?
Would'st read thyself, and read thou know'st not what,
And yet know whether thou art blest or not,
By reading the same lines ? O then come hither.
And lay my book, thy heart and head together.'
The poem prefixed to the Second Part, in a kind of dialogue
between the author and his book, is still less interesting ; and
serves to shoAv, that he had a more favourable opinion of its
comparative merit, than posterity has formed ; which is no
singular case. — Some verses are likewise found at the bottom
of certain plates that accompanied several of the old editions,
which they, who omit the plates, or substitute others, know-
not where to insert. To show all regard, however, to every
thing that Mr. Bunyan wrote, as a part of the work^ they will
be found in the notes on the incidents to which they refer.
THE LIFE
JOHN BUNYAN.
THE celebrated author of the Pilgrim's Progress "was born, A. D.
1628, at Elstow, a small village near Bedford. His father earned his
bread by the low occupation of a tinker; but he bore a fair character,
and took care that his son, whom he brought up to the same business,
should be taught to read and write. We are told, indeed, that he quick-
ly forgot all he had learned, through his extreme profligacy : yet it
is probable, that he retained so much as enabled him to recover the rest,
when his mind became better disposed ; and that it was very useful to
him in the subsequent part of his life.
Tl}e materials, from which an account of this valuable man must be
compiled, are so scanty and imperfect, tliat nothing very satisfactory must
be expected. He seems from his earliest youth to have been greatly addict-
ed to gross vice as well as impiety ; yet he was interrupted in his course by
continual alarms and convictions, which were sometimes peculiarly over-
whelming ; but they had no other effect at the time, than to extort from
him the most absurd wishes that can be imagined. A copious narrative
of these early conflicts and crimes is contained in a treatise published by
himself, under the title of Grace abounding to the. chief of Siantrs.
During this part of his life, he was twice preserved from the most im-
minent danger of drowning : and being a ^Idip.r in ^{ig payliamfint^ army
at the siege of Leicester, A. D. 1645, he was drawn out to stanosentinel ;
but one of his comrades, having by his own desire taken his place, was
shot through the head on his post; and thus Bunyan was reserved "by
the all-disposing hand of God for better purposes. He seems, however,
to have made progressive advances in v/ickedness, and to have become
the ringlea<ler of youth in every kind of profaneness and excess.
His career of vice received a considerable check, in consequence of his
marriage with the daughter of a person who had been very religious in
his way, and remarkably bold in reproving vice, but who was then dead.
His wife's discourse to him concerning her fathei-'s piety, excited him to
go regularly to church : and as she brought him, for her whole portion,.
The Practice ofPieiy^ and The plain Man^s Pathway to Heaven^ he em-r
ployed himself frequently in reading these books. t
The events recorded of our author are so destitute of dates, and regard to
the order in which they happened, that no clear arrangement can now be
made of them : but it is probable that this new attention to religion, though
ineffectual to the reformation of his conduct, rendered him more susceptible
of convictions ; and his vigorous imagination, at that time altogether
imtutored by knowledge or discretion, laid him open to a variety of im-
pressions, sleeping and waking, which he verily supposed to arise from
words spoken to him, or objects presented before his bodily senses ; and
he never after was able to break the association of ideas which was thus
formed in hii mind. Accoidingly he says, that one day when he was
B
X THE LIFE OF
engaged in diversion with his companions, ' A voice did suddenly dart
from heaven into my soul, which said, fVili thou leave thy sins and go to
heaven^ or have thy sins and go to hell .?' The consciousness of his wicked
course of life, accompanied with the recollection of the truths he had
read, suddenly meeting in his mind, thus produced a violent alarm, and
made such an impression on his imagination, that he seemed to have
heard these words, and to have seen Christ frowning and menacing him.
But we must not suppose that there was any miracle wrought ; nor could
there be any occasion for a new revelation to suggest or enforce so scrip-
tural a warning. This may serve as a specimen of those impressions^
which constitute a large part of his religious experience, but which it is
not advisable to recapitulate.
He was next tempted to conclude that it was tlien too late to repent
or seek salvation ; and, as he ignorantly listened to the suggestion, he in-
dulged his corrupt inclinations without restraint, imagining that this was
the only way in which he could possibly have the least expectation of
pleasure, during his whole existence. *•
While he was proceeding in this wretched course, a woman of very
bad character reproved him with great severity for profane swearing ;
declaring, in the strongest expressions, that he exceeded in it all men she
had ever heard. This made him greatly ashamed, when he reflected
that he was too vile even for such a bad woman to endure : so that from
that time he began to break off that odious custom. — His guilty and ter-
rified naind was also prepared to admit the most alarming impressions
during his sleep : and he had such a dream about the day of judgment,
and its awful circumstances and consequences, as powerfully influenced
his conduct. There was, indeed, nothing very extraordinary in this ; for
such dreams are not uncommon to men under deep convictions : yet the
Lord was doubtless, by all these means, secretly influencing his heart, and
warning him to flee from the wrath to come.
He was, however, reluctant to part with his irreligious associates and
vain pleasures : till the conversation of a poor man, who came in his way,
induced him to read the Bible, especially the preceptive and historical
p irts of it : and this put him upon an entire reformation of his conduct ;
so tliat his neighbours vv ere greatly astonished at tlie change. In this
manner he went on for about a year ; at some times satisfied v/ith him-
self, and at others distressed with fears and consciousness of guilt. In-
deed, he seems ever after to have considered all these convictions and
desires as wholly originating from natural principles ; but in this perhaps
some persons will venture to dissent from him. A self-righteous depend-
ence accompanied with self-complacency, and furnishing incentives to
pride, is indeed a full proof of unregeneracy : but conscientiousness con-
nected with disquietudes, humiliation for sin, and a disposition to wait for
divine teaching, is an effect and evidence of /i/e, though the mind be yet
darkened with ignorance, error, and prejudice. And he that hath given
life will give it more abundantly ; for, " The path of the just is as the
shining light, that shineth more and more unto the perfect day."
While Bunyan was in this state of mind he went to Bedford, in the ex-
ercise of his trade as a tinker, where he overheard some women discourse
about regeneration: and though he did not understand their meaning,
he was greatly affected by observing the earnestness, cheerfulness, and
humility of their behaviour ; and he was also convinced that his own
JOHN BUNYAN. XI
views of religion were very defective. Being thus led to frequent their
company, he was brought as it were into a new world. Such an entire
change took place in his views and affections, and his mind was so deeply
engaged in contemplating the great concerns of eternity, and the things
pertaining to the kingdom of God, tliat he found it very difficult to em-
ploy his thoughts on any secular affairs.
But this extraordinary flow of affections, not being attended by doc-
trinal information in any measure proportionable, laid him open to vari-
ous attempts of Satan and his emissaries. The Ranters, a set of the vilest
antinomians that almost ever existed, first assailed him by one of their
party, who had formerly been Mr. Bunyan's companion in vice : but he
over-acted his part ; and, proceeding even to deny the being of a God,
probably furnished the character of Atheist in the Pilgrim's Progress.
^ While Mr. Bunyan was engaged in reading the books of the Ranters, not
j^'eing able to form his judgment about them, he was led to offer up the
following prayer : * O Lord, I am a fool, and not able to know the truth
from error : Lord, leave me not to my own blindness, either to approve
or condemn this doctrine. If it be of God, let me not despise it ; if it be
of the devil, let me not embrace it. Lord, I lay my soul in this matter
only at thy foot ; let me not be deceived, I humbly beseech thee.' No
exj)erienced Christian will be surprised to find, that the Lord, in an evi-
dent mamier, graciously answered this most suitable request. Mr. Bun-
yan soon saw through the delusions of the Ranters ; and probably refer-
red to them, under the character of Self-will, in the second part'of this
work.
The Epistles of St. Paul, which he now read with great attention, hr.i
without any guide or instructer, gave occasion to his being assaulted by
many sove temptations. He found the Apo?tle continually speaking of
failk ; and he could not understand the meaning of that word, or discover
whether he was a believer or not : so that, mistaking the words o\
Christ,'*' he was tempted to seek a solution of this di^nculty by tryin^r to
work a miracle. Ho thou,a:ht, however, if would be right to pray, before
he made the attempt, and thus he was induced to desist, though his diffi-
culties still remained. On another occasion he was delivered from great
perplexities about the doctrine of election, by reflecting that none "ever
trusted in God and was cotifounded :" and therefore it would be best for
him to trust m God, and leave election, as a "secret thin.7," with the
J.jord, to wliom it belonged. And the general inviJations of tho gospel,
and the assurance that ''yet there is room,'' helped him to repel the
temptation to conclude tiiat the day of grace was past.
This brief account of his temptations and escapes may teach others the
best way of resisting similar suggestions : and it may show us, that num-
bers are durably harassed by such perplexities, for want of doctrinal
knowledge and faithful instructors and counsellors. lie was, however,
afterward enabled, by means of these inward trials, to caution others to
better effect, and more tenderly to sympathize with the tempted.
After some time Mr. Bunyan became acquainted with Mr. Gifford, an
Antipcedo-baptist minister, at Bedford, whose conversation was very use-
ful to him : yet he was in some respects more discouraged than ever, by
fui;«»r discoveries of those evils in his heart, which he had not before
* Matt. xvii. 20.
Xll THE LIFE OF
ooticed ; and Dy doubts concerning the truth of the Scriptures, "which hi«
entire ignorance of the evidences by which they are most completely
authenticated, rendered durably perplexing to him. He was, however,
at length relieved by a sermon he heard on the love of Christ ; though
the grounds, on which he derived satisfaction and encouragement from it,
are not very accurately stated. Soon after this he was admitted, by adult
baptism, a member of Mr. Gifford's church, A. D. 1655, being then
twenty-seven years of age ; and after a little time, he was earnestly de-
fired by the congregation to expound or preach, in a manner which is
customary among the Dissenters, as a preparation to the ministry. For
a while he resisted their importunity, under a deep sense of his incompe-
tency ; but at length he was prevailed upon to speak in a small company,
which he did greatly to their satisfaction and edification. Having been
thus proved for a considerable time, he was at length called forth, and
set apart by fasting and prayer to the ministerial ofBce, which he execut-
ed with faithfulness and success during a long course of years ; though
frequently with the greatest trepidation and inward disquietude.
Ashe was baptized 1655, and imprisoned 1660, he could not have been
long engaged in the work when the latter event took place : and it does
not appear whether he obtained a stated employment p? a minister ; or
whether he only preached occasionally, and contmued to work at his
trade ; as many Dissenters very laudably do, when called to minister
among poor people, that they '' may not be burdensome to them." Pre-
viously however to the resturation of Charles 11. when the churches were
principally filled by those who have since been di?iingui=hed as noncon-
formists ; he was expected to pre-ach in n church near Cambridge ; and
a student of that university, not remarkable for sobriety, observing aeon-
course of people, was induced by curiosity to hear ' the tinker prate ;' but
the discourse made an unexpected impression on his mind ; he embraced
every future opportunity of hearing Mr. Bunyan, and at length became
jin eminent preacher in Cambridgeshire.
/' " When the restoration took place, and, contrary to equity, engagements,
S and sound policy, the laws were framed and executed with a severity
/ evidently intended to exclude every man, Vv'ho scrupled the least tittle of
\ the doctrine, liturg}% discipline, or government of the established church,
y Mr Bunyan was one of the first that sufifered by them : for being coura-
*" '^'ous and unreserved, he went on in his ministerial work without any
disguise; and Norember 12, 1660, he was apprehended by a warrant
from Justice Wingate at Harlington, near Bedford, with sixty other per-
son:-, and committed to the county jail. Security was offered for his ap-
pearance at the sessions ; but it was refused, as his sureties would not
consent that he should be restricted from preaching. He was according-
ly confined till the quarter-sessions, when his indictment stated — ^ That
John Bunyan, of the town of Bedford, labourer, had devilishly ^.r\(\ pemi-
riously abstained from coming to church to hear divine service ; and was
a common upholder of several unlawful meetings and conventicles, to the
great disturbance and disiracfion cf the good subjects of this kingdom,
contrary to the laws of our sovereign loTd the King.' The facts charged
upon him in this absurd indictment were never proved ; as no witnesses
were produced. He had confessed, in conversation with the magistrates,
that he was a Dissenter, and had preached : these words being consider-
ed as equivalent to conviction, were recorded against him ; and as he re-
JOHN BUNYAN. Xfli
fused to conform, he was sentenced to perpetual banishment. This sen-
tence indeed was not executed : but he was confined in Bedford jail
more than twelve years, notwithstanding several attempts were made to
obtain his deliverance.
During this tedious impri&opoient, or at least part of it, he had no books,
except a Bible^nd Fox's ^fertjrology : yet thus circumstanced, he pen-
ned the Pii:GRiM^§""iPft<TtJRESS, and many other treatises ! He was only
thirty-two years of age, when he was imprisoned ; he had spent his youth
in the most disadvantageous manner imaginable ; and he had been no
more than five years a member of the church at Bedford, and less time a
preacher of the gospel : yet in this admired allegory he appear^ to have
been most intimately acquainted with all the variety of characters, which
ministers, long employed in the sacred service, and eminent for judgment
and sagacity, have observed among professors or opposers of evangelical
truth !
No fewer than sixty Dissenters and two ministers were confined
with Mr. Bunyan in this jail ! and as some were discharged, others were
committed during the time of his imprisonment ! But this painful situa-
tion aiforded him an opportunity of privately exercising his ministry to
good effect. He learned in prison to make tagged thread lace in the in-
tervals of his other labours ; and by this employment he provided in the
most unexceptionable manner for himself and his family. He seems to
have been endued with extraordinary patience and courage, and to have
experienced abundant consolations, while enduring these hardships : he
•vvas, however, sometimes distressed about his family, especially his eldest
daughter, who was blind ; but in these trying seasons he received com-
fort from meditating on the promises of God's word.*
He was at some times favoured by the jailors, and permitted to see his
family and friends ; and, during the former part of his imprisonment, he
was even allowed to go out occasionally, and once to take a journey to
London, probably to see whether any legal redress might be obtained ;
according to some intimations given by Sir Matthew Hale, when pe-
titions in his favour were laid before the judges. But this indulgence of
the jailor exposing him to great danger, Mr. Bunyan was afterward
more closely confined. Hence I suppose has arisen the opinion, which
commonly prevails, that he was imprisoned at different times : but he
seems never to have been set at liberty, and then re-committed ; though
his hardships ami restraints were greater at one time than another.
In the last year of his imprisonment, (A. D. 1671) he was chosen pas-
tor of the dissenting church at Bedfoid ; though it does not appear what
opportunity he could have of exercising his pastoral office, except within
the precincts of the jail. He was, however, liberated soon after, through
the good offices of Dr. Barlow, Bishop of Lincoln, after many fruitless
attempts had been made foi- that purpose. Thus terminated his tedious,
severe, and even illegal imprisonment, which had given him abundant
opportunity for the exercise of patience and meekness ; and which seems
to have been overruled botli for his own spiritual improvement, and the
furtherance of the gospel ; by leading him to study, and to form habits of
Close reflection, and accurate investigation of various subjects, in order to
'^ Jer. XV. ll.xlix. 11.
2
XIV THE LIFE OF
-pen his several treatiaes < ^hen probably he would neither have thought
so deeply, nor written so well, had he been more at ease and at liberty.
A sbort time after his enlargement, he built a meeting-house at Bed-
ford, by the voluntary contributions of his friends ; and here he statedly
preached to large auditories, till his death, without meeting with any re-
markable molestation. He used to come up to London every year,
where he preached among the nonconformists with great acceptance ; and
it is said that Dr. Owen frequently attended on these occasions, and ex-
pressed his approbation in very decided language. He likewise made
stated circuits into other parts of England ; and animated his brethern to
bear the cross patiently, to obey God rather than man. and to leave all
consequences with him. He was at the same time peculiarly attentive to
the temporal wants of those who suffered for conscience sake, and of the
sick or afflicted : and he employed his influence very successfully, in re-
conciling differences among professors of the gospel, and thus preventing
disgraceful and burdensome litigations. He was very exact in family
religion, and the instruction of his children ; being principally concerned
for their spiritual interests, and comparatively indiflerent about their
temporal prosperity. He therefore declined the liberal proposal of a
wealthy citizen of London, to take his son as an apprentice without any
premium, saying, 'God did not send me to advance my family, but to
preach the »ospel ;' — probably disliking the business or situation as un-
favourable to piety.
Nothing material is recorded concerning him, between his enlargement
in 1672, and his dea^iiB-4^88. It is said, that he clearly saw through the
designs of the court in favourMjf popery, when the indulgence was granted
to the Dissenters, by James II. in 1687 : but that he advised his brethren
to avail themselves of the sunshine, by diligent endeavours to spread the
gospel, and to prepare for an approaching storm by fasting and prayer.
The next year he took a journey in very bad weather from London to
Reading, Berks, to make up a breach between a father and son, with
whom he had some acquaintance ; and having happily effected his last
work and labour of love, he returned to his lodgings on Snow-hill, ap-
parently in good health, iDut very wet with the heavy rain that was then
falling ; and soon after he was seized with a fever, which in ten days ter-
minated his useful life. He bore his malady with great patience and
composure, and died in a very comfortable and triumphant manner,
August 31, 1688, aged sixty years; after having exercised his ministry
about thirty-two. He lies buried in Bunhill fields, where a tombstone
to his memory may still be seen. He was tv/ice married : by his first
wife, he had four children, one of which, a daughter named Mary, who
was blind, died before him. He was married to his second wife A. D.
1658, two years before his imprisonment, by whom he feems not to have
had any children. She survived him about four years. Concerning the
other branches of his family wq have not been able to gain any infor-
mation.
Mr. Bunyan was tall and broad set, though not corpulent : he had a
ruddy complexion, with sparkling eyes, and hair inclining to red, but in
his old age sprinkled with gray. His whole appearance was plain, and
his dress always simple and unaffected. He published sixty tracts, which
equalled the number of years he lived. The Pilgrim's Progrfss had
passed through more than fifty editions in 1784.
XT JOHN BUNYAN.
His character seems to have been uniformly good, from the time "when
he was brought acquainted with the blej'sed gospel of Christ: and
though his countenance was rather stern and his manner rough ; yet he
was very mild, modest, and affable, in his behaviour. He was backward
to speak much, except on particular occasions, and remarkably averse to
boasting ; ready to submit to the judgment of others, and disposed to for-
give injuries, to follow peace with all men, and to employ himself as a
peace-maker : yet he was steady to his principles, and bold in reproving
sin without respect to persons. Many slanders were spread concerning
him during the course of his ministry, some of which he refuted : they
have, however, all died away ; and no one now pretends to say any thing
to his disadvantage, except as a firm attachment to his creed and practice,
as a Calvinist, a Dissenter, and an Antipoedo-baptist, has been called
bigotry ; and as the account given of his own experience has been mis-
understood or misrepresented.
He was undoubtedly endued with extraordinary natural talents ; his
understanding, discernment, memory, investigation, and imagination,
were remarkably sound and vigorous : so that he made very great profi-
ciency in the knowledge of scriptural divinity, though brought up in
ignorance : but he never made such progress in human learning. — Even
such persons, as did not favour his religious principles, have done ample
justice to his mental powers. The celebrated Dr. Johnson ranks the
Pilgrim's Progress among a very few books indeed, of which the
reader, when he comes to the conclusion, wishes they had been longer ;
and allows it to rank high among the works of original genius.* But it is
above all things wonderful, that Bunyau's imagination, fertile and vigo-
rous in a very great degree, and wholly untutored by the rules of learn-
ing, should in this instance have been so disciplined by sound judgment,
and deep acquaintance with the Scripturo, as to produce, in the form of
an allegory, one of the fairest and mo.^t unexceptionable treatises on the
system ofCalyinism^ that can be found in the English language ! In se-
veral oTHls^other publication?, his imagination frequently carried him be-
yond just bounds: but here he avoid? all extremes, and seems not to
deviate either to the right hand or to the left. Perhaps, as he was him-
self liable to depression of spirit, and had passed through deep distresses,
the views he gives of the Pilgrim's temptations may be too gloomy ; but
he has shown in the course of the work, that this arose principally from
inadequate views of evangelical truth, and the want of Christian com-
munion, with the benefits to be derived from the counsels of a faithful
minister.
* Piozzi*s Anecdotes of Johnson. — Boswell's Life of Johnson, vol. ii. p.
97, 2d edition
THE ^V ^ _ ■ ■ ; ^
PILGRIM'S PROGRESS.
PART f.
AS I walked through the wilderness of this world, I lighted
on a certain place where was a den ; and I laid me down in
that place to sleep : and as I slept I dreamed a dream, a I
dreamed, and beliold, " I saw a man clothed with rags, stand-
ing in a certain place, with his face from his own house, a
book in his hand, and a great burden upon his back."* I
looked, and saw him open the book, and read therein ; and as
he read he wept and trembled ; and, not being able longer to
contain, he brake out with a lamentable cry, saying, *' What
shall I do ?"t (6)
* Isaiah Ixiv. G. Luke xiv. 33. Psalm xxxviii. 4. Hab. ii. 2. t Acta ii. 37.
(a) Mr. Bunyan was confined about twelve years in Bedford jail, for
exercising his ministry contrary to the statutes then in force. This was
* the den, in which he slept and dreamed :' here he penned this instructive
allegory, and many other useful works, which evince that he was neither
soured nor disheartened by persecution. The Christian, who under-
stands what usage he ought to expect in this evil world, comparing our
present measure of religious liberty with the rigours of that age, will see
abundant cause for gratitude ; but they who are disposed to complain,
can never be at a loss for topics, while so much is amiss among all ranks
and orders of men, and in the conduct of every individual,
(6) The allegory opens with a description of its principal characters.
The author in his dream saw him * clothed in rags;' which implies that
all men are sinners, in their dispositions and conduct ; that their supposed
virtues are radically defective, and worthless in the sight of God ; and
that the Pilgrim has discovered his own righteousness to be insufficient
for justification, even as sordid rags would be unsuitable raiment for thoso
G 2*
IB <\ { '; The ''Biigripjk goes home in distress,
:JU cthJ.s:/^^ligl»'t,^l]|ar^oA;fe Yemeni home, and restrained him-
eelf^a^ loiig ds faecJoliid; tKat' his wife and children should not
perceive his distress ; but he could not be silent long, because
that his trouble increased : wherefore at length he brake his
mind to his wife and children ; and thus he began to talk to
them : ' O my dear wife,' said he, ' and you the children of
my bowels, I your dear friend am in myself undone, by reason
of a burden that lieth hard upon me : moreover, I am certainly
informed that this our city will be burned with fire from
heaven ; in which fearful overthrow, both myself, with thee
my wife, and you my sweet babes, shall miserably come to
rum , except (the which yet I see not) some way of escape
may be found, whereby we may be delivered.' At this his
relations were sore amazed ; not for that tliey believed that
what he had said to them was true, but because they thouglit
some frenzy distemper had got into his head ; therefore, it
drawing towards night, and they hoping that sleep might settle
his brains, with all haste they got him to bed : but the night
who stand before kings. ' His face turned from his own house,' repre-
sents the sinner convhiced that it is absolutely necessary to subordinate
all other concerns to the care of his immortal soul, and to renounce every
thin^ which interferes with that grand object : and this makes him lose
liis former relish for the pleasures of sin, and even for the most lawful
temporal satisfactions, while he trembles at the thought of impending de-
struction.* * The book in his hand in which he read' implies, that sinners
discover their real state and character, by reading and believing the
Scriptures ; that their first attention is often directed to the denunciations
of the wrath to come ; and that in this case they cannot but continue to
search the Word of God, though their grief and alarm is increased by
every perusal. The ^ burden on his back' represents that distressing sense
of guilt, and fear of wrath, which deeply convinced sinners cannot shake
«)ff ; * the remembrance of their sins is grievous to them, the burden of
them is intolerable ;' their consciences are oppressed with guilt, even on
account of those actions in which their neighbours perceive no harm ;
their hearts tremble at the prospect of dangers of which others have no
apprehension ; and they see an absolute necessity of escaping from a situ-
ation in which others live most securely : for true faith " sees things that
are invisible." In one way or other, therefore, they soon manifest the
earnestness of their minds, in inquiring " what they must do to be saved ?^'
The circumstances of these humiliating convictions exceedingly vary, but
the life of faith and grace always begins with them ; and they who are
wholly strangers to this experience are Christians only in name and
form;
« He knows no hope who never knew a fear," Cowper.
*Heb.xi.8,24~27.
His Family^ s behaviour to him. 19
was as troublesome to him as the day ; wherefore, instead of
sleeping, he spent it in sighs and tears. So when the morning
was come, they would know how he did ; and he told them worse
and worse. He also set to talking to them again, but they be-
gan to be hardened : they also thought to drive away his dis-
temper by harsh and surly carriage to him : sometimes they
would deride, sometimes they would chide, and sometimes
they would quite neglect him. Wherefore he began to retire
himself to his chamber, to pray for and pity them : and also
to condole his own misery. He ^ould also walk solitarily in
the fields, sometimes reading and sometimes praying ; and thus
for some days he spent his time, (c)
Now I saw, upon a time, when he was walking in the fields,
that he was (as he was wont) reading in his book, and greatly
(c) The contempt or indignation, which worldly people express toward-:
' those who are distressed in conscience, commonly induces them to con-
ceal their inquietude as long as they can, even from their relatives; but
this soon becomes impracticable. Natural affection also, connected with
a view of the extreme danger to which a man sees the olyects of his most
tender attachments exposed, but of which they have no apprehensions,
will extort earnest representations, warnings, and entreaties. The city
of DGstruction, (as it is afterward called) signifies tliis present evil world
as doomed to the flames; or the condition of careless sinners immersed i
in secular pursuits and pleasures, neglecting eternal things, and exposed to
the unquenchable fire of hell," at the day of judgment and perdition of
ungodly men." They who are ignorant of the Scriptures, and unaccus-
tomed to compare their own conduct with the divine law, will be amazed
at such discourse ; and, instead of duly regarding the warnings given them,
will commonly ascribe them to enthusiasm or insanity : and, as prophets,
apostles, and the Son of God himself, were looked upon as visionaries or
beside themselves by their cotemporaries ; we may be sure that no pru-
dence, excellence, or benevolence, can exempt the consistent believer
from the same trial. Near relations will generally be the first to form
this opinion of his case ; and will devise various expedients to quiet his
mind : diversions, company, feastings, absence from serious friends or
books, will be prescribed ; and by these means a false peace often succeeds
a transient alarm. But when any one has received a genuine humiliat-
ing discovery of the evil and desert of sin, such expedients will not allevi-
ate but increase the anguish ; and will be followed by still greater ^
earnestness about his own salvation, and that of others. This commonly
strengthens prejudice, and induces obduracy: and contemptuous pity
gives place to resentment, ill usage, derision, or neglect. The diconso-
late believer is then driven into retirement, and endeavours to relieve his
burdened mind by reading the Scriptures, and meditating on liis doleful
cases with compassionate prayers for his despisers : and thus he sows in
tears that seed, from which the harvest of his future joy will surely be
produced.
^U Evangelist meets and instructs Christian,
distressed in his mind ; and as he read, he burst out, as he had
done before, crying, " What shall I do to be saved ?"*
I saw also that he looked this way and that way, as if he
would run ; yet he stood still, because (as I perceived) he
could not tell which way to go. I looked then, and saw a man
named Evangelist coming to him, and he asked, 'Wherefore:
dost thou cry V He answered, Sir, I perceive by the book in
my hand that I am condemned to die, and after that to come to
judgment ; and I find that I am not willing to do the first, nor
able to do the second.!
Then said Evangelist, Why not willing to die, since this life;
is attended with so many evils ? The man answered, Because
1 fear that this burden that is upon my back will sink me lower
than the grave, and I shall fall into Tophet.'l And, Sir, if I be
not fit to go to prison, I am not fit to go to judgment, and from
thence to execution: and the thoughts of these things make
me cry. (J)
Then said Evangelist, If this be thy condition, why standest
thou still ? He answered. Because I know not whither to go.
Then he gave him a parchment roll ; and there was written
within, '^ Flee from the wrath to come."§ (e)
The man therefore read it, and, looking upon Evangehst
very carefully, said, Whither must I flee ? Then said Evangc-
Hst, pointing with his finger over a very wide field. Do you
* Acts xvi. 30, 31. t Heb. ix. 27. Job xvi. 21, 22. Ezek. xxii. 14.
% Isaiah xxx. 33. g Matt. iii. 7.
(d) The Scriptures are indeed sufficient to make us wise unto salva-
tion, as well as to show us our guilt and danger : yet the Lord commonly
uses the ministry of bis servants, to direct into the way of peace, even
those who have previously discovered their lost condition. — Though con-
V inced of the necessity of escaping from impending ruin, they hesitate,
not knowing what to do ; till Providence brings them acquainted with
some faithful preacher of the gospel, whose instructions afford an explicit
answer to their secret inquiries after the way of salvation.
(e) The able minister of Christ will deem it necessary to enforce the
warning, " Flee from the wrath to come," even upon those who are alarm-
ed about their souls ; because this is the proper way of exciting them to
diligence and decision, and of preserving them from procrastination.
They, therefore, who would persuade persons under convictions, that
their fears are groundless, their guilt far less than they suppose, and their
danger imaginary, use the most effectual means of soothing them into a
fetal security. And no discoveries of heinous guilt or helpless ruin in
themselves can produce despondency, provided the salvation of the gtwpel
be fully exhibited and proposed to them.
Christian begins to run from home. 2\
see yonder Wicket-gate ?* The man said, No. Then said the
other, Do you see yonder shining Light ?t He said, I think
I do. Then said EvangeHst, Keep that hght in your eye,
and go up directly thereto, so shalt thou see the Gate ; at
which when thou knockest it shall be told thee what thou
shalt do.
So I saw in my dream that the man began to run. Now he
had not run far from his own door, but his wife and children
perceiving it, began to cry after him to return ;| but the man
put his fingers in his ears, and ran on, crying Life ! life ! eter-
nal life ! So he looked not behind him,§ but fled towards the
middle of the plain. (/)
The neighbours also came out to see bim run : and as he
ran, some mocked, others threatened, and some cried after
him to return ; and among those that did so, there were two
that were resolved to fetch bim back by force. The name of
the one was Obstinate, and the name of the other Pliable. Now
by this time the man was got a good distance from them ; but
however they were resolved to pursue him^ which they did,
and in a little time they overtook him. Then said the man,
Neighbours, wherefore are you come ? They said, To per-
suade you to go bark with us ; but he said, That can oy iio*
means be ; you dwell, said he, in the City of Destruction, the
* Matt. vii. 13, 14. t Psalm cxix. 105. 2 Pet. i. 19. ^: Luke
xiv. 26. 5 Gen. xix. 17. 2 Cor. iv. 18.
(/) The awakened sinner may be incapable, for a time, ol perceiving
the way of Salvation by faith in Christ ; for divine illumination is often
very gradual : as the Pilgrim could not see the Gate., when Evangelist
pointed it out to him. Yet he thought he could discern the Shining
Light ; for upright inquirers attend to the general instructions and en-
couragements of Scripture, and the declarations of the pardoning mercy
of God, which by degrees lead them to the knowledge of Christ and to
faith in him ; as our author says in a marginal note, ' Christ and the way
to him, cannot be found without the Word.' — The Pilgrim being thus in-
structed, * began to run :' for no persuasions or considerations can induce
the man, who is duly in earnest about salvation, to neglect those things
which he knows to be his present duty : yet when this is the case, it must
be expected that carnal relations will oppose this new course of conduct ;
especially as it appears to them destructive of all prospects of worldly
advantage.
The following lines are here subjoined to a very rude engraving ; —
* Christian no sooner leaves the world, but meets
Evangelist, who lovingly him greets
With tidings of another ; and doth show
Him how to mount t«» iJ*ntfrom this below.'
2 2 Obstinate and Pliable attempt to fetch him back,
place also where I was born ; I see it to be so ; and dying
there, sooner or later, you will sink lower than the grave, into
a place that burns with fire and brimstone : be content, good
neighbours, and go along with me. (g)
What, said Obstinate, and leave our friends and our comforts
behind us I '^
Yes, said Christian, (for that was his name,) because, that all
is not worthy to be compared with a little of that that 1 am
seeking to enjoy ; and if you will go along witli me, and holdlit,
you shall fare as I myself; for there, where I go, is enough
and to spare :* come away, and prove my words. ^
Obst. What are the things you seek, since you leave all the
world to find them ? .
Oir, I seek an *' inheritance incorruptible, undefiled, and
that fadeth not away ;" and it is "laid up in heaven,"! and
safe there, to be bestowed at the time appointed on them that
diligently seek it. Read it so, if you will, in my book.
Tush, said Obstinate, away with your book : will you go
back with us, or no ?
No, not I, said the other, because I have laid my hand to
the plough. f
Gbsf. Come then, neighbour Pliable, let us turn again, and
go home without him : there is a company of these craz'd-
headed coxcombs, that when they take a fancy by the end, are
wiser in their own eyes than seven men that can render a
reason.
Then said Pliable, Don't revile ; if what the good Christian
says is true, the things he looks after are better than ours j my
heart inclines to go with my neighbour.
Obst. What ! more fools still ! be ruled by me, and go back ;
* Luke XV. 17. 1 1 Pet. i. 4—6. Heb. xi. 6, 16. J Luke ix. 62.
fe) '^^^ attention of whole drcles of careless sinners is generally exci-
ted, when one of their companions engages in religion, and forsakes the
party. He soon becomes the topic of conversation ; some ridicule, others
rail or threaten, others ase force or artifice to withdraw him from his pur-
pose ; according to their different dispositions, situations, or relations to
him. Most of them, however, soon desist, and leave him to his choice. '
But two characters are not so easily shaken off: those our author has
named Obstinate and Pliable, to denote their opposite propensities. The
former, through a resolute pride and stoutness of heart, persists in attempt-
ing to bring back the new convert to his worldly pursuits ; the latter,
from a natural easiness of temper and susceptibility of impression, \s jili-
ant to persuasion, and readily consents to accompany him.
Pliable consents to go with Jmn. 2 3
who knows whither such a brain-sick fellow will lead you ?
Go back, go back, and be wise.
Chi\ Come with me, neighbour Pliable, there are such
things to be had which I spoke of, and many more glorious be-
sides : if you believe not me, read here in this book ; and, for
the truth of what is expressed therein, behold, all is confirmed
by the blood of him that made it.J
Well, neighbour Obstinate, saith Pliable, I begin to come to
a point : I intend to go along with this good man, and to cast
in my lot with him. But, my good companion, do you know
the way to this desired place ?
Chr. I am directed by a man, whose name is Evangelist, to
speed me to a little Gate that is before us, where we shall re-
ceive instructions about the way.
Pli. Come then, good neighbour, let us be going. Then
they went both together.
And I will go back to my place, said Obstinate : 1 will be no
companion of such misled fantastical fellows. (Ji)
Now 1 saw in my dream that when Obstinate was gone back.
Christian and Pliable went talking over the plain : and thus
they began their discourse.
Chr, Come, neighbour Pliable, how do you do ? I am glad
you are persuaded to go along with me ; had even Obstinate
himself but felt what I have felt, of the powers and terrors of
what is yet unseen, he would not thus lightly have given us
the back.
Pli, Come, neighbour Christian, since there are none but
us two here, tell me now further, what the things are, and how
to be enjoyed, whither we are going.
Chr, I can better conceive of them with my mind than speak
jHeb.ix. 17—22.
(/i) This dialogue admirably illustrates the characters of the speakers.
Christian, (for so he is henceforth called,) is firm, decided, bold, and san-
f^uine : Obstinate is profane, scornful, self-sufficient, and disposed to con-
temn even the Word of God, when it interferes with his worldly inte-
rest* : Pliable is yielding, and easily induced to engage in things of wliich
he understands neither the nature nor the consequences. Christian's
plain warnings and earnest entreaties ; and Obstinate's contempt of 1 e-
lievers, as ^ craz'd-hcaded coxcombs^'' and hi? exclamation, when Pliable
inclines to be a Pilgrim, 'What! more fools still I' are admirably cIih-
racteristic ; and show that such sarcasms and Fcornfnl abnse are peciliar
to no as:e or place, but always follow serious godliness as the shadow does
*' '- *'ir.ce.
2 4 Christian discourses with Pliable.
of them with my tongue : but yet, since you are desirous to
know, I will read of them in my book.
Pli, And do you think that the words of your book are cer-
tainly true ?
Chr. Yes, verily, for it was made by him that cannot lie.*
Pli. Well said ; what things are they ?
Chr. There is an endless kingdom to be inhabited, and
everlasting life to be given us, that we may inhabit that king-
dom for ever.t
Pli. Well said ; and what else ?
Chr. There are crowns of glory to be given us ; and gar-
ments that will make us shine like the sun in the firmament of
heaven.;]:
Pli. This is excellent : and what else ?
Chr. There shall be no more crying nor sorrow ; for he
that is owner of the place will wipe all tears from our eyes. §
Pli. And what company shall we have there ?
Chr. There we shall be with Seraphims and Cherubims,
creatures that will dazzle your eyes to look on them.ll There
also you shall meet with thousands and ten thousands that have
gone before us to that place ; none of them are hurtful, but
loving and holy ; every one walking in the sight of God, and
standing in his presence with acceptance for ever. In a word,
there we shall see the elders with their golden crowns ;^i
there we shall see holy virgins with their golden harps ;** there
v/e shall see men that by the world were cut in pieces, burnt
in flames, eaten of beasts, drowned in the seas, for the love
that they bare to the Lord of the place, all well, and clothed
with immortality as with a garment.jt
PH. The hearing of this is enough to ravish one's heart : but
are these things to be enjoyed ? how shall we get to be sharers
thereof ?
Chr. The Lord, the Governor of the countrj^ hath record-
ed thai in this book ; the substance of which is, if we be truly
wiiling to have it, he will bestow it upon us freely. J|
Pli. \Vell, my good companion, glad am I to hear of these
things. Come on, let us mend our pace.
=^' Tit.i . 2. t Isa. xlv. 17. John x. 27—29. J 2 Tim. iv. 8.
Pvcv. iii. 4. Malth. xiii. 43. } Isa. xxv. 8. Rev. vii. ^6, 17. xxi. 4.
1] lea. vi. 2. I. Thsss. iv. 16, 17. IT Rev. iv. 4. ** Rev. xiv. 1—5
Tt John xii. 25. 2 Cor. v. 2—5. ifj Isa. Iv. 1—3. Jolm vi. 37. \n. 37.
Rev. xxi. 0. xxii. 17.
They fall into the Slough of Despond. 2ij
Chr. I cannot go so fast as I would, by reason of this burden
that is upon my back, (i)
Now 1 saw in my dream, that just as the}'^ had ended this
talk, they drew nigh to a very miry Slough, that was in the
midst of the plain, and they, being heedless, did both fall sud-
denly into the bog. The name of the Slough was Despond.
Here therefore they wallowed for a time, being grievously be-
daubed with the dirt ; and Christian, because of the burden
that was on his back, began to sink in the mire.
Then said Pliable, Ah ! neighbour Christian, where are you
now ? Truly, said Christian, I do not know.
At that. Pliable began to be offended, and angrily said to his
fellow, ' Is this the happiness you have told me all this while
of? If we have such ill speed at our first setting out, what may
we expect 'twixt this and our journey's end ? May I get out
again with my life, you shall possess the brave country alone
for me.' And with that he gave a desperate struggle or two,
and got out of the mire, on that side of the Slough which was
(i) The conversation between Christian and Pliable marks the differ-,
euce in their characters, as well as the measuixs of the new convert's at-
tainments.— The want of a due apprehension of eternal things is evident-
ly the primary defect of all those who oppose or u:^;;:lect religion ; but
more maturity of judgment and experience are requisite to discover, that
many professors are equally strangers to a realizing viev/ *of the pov/erg
and terrors of what is yet unseen.' The men represented by Pliable dis-
regard these subjects ; tliey inquire eagerly about tlie good things to be
enjoyed ; but not in any due proportion about the way of salvation, the
difficulties to be encountered, or the danger of coming short ; and new
converts, being zealous, sangu-ine, and unsuspecting, are naturally led to
enlarge on the descriptions of heavenly felicity given in Scripture. These
are generally figurative or negative ; so that unregenerate persons annex-
ing carnal ideas to them, are greatly delighted ; and, not being retarded
by any distressing remorse and terror, or feeling the opposition of corrupt
nature, (which is gratified in some respects, though thwarted in ethers,]^
they are often more zealous, and seem to proceed faster in externa duties
than true converts. They take it for granted, that all the privilf ,s;es of
the gospel belong to them ; and, being very confident, zealous and oyful,
they often censure those who are really fighting the good fight of fe ith, as
deficient in zeal and alacrity. — There are also systems diligently propa-
gated, which greatly encourage this delusion, excite a high flow of false
affections, (especially of a mere selfish gratitude to 'i supposed benefactor
for imaginary benefits :) till the event proves the .Hole to be like the
Israelites at the Red Sea^ who " believed the Lord r word, and sang his
praise ; but soon forgat his works, and waited not for his counsel." Psal.
cvi. 12—24. .
? G Pliable goes home*
•text to his own house. So awny he went, and Christian saw
him no more, (k)
(k) The Slough of Despond roprcscnfn those tliscourajying fcnr« which
often harHss new converts. It iw (ii«tin;jjuif(hocl from the jiUrmH which in-
duced Christian to leave the city, and " Heo from the wruth to come :*'
for the an\iou« u|)pr<'hensiotiM of one who is diligently seekinj; Halvalion,
arc very dillb rent Irom those which excited him to incpiire after it. The
latter are reasonable and u?*cful, and arise from faith : but the former are
groundlchs ; they rcwult from remainin;; if^uorunce, inattenti«)n and unbe-
lief, and p^reatly retard tl»e Pilfjfrim. Tliey must also be carefully dis-
ting:uish<>d from those doubtM and dif^couru^^ements, which usxuult the
established christian: for these are m(>nerally the eon^eqiience of ne^li-
pfcnce, or yieldm;j^ to t<inptation : wherras new eonvertji full ii)t<» their
dcsponding^s, when most diliij^f-nt, nccordiMg; to the li;;ht tliey have re-
ceived : and, if nome eonMcientioiiw peii«o»i;^ stiem to meet with this Slough
in every part of their pilg^rimaj^e, it nriscH from an immature jiid^^ment,
erroneous sentimentx, or peculiar toirjptulions. When the diligent student
of the Scriptures obtiur»3 such an accpiuintauco with the perfect holi-
ness of God, the f<}>irittndity of hia law, the incxprrtifliblo evil of sin, au»l
liis own obli^^ations and transjfre«!»ion8, as jj^nntly exceeds the meawiire in
which he diHccrns the free ami full salvation of the };'ospel, his hunulintion
will of cours^e ver^c nearer and nearer to despon<lcncy. Thi?, however,
SB not essential to repentance, but arises from miya])prehensioa ; though
few in proportion wholly escape it. The 7nirr. of the Slouj^h repreaenta
that idea which despondinj? persons entertain of themnelves and their situ-
ation, as aUop;ether vile and loathsome; and their con fc«w ions and self-
abasin;j complaints, which render them contemptible in the opinion of
others. As every attempt to rescue themselves discovers to them more of
the latent evil of their hearts, they seem to j^row worse and worse ; and,
for want of a clear understanding; of the Gospel, they have no firm ground
to tread on, ond know neither where they are, n(»r wliat they must do. —
But how could PnAHLF. fall into this Slough, seeing he ha«l no such views
of God, or his law, of himself, or of sin, as this condition seems to presup-
pose ? To this it may be answered, that men can hardly associate with
religions persons, and hear their discourse, confessions, and complaints, or
become acquainted with any part of Scripture, without making some
alarming and mortifying discoveries concerning themselves. These tran-
sient convictions taking place when they fancied they were about to be-
eomc very good, and succeeding to great self-complacency, eon«<titate a
grievous disappointment, and they ascribe their uneasiness to the new
doctrine they liave heard. — But though Pliable fell into the Slough,
Christian, * by reason of his burden,' sunk the deepest: for the true
believer's humiliation for sin tends greatly to increase his fear of wrath.
Superficial professors, expecting the promised happiness without trouble
or suffering, are often very angry at tJiose who were the meautt of leading
them to think of religion ; as if they had deceived them : and, being des-
titute of true laith, their only object is, at any rate to get rid of their un-
easiness. This is a species of stony-ground hearers abounding in every
part of the church, who are offended and fall away, by means of a little
tnicard disquietude, before any outward tribulation arises bccau?e of the
word.
Christian struggles to the other side.
27
Wherefore Christian waf5 left to tumble in the Slough of
Despond alone : hut 8lili he endeavoured to struggle to that
side of the Slongh that was «tiil further from his own house,
and next to the Wicket-gate; the which he did, hut could not
get out, because of the burden that was upon his back. But 1
beheld in my dream, that a man came to him, whose name
was Help, and asked him, * What he did there V
' Sir,' said Cfiristian, * 1 was bid go this way, by a man call-
td Evangelist, who directed me also to yonder Gate, that I
might escape the wrath to come : and as I was going thither 1
fell in here.'
Help, But why did you not look for the steps ?
Chr. Fear followed me so hard, thnt ' '' ' ^^
and fell in. (/)
' Then,' said he, * give me thy hand. ^o n«- l^.^^^: tnm m.-
hand, and he drew him out, and set him on wound ground, and
h!t him go on his way.
Then I stepped to biro that plucked him out, and said, ♦ Sir,
ifhereforp, «ince ovor this place is the way from the city of
Destruction to yonder Gate, is it, that this plat is not mended|^
that poor travellers might go thither with moi f y V And
he said to me. This miry Slough is such a \ nnot be
mended. It is the descent, whither the scum and lilth that at-
tends conviction of sin doth continually run, and therefore it is
called the Slough of Despond : for still .is the sinner is awak-
ened about his lost condition, there ariseth in his soul many
fears and doubts, and discouraging apprehensions, which all of
(/) Chiubtiait dreaded the doom of hk city more tljan the Slou;^Ti. —
Many persona, under deep distress of conscience, are afraid of reliei, left
it should prove delusive. Deliverance from wroth, and the hlcmu^ of
salvation, appear to them so valuable, that all else is comparatively trivial.
Desponding fears may cormect with their reli^ous dili;:jence ; but despair
would be the consequence of a return to their former course of sin. If
they perish, therefore, it shall be, while earnestly "truof^ling; under deep
discouragement, after that salvation for which 11 . f'Q faint with-
in them. Their own efforts indeed fail too n; but in due
time the Lord sends them assistance. — This is dc .,y the allej^orical
person named Hjclp, who may represent the instruments by which they
receive encouragement ; a service in which it is a privilege to be employ-
ed: or the Holy Spirit, the giver of hope and peace. — Fear also is pcr-
•onified : in the midst of the new convert's discourse of the joys of Heaven,
fears of wrath often cast him into despondency, while he so meditates on
the terrors of the Lord as to overlook his precious promisea.
28 Help comes to deliver him.
them get together, and settle in this place. And this is the^
reason of the badness of this ground.* I
It is not the pleasure of the king, that this place should re-
main so bad. His labourers also have, by the directions of his
Majesty's surveyors, been, for above these sixteen hundred
years, employed about this patch of ground, if perhaps it might
be mended : yea, and to my knowledge, said he, here hath
been swallowed up, at least twenty thousand cart-loads, yea,
millions of wholesome instructions, that have at all seasons
been brought from all places of the King's dominions ; (and
they that can tell, say, that they are the best materials to make
good ground of the place, if so be it might be mended ;) but it
is the Slough of Despond still, and so will be, when they have
done what they can.
True, there are, by the direction of the Lawgiver, certain
good and substantial steps, placed even through the very midst
of this Slough : but at such time as this place doth much spue
out its filth, as it doth against change of weather, these steps
are hardly seen, or if they be, men, through the dizziness of
their heads, step beside ; and then they are bemired to pur-
pose, notwithstanding the steps be there : but the ground is
good when they are once got in at the Gate.t (m)
* Psalm xl. 2. Isaiah xxxv. 3, 4. t 1 Sam. xii. 22.
(m) This account of the Slough, which our author in his vision received
from Help, coincides with the preceding explanation. — Increasing know-
ledge produces deeper self-abasement : hence discouraging fears arise in
men's minds lest thej"^ should at last perish, and objections against them-
selves continually accumulate, till they fall into habitual despondency,
unless they constantly attend to the encouragements of the Scripture, or,
in the Apostle's language have " their feet shod with the preparation of
the gospel of peace." — As this state of mind is distressing and enfeebling
ia itself, and often furnishes enemies with a plausible objection to religion,
the servants of God have always attempted to preserve the serious inqui-
rers after salvation from it, by various scriptural instructions and consola-
tory topics : yet their success is not adequate to their wishes ; for the
Lord is pleased to permit numbers to be thus discouraged, in order to de-
tect false professors, and to render the upright more watchful and humble.
Our author, in a marsr'nal note, explains the sttps to mean ' the promises
of forgiveness and acceptance to life by faith in Christ ;' which include
the general invitations, and the various encouragements given in Scripture,
to all who seek the salvation of the Lord, and diligently use the appointed
means. — It was evidently his opinion, that the path from destruction to
life lies by this Slough ; and that none are indeed in tiie narrow way who
have neither struggled through it, nor gone over it by means of the steps.
" The change of weather seems to denote those seasons, when peculiar
temptations, exciting sinful passions, perplex the minds of new converts ;
Worldly-Wiseman meets Christian. 29
Now I saw in my dream that by this time Pliable was got
home to his house. So his neighbours came to visit him ; and
some of them called him wise man for coming back ; and some
called him fool for hazarding himself with Christian : others
again did mock at his cowardliness, saying, ' Surely, since you
began to venture, I would not have been so base as to have given
out for a few difficulties :' so Pliable sat sneaking among them.
But at last he got more confidence, and then they all turned
their tales, and began to deride poor Christian behind his back.
And thus much concerning Pliable, {n)
Now as Christian was walking solitarily by himself, he espied
one afar off come crossing over the field to meet him, and their
hap was to meet just as they were crossing the way of each
other. The gentleman's name was Mr. Worldly-Wiseman ; he
dwelt in the town of Carnal-Policy ; a very great town, and
also hard by from whence Christian came. This man then
meeting with Christian, and having some inkling of him, for
Christian's setting forth from the City of Destruction was much
noised abroad, not only in the town where he dwelt, but also
it began to be the town talk in some other places ; Master
Worldly-Wiseman therefore having some guess of him by be-
holding his laborious going, by observing his sighs and groans,
and the like, began thus to enter into some talk with Chris-
tian, (o)
and so, losing sight of the promises, they sink into despondency during hu-
miliating experiences: but faith in Christ, and in the mercy of XJod
through him, sets the Pilgrim's feet on good ground.
(n) They who affect to despise real christians, often feel and express
great contempt for those that cast off their profession : such men are un-
able, for a time, to resume their wonted confidence among their former
companions ; and this excites them to pay court to them by reviling and
deriding those whom they have forsaken.
(o) The wise men of this world carefully notice those who begin to
turn their thoughts to religion, and attempt to counteract their convic-
tions before the case becomes desperate : from their desponding fears they
take occasion to insinuate that they are deluded or disordered in their
minds ; that they make too much ado about religion ; and that a decent
> regard to it is all that is requisite, which consists v» ith the enjoyment of
this life, and even conduces to secular advantage. — Worldly-wiseman,
therefore, is a person of consequence, whose superiority gives him influ-
ence over poor pilgrims : he is a reputable and successful man ; prudent,
sagacious, and acquainted with mankind : moral, and religious in his way,
and qualified to give the very best counsel to those who wish to serve
both God and Mammon: but he is decided in his judgment against all
kinds and degrees of religion, which interfere with a man's worldly inte-
3*
30 Worldly 'Wieeman questions Christian,
World, How now, good fellow ; whither away after this bur-
dened manner ?
Chr, A burdened manner indeed, as ever, I think, poor
creature had ! And whereas you ask me, Whither away ? I
tell you, Sir, I am going to yonder Wicket-gate before me ; for
there, as I am informed, I shall be put in a way to be rid of
my heavy burden.
World. Hast thou a wife and children ?
Chr, Yes ; but I am so ladened with this burden, that I can-
not take that pleasure in them as formerly : methinks I am as
if I had none.* /
World. Wilt thou hearken to me if I give thee counsel ?
Chr. If it be good Lwill ; for I stand in need of good counsel.
World. 1 would advise thee, then, that thou with all speed
get thyself rid of thy burden ; for thou wilt never be settled in
thy mind till then ; nor canst thou enjoy the benefits of the
blessings which God hath bestowed upon thee till then.
Chr. That is that which I seek for, even to be rid of this
heavy burden ; but get it off myself I cannot : nor is there
any man in our country that can take it off my shoulders : there-
fore am I going this way, as I told you, that I may be rid of my
burden.
World. Who bid thee go this way to be rid of thy burden ?
Chr. A man that appeared to me to be a very great and
honourable person : his name, as I remember, is Evangelist.
World. I beshrew him for his counsel ; there is not a more
dangerous and troublesome way in the world than is that un-
to which he hath directed thee ; and that thou shalt find, if
thou wilt be ruled by his counsel. Thou hast met with some-
thing, as ! perceive, already ; for I see the dirt of the Slough
of Despond is upon thee ; but that Slough is the beginning of
the sorrows that do attend those that go on in that way. Hear
me, I am older than thou ! thou art like to meet with on the
way which thou goest, wearisomeness, painfulness, hunger,
* 1 Cor. vii. 29.
rest, disquiet his mind, or spoil his relish for outward enjoyments. — He
resides at Carnal-Policy, a ^eat town near the city of Destruction : for
worldly prudence, modelling: a man's religion, is as ruinous as open vice
and impiety ; though it be very prevalent among decent and virtuous
people. Such men attend to the reports that are circulated about the
conversion of their neighbours, and often watch their opportunity of enter-
m^ into discourse with them.
And condemns Evangelisfs counsel, 3 i
perils, nakedness, sword, lions, dragons, darkness, and, in a
word, death, and what not ! These things are certainly true,
having heen confirmed by many testimonies. And why should
a man so carelessly cast away himself by giving heed to a
stranger ?
Chr, Why, Sir, this burden on my back is more terrible to "
me than are all these things which you have mentioned : nay,
methinks 1 care not what I meet with in the way, if so be I can
also meet with deliverance from my burden.
World, How camest thou by thy burden at first ?
Chr. By reading this book in my hand.
World. I thought so ; and it is happened unto thee as to other
weak men, who, meddlina; with things too high for them, do
suddenly fall into thy distractionsT which ^stracTions" do not
only unman men, (as thine I perceive has done thee,) but
they run them upon desperate ventures to obtain they know
not what.
Chr. I know what I would obtain ; it is ease from my heavy
burden^
World. But why wilt thou seek for ease this way, seeing so
many dangers attend it ? Especially since, hadst thou patience
to hear me, I could direct thee to the obtaining of what thou
desirest, without the dangers that thou in this way wilt run thyself
into. Yea, and the remedy is at hand. Besides,.! will add,
that, instead of these dangers, thou shalt meet with mucli safe-
iy, friendship, and content, (p)
Q;) There is ^reat beauty in this dialogue, arising from the exact regard
lo cliaracter preserved throughout. Indeed this forms one of our author's
peculiar excellencies : as it is a very difficult attainment, and always
manifests a superiority of genius. — The self-satisfaction of Worldly-
fv^iSEMAN ; his contempt of Christian's sentiments and pursuits ; his
sneering compassion, and censure of Evangelist's advice; his representa-
tion of the dangers and hardships of the way, and of ' the desperate ven-
tures of religious people to obtain they know not what ;■ and his confident
assumption, that Christian' s concern arose from weakness of intellect,
' meddling with things too high for him,' and hearkening to bad counsel,
(that is, reading the word of God, and attending to the preaching of the
gospel) and from distraction as the natural consequence, are most admira-
bly characteristic. — His arguments also are very specious. He does not
say that Evangelist had not pointed out the way of salvation, or that
wicked men are not in danger of future misery ; but he urges, that so
much concern about sin and the eternal world takes men ojfffrom a proper
regard to their secular concerns, and injures their families : that it pre-
vents their enjoying comfort in domestic life, or in other providential
blessings : that it leads them into perilous and distressing situations, of
32 Worldly-Wiseman prefers Morality.
Chr, Pray, Sir, open this secret to me.
World, Why in yonder village, (the village is named Mora-
lity) there dwells a gentleman whose name is Legality, a very
judicious man, and a man of a very good name, that has skill
to help men off with such burdens as thine are from their
shoulders ; yea, to my knowledge he hath done a great deal of
;,^ood this way : aye, and besides, he hath skill to cure those
that are somewhat crazed in their wits with their burdens.
To him, as I said, thou mayest go and be helped presently.
His house is not quite a mile from this place ; and if he should
not be at home himself, he hath a pretty young man to his
son, whose name is Civility, that can do it, (to sj^eak on) as
well as the old gentleman himself. There, I say, thou mayest
be eased of thy burden : and if thou art not minded to go back
to thy former habitation, as indeed I would not wish thee,
thou mayest send for thy wife and children to thee to this vil-
lage ; where there are houses now standing empty, one of which
thou mayest have at a reasonable rate. Provision is there also
cheap and good : and that which will make thy hfe mire hap-
py is, to be sure, there thou shalt live by honest neighbours, in
credit and good fashion. (9)
which their first terrors and despondings are only an earnest ; that a trou-
■'led conscience may be quieted in a more expeditious and easy manner ;
nd that they may obtain credit, comTort, and manifold advantages, by
. llowin^ prudent counsel. — On the other hand. Christian speaks in the
iiaracter of a young convert. He makes no secret of his distress and ter-
rors, and declares v/ithout reserve the method in which he sought relief.
He c^vTis he has lost his relish for every earthly comfort, and desires to re-
ceive good counsel : but while he is prepared to withstand all persuasions to
return home, he is not upon his guard against the insidious advice of
AVorldly-Wiseman. — He fears the wrath to come more than all the dread-
ful things which had been mentioned : but his earnestness to get immedi-
ate relief exposes him to the danger of seeking it in an unwarranted way.
^^earching the Scriptures has shown him his guilt and danger ; but, not
uiving learned likewise the instructions of life, he does not discern the
ital tendency of the plausible advice given him, especially as his counsel-
. r is a person of great reputation and sagacity. Every one, who has been
- i the way of making observations on these matters, must perceive how
exactly this suits the case of numbers, when first brought to mind "the
one thing needful."
(9) The village Morality represents that large company, who, in na-
tions favoured with revelation, abstain from scandalous vices, and practice
reputable duties, without any genuine fear or love of God, or regard to
his authority or glory. This decency of conduct, connected with a system
of notions, and a stint of external worship, is substituted in the place of
(Christianity : but it is faulty in its principle, its measure, and its object. — -~
It results wholly from self-love ; it is restricted to the outuard observajice
Christian sets out for Morality. 33
Now was Christian somewhat at a stand ; but presently he
concluded, If this be irue which this gentleman has said, my
wisest course is to take his advice ; and with that he thus far-
ther spoke.
Chr. Sir, which is my way to this honest man's house ?
World. Do you see yonder high hill ?
Chr. Yes, very well.
World. By that hill you must go, and the first you come at is
his.
So Christian turned out of his way to go to Mr. Legality's
house for help. But behold, when he was got now hard by the
hill, it seemed so high, and also that side of it that was next the
way side did hang so much over, that Christian was afraid to
venture fiirther, lest the hill should fall on his head ; where-
fore there he stood still, and he wot not what to do. Also his
burden now seemed heavier to him than while he was in his
way. There came also flashes of fire out of the hill, that made
of «omc scriptural precepts, while the rest are disregarded; and it aims
principally at the acquisition of i eputation, or temporal advantages, with
only a subordinate respect even to the interests of" eternity. It is entirely
diflferent from humble, cheerful, and unreserved obedience : it leaves tfie
heart in the possession of some worldly idol, and never constitutes a spirit-
ual worshipper, or renders a man meet for the pleasures of Heaven. —
Yet this mutilated religion draws multitudes off from attending either to
the holy requirements of the Law, or the humbling doctrines of the gos-
pel. The most noted inhabitant of this village derives his name, Legality,
not from making the law of God his rule and standard, (for '^ by the law
is the knowledge of sin," which tends to increase the convinced sinner's
distress ;) but from his teaching men to depend on 41 defective obedience
to a small part of the law, falsely explained, according to the method of
the scribes and pharisees. These teachers, however, are admired by the
wise men of this world, and are deemed very skilful in relieving troubled
consciences, and recovering men from religious distractions. — Civility re-
presents those who persuade themselves and others, that a decent, benevo-
lent, and obliging behaviour, will secure men from all future punishment,
and insure an inheritance in heaven, if indeed there he any such place. —
Counsellors of this description can ease the consciences of ignorant persons,
when superficially alarmed, almost as well as those who superadd a form
of godliness, a few doctrinal opinions, and a regard to some precepts of
Christianity. Both are at hand in every place : and the wise men of this
world are zealous in recommending thera : observing, that no doubt the
immoral and profligate should reform their lives ; as this will please their
relatives, and conduce to their advantage : but the strait Gate and the
narrow Way would prove their ruin. Most Pilgrims are assailed by such
counsellors ; and few are able to detect the fallacy of their reasonings till
their own folly corrects them.
E
34 Christian met by Evangelist,
Christian afraid that he should be burned ;"* here therefore
he did sweat and quake for fear. And now he began to be sorry
that he had taken Mr. Worldly -Wiseman's counsel. And with
that he saw Evangelist coming to meet him ; at the sight also
of whom he began to blush for shame. So Evangelist drew
nearer and nearer ; and coming up to him he looked upon him
with a severe and dreadful countenance, and thus began to
reason with Christian.
' AVhat doest thou here V said he. At which word Chris-
tian knew not what to answer ; wherefore at present he stood
speechless before him. Then said Evangelist further, ' Art
not thou the man that I found crying w^ithout the walls of the
City of Destruction V (r)
Chr. Yes, dear sir, I am the man.
Evan, Did not I direct thee the way to the little Wicket-gate ?
Yes, dear Sir, said Christian.
Evan, How is it then that thou art so quickly turned aside ?
for thou art now out of the way.
Chr, I met with a gentleman so soon as I had got over the
Slough of Despond, who persuaded me that I might, in the
village before me, find a man that could take off my burden.
Evan. What was he ?
CJir. He looked like a gentleman, and talked much to me,
and got me at last to yield ; so I came hither : but when I be-
held this hill, and how it hangs over the way, I suddenly made
a stand, lest it should fall on my head:
Evan, What said that gentleman to you ?
Chr, Why he asked me whither I was going : and I told him.
* Exod. xix. 16—18. Heb. xii. 21.
(r) Christian must go past Mount Sinai to the village Morality : not
that such men, as depend on their own reformation and good works, pay
a due regard to the holy law of God, for "they are alive without the
law;" but they substitute their own scanty obedience in the place of the
righteousness and atonement of Christ. They who are not humbled in
true repentance, perceiving little danger, pass on securely : but the true
penitent finds every attempt ** to establish his own righteousness" entirely
abortive : the more he compares his conduct and character with the divine
law, the greater is his alarm ; and he sometimes trembles lest its curses
should immediately fall upon him, with vengeance more tremendous than
tl*e most awful thunder. Then the counsels of worldly wisdom appear
in their true light, and the sinner is prepared to welcome free salvation :
and should the minister, whose instructions he had forsaken, meet him,
conscious shame would be added to his terror ; and he would even be
tempted to shun his faithful friend, through fear of merited reproof.
Evangelist sharply rebukes Christian, 35
Evan, x\nd what said he then ?
Chr. He asked me if I had a family, and I told him ; but,
said I, I am so loaden with the burden that is on my back,
that 1 cannot take jjleasure in them as formerly.
Evan, And what said he then ?
Chr, He bid me with speed get rid of my burden, and I
told him it was ease that I sought : and, said J, 1 am therefore
going to yonder gate, to receive further direction how I may get
to the place of deliverance. So he said that he would show
me a better way, and short, not so attended with difliculties,
as the way. Sir, that you set me in ; which way, said he, will
direct you to a gentleman's house, that hath skill to take oft'
these burdens. So I believed him, and turned out of that way
into this; if happily I might be soon eased of my burden : but
when I came to this place, and beheld things as they are, 1
stopped for fear, as 1 said, of danger : but 1 now know nol
what to do.
Then, said Evangelist, ^and still a Httle, that I may show
thee the words of God. — So he stood trembling. Then, said
Evangelist, " See that ye refuse not him that speaketh, for if
they escaped not, who refused him that spake on earth, much
more shall not we escape, if we turn away from him that speak-
eth from heaven."* He said moreover, " Nov/ the just shall
live by fiith ; but if any man draws back, my soul shall have
no pleasure in him."t He also did thus apply them. Thou
art the man that art running into this misery. I'hou hast be-
gun to reject the counsel of the Most High, and to draw back
thy foot from the way of peace, even almost to the hazarding
of thy perdition.
Then Christian fell down at his feet as dead, cr^^ing. Wo
is me, for I am undone. At the sight of which Evangelist
caught him by the right hand, saying, '* All manner of sin and
blasphemies shall be forgiven unto men :"J *' Be not faithless,
but believing." Then did Christian again a little revive, and
stood up trembling, as at first, before Evangelist. (5)
^ Heb. xii. 25. t Heb. x. 38. if Matt. xii. 31.— Mark iii. 28, 20,
(5) It appears from this passage, that the author judged it rigfht, in
dealing witli persons under great terror of conscience, to aim at preparin;^
them for solid peace, rather than hastily giving tli em comfort. — Men may
be greatly dismayed, and in some degree humbled, and yet not he duly
?ensible of the heinousness and aggravations of their guilt. In this case,
further instructions are needful to excite them to proper diligence and
»elf-denial, and to make way for abiding peace and consolation
36 Evangelist refutes Worldly-Wiseman'^ s counsel.
Then Evangelist proceeded, saying, '' Give more earnci-t
heed to the things" that I shall tell thee of. I will now show
thee who it v/as that deluded tjiee, and who it was also to whom
he sent thee. The man that met thee is one Worldly-Wise-
man, and rightly he is so called ; partly because he favoureth
only the doctrine of this world,! (therefore he ahvays goes to
the town of Morality to church ;) (t) and partly because he
loveth that doctrine best, for it saveth him from the cross ;*
and because he is of this carnal temper, therefore he seeketh
to pervert my ways, though right. Now there are three things
in this man's counsel that thou must utterl}^ abhor : — His turn-
ing thee out of the wny ; — His labouring to render the cross
odious to thee ; — And his setting thy feet in that way that
leadeth unto the adniinistration of death.
First, Thou must abhor his turning thee out of the way ; yea.
and thine own consenting thereto : because this is to reject
the counsel of God, for the sake of the counsel of a Worldly-
* 1 John iv. 5. t ^* Gal. vi. n.
as, a compassionate, but injudicious method, of proposing- consolatory
topics indiscriminately to all under trouble of conscience, lulls many into
a fatal sleep, and gives others a transient peace "which soon terminates in
deeper despondency : us a wound hastily skinned over by an ignorant
practitioner, instead of being efTectually cured by the patient attention of
a skilful surgeon, will soon become '.vorse than before. The conmiuuica-
lion of more knowledge may indeed augment a man's terror and distress ;
t»ut if it produce a deeper humiiiatio^i, it will effectually warn him against
carnal counseilers and false dependences. — Turning aside from the gospel,
implies a direct refusal to hearken to Christ; and all who do thus, run
into misery, and leave the w-ay of peace, to the hazard of their souls.* —
These denunciations are despised by the stout-hearted, but the contrite in
"oirit, wlien consciously guilty, if thus addressed, would fall into despair,
id not the ministers of Christ encourage them by»the grace of the
£:<>5pel.
The following lines are Viere inserted, as before, in the old editions.
' When Christians unto carnal men give ear.
Out of their way they go, and pay for't dear :
For Master Worldly-Wiseman can but show
A saint the way to bondage and to wo.'
ft) Worldly-Wiseman goes to church at the town of Morality : for the
persons here represented, in great measure support their confidence and
reputation for religion by attending on those preachers, wiio substitute a
proud scanty morality in the place of the gospel. This both flatters
heir self-preference, and coincides w^ith their carnal pursuits: and they
. erilv think they have found out the secret of reconciling the friendship
of the world with the favour of God ; and set up for teachers of the same
convenient system.
* Gal. Y. 4.
Evangelist refutes Worldly-Wisemaii^ $ counseL 37
Wiseman. The Lord says, " Strive to enter in at the strait
gate," (the Gate to which I sent thee ;) '' for strait is the gate
that leadeth unto life, and few there be that find it."* From
this little Wicket-gate, and from the way thereto hath this
wicked man turned thee, to the bringing of thee almost to (ie-
struction : hate therefore his turning thee out of the way, and
abhor thyself for hearkening to him.
Secondly, Thou must abhor his labouring to render the
crbss odious unto thee ; *' for thou art to prefer it. before the
treasures of Egypt :"t besides, the King of Glory hath tohi
thee, that " he that will save his life shall lose it ;" and, " he
that comes after him, and hatjss not his fither, and mother, and
wife, and children, and brethren, and sisters, yea, and his own
life also, he cannot be his disciple. "J I say, therefore, for a
man to labour to persuade thee, that that shall be thy death,
without which the Truth has said, thou canst not have eternal
life ; — This doctrme thou must abhor.
Thirdly, Thou must hate his setting of thy feet in the way
that leadeth to the ministration of death. And for this thou
must consider to whom he sent thee, and also how unable that
person was to deliver thee from thy burden. He to whom
thou wast sent for ease, being b}^ name Legality, is the son of
the bond- woman, which now is, and is in bondage with her
children ;§ and is in a mystery this Mount Sinai, which thou
hast feared will fall on thy head. Now if she with her chil-
dren are in bondage, how canst thou expect by them to be
made free^? This Legality therefore is not able to set thee free
from thy burden. No man was as 3^et ever rid of his burden
by him ; no, nor ever is like to be : "Ye cannot be justified
by the works of the Law ; for by the deeds of the Law no man
living" can be rid of his burden ; therefore Mr. Wo'rldly-Wise-
man is an alien ; and Mr. Legality is a cheat ; and for his sou
Civility, notwithstanding his simpering looks, he is but a hypo-
crite, and cannot help thee. Believe me, there is nothing
else in all this noise that thou hast heard of this sottish man,
but a design to beguile thee of thy salvation, by turning thee
from the way in which I had set thee. — After this, Evangelist
called aloud to the heavens for confirmation of what he had
sai(J ; and with that there came words and fire out of the Moun-
* Matt. vii. 13, 14.— Luke xiii. :24. t Heb. xi. 25, 26. % Matt, x
39.— Mark viii. 34, 35.— Luke xiv. 26, 27.— Jobn xii.25. J Gal.^
v. 21—37. 4
38 Christian alarmed and ashamed^ hastens hack.
tain, under which poor Christian stood, that made the hair of
hi§ flesh stand. The words were thus pronounced: «'As
many as are of the works of the law, are under the curse ; for
it is written. Cursed is every one that continueth not in
all things which ara written in the book of the law to do
ihem."*(w)
Now Christian looked for nothing but death, and began to
cry out lamentably, even cursing the time in which he met
with Mr. Worldly-Wiseman ; still calling himself a thousand
fools for hearkening to his counsel : he also was greatly asham-
ed to think that this gentleman's arguments, flowing only
from the flesh, should have that prevalency with him, to for-
sake the right way. This done, he applied himself again to
Evangelist, in words and sense as follows :
CJir.. Sir, what think you ? is there hopes ? may I now go
back and go up to the Wicket-gate ? shall I not be abandoned
for this, and sent back from thence ashamed ? I am sorry I
have hearkened to this man's counsel ; but may my sin be for-
^dven ?
Then said Evangelist to him. Thy sin is very great, for by
it thou hast committed two evils ; thou hast forsaken the way
ihat is good, to tread in forbidden paths : yet will the man of
the Gate receive thee, for he h;as good zuill for men ; only,
said he, take heed that thou turn not aside again,' " lest thou
perish from the way, when his wrath is kindled but a little."
Then did Christian address himself to go back, and Evange-
list, after he had kissed him, gave him one smile, and bid him
God speed : so he went on with haste, neither spake he to
any man by the way ; nor if any man asked him, would he
* Gal. iii. 10.
(u) When Christ had finished his work on earth, the covenant made
with Israel as a nation at Mount Sinai was abrogated : and the Jews, by-
cleaving to the Mosaic law, were left in bondage and under condemnation.
In like manner, all professed Christians, who depend on notions, sacra-
ments, religious duties, and morality, and neglect Christ and the new
covenant in his blood, are entangled in a fatal error. They seek the
blessing "not by faith, but as it were by the works of the law ;" " for they
stumble at that stumbling stone." — The Scriptures adduced by Evangelist
are so pertinent and conclusive against this species of religion, which has
at pregeiat almost superseded the gospel, that they can never be fairly an-
swered : nay, the more any man considers them, as the testimony of Qod
himself, the greater must be his alarm, (even as if he heard the voice from
Mount Sinai out of the midst of the fire ;) unless he be conscious of
having renounced every other confidence, to " flee for refuge to lay hold
on the hope set before us," in the gospel.
Christian arriving, knocks at the Gate, 39
vouchsafe-them an answer. He went like one that was all the
while treading on forbidden ground, and could by no means
think himself safe, till again he was got into the way which he
left to follow Mr. Worldly-wiseman's counsel : {w) so in pro-
cess of time, Christian got up to the Gate. Now over the
Gate there was written, " Knock, and it shall be opened unto
you."*(a') He knocked therefore more than once or twice ;
saying,
' May I now enter here ? will he within
Open to sorry me, though I have been
An undeserving Rebel ? then shall I
Not fail to sing his lasting praise on high,'
At last there came a grave person to the Gate, named Good-
will, who asked. Who was there ? and whence he came ? and
what he would have ?
*Matt.vii. 7, 8.
(w) In aiming to encourage those who are ready to despond, we must
by no means persuade them that their sins are few or small, or that tlifiy
judge themselves too rigorously: on the contrary, we should endeavour
to convince them their guilt is far greater thaA they suppose ; yet not too
great to be pardoned by the infinite mercy of God in Christ Jesus : for
this tends to take them off more speedily from every vain attempt tojus-
tily themselves, and renders them more unreserved and earnest in apply-
ing to Christ for salvation. In the midst of the most affectionate encou-
ragments, the faithful minister will also solemnly warn young converts not
to turn aside ; nor can the humble when consciously guilty ever find con-
fidence or comfort, till they have regained the way they had forsaken.
{pc) This Gate represents Christ himself, as received by the penitent
sinner for all the purposes of sal v^ation, according to the meaiure of his
"acquaintance with the Scriptures ; by which he actually enters 'into a
state of acceptance with God. Yet to prevent mistakes, the language of
our Lord on this subject should be carefully considered. "Enter ye in
at the strait gate ; for wide is the gate, and broad is the way that leadeth
to destruction ; and many there be who go m thereat."* ' We are all
born in sin, and the children of wrath ;^ we " turn every one to his own
way" of sin and folly : and alas, most men persist in one evil course or
other, to the end of their days, being kept in countenance by the exam-
ple of a vast majority, in which the rich, the noble, and the wise of this
world are generally included. " Because strait is the gate and narrow the
way which leadeth unto life, and few there be that find it." But by this
strait Gate every true penitent enters into the narrow way to life,
though with difficulty and conflict. This entrance on a- life of evangeli-
cal piety is, in the language of the allegory, called a Wicket, or a little
gate : for the convert cannot carry along with him any of his sinful prac-
tices, ungodly companions, worldly idols, or false confidences, when he
* Matt. vii. 13, 14,
40 Good-Will admits Christian at the Gate,
Chr, Here is a poor burdened sinner ; I come from the
City. of Destruction, but am going to Mount Zion, that I may
be delivered from the wrath to come ; I would therefore, Sir,
since I am informed by this Gate is the way thither, know if
you are zvilling to let me in.
1 am willing with all my heart, said he ; — and with that he
opened the Gate. (2/)
So when Christian was stepping in, the other gave him a
pull. Then said Christian, What means that? The other
told him, ' A little distance from this Gate, there is erected a
strong Castle, of which Beelzebub is the Captain ; from thence
both he and they that are with him, shoot arrows at them that
come up to this Gate ; if haply they may die before they en-
enters in : nor can he effectually contend with those enemies that obstruct
his passage, unless heioreslles continually with God in prayer for liis gra-
cious assistance. And therefore our Lord has also said, " Strive to enter
in at the strait gate ; for many, I say unto you, shall seek to enter in, and
shall not be able."* Yet we must not forget that the sinner returns to
God by faith in Christ ; that genuine repentance comes from him and
leads to him ; and that the true believer not only trusts in the Lord for
salvation, but also seeks his liberty and happiness in his service. These
things taken together are soAcontrary to the pride and lusts of the human
heart, to the course of the world, and to the temptations of the devil, that
siriving is far more necessary in this, than it can be conceived to be in
any other kind of conversion. Various exercises of the mind commonly
precede this unreserved acceptance of Christ ; but they are not in general
easy to be known from those temporary convictions, impressions, and
"♦arts of devotion, which vanish and come to nothing. Yet even this
.v'ing change is^ judiciously distinguished by our author, from that view
the Cross, by\vliich Christian was delivered from his burden, for rea-
■s which will speedily be stated.
The following lines are here inserted under an engraving.
* He that would enter in, must first without
Stand knocking at the gate ; nor need he doubt
That is a knocker ; but to enter in ;
For God can love him, and forgive his sin.'
{(j) Good-will seems to be an allegorical person, the emblem of the
compassionate love of God to sinners through Jesus Christ.* He " came
from Heaven to do the will of him that sent him," and " he will in
no wise cast out any that come to him," either on account of former sins,
or present mistakes, infirmities, evil habits, or peculiar temptations. —
" For he w^aits to be gracious," till sinners seek him by earnest persevering
prayer. Numbers give themselves no concern about their souls : others,
after convictions, turn back with Pliable, or cleave to the counsels of
worldly wisdom : but all who come to Christ with a real desire of his
salvation, are cordially welcomed ; and while angels rejoice over them,
the Redeemer " sees the travail of his soul, and is satisfied."
t Luke xiii. 24. *Luke ii. 14.
Jlna aiscourses 'xsiitii mm. 41
.ter in.'(z) Then said Christian, I rejoice and tremble. So
when he was got in, the man of the Gate asked him, Who di-
rected him thither ?
Chr, Evangehst bid me come hither and knock, as. I did ;
and he stud that you. Sir, would tell me what I must do.
Good. *« An open door is set before thee, and no man can
shut it."
Chr. Now I begin to reap the benefits of my hazards.
Good. But how is it that you came alone ?
Chr. Because none of my neighbours saw their danger as 1
saw mine.
Good. Did any of them know of your coming ?
Chr. Yes, my wife and children saw me at the tirst, and call-
ed after me to turn again. Also some of my neighbours stood
crying, and calling after me to return ; but I put my fingers in
my ears, and so came on my way.
Good. But did none of them follow you to persuade you to
go back ?
Chr. Yes, both Obstinate and t*liable : but when they saw
that they cbuld not prevail. Obstinate went railing back ; but
Pliable came with me a little way.
Good. But why did he not come through ?
Chr. We indeed came both together, until we came to the
.Slough of Despond, into the which we also suddenly fell. And
then was my neighbour Pliable discouraged, and would not ad-
venture further. Wherefore, getting out again, on that side
next to his own house, he told me I should possess the brave
country alone for him. So he went Ms way, and I came mine ;
he after Obstinate, and I to this Gate.
Then said Good- will, Alas, poor man ! is the Celestial Glory
of so small esteem with him, that he counteth it not worth
running the hazards of a few difficulties to obtain it ?
(s) As sinners become more decided in counting; all but loss for Christ,
and assiduous in the means of grace, Satan, if permitted, v/ill be more
vehement in his endeavours to (liscourage them ; that, if possible, he may
induce them to desist, and so come short of the priae. It is probable that
the powers of darkness cannot exactly distinguish between those impres-
sions which are the effects of regeneration, and such as result irom natural
passions. It is, however, certain that they attempt to disturb all those
who earnestly cry for mercy, by various suggestions to which they were
wholly strangers while satisfied with a form of godliness ; and that the
Christian's grand conflict to the end of his course, consists in surmounting
the hinderances and opposition he meets with, in keeping near to the
thcone of grace, by fervent, importunate, and persevering prayer.
F 4*
42 Christian instructed in the xn'ay.
Truly, said Christian, I have said the truth of Pliable ; and
if I should also say the truth of myself, it will appear there
is no betterment (a) 'twixt him and myself. 'Tis true. he
went back to his own house, but I also turned aside to go in
the way of death, being persuaded thereto by the carnal argu-
ments of one Mr. Worldly-wiseman.
Good. Ohl did he light upon you! what, he would have
A you sought for ease at the hands of Mr. Legality ; they
i e both of them a very cheat : but did you take his counsel ?
Chr, Yes, as far as 1 durst : I went to find out Legality,
until I thought that the Mountain that stands by his house
would have fallen upon my head : wherefore there I was
forced to stop.
Good, That Mountain has been the death of muny, and will
i the death of many more : 'tis well you escaped being by it
.shed in pieces.
Car. V/hy, truly I do not know what had become of me
iicre, had not Evangelist happily met me again as I was mus-
:.; in the midst of my dumps : but 'twas God's mercy that he
ime to me again, for else I had never come hither. But now
im come, such a one as I am, more fit indeed for Death by
at Mountain, than thus to stand talking with my Lord. But
' ! what a favour is this to me, that yet I am admitted entrance
re.
Good, We make no objections against any ; notwithstanding
11 thnt they have done before they come hither, *'they in no
i -e are cast out ;"* and therefore, good Christian, come a
tie way with me, and I will teach thee about the way' thou
vist go. Look before thee ; dost thou see this narrow way ?
; ./ is the way thou must go. It was cast up by the Patriarchs,
ots, Christ, and his Apostles, and it is as straight as a
:;m make it. This is the way thou must go.
i Christian, Is there no turnings or windings, by
. . :.i .. ..ranger may lose the way ?
Good. Yes, there are many ways butt down upon this ; and
* John vi. 37.
(a) Our author here puts a very emphaticul word into Christian's
south, ('there is no betterment ^twixt him and myself,') which later
liters have changed for difference. This is by no means an improve-
lent, though the word may be more classical: for grace had made an
nmense differeiice between Christian and Pliable; but the former
lought his conduct equally criminal, and therefore, in respect of de-
cryings, there was no beiterment betwixt them.
Chnsiian weary of his burden. 43
they are crooked, and wide : but thus thou may est distinguish
the right from the wrong, that only being straight and nar-
row. (6)
Then I saw in my dream, That Christian asked him further,
if he could not help him off with his burden, that was upon
his back ; for as yet he had not got rid thereof, nor could he
by any means get it oft* without help. He told him, * As to
thy burden, be content to bear it, until thou comest to the
place of deliveraoce ; for there it will fall from thy back it-
self.'(c)
Then Christian began to gird up his loins, and to address
(b) Cliristiau, when admitted at the strait gate, is directed in the narrow
way. Ill tlie broad road every man may choose a path suited to his in-
clinations, shift about to avoid difficulties, or accommodate himself to
circumstances ; and he may be sure of company a^eeable to his taste. —
But Christians must follow one another in the narrow way on the same
track, facing enemies, and bearing hardships, without attempting to evade
them ; nor is any indulgence giren to diflerent states, habits, or propensi-
ties. It is, therefore, a straitened^ or, as some render the word, an afflicted
way ; being indeed an habitual course of repentance, self-denial, patience,
and mortification to sin and the world, according to the rule of the Holy
Scriptures. Christ himself is the way^ by which we come to the Fatlier,
and walk with him ; but true faith works by love, and " sets us in the way
of his steps."* This path is also strait as opposed to the crooked ways of
wicked men ;t for it consists in an uniform regard to piety, integrity,
Insincerity, and kindness ; at a distance from all tlie liypocrisies, frauds, and
artifices, by which ungodly men wind about^to avoid detection, and keep
up their credit, to deceive others or impose on thems&lves. The question
proposed by Christian implies, that believers are more afraid of missing
the way than of encountering hardships: and Good-wiirs answer, that
many ways bulled down on it, or opened into it ia various directions,
shows that the careless and self-willed are extremely liable to be deceiv-
ed. But all these ways are crooked and wide : they turn aside from the
direct line of living faith and holy obedience, and are more soothing,
indulgent, and pleasing to corrupt nature, than the path of life ; which
lies straight forward, and is every where contrary to the • " " " car-
nal mind.
(r) A general reliance on the merc> of Got], by faith iu L... , ., aim-
panied with a consciousness of sincerity in seeking his salvation, givr-<
some encouragement to the convinced sinner's hope ; and tranoicnt, livr'. ,
joys are often vouchsafed to unestablished believers : but more di^
views of the gospel are necessary to abiding peace. The young com .
consolations resemble the breaking forth of the sun in a cloudy n- '
pestuous dny ; those of the experienced Christian has more con
in settled weather, which is not long together interrupted, Ih
sometimes di mined by intervening clouds. Believers shoidd n *
rest in transient glimpses, but press forward to abiding pe? ••
* Psalm Ixxxv. 13. t Psalm cxxv. 5.
44 The House of the Interpreter.
himself to his journey. So the other told him, that, by that
he was gone some distance from the Gate, he would come to
the house of the Interpreter, at whose door he should knock ;
and he would show him excellent things. Then Christian
took his leave of his friend, and he again bid him God speed.
Then he went on, till he came to the bouse of the Interpre-
ter, where he knocked over and over : at last one came to
the door, and asked. Who was there ? {d)
Chr. Sir, here is a traveller ; who was bid by an acquaint-
ance of the good man of this house, to call here for my pro-
fit : I would therefore speak with the master of the house.
So he called for the master of the house ; who after a little
time came to Christian^ and asked him what he would have ?
Sir, said Christian, 1 am a man that am come from the City
of Destruction, and am going to the Mount Zion ; and I was
told by the man that stands at the Gate, at the head of this way,
that if I called here, you would show me excellent thmgs,
such as would be a help to me in my journey.
Then said the Interpreter, Come in ; I will show thee that
hich will be profitable to thee. So. he commanded his man
to light the candle, and bid Christian follow him ; so he had
him into a private room, and bid his man open a door, the
which when he had done. Christian saw the picture of a very
grave person hanging up sgainst the wall, and this was the fa-*
shion,of it, ' It had eyes lifted up to heaven, the best of Books
in his hand, the Law of truth was written upon its lips, the
nJ, as Christ does not in general bestow this blessing on the imestablish-
i, the endeavours of ministers to do so must prove vain.
(d) We continually meet with fresh proofs of our author's exact ac-
fiuaintance with the Scripture, his sound judgment, deep experience, and
extensive observation. With great propriety he places the house of the
Interpreter beyond the Strait Gate ; for the knowledg;e of divine things,
which precedes conversion to God by faith in Christ, is very scanty, com-
pared with the diligent Christian's subsequent attainments. A few lead-
ing truths deeply impressed on the heart, and producing efficacious fears
and hopes, with warm desires and affections, characterize the state of a
new born babe : but reliance on the mercy of God through Jesus Christ
prepares him for further instruction ; and " having tasted that the Lord is
gracious, he desires the sincere milk of the word, that he may grow there-
by." The Interpreter emblematically represents the teaching of the
Holy Spirit according to the Scripture, for while believers read, hear, and
' ?ditate, and endeavour to profit by their daily experience and observa-
1 ; they also depend on this promised teaching, and by constant prayer
*9 the Fountain of Wisdom, to deliver them from prejudice, preserve
om error, aad enable them to profit by the ministry of the word.
The picture of the Pilgrim's Guide, 45
world was behind his back, it stood as if it pleaded with men,
and a crown of gold did hangover its head.'
Then said Christian, What means this ?
Inter, The man whose picture this is, is one of a thousand ;
he can beget children,* travail in birth with children,! and
nurse them himself when they are born. And whereas thon
seestj him with his ' eyes lift up to heaven, the best of Books
in his hand, and the Law of truth writ on his lips,' it is to sho\\
thee, that his work is to know, and unfold dark things to sinners,
even as also thou seest him ' stand as if he pleaded with men :'
And whereas thou seest the world as cast behind him, and that
a crown hangs over his head ; that is to show thee, that slight-
ing and. despising the things that are present, for the love he
hath to his Master's service, he is sure, in the world that comes
next, to have glory for his reward. Now, said the Interpreter,
I have showed thee this picture first, because the man whose
picture this is, is the only man whom the Lord of the place,
whither thou art going, hath authorized to be thy guide in all
difficult places thou may est meet with in the way : wherefore
take good heed to what I have showed thee, and bear well in
thy mind what thou hast seen ; lest, in thy journey, thou meet
with some that pretend to lead thee right, but their way goes
down to death, (e)
^ * 1 Cor. iv. 15. t Gal. iv. 19. X Thess. ii. 7.
(e) The condescending love of the Holy Spirit, in readily granting the
desires of those who apply for his teachimr, notwithstanding their sins,
prejudices, and slowness of heart to understand, can never sufRciently he
admired !* He employs men as his instruments, who, by explaining the
Scriptures, may be snid to * light the candle :' while he efiicaciously opens
the mind to instruction. " The secret of the Lord is with them that fear
him :"t the Interpreter leads them into retirement thai he may impart
that heavenly wisdom, which is hidden from the most sagacious of worldly
men. — The first lesson here inculcated relates to the character of the true
minister : for nothing can be more important to every one who inquires
the way to heaven, than the capacity of distinguishing faithful pastorrj
from hirelings and false teachers, who are Satan's principal ai^ents in dc-f
ceiving mankind, and in preventing the stability^ consistency, and fruit
fulness of believers. This portrait and its key need no explanation ; but
all who sustain, or mean to assume, the sacred office, should seriously
examine it, clause by clause, with the Scriptures from which it is deduc-
ed ; inquiring impartially how far they resemble it, and praying earnest-
ly for more exact conformity : and every one should be extremely care-
ful not to intrust his soul to the guidance of those who are wholly un-
like this emblematical representation. For surely a dissipated, ambitious,
profane, ot contentious man, in the garb of a minister, cannot safely be
* Psalm cxliii. 10. t Psalm xxv. 14.
46 The dusty Parlour cleansed.
Then be took him by the band, and led him into a very large
parlour that was full of dust, because never swept ; the which,
after he had reviewed a little while, the Interpreter called for
a man to sweep. Now when he began to sweep, the dust be-
gan so abundantly to fly about, that Christian had almost there-
with been choked. Then said the Interpreter to a damsel that
stood by, « Bring hither the water, and sprinkle the room ;'
which when she had done, it was swept and cleansed with
pleasure.
Then said Christian, What means this ?
The Interpreter answered ; This Parlour is the heart of a
man, that was never sanctified by the sweet grace of the gos-
pel : The dust is his original sin, and inward corruptions that
have defiled the whole man. He that began to sweep at first is
the law ; but she that brought water, and did sprinkle it, is the
gospel. Now whereas thou saAvestthat so soon as the first be-
gan to sweep, the dust did so fly about that the room by him
could not be cleansed, but that thou wast almost choked there-
w'lih : This is to show thee, that the law instead of cleansiiig
the heart (by its working) from sin,* doth revive, put strength
in to, J and mcfease it in the soul, as it doth discover and forbid
it, but doth not give power to subdue. J Again, as thou sawest
.the Damsel sprinkle the room with water, upon which it wa^
cleansed with pleasure ; this is to show thee, that when the*
jgospel comes in the sweet and precious influences thereof to
/the4ieart, then, I say, even as thou sawest the Damsel lay
the dust, by sprinkUng the floor with water, so is sin vanquish-
od and subdued, and the soul made clean, through the faith of
it : and consequently fit for the King of glory to inhabit. § (/)
* Rom vii. 6. t 1 Cor. xv. 56. J Rom. v. 20.
'■■ JoI,:i XV. 3. Acta xv. 9. Rom. xvi. 25, 26. Eph. v. 26.
/aide to heaven I He who never studies, or who studies any
im.ij i!i ircierenca to the Bible, cannot be qualified to ' unfold dark
thmgs to simiers V and he, who is abundantly more careful about his in-
come, ease, or consequence, than about the souls of his. flock, cannot be
followed without the most evident danger and the most inexcusable folly !
For who would employ an ignorant, indolent, or fraudulent lawyer or
physician, merely because he happened to live in the same parish ?
(/) Every attempt to produce conformity of heart and life to the divine
law, by regarding its spiritual precepts, apart from the docti-ines and
promises of Scripture, discovers the evils which before lay dormant ;
according to the significant emblem here adduced. Mere moral preach-
ing indeed has no such effect : because it substitutes another rule of obedi-
I
Passion and Patience. 47
t saw moreover in my dream, that the Interpreter took him
by the hand and had him into a httle room, where sat two little
.children, each one in his chair. The name of the eldest was
Passion, and of the other Patience. Passion seemed to be
much discontent, but Patience was very quiet. Then Christian
asked. What is the reason of the discontent of Passion ? The
Interpreter answered, The Governor of them would have him
stay for his best things till the beginning of the next year ; but
he will have them all now^ : but Patience is willing to wait.
Then I saw that one came to Passion and brought him a bag
of treasure, and poured it dow^n at his feet ; the which he
took up and rejoiced therein, and withal laughed Patience to
scorn. But I beheld but a while, and he had lavished all away,
and had nothing left him but rags.
Then said Christian to the Interpreter, Expound this matter
more fully to me.
So he said. These two lads are figures : Passion of the men
of this world, and Patience of the men of that which is to come :
for as here thou seest, Passion will have all now, this year,
that is to say in this world ; so are the men of this world, they
must have all their good things now, they cannot stay till next''
year, that is, until the next world, for their portion of good. —
euce, which is so vague that self-flattery will enable almost any man, not
scandaloiisly vicious, to deem himself justified according to it ; so that he
is pleased with the rule by wich he is approved, and loves that idea of
God which accords with his own character. But when the law of God
is brought with energy to the conscience, its strictness, spirituality and
severity awaken the latent enmity 'of the heart ; the absolute self-denial
it demands even in the most plausible claims of self-love, and its express
prohibition of the darling, sin, with the experienced impracticability of
adequate obedience, and the awful sentence it denounces against every
transgressor, concur in exciting opposition to it, and even to Him who
gave it and is determined to magnify and establish it in honour. The
consciousness also of covering things prohibited, and the conviction that
this concupiscence is sinful, induce a man to conclude that he is viler
than ever ; and indeed clearer knov/ledge must aggrivate the guilt of eve^y
sin. A little discouragement of this kind induces numbers to cease from
all endeavours, at least for a season ; supposing that at present it is im-
possible for them to serve God : but others, being more deeply humbled,
and taken off from self-confidence, are thus prepared to understand and
welcome the free salvation of the gospel. Then the law appears to them
disarmed of its curse, as the rule and standard of holiness ; encouraged by
the truths and promises of the gospel ; and animated to exertion by its
motives, they delight in " cleansing themselves from all filthiness of flesh
and spicjt, and perfecting holiness in the fear of God." that they may be
' an habitation of God through tlie Spirit."
48 The Men of the next World the Wisest.
That proverb, * A bird in the hand is worth two in the bush,'
is of more authority with them, than are all the divine testimo-
nies of the good of the world to come. But as thou sawest that
he had quickly lavished all away, and had presently left him
nothing but rags ; so will it be with all such men at the end of
this world. (^)
Then said Christian, Now I see that Patience has the best
wisdom, and that upon many accounts : because he stays for
ihe best things : — and also because he' will have the glory of
his when the other has nothing but rags.
Inter. Nay, you may add another : to wit, the glory of the
)iGxt world Aviil never wear out, but these are sudden]}^ gone.
Therefore Passion had not so much reason to laugh at Patience,
because he had his good things* first, as Patience will have to
laugh at Passion, because he had his best things last ; for Jirst
must give place to last ; because last must have his time to
come ; but last gives place to nothing, for there is not another
to succeed ; he therefore that hath his portion^rs^, must needs
have a time to spend it ; but he that hath a portion last, must
have it lastingly. Therefore it is said of Dives, " In thy life
time thou receivedst thy good things, and likewise Lazarus evil
things : but now he is comforted, and thou art tormented."*
(^) In this instructive emblem, Passion represents the prevalence of the
uaal afTections over reason and religion. Whatever be the object, this
iominion of the passions produces fretfulness and childish perverseness,
when the imagined temporal good is v^ithheld. This impatience of de-
lay or disappointment is however succeeded by pride, insolence, and in-
ordinate though transient joy, when the man is indulged with the posses-
on of his idol; yet he soon grows dissatisfied with success, and often
peedily lavishes away his coveted advantages. On the other hand, Pa-
tience is the emblem of those who quietly and meekly wait for future
happiness, renouncing present things for the sake of it. True riches, ho-
nours, and pleasures are intended for them, but not here : and, as young
children well governed, they simply wait for them till the appointed sea-
son, in the way of patient obedience. R,eason determines, that a greater
and more permanent good hereafter is preferable to a less and fleeting
enjoyment at present : faith realizes, as attainable, a felicity infinitely
more valuable than all which this world can possibly propose : so that in
this respect the life of faith is the reign of reason over passion, while un-
belief makes way for the triumph of passion over reason. Nor can any
thing be more essential to practical religion than an abiding conviction,
that it is the only true wisdom, uniformly and cheerfully to part with
every temporal good, whenever it interferes with the grand concerns of
eternity.
* I.ukexvi. 19—31.
The Fire kept from being quenched, 49
Chr. Then I perceive 'tis not best to covet things that are
now, but to wait for things to come.
Inter, You say truth, " For the things that are seen are tem-
poral ; but the things that are not seen are eternal :"t But
though this be so, yet since things present, and our fleshly appe -
tite, are such near neighbours one to another ; and again be-
cause things to come, and carnal sense, are such strangers one
to another : therefore it is that the jGrst of these so suddenly
fall into amity, and that distance is so continued between the
second.
Then I saw in my dream, that the Interpreter took Chris-
tian by the hand, and led him into a place where was a Are
burning against a v*^all, and one standing by it, always casting
much water upon it to quench it ; yet did the fire burn higher
and hotter.
Then said Christian, What means this ?
The Interpreter answered, This fire is the work of grace
that is wrought in the heart ; he that casts water upon it, to
extinguish and put it out, is the Devil : but in that thou seest
the fire, notwithstanding, burn higher and hotter, thou shalt
also see the reason of that. So he had him about to the back
side of the wall, where he saw a man v/ith a vessel of oil in his
hand, of the which he did also continually cast, but secretly,
into the fire.
Then said Christian, What means this ?
The Interpreter answered, This is Christ, who continually
with the oil of his grace maintains the work already begun in
the heart ; by the means of which, notwithstanding what th^
Devil can do, the souls of his people prove gracious still.*
And in that thou sawest, that the man stood behind the wall to
maintain the fire ; this is to teach thee, that it is hard for the
tempted to see how this work of grace is maintained in the
soul, (h)
t 2Cor.iv. 18. * 2 Cor. xii.
(h) The doctrine of the believer's final perseverance is here stated in so
guarded a manner a? to preclude every abuse of it. The emblem implies,
that the soul is indeed bom of God, and endued with holy affections ; but
this heavenly flame is not represented as almost extinguished or covered
with ashes for many years, and then revived a little at the closing scene : ^
for '• it bums higher and hotter,' notwithstanding the opposition of depra-
ved nature, and the unremitted efforts of Satan to quench it ; the Lord
secretly feeding it with his grace. Unbelievers can persevere in nothing
but impiety and hypocrisy : and when a professor remarkably loses the
vigour of his affections, the reality of his conversion becomes doubtful, aad
0 5
50 The Alan whojtghts into the Palace.
I saw also that the Interpreter took hun again by the hand,
and led him into a pleasant place, where was builded a stately
palace, beautiful to behold ; at the sight of which Christian
was greatly delighted : he saw also upon the top thereof, cer-
fain persons walking who were clothed all in gold.
Then said Christian, May we go in thither ?
Then the Interpreter took him, and led him up toward the
door of the palace ; and behold at the door stood a great com-
pany of men, as desirous to go in, but durst not. There also
sat a man, at a little distance from the door, at a table-side,
with a book and his ink-horn before him, to take the name ojf
him that should enter therein : He saw also that in the door-
way, stood many men in armour to keep it, being resolved to
do to the man that v/ould enter, what hurt and mischief they
could. Now was Christian somewhat in amaze ; at last, when
every man started back for fear of the armeti men, Christian
saw a man of a very stout countenance, come up to the man
that sat there to write, saying. Set down my name. Sir ; the
which when he had done, he saw the man draw his sword, and
put an helmet upon his head, and rush toward the door upon
the armed men, who laid upon him with deadly force ; but
the man, not at all discouraged, fell to cutting and hiickingmost
fiercely ; so after he had received and* given many wounds to
those that attempted to keep him out, he cut his way through
them all, and pressed forward into the palace ; at which there
was a pleasant voice heard from those that were within, even
of those that walked upon the top of the palace, saying,
' Come in, come in.
Eternal glory thou shalt win.'
* Acts xiv. 22.
he can take no warranted encouragement from this doctrine. When,
however, any one grows more spiritual, zealous, humble, and exemplary,
in the midst of harassing temptations ; while he gives the whole glory to
the Lord, he may take comfort from the assurance, that ^^ he shal) be kept
by his power, through faith, unto salvation." But the way in which the
tempted are preserved, often so far exceeds their expectations, that they
are a wonder to themselves : every thing seems to concur in giving Satan
advantage against them, and his efforts appear very successful ; yet they
coQtinue from year to year, " cleaving with purpose of heart unto the
Lord," trusting in his mercy, and desirous of living to his glory. The in-
struction especially inculcated by this emblem is, an entire reliance in the
use of the appointed means, on the secret, but powerful influence of divine
*race, to maintain and carry on the sanctifying work that has been begun
in the soul.
The Man in the Iron Cage, 51
So he went in, and was clothed with such garments as they.
Then Christian smiled, and said, I think verily I know the
meaning of this, (i)
Now said Christian, let me go hence : Nay, stay, said the
Interpreter, till I have shown thee a little more, and after that
thou shalt go on thy way. (k) So he took him by the hand
again, and led him into a very dark room, where there sat a
man in an iron cage.
Now the man to look on seemed very sad : he sat with his
eyes looking down to the ground, his hands folded together,
and he sighed as if he would break his heart.
Then said Christian, What means this ?
At which the Interpreter bid him talk with the man. s
Then said Christian to the man, What art thou ?
The man ans^\^ered, I am what I was not once.
Chr, What wast thou once ?
The man said, I was once a fair and flourishing professor,
both in mine own eyes, and also in the eyes of others : I was
once, as I thought, fair for the Celestial city, and had then
even joy at the thoughts that I should get thither.*
Chr. Well, but what art thou now ?
Man, I am now a Man of despair, and am shut up in it at in
this iron cage. I cannot get out. O 7iow I cannot !
Chr. But how earnest thou in this condition ?
. * Luke viii. 13.
(i) Many desire the joys and glories of Heaven, according to their car-
nal ideas of them ; but few are willing to " %ht the good fight of faith f
yet, without a fixed purpose to do this, resulting from divine grace, pro-
fession will at length end in apostacy:" ** The man began to build, but was
not able to finish." This is emphatically taught by the emblem before
us. We must be made willing unreservedly to venture or '* suffer the
loss of all things, that v/e may win Christ ;'* or we shall never be able to
break through the combined opposition of the world, the flesh, and the
devil. If we habitually fear any mischief that our enemies can attempt
against us, more than coming short of salvation, we shall certainly perish,
notwithstanding our notions and convictions. We should, therefore, cdunt
our cost, and pray for courage and constancy, that we may give in our •
names as in earnest to win the prize : then, " putting on the whole ar-
mour of God," we must fight our way through with patience and resolu-
tion ; while many, *'• being harnessed and carrying bowf ," shamefully turn
back in the day of battle.
(k) The time spent in acquiring knowledge and sound judgment is far
from lost, though it may seem to retard a man's progress, or interfere
with his more active services : and the next emblem is admirably suited to
teach the convert watchfulness and caution.
52 The ccLuse of his despair,
Man. I left off to watch and be sober : I laid the reins upon
the neck of my lusts ; I sinned against the light of the word,
and the goodness of God ; I have grieved the Spirit, and he is
gone ; I tempted the Devil, and he is come to me ; I have
provoked God to anger, and he has left me ; I have so har-
dened my heart, that I cannot repent.
Then said Christian to the Interpreter, But is there no
hopes for such a man as this ?
Ask him, said the Interpreter.
Then said Christian, Is there no hope, but you must be
kept in the iron cage of despair ?
Man. No, none at all.
Chr. Why ? the son of the Blessed is very pitiful.
Man. I have " Crucified him to myself afresh,"* I have
despised his Person,! I have despised his righteousness, I
have counted his blood an unholy thing, I he^ve done despite
to the Spirit of grace ;| therefore I have shut myself out of all
the promises ; and there now remains to me nothing but
threatenings, dreadful threatenings, faithful threatenings, of
certain judgment which shall devour me as an adversary.
Chr. For what did you bring yourself into this condition ?
Man. For the lusts, pleasures, and profits of this world ;
lit the enjoyment of which I did then promise myself much
delight : but now every one of those things also bite me, and
gnaw me like a burning worm.
Chr. But canst thou not now repent and turn ?
J\Ian. God hath denied me repentance ; his word gives me
po encouragement to believe ; yea, himself hath shut me up
in this iron cage ; nor can all the men in the world let me
cut. O Eternity ! Eternity! how shall I grapple with the
misery that 1 must meet with in Eternity !
Then Srdd the Interpreter to Christian, Let this man's mis-
ery be remembered by thee, and be an everlasting caution to
thee.
Well, (said Christian) This is fearful ! God help me to
^vatch and be sober, and to pray that I may shun the causes
of this man's misery. Sir, is it not time for me to go on my
^vny now ? (I)
* Heb. vi. 4—6. t Luke xix. 14. if Heb. x. 28, 29.
(/) Christian's discourse with the man in the iron cage sufficiently ex"
plains the author's meaning : but it has often been observed, that the
man's opinion of his own ease does not prove that it was indeed despe-
TJie Man who dreamed of the Last Day* 63
Inter, Tarry till I shall show thee one thing more, and then
thou shalt go on thy way.
So he took Christian by the hand again and led him into a
chamber where there was one rising out of bed ; and as he
put on his raiment, he shook and trembled.
Then said Christian, Why doth this man thus tremble ?
The Interpreter then bid him tell to Christian the reason
of his so doing. So he began and said, This night as I was in
my sleep, 1 dreamed, and behold the heavens grew exceeding
black ; also it thundered and lightened in most fearful wise,
that it put me into an agony. So I looked up in my dream, and
saw the clouds rack at an unusual rate ; upon which I heard a
great sound of a trumpet, and saw also a man sit upon a cloud,
attended with the thousands of heaven : theywere all in flam-
ing fire, also the heavens were on a burning flame. I heard
then. a voice, saying, ' Arise ye dead and come to judgment ;'
and with that the rocks rent, the graves opened, and the dead
that were therein came forth :* some of them were exceeding
glad, and looked upward ; and some sought to hide themselves
under the mountains :t then I saw the man that sat upon the
cloud open the book and bid the world draw near. Yet there
was, by reason of a fierce flame that issued out and came from
before him, a convenient distance betwixt him and them, as
betwixt the judge and the prisoners at the bar.| I heard it
proclaimed to them that attended on the man that sat on the
cloud, ' Gather together the tares, the chaff, and stubble, and
cast them into the burning lake :' and with that the bottomless
rate. Doubtless such fears prevail ia some cases of deep desponden-
cy, when there is every reason to conclude them groundless ; and we
should always propose the free grace of the gospel to those that have sin-
ned in the most aggravated manner, especially when they become sensi-
ble of their guilt and danger. Yet it is an awful fact, that some are thus
'shut up under despair,' beyond relief: and *' it is impossible to renew
them to repentance.'^ So that no true penitent can be in this case : and
we are commanded " in meekness to instruct those that oppose them-
selves, if peradventure God will give them repentance." But we should
leave the doom of apparent apostates to God ; and improve their exam-
ple, as a warning to ourselves and others, not to venture one step in so
dangerous a path. — This oar author has judiciously attempted in a most
striking manner, and God forbid that I should, in the least, counteract his
obvious intention.
* John V. 2^, 29. 1 Cor. xv. 51—58. 2 Thess. i. 7—10. Jude 14, 15.
Rev. XX. n— 15. t ?sa. 1. 1—3, 22. Isa. xxvi. 20, 21. Mie. vii; 16J7.
X Dan. vii. 9, 10. Mai. iii. 2, 3.
5*
54 Christian taught to hope and fear,
pit opened, just whereabout I stood ; out of the mouth of
which there came, in an abundant manner, smoke, and coals
of fire, with hideous noises. It was also said to the same
persons, ' Gather my wheat into the garner.'* And with that
I saw many catched up and carried away into the clouds ,t hut
I was left behind. I also sought to hide myself, but I could
not, for the man that sat upon the cloud, still kept his eyes
upon me : my sins also came into my mind, and my conscience
<lid accuse me on every side. J Upon this I awaked from
my sleep.
Chr, But what was it that made yon so afraid of this sight ?
Man. Why, I thought that the day of judgment was come,
and that I was not ready for it : but this frighted me most, that
the angels gathered up several and left me behind ; also the
pit of hell opened her mouth just where I stood. My con-
science too afflicted me ; and, as I thought, the Jydge had al-
ways his eye upon me, showing indignation in his countenance.
i'hen said the Interpreter to Christian, Hast thou consider-
ed all these things ?
Chr. Yes, and they put me in hope and fear, (in)
Inter. Well, keep all things so in thy mind that they may be
:.s a goad in thy sides, to prick thee forward in the way thou
must go. — Then Christian began to gird up his loins, and to
address himself to his journey. Then said the Interpreter,
=^ Mai. iv. 1, 2. Matt. iii. 12. xiii. 30. Luke iii. 17.
1 1 Thess. iv. 13—18. % Rom. ii. 14, 15.
(m) Our safety consists ia a due proportion of hope and fear : when
devoid of hope, we resemble a ship without an anchor ; when unrestrain-
ed by fear, Vv^e are like the same vessel under full sail without ballast.''''
Indiscriminate censures oi dW fear as the result of unbelief, and unguarded
commendations of strong confidence, without respect to the spirit and
(55nduct of professors, not only lead to most fatal self-deception, but also
tend to make believers unstable, unwatchful, and even uncomfortable ;
for the humble can never attain that presumptuous confidence which is
thus represented as essential to faith ; and true comfort is the efiect of
wa chfulness, deligence, and circumspection. — Upon the w^hole, what
lesions could possibly have been selected of greater importance, or more
suited to establish the new convert, than these are which our author has
mo.st ingeniously and agreeably inculcated, under the emblem of the In-
terpreter's curiosities. They are indeed the principal subjects which
faithful ministers enforce, publicly and in private, on all who begin to
profess the gospel ; and which every true disciple of Christ daily seeks to
have more clearly discovered to his mind, and more deeply impressed
u'pon his heart.
^ Pet. i. 13—17.
His burden fltlls off at the Cross. 55
The Comforter be always with thee, good Christian, to guide
thee in the way that leads to the city. So Christian went on
his way saying —
'Here I have seen things rare and profitable ;
Things pleasant, dreadful, thin,^s to make me stable
In what I have begun to take in hand :
Then let me think on them, and understand
Wherefore they showed me were ; and let me be
Thankful, O good Interpreter, to thee.'
Now I saw in my dream, that the highway, up whicli Chris-
tian was to go, was fenced on either side with a wall, and that
wall was called Salvation.* Up this way therefore did bur-
dened Christian run, but not without great difficulty, because
of the load on his back.
He ran thus till he came at a place sowewhat ascending,
and upon that place stood a Cross, and a little below in the
bottom a Sepulchre. So I saw in my dream, that just as
Christian came up with the Cross, lus burden loosed from oft*
his shoulders, and fell from oft* his back, and began to tumble,
and so continued to do, till it came to the mouth of the Sepul-
chre, •\vhere it fell in, and I saw it no more. (?i)
* Isa. xxvi. 1 .
(n) Divine illumination in many respects tends to quicken the believ-
er's hopes and fears, and to increase his earnestness and diligence : but
nothing can finally relieve him from his burden, except the clear disco-
very of the nature and glory of redemption. With more general views of
the subject, and an implicit reliance on the mercy of God through Jesus
Christ, the humbled sinner enters the way of life, which is walled by
salvation : yet he is oppressed with an habitual sense of guilt, and often
bowed down with fears, till " the Comforter, who glorifies Christ, re-
ceives of fits and shows it to him."* — When in this divine light the soul
contemplates the Redeemer's cross, and discerns more clearly his love to
lost sinners in dying for them ; the motive and efficacy of his intense suf-
ferings ; the glory of the divine perfections harmoniously displayed in this
surprising expedient for saving the lost ; the honour of the divine law and
government, and the evil and desert of sin most energetically proclaimed,
even in pardoning transgressors and reconciling enemies ; and the perfect
freeness and sufficiency of this salvation ; — then " his conscience is purged'
from dead works to serve the'living God," by a simple reliance on the
atoning blood of Emanuel. This deliverance from the burden of guilt is
in some respects^na/, as to fhe well instructed and consistent believer :•
his former sins are buried, no more to be his terror and distress. He will
indeed be deeply humbled under a sense of his guilt, and sometimes
may question his acceptance : but his distress, before he understood the
way of deliverance, was habitual^ except in a few transient seasons of re-
* John xvi. 14.
56 Christian is Saluted by three shinimg Ones.
Then was Christian glad and lightsome, and said with a mer-
ry heart, ' He hath given me rest by his sorrow, and life by
his death.' Then he stood still awhile to look and wonder ;
for it was very surprising to him, that the sight of the Cross
should thus ease him of his burden. He looked therefore, and
looked again, even till the springs that were in his head sent
the waters down his cheeks.^ Now, as he stood looking and
weeping, behold three shining ones came to him, and saluted
him with " Peace be to thee ;" so the first said to him, " Thy
sins be forgiven ;"t the second stript him of his rags, and
clothed him with change of raiment 4 the third also set a mark
on his forehead, and gave him a Roll with a seal upon it,§
which he bid him look on as he ran, and that he should give it
in at the Celestial Gate ; so they went their way.(o) Then
Christian gave three leaps for joy, and went on singing —
* Zech. xii. 10. t Mark ii. 5. J Zech. iii. 4. J Eph. i. 13.
lief, and often greatly oppressed him when most diligent and v/atchful ;
whereas now he is only burdened when he has been betrayed into sin, or
V. hen struggling with peculiar temptations ; and he constantly finds relief
by looking to the cross. Many indeed never attain to habitual peace :
Init this arises from remaining ignorance, error, or negligence, whiph scrip-
turrd instructions are the proper means of obviating. — It was not however
proper, that our author should draw the character of his hero from the
ioweit order of Christians ; nay, it rather calls for our admiration, that,
ill an allegory, (which is the peculiar effort of a vigorous imagination) he
was preserved, by uncommon strength of mind and depth of judgment,
iTom stating Christian's experience above the general attainments of con-
sistent believers under solid instructions.
(o) Christian's tears, amidst his gladness, mtimate, that deliverance
from i^uilt, by faith in the atoning sacrifice of Christ, tends to increase sor-
lov/ for sin, and abhorrence of it ; though it mingles, even those affections
with a sweet and solid pleasure. — By the three shining ones,' the author
alludes to the ministration of angels, as in some way subserving the com-
fort of the heirs of salvation : but he could not mean to ascribe Christian's
confidence to any impressions, or suggestions of texts to him by a voice, or
in a dream ; any more than he intended, by his view of the cross, to
sanction the account that persons of heated imaginations have given, of
their having seen one hang on a cross, covered with blood, who told
them their sins were pardoned ; while it has been evident, that they never
understood the spiritual glory, or the sanctifying tendency of the doctrine
of a crucified Saviour. Such things are the mere delusions of enthusiasm,
from which our author was remarkably free : but the nature of an alle-
gory led him to this method of describing the happy change that takes
place in the pilgrim's experience, when he obtains "peace and joy in
believing." The general tenor of the work sufficiently shows, that he
considered spiritual apprehensions of the nature of the atonement, as the
only source of genuine peace and comfort. As the * mark in the fore-
Christian finds Simple, Sloth, and Presumptison asleep, 67
' Thus far did I come loaden with my sin,
Nor could aught ease the grief that I was in,
Till I came hither. — What a place is this I
Must here be the beginning of my bliss?
Must here the burden fall from off my back ?
Must here the strings that bound it to me crack ?
Blest Cross I blest Sepulchre ! blest rather be
The Man that there was put to shame for me I
1 saw then in my dream, that he went on thus even until he
came at a bottom, where he saw, a little out of the way, three
men fast asleep, \vith fetters upon their heels. The name of
the one was Simple, another Sloth, and the third Presump-
tion.
Christian then, seeing them lie in this case, went to them, if
perad venture he might awake them ; and cried. You are like
them that sleep on the top of a mast,* for the dead sea is
under you, a gulph that hath no bottom: awake, therefore,
Prov. xxiii. 35.
head' evidently signifies the renewal of the soul to holiness, while the *roll
with a seal upon it' denotes such an assurance of acceptance, as appears
most clear and satisfactory, when the believer most attentively compares
himself with the holy Scriptures; so he could not possibly intend to as-
cribe these effects to any other agent than the Holy Spirit, for he alone
as the Spirit of adoption enables a man to exercise in a lively manner all
filial affections toward God ; and thus bears witness with his conscience,
that his sins are pardoned, that he is justified by faith in the righteous-
ness of Emanuel, a child of God, and an heir of heaven. They who have
experienced this happy change, will readily understand the language in
which it is described-; and the abiding effects of their joy inttj^ vLord,
upon their temper and conduct, (like the impression of the sesul'iiiftef the
wax is cooled,) completely distinguish it from the confidence and com-
fort of hypocrites and enthusiasts. It must, however, continue to be " the
secret of the Lord, with them that fear him, hidden manna," and " a
white stone, having in it a new name written, which no man knoweth
saving he that receiveth it."* For even the ideas excited in our minds
by external objects through our senses, and the pleasure often connected
with them, can never be made intelligible to those who never had those
senses. The man bom blind cannot possibly have any idea of colours, or
any conception of the pleasure of beholding beautiful objects ; nor one
born deaf, any idea of a trumpet's solemn sound, or the pleasure arising
from a concert of music.
Here again we meet with an engraving, and the following lines : —
♦Who's this? The Pilgrim. How! "Tis very true :
Old things are past away ; all's become new.
Strange ! he's another man, upon my word ;
They be fine feathers that make a fine bird.'
* Psa. XXV. 14. Rev. ii. 17
H
.'•P. Christian met by Formalist and Hypocrisy.
and come away ; be willing also, and I will help you off with
your irons. He also told them. If he that goeth about like a
roaring lion comes by, you will certainly become a prey to his
teeth.* With that they looked upon him, and began to reply in
this sort : Simple said, '« I see no danger :" Sloth said, " Yet
a little more sleep:" and Presumption said, '* Every vatt .
must stand upon its own bottom.'' And so they lay down to
eep again, and Christian went on his way. (p)
Yet was he troubled to think, that men in that danger should
' little esteem the kindness of him that so freely offered to help
luem, both by awakening of them, counselling of them, and
proffering to help them off with their irons. And as he was
troubled thereabout, he espied two men come tumbling over the
wall, on the left hand of the narrow way ; and they made up
:.ace to him. The name of the one was F'ormalist, and the
rne of the other Hypocrisy. So, as I said, they drew up un
to him, who thus entered with them into discourse.
Chr, Gentlemen, whence came you, and whither do you
go ?
Form, and Hyp. We were born in the land of Vain-glory,
and are going for praise to Mount Zion. •
Chr. Why came you not in at the Gate which standeth at the
eginningof the way ? Know you not that it is written, that
* 1 Pet. V. 8.
(/)) We were before iaforraed that other ways ' butted down upon'
the straight way ; and the connexion of the allegory required the intro-
duction of various characters, besides that of the true believer. Many
ovitwardly walk in the ways of religion, and seem to be pilgrims, who
are destitute of those " things which accompany salvation." — The three
allegorical persons next introduced are nearly related ; they appear to
be pilgrims, but are a little out of the way, asleep, and fettered. Many
hear and learn to talk about the peculiar doctrines of Christianity, and
have transient convictions, u ho yet cleave to the world, and rest moro
securely in the bondage of sin and Satan, by means of their profession of
religion. They rejector pervert all instruction, hate all .trouble, yet are
jfident that every thing is and will be well with them ; while teachera
/ucr their own hearts lull them with a syren's song, by confounding the
form -with the power of godliness : and if any one attempt, in the most
affectionate manner, to warn them of their danger, they answer, (accord-
ing to the tenor of the words here used,) ' Mind your own business ; w^e
see no danger ; you shall not disturb our composure, or induce us to
make so much ado about religion. See to yourselves, and leave us to
ourselves.' Thus they sleep on till death and judgment awake them I
Christian in vain reasons tsciih Formalist and Hypocrisy. o9
*'He that cometh not in by the door, but climbeth up some
other way, the same is a thief and a robber."*
They said, That to go to the gate for entrance, was by all
their countrymen counted too far about ; and that therefore
their usual way was to make a short cut of it, and to chmb over
the wall as they had done.
Chr. But will it not be counted a trespass against the Lord
of the City whither we are bound, thus to violate his revealed
will ?
They told him. That as for that, he needed not to trouble his
head thereabout : for what they did they had custom for : and
could produce, if need were, testimony that would witness it,
for more than a thousand years.
But (said Christian) will your practice stand a trial at law ?
They told him. That custom, it being of so long a standing as
above a thousand years, would doubtless now be admitted as a
thing legil, by an impartial judge : and besides, said they, if we
get into the way, what's matter which way we get in ? If we
are in, we are in : thou art but in the way, who as we perceive
came in at the gate ; and we are also in the way, that came tum-
bling over the wall : wherein now is thy condition better than
ours ?
Chr. I walk by the rule of my Master, you walk by the rude
working of your fancies : you are counted thieves already by the
Lord of the way ; therefore I doubt you will not be found true
men at the end of the way. You come in by yourselves without
his direction ; and shall go out by yourselves without his
mercy.
To this they made him but little answer ; only they bid him
look to himself. Then I saw that they went on every man in
his way, without much conference one with another ; save that
these two men told Christian, That, as to laws and ordinances,
-they doubted not but they should as conscienciously do them as
he. Therefore, said they, we see not wherein thou differest
from us. but by the coat that is on thy back, which was, as we
tro', given thee by some of thy neighbours, to hide the shame
of thy nakedness.
Chr, By laws and ordinances you will not be saved^t since
you came not in by the door. And as for this coat that is on
my back, it was given me by the Lord of the place whither i
*.Johnx. 1. tGal. ii. 16.
60 The direct Way up the Hill Diffiiculty,
go ; and that, as you say, to cover my nakedness with. And I
take it as a token of his kindness to me ; for I had nothing hut
rags-hefore : and besides, thus I comfort myself as 1 go ; Sure-
ly, tliink I, when I come to the gate of the city, the Lord
thereof will know me for good, since I have his coat on my
back ! a coat that he gave me freely in the day that he stript
me of my rags. I have moreover a mark in my forehead, of
which perhaps you have taken no notice, which one of my
Lord's most intimate associates fixed there, in the day that my
burden fell off my shoulders. I will tell you moreover, that
I had then given me a Roll sealed, to comfort me by reading
as I go on the way ; I was also bid to give it in at the Celestial
Gate, in token of my certain going in after it : all which things
I doubt you want, and want them because you came not in at
the Gate, {q)
To these things they gave him no answer ; only they look-
ed upon each other and laughed. Then I saw that they went
on all, save that Christian kept before, who had no more talk
but with himself, and that sometimes sighingly and sometimes
comfortably ; also he would be often reading in the Roll that
one of the shining ones gave him, by which he was refresh-
ed, (r)
(7) The true Christian will always be troubled at the vain confitlenoe
of many professors : but he is more surprised by it at first than after-
wards ; for he sets out with the idea, that all apparently religious people
-inccrely seek the salvation of their souls. But at length experience
'■aws his attention to those parts of the scripture which mention /arts
• imong the wheat, and foolish virgins among the wise. — Formalist and
Hypocrasy soon come in his way. These are near relations : the first
represents such as by notions and external observances decaive theni-
- elves ; the second those who more grossly attempt to impose upon others.
i'hey are both actuated by vain-glory, and seek the applause of men by
liieir most zealous profession and most specious actions, while the credit
thus acquired subserves also their temporal interests : but repentance,
conversion, and the life of faith, would not only cost them too much la-
bour, but destroy the veiy principle by which they are actuated. By a
much ' shorter cut,' they become a part of the visible church, are satisfi-
ed with a form of godliness, and kept in couutenance by the example of
2;reat numbers of professed Christians, in every age and place. Their
confidence, however, will not bear the light of scripture ; they, therefore,
shrink from investigation, and treat with derision and reproaches all who
would convince them of their fatal mistake, or sliow them the real nature
of evangelical religion.
(r) True Christians even when most assured of their acceptance, am
competent to perceive the awful delusions of fal?« professors, find caus(
for sighs amidst their comforts, while employed in serious retired self-re^
lO
-e
I
'' ! i< ". .v"->* !' i; () I' :^ :.', .■< >• ,
riiiL-^liiin i-limlx :!«>■ \Uc Hill
K'(i^e<rciL'jSe^ 0^7(4^
Roads called Danger and Destruction, 61
I beheld then that they all went on till they came to the foot
of the hill Difficulty ; at the bottom of which was a spring.
There were also in the same place two other ways, besides that
which came straight from the gate ; one turned to the left
hand and the other to the right, at the bottom of the hill ; but
the narrow way lay right up the hill, and the name of the going
up the side of the hill is called Difficulty. Christian now went
to the spring, and drank thereof to refresh himself,* and then
began to go up the hill, saying —
' The hill, though high, I covet to ascend,
The diiflBculty will not me offend ;
- For I perceive the way to life lies here :
Come, pluck up heart, let's neither faint nor fear :
Better, though difficulty th' right way to go.
Than wrong, though easy^ where the end is wo.'
The other two also came to the foot of the hill ; but when
they saw that the hill was steep and high, and that there were
two other ways to go ; and supposing also that these two ways
might meet again, with that up which Christian went, on the
other side of the hill ; therefore, they were resolved to go in
those ways. Now the name of one of those ways was Dan-
ger, and the name of the other Destruction. So the one took
the way which is called Danger, which led him into a great
wood ; and the other took directly up the way to Destruction,
which led him into a wide field full of dark mountains, where
he stumbled and fell, and rose no more, (s)
'■^ Isa. xlix. 10.
flection. Nothing can exclude the uneasiness which arises from in-dwell-
ing sin, and from the crimes and miseries they witness around them.
(s) The hill Diffiridiy represents those seasons and situations which re-
quire peculiar self-denial and exertion ; and are suited to prove the be-
liever's sincerity, after he has obtained " a good hope through grace." —
The frowns of the world, the sacrifice of temporal interests, outward
circumstances of sharp affliction and distress, together with the painful
task of overcoming inveterate evil habits or constitutional propensitie?,
Cwhich during his first anxious earnestness seemed perhaps to be destroy-
ed, though in fact they were only suspended,) prove a severe test of his
integrity : but there can be no hope, except in pressing forward ; and
the encouragements of the gospel prepare the soul for every conflict and
effort. — But there are also by-ways; and the difficulty may often be
av'oided without a man's renouncing his profession : he may decline the
self-denying duty, or refuse the demanded sacrifice, and find some plausi-
ble excuse to his own conscience, or among his neighbours. — The true
believer, however, is suspicious of these easier ways, on the right hand or
6
02 Timorous and Mistrust run hack.
I looked then after Christian to see him go up the hillj
where I perceived he fell from running to going, and from go-
ing to clambering upon his hands and knees, because of the
steepness of the place. Now about the mid-way to the top
of the hill was the pleasant Arbour, made by the Lord of the
hill, for the refreshing of weary travellers. Thither therefore
Chrietian got, where also he sat down to rest him : then he
pulled his Roll out of his bosom, and read therein to his com-
fort ; he also now began afresh to take a review of the coat
or garment that was given him as he stood by the cross. —
Thus pleasing himself a while, he at last fell into a slum-
ber, and thence into a fast sleep, which detained him in that
place until it was almost night ; and in his sleep his Roll fell
out of his hand. Now as he was sleeping, there came one to
him and awaked him, saying, *' Go to the ant, thou sluggard :
consider her ways and be wise."* And with that Christian
suddenly started up, and sped him on his way, and went apace
till he came to the top of the hill, (t)
* Prov. vi. 6.
on the left : his path lies straight forward, and cannot be travelled with-
out ascending the hill; which he desires to do, because his grand con-
cern is to be found right at last. But they, who chiefly desire at a cheap
rate to keep up their credit and confidence, venture into perilous or ruin-
ous paths, till they either openly apostatize, or get entangled in some
fatal delusion, and are heard of no more among the people of God.
These lines are here inserted —
^ Shall they who wrong begin yet rightly end ?
Shall they at all have safety for their friend ?
No, no ; in headstrong: manner tiiey set out,
And headlong they will fall at last, no doubt.'
(/) The difficulties of believers often seem to increase as they proceed :
this damps their spirits, and they find more painful exertion requisite
than they once expected, especially when rejoicing in the Lord : yet he
helps them, and provides for their refreshment that they may not faint.
But, whether their trials be moderated, or remarkable divine consola-
tions be vouchsafed, it is, alas, very common for them to presume <oo
much on their perseverance hitherto, or on the privileges to which they
have been admitted ; and thus their ardour abates, their diligence and
vigilance are relaxed, and they venture to allow themselves some respite.
Then drowsiness steals upon them, darkness envelopr^s their souls, the
evidences of their acceptance are obscured or lost, and the event would
be fatal, did not the Lord excite them to renewed earnestness by salutary
warnings and alarms. Nor are they at any time more exposed to this
temptation, than when outward ease hath succeeded to great hardships,
patiently and conscientiously endured : for at such a crisis they are least
disposed to question their own sincerity : and Satan is sure to employ all
'lis subtlety to lull them into security, and so in fact tempt them to abuse
1 he Lord's special goodness vouchsafed to them.
: ' Hi ivn I .NP>'^ r I J I") ji u F. ."^ .^ o
XoAV as lio w.i.-; .-^Icopino llioif vamo duo lo Iniu
aiui avvaketl. liiiiL.
J:'<y^?\ -Mii-.:.?:^,.
b
t^
Christian misses his Roll, 63
Now when he was got up to the top of the hill there came
two men running against him amain ; the name of the one was
Timorous, and the other Mistrust : to whom Christian said,
Sirs, what's the matter, you run the wrong way ? Timorous
answered, that they were going to the city of Zion, and had
got up that difficult place : but, said he, the flirther we go the
more danger we meet with ; wherefore we turned, and are
going back again.
Yes, said Mistrust, for just before us lie a couple of lions in
the way (whether sleeping or waking we know not ;) and we
could not think, if we came within reach, but they would pre-
sently pull us in pieces.
Then said Christian you make me afraid : but whither shall
1 flee to be safe ? If I go back to mine own country, that is pre-
pared for fire and brimstone, and I shall certainly perish there :
if I can get to the Celestial City, I am sure to be in safety
there.— I must venture : to go back is nothing but death, ; to
go forward is fear of deatli, and life everlasting beyond it. I
will yet go forward. — So Mistrust and Timorous ran down the
hill, and Christian went on his way. But thinking again of what
he heard from the men, he felt in his bosom for his Roll, that
he might read therein and be comforted ; but he felt, and found
it not. Then was Christian in great distress, and knew not
what to do ; for he wanted that which used to relieve him,
and that which should have been his pass into the Celestial
City. Here therefore he began to be much perplexed, and
knew not what to do. At last he bethought himself that ho
had slept in the Arbour that is on the side of the hill ; and fall-
ing down upon his knees, he asksd God's forgivness for that
his foolish act, and then went back to look for his Roll. But
all the way he went back, who can sufficiently set forth the
sorrow of Christian's heart ? Sometimes he sighed, sometimes
he wept, and oftentimes he chid himself for being so foolish as
to fall asleep in that place, which was erected only for a litth^ ,
refreshment from his weariness. Thus therefd^e he went
back, carefully looking ^Abis side and on that, all the way as
he went, if happily he nft^fetf ; fiM^his Roll that had been his
comfort so mamy times in his joUrney. He went thus till he
came again within sight of the Arbo^jj* where he sat and sl6pt ;
but that sight renewed his sorrow th'^j^Ejjore, bv bringing again,
even afresh, his evil of sleeping untoS^^mind. Thus thei>e-
fore he now went on bewailing his sinf^ sleep, saying, "O
wretched man that I am!" that I should sleep in the day-
64 And finds it,
time !* that I should sleep in the midst of difficulty ! that I
should so indulge the flesh, as to use that rest for ease to my
flesh, which the Lord of the hill hath erected only for the re-
lief of the spirits of Pilgrims ! How many steps have I took in
vain ! Thus it happened to Israel for their sin, they were sent
l>ack again by the way of the Red Sea : and I am made to tread
those steps with sorrow, which 1 might have trod with delight,
had it not been for this sinful sleep. How far might I have
'^een on my way by this time 1 I am made to tread those steps
iiirice over, which I needed not to have trod but once : yea,
now also I am like to be benighted, for the day is almost spent :
O that I had not slept ! (w)
Now by this time he was come to the Arbour again, v/here
for awhile he sat down and wept; but at last, (as Christian
Avould have it,) he looked sorrowfully down under the settle,
there he espied his Roll ; the which he with trembling and
haste catched up, and put it into his bosom. But who can tell
liow joyful this man was when he had gotten his Roll again ?
^r this Roil was the assurance of his life, and acceptance at
:c desired haven. Therefore he laid it up in his bosom,
"* 1 'I hes9. V. 7, C. P^ftv. ii. 4, 5,
(u) Sprae persons are better prepared to strujjgle through difficulties,
tlii.n to face dangers. Alarming convictions induce them to exercise a
r^ry self-denial, an<l to exert themselves with diligence; yet the
nppearance of persecution drives them back to their forsaken
j aud companions. Through unbeliefs distrust^ and timiHUy^ they
'.e rasre of mcin more »han the wrath of God ; and never consider
■ Mv racily the Lord can restrain or disarm the fiercest persecutors. Even
rue Christians arc often alarmed by the discourse of such persons ; but,
5 tliey believe the word of GoJ. they are '"' moved by fear" to go forward
it all hazards. Nay, the very terrors, which induce mere profe'ssors to
..postaey, excite upright souls to renewed self-examination by the WaXy
Scriptures, that they may *^ rejo.ce in hope" amidst their perils and tri-
bulations : and this discovers to them those decays in the vigour of their
aJEfcetions, and consequently in the evidences of their acceptance, which
had before escaped their notice. — Christian's perplexity, remorse, com-
yilaints, and self-reproachings, when he missed his roll, and went back to
.3ek it, exactly suit the experience of humble and conscientious believers,
when unwatchfulness has brou^rht their state into uncertainty : but they
Jo not at all accord to that of professors who strive against all doubts in-
■ discriminately, more than ai^ainst any sin whatever, unless connected with
open scandal; who labour hard to keep up their co«^c?ence against evi-
(hnce^ amidst continued ncgli^cnc^ and allowed sins : and exclaim against
-i<»-hs, tears, and tenderness of conscience, as legality and unbelief. — No
loubt Bunya'n would have excluded such characters from the company
.>f hi? pilgrims !
But is benighted . The house Beautiful. 65
gave thanks to God for directing his eye to the place where it
lay, and with joy and tears betook himself again to his journey.
But O how nimbly now did he go up the rest of the hill ! (ta?)
— Yet before he got up, the sun went down upon Christian ;
and this made him again recall the vanity of his sleeping to his
remembrance ; and thus he again began to condole himself :
* O thou sinful sleep ! how for thy sake am 1 like to be be-
nighted in my journey ! I must walk without the sun, darkne^i-
must cover the path of my ieei^ and I must hear the noise of
doleful creatures, because of my sinful sleep !' Now also he
remembered' the story that Mistrust and Timorous told him of,
how they were frighted with the sight of the lions. Then said
Christian to himself again, these beasts range in the night for
their prey ; and if they should meet with me in the dark, how
should I shift them ? ho\w should I escape being by them torn
in pieces ? (x) Thus he went on his way. But, while he was
thus bewailing his unhappy miscarriage, he lift up hfs eyes,
and behold there was a very stately palace before him, the
name of which was Beautiful, and it stood just by the highway
side. {]})
{ic) By means of extraordinary diligence, with renewed application to
the blood of Christ, the believer in time recovers his warranted confi-
dence, and God " restores to him the joy of his salvation :" but he must,
as it were, pass repeatedly over the same ground with sorrow, which, had
it not been for his negligence, he might have passed at once with com-
fort. •,..
(;r) Believers may recover their evidences of acceptance, and yet suffer
many troubles as the effects of their past unwatchfulness. The Lord '
rebukes and chastens those whom he loves : genuine comfort spring's ^n-
mediately from the vigorous exercise of holy affections in communion wiih
God, which may be suspended even when no doubts are entertained of
linal salvation : and the true penitent is least disposed to forgive himself,
when most satisfied that the Lord hath forgiven him.
{y) Hitherto Christian has been a solitary pilgrim : but we must ncy t
consider him as admitted to the communion of the faithful, and join:ri:i:
with them in the most solemn public ordinances. This is represented
under the emblem of the house Beautiful, and the pilgrim's entertain-
ment in it. — Mr. Bunyan was a protestant dissenter, an Independent :'n
respect of church government and discipline ; and an j^nti-po^do-l^ajjiuU
or one who deemed adult prof essors of repentence and faith the only pro-
per subjects of baptism, and immersion the only proper mode of adminis-
tering that ordinance. He must, therefore, have intended to describe
especially, the admission of the new convert as a member of a dissenting
church, (which consists of the communicants only,) upon a profession of
faith, and with adult baptism by immersion : but as h^ held open com-
muilioil with PoRdo-bajptistSi the last circumstance is not necessarily in-
I 6
6b The Lions. The Porter Watchful
So I saw in my dream, that he made haste and went forward,
that if possible he might get lodging there. Now before he
had gone far, he entered into a very narrow passage, which
was about a furlong off of the Porter's lodge ; and looking very
narrowly before him as he w^ent, he espied two lions in the way.
Now, thought he, I see the danger that Mistrust and Timorous
were driven back by. (The lions were chained, but he saw
not the chains.) Then he was afraid, and thought also him-
self to go back after them ; for he thought nothing but death
was before him. But the Porter at the lodge, whose name is
Watchful, perceiving that Christian made a halt, as if he would
go back, cried unto him saying, ' Is thy strength so small ?*
Fear not the lions, for they are chained, and are placed there
for trial of faith where it is, and for discovery of those that
have none : keep in the midst of the path, and no hurt shall
come unto thee.' (z)
* Mark iv. 40.
luded. Indeed he has expressed himself so candidly and cautiously,
that his representations may suit the admission of members into the soci-
ety of professed Christians, in any communion, where a serious regard to
spiritual religion is in this respect maintained. — It may perhaps be ques-
tioned, how far, in the present state of things, this is practicable : but we
can scarcely deny it to be very desirable, that Christian societies should
be formed according to the principles here exhibited : such would indeed
be very beautiful, honourable to God, conducive to mutual edification,
and examples to the world around them. Various expedients also may
be adopted for thus promoting the communion of the saints : and surely
more might be done than is at present, perhaps any where, were all con-
cerned to attempt it boldly, earnestly, and with united efforts.
(s) A public profession of faith exposes a man to more opposition from
relatives and neighbours, than a private attention to religion ; and in our
author's days it was commonly the signal for persecution : for which rea-
son he places the lions in the road to the house Beautiful. — Sense per-
r^eives the dangers, and the imagination, through the suggestions of Satan,
exceedingly magnifies them : but faith alone can discern the secret re-
straints which the Lord lays on the minds of opposers ; and even believ-
ers are apt to be needlessly fearful on such occasions. But the vigilant
pastors of the flock obviate their fears, and by seasonable admonitions
animate them to press forward, assured that nothing shall do them any
real harm, and that all shall eventually prove beneficial to them.
We meet with the following lines in the old copies, which refer to the
pilgrim's present situation : —
' Difiiculty is behind, fear is before,
Though he's got on the hill, the lions roar :
A Christian man is never long at ease ;
When one fright's gone, another doth him seize
Christian ventures past the Lions. { 671
Then I saw that he went on trembling for fear of the lions ;
but taking good heed to the directions of the Porter, he heard
them roar, but they did him no harm. Then he clapped his
hands, and went on till he came and stood before the gate
where the Porter was. Then said Christian to the Porter,
Sir, What house is this ? And, May I lodge here to-night ?
The Porter answered. This house was built by the Lord of
the hill, and he built it for the relief and security of Pilgrims.
The Porter also asked whence he was ? and whither he was
going ?
Chr. I am come from the City of Destruction, and am going
to Mount Zion ; but, because the sun is now set, I desire, if I
may, to lodge here to-night.
Por. What is your name ? -
Chr. My name is now Christian, but my name at the first
was Graceless : I came of the race of Japheth,* whom God
will persuade to dwell in the tents of Shcm.
Por. But how doth it happen that you come so late ? The
sun is set.
Clir. I had been here sooner, but that, wretched man that
I am ! I slept in the Arbour that stands on the hill-side. Nay,
1 had, notwithstanding that, been here much sooner, but that
in my sleep I lost my evidence, and came without it to the
brow of the hill ; and then feeling for it and finding it not, I
was forced with sorrow of heart to go back to the place
wliere I slept my sleep ; where I found it, and now I am
come, (a)
Par. Well, I will call out one of the virgins of this place,
who will, if she likes your talk, bring you into the rest of the
family, according to the rules of the house. So Watchful, the
Porter, rang the bell, at the sound of which came out at the
door of the house a grave and beautiful damsel, named Discre-
tion, and asked why she was called ?
* Gen. ix..27.
(a) The Porter's inquiries and Christian's answers exhibit our author's
sentir.ic^nts, on the caution with which members should be admitted into
the communion of the faithful : and it very properly shows, how mini-
sters, by private conversation, may form a judgment of a man's profession,
whether it be intelligent and the result of experience, or notional and
formal. Christian assigned his sinful sleeping as the cause of his arriving
so late : when believers are oppressed with prevailing doubts of their
acceptance, they are backward in joining themselves to the people of
God ; and this often tempts them to sinful delays, instead of exciting them
to greater diligence.
68 DescretioUy Piety, Prudence, and Charity.
The Porter answered, This man is in a journey from the
City of Destruction to Mouni Zion : but being weary and be-
nighted, he asked me if he might lodge here to-night : so I told
him I would call for thee, who, after discourse had with him,
majest do as seemeth thee good, even according to the law of
the house.
Then she asked him whence he was ? and whither he was
going ? and he told her. She asked him also how he got into
the way ? and he told her. Then she asked him what he had
seen and met w^th in the way ? and he told her. And at last
she asked his name ? So he said, It is Christian ; and I have
so much the more a desire to lodge hereto-night, because, by
what I perceive, this place wms built by the Lord of the hill
for the relief and security of Pilgrims. So she smiled, but the
water stood in her eyes ; and after a little pause she said, I will
call forth two or three more of the family. So she ran to the
door and called out Prudence, Piety, and Charity, who, after
a little more discourse with him, had him into the family ; and
many of them meeting him at the threshold of the house, said^
*' Come in, thou blessed of the Lord ;" this house was ' built
by the Lord of the hill, on purpose to entertain such Pilgrims
in.' Then he bowed his head, and followed them into the
house. So when he was come in and set down, they gave
liim something to drink, and consented together, that until sup-
per WMS ready, some of them should haye some particular
discourse with Christian, for the best improvement of time ;
and they appointed Piety, and Prudence, and Charity, to dis-
course with him ; and thus they began. (6)
(Ij) The discourse of Discretion with the Pilgrim represents such pre-
t'autions and inquiries into the character and views of a professor, as may
l:.e mad3 use of by any body of Christians, in order to prevent the intru-
sion of improper persons. The answers given to the several questions
pro[)03ed, constitute the proper external qualifications for admission to
the Lord's table, when there is nothing in a man's principles and conduct
inconsistent with them ; for the Lord alone can judge how far they ac-
cord to tiie iaicard dispositions and affections of the heart. — By the dis-
course of others belonging to the family with Christian, previously to his
admission, the author probably meant, that members should be admitted
into Christian societies with the approbation of the most prudent, pious,
and candid part of those that constitute them ; and according to the dic-
tates of those graces or endowments here personified. — By giving him
* something lo eat before supper,' he probably referred to those prepara-
tory sermons and devotions, by which the administration of the Lord's
supper was then frequently and with great propriety introduced.
Piety discourses with Christian. 69.
Pi, Come, good Christian, since we have been so loving to
you, to receive you into our house this night, let us, if perhaps
we may better ourselves thereby, talk with you of all things
that h^ive happened to you in your pilgrimage, (c)
Ckr, With a very good will ; and I am glad that you are so
well disposed.
Pi, What moved you at first to betake yourself to a Pilgrim's
life ?
Chr. I was driven out of my native country by a dreadful
sound that was in mine ears ; to wit, That unavoidable
destruction did attend me if I abode in that place where I
was.
Pi. But how did it happen that you came out of your coun-
try this way ?
Chr, It was as God would have it : for when I was under '^
the fears of destruction, I did not know whiiher to go ; but by
chance there came a man even to me (as I was trembling and
vVeeping) whose name is Evangelist, and he directed me to the
Wicket-g-ate, which else I should never have found, and so set
me into the way that hath led me directly to this house.
Pi. But did you not come by the house of the Interpreter ?
Chr. Yes, and did see such things there, the remembrance ^
of which will stick by me as long as I live ; especially three
things ; to wit, how Christ in despite of Satin, maintains his
work of grace in the heirt ; how the man had sinned himself
quite out of hopes of God's mercy ; and also the dream of him
that thought in his sleep the day of judgment was come. ^
- Pi. Why ! Did you hear him tell his dream ?
Chr. Yes, and a dreadful one in was, I thought ; it made my
heart ache as he was telling of it ; but yet I am glad I heard
it.
Pi. Was this all that you saw at the house of the Interpre-
ter ?
Chr. No he took me and had me where he showed me a
stately palace, and how the people were clad in gold that were
in it ; and how there came a venturous man, and cut his way
(c) The further conversaiion of Piety and her companions with Chris-
tian, was subsequent to his admission, and represents the advantage of the
communion of the saints, and the best method of conducting it. — To lead
believers to a serious review of the way in which they have been led
hitherto, is every way profitable, as it tends to increase humiliation, gra-
titude, faith, and hope ; and must, therefore, proportionably conduce to
the glory of God, and the edification of their brethren.
70 Christian relates what he had met witji,
through the armed men that stood in the door to keep him out ;
and how he was bid to come in and win eternal glory. Me-
thought those things did ravish my heart : I would have staid
at that good man's house a twelve-month, but that I knew I
had further to go.
Pi. And what saw you else in the way ?
Chr, Saw I Why, I went but a little further, and I saw One,
as I thought in my mind, hang bleeding upon a tree : and the
very sight of him made my burden fall off my back ; for I
groaned under a heavy burden, but then it fell down from off
me. 'Tvvas a strange thing to me, for I never saw such a thing
before ; yea, and while I stood looking up, (for then I could
not forbear looking,) three shining ones came to me : one of
them testified that my sins were forgiven me ; another stript
me of my rags, and gave me this broidered coat which you see ;
and the third set the mark which you see in my forehead, and
gave me this sealed Roil ; (and with that he plucked it out of
liis bosom.)
Pi. But you saw more than this, did you not ?
Chr. The things that I have told you were the best : yet some
ther matters I saw ; as niunely, 1 saw three men. Simple,
Sloth, and Presumption, lie asleep, a little out of the way as 1
came, with irons upon their heels ; but do you think I could
awake them I I also saw Formalist and Hypocrisy come tum-
bling over the wall, to go, as they pretended., to Zion : but
they were quickly lost ; even as 1 myself did tell them, but
they would not believe. But, above all, I found it hard work
to get up this hill, and as hard to conVe by the lions' mouth :
and truly, if it had not been for the good man, the Porter, that
stands at the gate, I do not know but that, after all, I might
haye gone back again ; but now, I thank God, I am here ; and
1 thank you for receiving of me.
Then Prudence thought good to ask him a few questions,
and desired his answer to them.
Pr. Do you not think sometimes of the country from
whence you came ?
Chr. Yes, but with much shame and detestation : truly "If
I had been mindful of that country from whence I came out, 1
might have had opportunity to have returned, but now I desire
a better country, that is an heavenly."'^
Pr. Do you not yet bear away wdth you some of the things
that then you were conversant withal ?
* Heb. xi. 16.
(Charity asks Christian of his Wife and Ciiildren. 7 1
C/ir. Yes, but greatly against my will ; especially my inward
and carnal cogitations, with which all my countrymen, as well
as myself, were delighted : but now all those things are my
<!;rief ; and might I but choose mine own things, I would choose
never to think of those things more ; but when I would be do-
ing of that which is best, that which is worst is with me.
Pr, Do you not find sometimes as if those things w^ere van-
quished, which at other times are your perplexity ?
Chr, Yes, but that is but seldom ; but they are to me golden
hours in which such things happen to me.
Pr. Can you remember by what me vms you find your anoy-
ances at times as if they were Vrmquished ?
Chr, Yes : when 1 think what 1 saw at the cross, that will
do it ; and when 1 look upon my broidered coat, that will do
it : also when 1 look into the Roll that I carry in my bosom,
that will do it ; and when my thoughts wax warm about whith-
er I am going, that will do, it.
Pr. And what is it that makes you so desirous to go to
Mount Zion ?
Chr, Why there I hope to see him alive that did hang dead
on the cross ; and there 1 hope to be rid of all those things
that to this day are in me an annoyance to me : there they say
there is no death ;* and there I shall dwell with such compa-
ny as I like best. For, to tell you the truth, I love him be-
cause 1 was by him eased of my burden ; and I am weary of
my inward sickness. I would fain be where I shall die no
more, and with the company that shall continually cry, ** Holy,
hoiy, holy." {d)
i'hen said Charity to Christian, Have you a family ? are
vou a married man ?
Chr. I have a wife and four small children.
^ Tsa. XXV. 8. Rev. xxi. 4.
(d) Men may learn any doctrine by human teaching, and relate by
rnte any experience; nay, general convictions, transient affection.?, and
distinct notions may impose upon the man himself, and he may mistake
them for true conversion. The best method of avoiding this dangerous
rock consists in daily self-examination, and constant prayer to be pre-
served from it: and, as far as we are concerned to form a judgment of
others, in order to perform our several duties towards them, prudtnce is
especially required, and will sug-gest such questions as are here proposed.
The true Christian's inmost feelings will best explain the answers, which
no exposition can elucidate to those who are unacquainted with the conflict
to which they refer. — The golden hours, (fleeting and ppecious,) are earn-
ests of the everlasting holy felicity of heaven.
72 Their Discourse during Supper,
Char. And why did you not bring them along with you ?
Then Christian wept, and said, Oh ! how wiUingly would I
have done it ! but they were all of them utterly averse to niy
going on pilgrimage.
Char, But you should have talked to them, and have endea-
voured to have shown them the danger of being left behind.
Chr. So I did ; and told them also what God had showed to
me of the destruction of our City ; but I seemed to them as one
that mocked, and they beheved me not.*
Char. And did you pray to God that he would bless your
counsel to them ?
Chr. Yes, and that w^ith much affection ; for you must think
that my wife and poor children were very dear unto me.
Char. But did you tell them of your own sorrow, and fear
of destruction ? for I suppose that destruction was visible
enough to you.
Chr. Yes, over, and over, and over. They might also sec
my fears in my countenance, in my tears, and also in my trem-
bling under the apprehension of the judgments that did hang
over our heads ; but all was not sufficient to prevail with them
to come with me.
Char. But what could they say for themselves why they
came not ?
Chr. AVhy, my wife was afraid of losing this world • and my
children were given to the foolish delights of youth : so, what
by one thing and what by another, they left me to wander in
this manner alone.
Char. But did you not with your vain life damp all that you
by words used bv way of persuasion to bring them away with
you?
Chr. Indeed I cannot commend my bfe, for I am conscious
to myself of many failings therein : 1 i^now also, that a man by
his conversation may soon overthrow, what by argument or
persuasion he doth labour to fasten upon others for their
good. Yet this I can say, I was very wary of giving them oc-
casion, by cWij unseemly action, to make them avers to goin
on pilgrimage. Yea, for this very thing they would tell nie i
was too precise ; and that I denied myself of things, (for theii'
sakes) in v/hich they saw no evil. Nay, I think I may sav
that if what they saw in me did bJnri>»' *^ ^^ if was my great
* Gen. xix. li.
The Discourse during Supper. 73
tenderness in sinning against God, or of doing any wrong to my
neighbour.
Char, Indeed " Cain hated his brother, because his own
works were evil, and his brother's righteous ;"* " and if thy
wife and children have been offended with thee for this, they
thereby show themselves to be implacable to good ; and thou
hast delivered thy soul from their blood.t"(^)
Now I saw in my dream, that thus they sat talking together
until supper was ready. So when they had made ready, they
sat down to meat. Now the table was furnished with fat
things, and with wine that was well refined ; and all their talk
at the table was about the Lord of the hill ; as, namely, about
what He had done, and wherefore He did what he did, and
why He had builded that House ; and by what they said, I
perceived that He had been a great warrior, and had fought
with and slain him that had the power of death * but not with-
out great danger to himself ; which made me love him the
more.
For, as they said, and as I believe, said Christian, he did it
with the loss of much blood. But that which put glory of
grace into all he did, was, that he chd it of pure love to his
country. And besides, there were some of them of the house-
hold that said, they had seen and spoke with him since he did
die on the Cross ; and they have attested, that they had it
from his own lips, that he is such a lover of poor Pilgrims, that
the like is not to be found from the east to the west.
They, moreover, gave an instance of what they affirmed,
and that was, he had stript himself of his glory that he might
do this for the poor ; and that they heard him say and affirm,
' That he would not dwell in the mountain of Zion alone.'
They said, moreover, that he had made many Pilgrims Pria-
* 1 John iii. 12. t Ezek. iii. 19. J Heb. ii. 14, 15.
(e) When we know the value of our own souls, we shall become
greatly solicitous for the souls of others.' It is therefore a very suspicious
circumstance, when a man professing godliness shows no earnestness in
persuading those he loves best, to seek salvation : and it is absurd in the
extreme to excuse this negligence by arguments taken from God's secret
purposes, when these have no influence on the conduct of the very same
persons in their temporal concerns ! — Charity's discourse with Christian
shows the author's sentiments of the duties of believers in this most im-
portant concern ; and of the real reasons vfhy camai men reject the go$-
a 7
74 The Study and tie Records.
ces, though by nature they were beggars born, and their origi-
nal had been the dunghill.*^/)
Thus they discoursed together till late at night ; and after
they had committed themselves to their Lord for protection,
they betook themselves to rest. The pilgrim they laid in
a large upper chamber, whose window opened towards the
sun-rising : the name of the chamber was Peace, where he
slept till break of day, and then he awoke and sang —
' Where am I now ! Is this the love and care
Of Jesus, for the men that Pilgrims are,
Thus to provide ! That I should be for^ven,
And dwell already the next door to heaven V(g)
So in the morning they all got up ; and, after some more
discours , they told him that he should not depart till they
had showed him the Rarities of that place. And lirst they had
him into the Study, where they showed him records of the
greatest antiquity ; in which, as I remember my dream, they
showed him, tirst the pedigree of the Lord of the hill, that he was
the Son of the Ancient of Days, and came by an eternal gene-
ration. Here also was more fully recorded the acts that he
had done, and the names of many hundreds that he had taken
''■ 1 Sam. ii. 8. Psa. cxiii. 7.
(/) The administration of the Lord's supper is here emblematically
described. In it the Person, humiliaiion, sufTerii^gfs, and death of Christ,
with the motive and event of them, are kept in perpetual remembrance.
By seriously contemplating: on these interesting subjects, v/ilh the em-
blems of his body wounded and his blood shed before our eyes ; and by
professing our cordial acceptance of his salvation, and surrender of our-
selves to his service ; we find every holy alfection revived and invigorat-
ed, and our eo,u1s humbled and softened in deep repentance, inspired with
calm confidence, nnirnated to thankful, zealous, self-denying obedience,
and enlarged tender affection for our fellow C-.ristians, with compassion-
ate forgiving love of our most inveterate enemies. The believer will rea-
dily apply the allegorical representation of the Lord of the hill,'"^ to the
love of Christ for lost sinners, which no words can adequately describe,
for " it passGth knowledge."
(g-) That peace of conscience and serenity of mind, which foUov/ a
humble upright professicn of faith in Christ, and communion with him
and his people, is not the effect of a mere outvrard observance ; but cf
that inward disposition of heart which is thus cultivated, and of the
Lord's blessing on his own appointments. This is here represented by
the chamber Peace : it raises the soul above the care and bustle of this
vain world, and springs from the healing beams of the Sun of Righteous-
ness.
* Isa. XXV. 6, 7.
The Armoury, IB
into hijj service ; and how he had placed them in such habita-
tions, that could neither by length of days, nor decays of na-
ture, be dissolved.
Then they read to him some of the worthy acts that some of
his servants had done : as how they had " subdued kingdoms,
wrought righteousness, obtained promises, stopped the mouths
of lions, quenched the violence of fire, escaped the edge of
the sword, out of weakness were made strong, waxed valiant in
fight, and turned to flight the armies of the ahens."*
Then they read again in another part of the records of the
house, where it was showed how wilUng their Lord was to re-
ceive into his favour any, even any, though they in time past
had offered great affronts to his person and proceedings. Here
idso were several other histories of many other famous things,
of all which Christian had a view : as of things both ancient
and modern; together with prophecies and predictions of
things that have their certain accomplishment, both to the
dread and amazement of enemies, and the comfort and solace
of Pilgrims, (/t)
The next day they took him and had him mto the Ar-
moury, where they showed him dl manner of furniture which
their Lord had provided for Pilgrims, as sword, shield, helmet,
breast-plate, all-prayer, and shoes that would not wear out.
And there was here enough of this to harness out as many
men, for the service of their Lord, as there be stars in the
heaven for multitude.
They also showed him some of the engines > with which
«ome of his servants had done wonderful things. They show-
ed him Moses' rod ; the hammer and nail with which Jael
slew Sisera ; the pictures, trumpets, and lamps too, with
which Gideon put to flight the armies of Midian. Then they
showed him the ox's goiid, wherewith Shamagar slew six hun-
dred men. They showed him also the jaw bone with which
Samson did such mighty feats : they showed him moreover
the sling and stone with which David slewGoliah of Gath ; and
the sword also with which their Lord will kill the Man of Sin, in
the day that he shall rise up to the prey. They showed him
* Heb. xi. 33, 34. t Eph. vi. 10—18. I Thess. v. 6.
(/i) Christian communion, properly conducted, tends to enlarge the
believer's acquaintance with the Holy Scriptures : and this conduces to
increase faith, hope, love, patience and fortitude ; to animate the soul in
emulating the illustrious examples there exhibited j and to furnish in-
struction for every good work.
78 A View of the Delectable Mountains.
kesides many excellent things, with which Christian was mucih
delighted. — This done, they went to their rest again. {%)
Then I saw in my dream that on the morrow he got up to
go forwards, but they desired him to stay till the next day
also ; and then, said they, we will, if the day be clear, show
you the Delectable Mountains ; which, they said, would yet
further add to his comfort, because they were nearer the de-
sired haven than the place where at present he was ; so he
consented and staid. When the morning was up they had him
to the top of the house, and bid him look south : so he did ;
and behold, at a great distance,* he saw a most pleasant
mountainous country, beautified with woods, vineyards, fruits
of all sorts, flowers also, with springs and fountains, very de-
lectable to behold. Then he asked the name of the country.
They said. It was Immanuel's Land ; and it is as common, said
they, as this hill is, to and for all the Pilgrims. And when
thou comest there, from thence, said they, thou may est see to
the gate of the Celestial City, as the shepherds that live there
will make appear. (Jz)
Now he bethought himself of setting forward, and they were
willing he should. But first, said they, let us go again into the
Armoury. So they did ; and when he came there they har-
nessed him from head to foot with what was of proof, lest per-
haps he should meet with assaults in the way. He being
* Isa. xxxiii. 16, 17.
(i) The provision made in Christ and his fulness, for maintaining and
increasing, in the hearts of his people, these holy affections, by the vigor-
ous exercise of which victory is obtained over all enemies, is here repre-
sented by the Armoury.* This suffices for all who seek to be supplied
from it, how many soever they be. We ought, therefore, " to take to
ourselves the whole armour of God," and " put it on," by diligently using
all the means of grace : and we may assist others, by our exhortations,
counsels, example, and prayers, to do the same. — The following allusions
to the scriptural history, which have a peculiar propriety in an allegory,
intimate that the means of grace are made effectual by the power of God,
which we should depend on, in implicit obedience to his appointments.
(fe) The Delectable Mountains, as seen at a distance, represent those
distinct views of the privileges and consolations attainable in this life, with
which believers are sometimes favoured, when attending on divine ordi-
nances, or diligently making a subsequent improvement of tliem. The
hopes thus inspired prepare them for pressing forward through dangers
and hardships. This is the pre-eminent advantage of Christian commu-
nion, and can only be enjoyed at some special seasons, when the Sun of
Righteousness shines upon the soul.
* Eph. vi. 10-^18. 1 Thess. v. 6.
Qiristian armed goes on his way. 77
therefore thus accoutred walked out with his friends to the
gate, and there he asked the Porter, if he saw any Pilgrims
pass by ? Then the Porter answered, Yes. (/)
Chr, Pray, did you know him ?
Par. I asked his name, and he told me it was Faithful.
O, said Christian, I know him : he is my townsman, my
near neighbour, he comes from the place where I was born :
how far do you think he may be before ?
Par. He is got by this time below the hill.
Well, said Chris^tin.n, good Porter, the Lord be with thee,
.and add to all thy blessings much increase, for the kindness that
thou hast showed to me.
Then he began to go forward ; but Discretion, Piety, Charity,
and Prudence, would accompany him down to the foot of the
hill. So they went on together, reiterating their former dis-
courses, till they came to go down the hill. Then said Chris-
tian, as it was dijjicult coming up, so, as far as I can see, it is
dangerous going down. \ es, said Prudence, so it is ; for it is a
hard matter for a man to go down into the Valley of Humiliation,
as thou art now, and to catch no shp by the way ; therefore
said they, are we come out to accompany thee down the hill
So he began to go down, but very warily, yet he caught a
slip or two.
Then I saw in my dream, that these good companions, when
Christian was gone down to the bottom of the hill, gave him a
loaf of bread, a bottle of wine, and a cluster of raisins ; and
then he went on his way. (?ri)
(/) The ordinances of public or social worship are only the means of
being religious, not the essence of religion itself. Having renewed our
strength by waiting on the Lord, we must go forward, by attending with
greater diligence to the duties of our several stations ; preparing to re-
sist temptations, which often assault us after special seasons of divine con-
solation. Ministers therefore, and experienced believers, should warn
converts to expect trials and conflicts, and recommend to them such com-
panions as may be a comfort and help in their pilgrimage.
{in) The humiliation requisite for receiving Christ, obtaining peace,
and making a good confession of faith, is general and indistinct, compared
with that which may be acquired by subsequent study, observation, and
experience, especially amidst trials and conflicts : and the Lord common-
ly dispenses comfort and humiliating dispensations alternately, that the
believer may neither be elated nor depressed above measure.* — The val-
ley of humiliation, therefore, is judiciously placed beyond the house
Beautiful. Some explain it to signify a Christian's outward circumstan-
ces, when reduced to poverty, or subjected to great temporal losses by
* 2 Cor. xii. 1—5.
7*
78 The Valley of HumiliaHon.
But now, in this Valley of Humiliation, poor Christian was
hard put to it ; for he had gone but a little way, before he es-
pied a foul Fiend coming over the field to meet him : his
name is Apollyon. Then did Christian begin to be afraid, and
to cast in his mind whether to go back or to stand his ground.
But he considered again, that he had no armour for his back,
and therefore thought that to turn the back to him might give
him greater advantage, with ease to pierce him with his darts :
therefore he resolved to venture, and stand his ground : for
thought he, had I no more in mine eye than the saving of my
life, it would be the best way to stand, (n)
professing the gospel ; and perhaps the author had this idea in his mind :
■yet these could only \)q vieiAed as means of producing inward humilia-
lion. — In going down into the valley, the believer will greatly need the
assistance of discretion^ pi^iy^ charity^ and jirudence^ and the recollection
of the instructions and counsels of such Christians as are eminent for these
endowments : for humiliating dispensations and experiences excite the
latent evils of the heart, and often cause men to speak and act unadvis-
edly; so that, notwithstanding every precaution, the review will com-
monly discover many things which excite the I'emorse and sorrow of deep
repentance.
(n) Under discouraging circumstances the believer gaay be tempted
murmur, despond, or seek relief from tlie world. Finding his too san-
guine expectations not answered ; that he grows worse ratlier than bet-
ter in his opinion of himself; that his comforts are transitory ; and that
much reproach, contempt, and loss are incurred by his profession of reli-
gion, discontent will often rise up in his heart, and weakness of faith will
expose him to sharp conflicts. — Mr. Bunyan, having experienced, in an
imcommon degree, the most dreadful temptations, was probably led by
that circumstance to speak on this subject, in language not very intelli-
gible to those who have been exempted from such painful exercises. —
The nature of his work required that they should be described under
outu'ard emblems ; but the inward suggestions of evil spirits are espe-
cially intended. These seem to have peculiar access to the imagination,
and are able to paint before that illusive faculty the most alluring or ter-
rifying representations, as if they were realities. — Apollyon signifies ^/ic
destroyer ;* and in carrying on the work of destruction, fallen angels
Rndeavour, by various devices, to deter men from prayer, and to render
ihem afraid of those things w^ithout which the life of faith cannot be
maintained ; in order that, after convictions, they may be led to give up
religion, as the only method of recovering their composure. Many, "hav-
ing no root in themselves," thus gradually fall away ; and others are
greatly retarded : but the well instructed believer sees no safety except
in facing his enemy. If it appear dangerous to persevere, to desist is ine-
vitable ruin, (for Christian 'had no armour for his back.') So that fear
itself will in that case induce a man to stand his ground ; and the more
solutely he resists tcmgtation, the sooner will he regain his tranquillity ;
'' Rev. ix. 11.
Ap oily on accosts Christian, 79
So he went on, and Apollyon met him. Now the monster
was hideous to behold : he was clothed with scales like a fish,
(and they are his pride ;) he had wings like a dragon, feet hke
a bear, and out of his belly came fire and smoke, and his mouth
was as the mouth of a lion. When he was come up to Chris-
lian, he beheld him with a disdainful countenance, and thus
began to question with him. (o)
Apol. Whence come you ? and whither are you bound ?
Chr, I am come from the city of Destruction, which is the
place of all evil, and am going to the city of Zion.
ApoL By this I perceive thou art one of my subjects ; for
all that country is mine, and I am the prince and god of it.
How is it then that thou hast run away from thy king ? Were
it not that I hope thou may est do me more service, I would
-irike thee now at one blow to the ground.
Chr. I was born indeed in your dominions, but your service
V. as hard, and your wages such as a man could not live on ;
• for the wages of sin ^'s death ;"* therefore when I was come
to years, I did as other considerate persons do, look out if per-
luips I might mend myself.
Apol. There is no prince that will thus lightly lose his sub-
jects, neither will I as yet lose thee ; but since thou complain-
est of thy service and wages, be content to go back ; what our
countr}^ will afford, I do here promise to give thee.
Chr. But I have let myself to another, even to the King of
Tiinces ; and how can I with fairness go back with thee ?
.Ipol. Thou hast done in this according to the proverb,
'icmge a bad for a worse : but it is ordinary for those that
Iravc professed themselves his servjmts, after a while to give
*Rom.vi. 23.
lor, when the suggestions of Satan excite us to pray more fervently, and
to be more diligent in every duty, that enemy will soon " flee from us."
Perhaps some may remember a time when they were harassed to that
degree as almost to despair of relief; who have since been so entirely
delivered, that, were it not for the recollection of their own past experi-
ence, they would be ready to ascribe these distresses to disease or enthu-
;. ra, notwithstanding all that the scripture contains on the subject,
(o) The description of Apollyon implies, that the combat afterward
recorded, particularly represented the terrors by which evil spirits at-
tempt to drive professors out of their path. Other temptations, though
often more dangerous are not so distressing : " For Satan can transform
himself into an angel of light ;" and indeed he is a very Proteus, who can
assume any form that best suits his purpose.
80 Jl7id reasons 'with him,
him the slip, and return again to me. Do thou so too, and all
shall be well.
Chr. I have given him my faith, and sworn my allegiance to
him : how then can I go back from this and not be hanged as a
traitor ?
Apol. Thou didst the same to me, and yet I am willing to
pass by all, if now thou wilt yet turn again and go back.
Chr. What I promised thee was in my nonage ; and beside?,
I count that the prince under whose banner now I stand, is
able to absolve me ; yea, and to pardon also what I did as to
my compliance with thee : and, besides, O thou destroying
Apolljon, to speak truth, I like his service, his wages, his ser-
vants, his government, his company, and country, better than
thine ; and therefore leave off to persuade me farther ; I am
his servant, and 1 will follow him.
ApoL Consider again, when thou art in cool blood, what thou
art like to meet with in the way that thou goest. Thou know-
est that for the most part his servants come to an ill end, be-
cause they are transgressors against me and my ways. How
many of them have been put to shameful deaths ? And besides,
thou countest his service better than mine, whereas he never
came yet from the place where he is, to dehver any that serv-
ed him, out of my hands : but, as for me, how many times, as
all the world very well knows, have I delivered, either by
power or fraud, those that have faithfully served me, from
him and his, though taken by them : and so I will deliver thee.
Chr. His forbearing at present to deliver them is on purpose
to try their love, whether they will cleave to him to the end :
and, as for the ill end thou sayest they come to, that is most
glorious in their account : for, for present deliverance, they
danot much expect it ; for they stay for their glory, and then
they shall have it, when their Prince comes in his, and the glory
of the angels, (p)
(y;) As all have been overcome by the temptations of the devil ; and
^- of whom a man is overcome, of the same is he brought into bondage ;"
so, by usurpation, he has become the god and prince of this world, and
we have all- been his slaves. But believers, having been redeemed by
the blood of Christ, " are made free from sin and become the servants of
God :" and the abiding conviction, that all the subjects of sin and Satan
must perish, concurs with their experience that it is a hard bondage, in
fortifying them against every temptation to return. Sensible of their
obligations to God as their Creator and Governor, they have deeply re-
pented of past rebellions ; and, having obtained mercy, feel themselves
bound by gratitude, and the most solemn engagements, to cleave to him
Apollyon violently assaults Christian, 8t
ApoL Thou hast already been unfaithful in thy service to
him : and how dost thou think to receive wages of him ?
Ch7\ Wherein, O Apollyon, have 1 been unfaithful to him ?
Apol. Thou didst faint at first setting out, when thou wast
almost choked in the gulf of despond ; thou didst attempt wrong
ways to be rid of thy burden, whereas thou shouldest have
stayed till thy Prince had taken it off: thou didst sinfully
sleep, and lose thy choice thing : thou wast also almost per-
suaded to go back at the sight of the lions : and when thou
talkcst of tiiy journey, and of what thou linst heard and seen,
thou art inwardly desirous of vainglory in all that thou sayest
or doest.
Chr. All this is true, and much more which thou hast left
out : but the Prince, whom I serve and honour, is merciful
and ready to forgive. But besides, these infirmities possessed
me in thy country : for there I sucked them in, and I have
groaned under them, being sorry for them, and have obtained
pardon of my Prince. (9)
Then Apollyon broke out mto a grievous rage, saying, I am
an enemy to this Prince ; I hate his person, his laws, and peo-
ple. I am come out on purpose to withstand thee.
and his service. Their difficulties and discourafi:ements cannot induce
them to believe that they ^ have changed a bad for a worse ;' nor will
they be influenced by the numbers who apostatize, from love to the world
and dread of the cross ; for they are " rooted and grounded in Love," and
not merely moved by fears and hopes. They are sure that the Lord is
able to deliver them from their enemies : and, should the wicked be per-
mitted to prosper in their malicious devices against them, they know
enough of his plan, to rely on his Avisdom, truth, and love, in the midst
of sufferings. Thus they have answers ready for every suggestion ; even
such answers as Christian had been furnished with at the house of the
Interpreter.
(7) If the suggestions before described be rejected, Satan will perhaps
assault the believer, by representing to his mind, with every possible ag-
gravation, the several instances of his misconduct since he professed the
gospel ; in order to heighten his apprehensions of being found at last a
hypocrite : for when the soul is discouraged and gloomy, he will be as
assiduous in representing every false step to be a horrid crime inconsistent
with the hope of salvation, as he is at other times in persuading men,
that the most flagrant violations of the divine law are mere trifles.-r-In
repelling such suggestions, the well instructed believer will neither deny
the charge, nor extenuate his guilt ; but he will flee for refuge to the
free grace of the gospel, and take comfort from the consciousness that he
now hates and groans under the remains of those evils, which once he
wholly lived in without remorse ; thence inferring, that " his sins, though
many, are forgiven."
li
82 Christian overcomes Apollyon,
Chr. Apollyon, beware what you do ; for I am in the King's
highway , the way of holiness ; therefore take heed to your-
self.
Then Apollyon straddled quite over the whole breadth of
the way, and said, I am void of fear in this matter ; prepare
tliyself to die ; for I swear by my infernal den that thou shalt
go no further : here will 1 spill thy soul.
And with that he threv/ a flaming dart at his breast ; but
Christian had a shield in his hand, with which he caught it, and
so prevented the danger of that.
Then did Christian draw ; for he saw it was time to bestir
him ; and Apollyon as fast made at him, throwing darts as thick
as hail ; by the which, notwithstanding all that Christian could
do to avoid it, Apollyon wounded him in his head, his hand,
and foot. This made Christian give a little back : Apollyon
therefore followed his work amain, and Christian again took
courage, and resisted as manfully as he could. This sore com-
bat lasted for above half a day, even till Christian was almost
quite spent ; for you must know, that Christian, by reason of
his wounds, must needs grow weaker and weaker.
Then Apollyon, espying his opportunity, began to gather up
close to Christian, and, wrestling with him, gave him a dread-
ful fall ; and with that Christiin's sword flew out of his hand.
Then said Apollyon,' I am sure of thee now : and with that he
had almost pressed him to death ; so that Christian began to de-
pair of life. But, as God would have it, while Apollyon was
tching his last blow, thereby to make a full end of this good
iu, Christian nimbly reached out his hand for his sword, and
light it, saying, " Rejoice not against me, O mine enemy I
len I fall, I shall arise ;"* and with that gave him a
■adly thrust, which made him give back as one that had re-
ceived his mortal wound. Christian perceiving that, made at
him again, saying, '' Nay, in all these things we are more than
conquerors through him th.it loved us ;"t and with that Apol-
lyon spread forth his dr igon's wings, and sped him away, that
Christian saw him no more.
In this combat no mr n can imagine, unless he had seen and
heard, as I did, what yelling and hideous roaring Apollyon made
all the time of the fight ; he spake like a dragon : and on the'
other side, what sighs and groans burst from Christian's heart.
I never saw him all the while give so much as one pleasant
•^ Mic. vii. 8. t Ptom. viii. 37 — 39. Jam. iv. 7.
IM I, i: I: iM'sj pp^ ^^ j. ^-^^ ,^ ,^^
^rt-^^d^:^;, ,V,.
Christian returns Thanks 88
loot, till he perceived he had wounded ApoUyon with his two-
edged sword ; then indeed did he smile and look upward I but
it was the dreadfuUest sight that ever 1 saw. (r)
(r) The preceding part of Christian's contest with Apollyon is instruc-
tive to every experienced believer ; but this is far more difficult : yet if
we duly reflect upon the Lord's permission to Satan, in respect of Job,
with the efforts and ethcis that fbllowed, and compare it with the tempt-
ers desire of sifting Peter and the Apostles as wheat ; we shall not be
greatly at a loss about the author's meaning. This enemy is sometimes
gratified by an arrangement ot outward dispensations exactly suited to
jfavour his assaults : so that the believer's path se^ms wholly obstructed.
The Lord himself appears to have forsaken him, or even to fight against
him ; and his appointments are thought contrary to his promises I This
gives Satan an opportunity of suggesting hard thoughts of God and his
ways, doubts about the truth of the Scriptures, and desponding fears of a
fatal event. Many such ^' fiery darts'' may be repelled or quenched by
the shield of faith : but there arc seasons (as some of us well know,)
when they are poured in so incessantly, and receive such plausibility
from facts ; and when tliey so interrupt a man while praying, reading, or
meditating, that he is tempted to intermit religious duties, that he mny
avoid these most distressing attendants on them. The evils of the heart,
which seemed before subdue<l, are so excited by means of the imagination,
that they apparently prevail more than ever, rendering every service an
abomination, as well as a burden ; so that the harassed soul, alarmed,
baffled, defiled, self-detested, and thinking that God and his servants unite
in abhorring him, is ready to give up all hope, to doubt all his former
principles, to seek refuge in some heretical or antmomian system, or to
attempt the dissipating of his melancholy gioom, by joining again in the
vanities of the world. Thus the enemy '- wounds him in his understand-
ing, faith, and conversation,' (according to the author's marginal inter-
pretation of his meaning :) yet he cannot in this way find relief; 'but is
inwardly cnnstrained, with renewed efforts, to return to the conflict. —
When such temptations, however, are long continued, resistance will
gradually become more feeble : the distressed believer will be ready to
give up every thing ; and, when the enemy plies him closely with infidel
suggestions, to which his circumstances give a specious occasion, he may
be thrown down, and '*• his sv/ord fly out of his hand :" so that for a time
he may be unable to give any credit to the truth of the Scriptures, by
which alone he was before enabled to repel the tempter. This is a
dreadful case : and co'dd true faith thus finally fail, even real Christians
must perish : Sr.tan bath succeeded against many professors, v/ith half
these advantages ; and he may be supposed at least to boast that he is
sure of such as are thu? cast down. But the Advocate above *'prays" for his
disciples, "that their faith should not fail :"* so that, though Peter fell
with Judas, he was not left to perish with him. The Christian, there-
fore, 'almost pressed to death,' and ready ^to despair of life,' will, by the
special grace of God, be helped again to seize his sword, and to use it
with more effect than ever. The Holy Spirit will bring to his mind, with
the most convincing energy, the evidences of the divine inspiration of the
* Luke xxii. 31, 32.
S4 To his gracious Deliverer,
So when the battle was over, Christian said, I will here
give thanks to him that hath delivered me out of the mouth of
the lion, to him that did help me against Apollyon. And so
he did ; saying,
*■ Great Beelzebub, the captain of this fiend,
Designed my ruin ; therefore to this end
He sent him harness'd out ; and he with rage
That hellish was, did fiercely me engage.
But blessed Michael helped me, and I
By dint of sword did quickly make him fly :
Therefore to him let me give lasting praise.
And thank and bless his holy name always."
Then there came to him a hand with some of the leaves of
the Tree of Life, the v/hich Christian took, and applied to the
wounds that he had received in the battle, and was healed im-
Scripture, and enable him to rely on the promises : and thus at length
the enemy will be put to flight, by testimonies of holy writ pertinently
adduced, and more clearly understood than before. — Experience will
teach some readers to understand these things, and they will know how
to compassionate and make allowances for the mistakes of the tempted :
and others, who have been graciously exempted from perhaps the deep-
est anguish known on earth, (though commonly not of long duration,)
should learn from the testimony of their brethren, to allow the reality of
these distresses, and sympathize with the sufferers ; and not (like Job''3
friends) to join with Satan in aggravating their sorrows. — We may allow,
that constitutional, partial disease, and errors in judgment, expose some
men more than others to such assaults : yet these are only occasions, and
evil spirits are assuredly the agents in thus harassing serious persons.
It is indeed of the greatest importance to be well established in the faith :
they, who in ordinary cases are satisfied with general convictions and
comfortable feelings, without being able to give a reason for their hope,
may be driven to the most tremendous extremities, should God permit
them to be thus assaulted : for they have no fixed principles to which
they may resort in such an emergency ; and perhaps some degree of mis-
take always gives Satan his principal advantage on these occasions. Yet
men of the most sober mind and sound judgment, when in a better state
of bodily health than usual, and in all other respects most rational, have
experienced such, distressing temptations of this kind, as they could scarce-
ly have believed on the report ol others ; and when delivered, they can-
not look back on the past without the greatest consternation.
Besides the verses, by which Christian gave thanks to his great Deli-
verer, v.'e meet in the old copies with these lines.
' A more unequal match can hardly be,
Christian must fight an angel ; but, you see,
The valiant man, by handling sword and shield,
Doth make him, though a dragon, quit the field.
M LI ,. L'. :H I M ' .S 1 ' R D IV R V, i^ .^ .
Chri^slian hi llioVallev oflho ^ha^^o^v of Dcalh.
J'\ ?c v/-.'WZt?i • Sctdp
The VallcAj of the Shadow of Death, 85
tnediatoly. lie also sat down in that place to eat bread, and to
drink of that bottle that was given him a little before : so being
refreshed, he addressed himself to liis journey with his sword
drawn in his hand ; for he said, I know not but some other
enemy may be at h and. But he met with no other affront from
Apoliyon quite through this valley. (5)
Now at the end of this Valley was another, called the Valley
of the Shadow of Death, and Christian must needs go through
it, because ihe v.ry to the Celestial City lay through the midst
of it. Now this Valley is a very solitary place. The prophet
Jereminh thus de3crilj<^s it : "A wilderness, a land of deserts
and of pits ; a l:md of fU'ought, and of the shadow of death ; a
lanii that no man" (but a Christian)" passeth through, and
wiiere no man dwelt/'*
Now here Christian was worso put to it than in his fight with
Apoliyon ; as by the sequel yoush;;ll see. {t)
* Jer. Ji. 6.
(5) When the believer has obtained the victory over temptation, thcA
Lord will graciously he.il all \u< woiinds ; pardoning his sins, and renew-
ing his strengtli an(i comfort ; so that the most distressing experiences ard
often succeeded by the sweet^-st confidence and ser* nity of mind, and the
greatest alacrity in the ways of God. — ' The leave^ of the Tree of life,'*
represent the present beneii's of the redemption oi Christ: ' the hand'
may be the emblem of the instruments he employs in restoring to his dis-
couraged servants "the joy of his salvation." The believer thus heal-
ed, and refreshed by meditation on the death of Christ, and other reli-
gious exercises, rests not in one victory, but prepares for new conflicts ;
yet the enemy, once d'^cidedly put to llight, seldom repeats the same as-
saults, at least for some time ; because he will generally find the victor
upon his guard on that side, tliough liable to be surprised in some othei
way.
(/) The Volley of the Shadow of Death seems intended to represent a
variation of inward discouragement, distress, conflict and alarm, which
arises from prevailing darkness of mind, and want of lively spiritual af-
fections ; by which a man is rendered reluctant to religious duties, and
heartless in peribrmmg them ; and this makes way for manifold fears,
dangers, and temptations. The words, quoted from Jeremiah, describe
the waste howlin-^^ wilderness, through which Israel journeyed to Canaan ;
which typified the believer's pilgrimage through this world to heaven.
The author therefore meant in general, that such dreary seasons may
be expected ; and that few believers wholly escape them : but not that
all rxT)erience \he,e various trials in the same order or degree as Chris-
tian did. — Whik^ men rest in forms and notions, they think of little in
religious ordiL-.mces but performing a task, and the satisfaction of having-
done tlieir si' posed duty : but the spiritual worshipper, at some seasons!
finds his soul filled with clear light and holy aflection ; '*'It is then good
for him to draw nigh to God ;•' and " his soul is satisfied as with marrow
8
8l6 The Children of the Spies go bach
I saw then in my dream that when Christian was got to the
"borders of the Shadow of Death, there met him two men, chil-
dren of them that brought up an evil report of the good land,*
making haste to go back ; to whom Christian spake as follows :
Whither are you going ?
They said, Back ! back ! and we would have you to do so
too, if either life or peace is prized by you.
Why ? what's the matter ? said Christian.
Matter! said they, We were going that way as you are go-
ing, and went as far as we durst ; and indeed we werealmostpast
coming back : lor had we gone a little further v/e had not been
here to bring the news to thee.
* Num. xiii.
and fatiiGES, whilG he praises his God with joyful lips f ' but at other
times, dulness and heaviness oppress him ; faith, hope, reverence and love,
are at a low ebb ; he seems to address an unknown or absent God, and
rather to mock than to worship him ; divine things appear obscure and
, almost unreal; and each returning" season of devotion, or reiterated effort
to lift up his heart to God, ends in disappointm.ent, so that religion be-
' comes his burden instead of his delight. Self-knowledge is increased,
•and he now perceives evils before unnoticed corrupting his services : his
, remedy seems to increase his disease : he suspects that his former joy was
a delusion, and is ready to conclude, that "• God hath forgotten to be gra-
cious, and hath shut up his loving kindness in displeasure." These ex-
periences, sufficiently painful in themselves, are often rendered more dis-
tressing, by mistaken expectations of uninterrupted comfort ; or by un-
scriptural instructions, which represent comfort as the evidence of accept-
ance, assurance as the essence of faith, impressions or visions as the
W'ltness of the Spirit, or perfection as attainable in this life, nay actually
attained by all the regenerate ; — as if this were the church triumphant^
and not the church militant. — The state of the body also, as disordered
by nervous or hypochondriacal affections, gives energy to the distressing
conclusions which men often draw from this dark state of mind : and in-
deed disease may operate as a direct cause of it ; though the Holy Spirit
T/ill overcome this, and all other impediments to comfort, when " he sheds
abroad the love of God in the heart." — The Scriptures also evidently
leach us that fallen spirits never fail, when permitted, to take advantage
of a disordered state, whether of body or mind, to mislead, perplex, or
defile the soul. Persons of a melancholic temperature, v/hen not aware
of the particular causes whence their gloom originates, are apt to ascribe
it wholly to the Lord's displeasure, on account of som>e peculiar sins they
have committed ; and to look upon it as a direct proof that they have
been self-deluded hypocrites ; which exceedingly enhances their distress.
The author himself had been greatly harassed in this way ; and therefore
he has given us a larger proportion of this shade than is generally met
with by consistent believers,- or than the Scriptures give us reason to ex-
pect. Indeed it is probable that he meant to state the outlines of his own
experience in the pilgrimage of Christian.
* Pvev. xxii. 2.
llie Cluag and the Ditch 87
But what have you met vnt\\ ? said Chnstian.
Men, Why we were almost in the Vnifey of the Shadow of
Death ;* but. that by good hap we looked before us, and saw
the danger before we came to it.
But what have you seen ? said Christian.
Men, Seen ! why the Valley itself, which is as dark as
pilch : we also saw there the hobgoblins, satyrs, and dragons
of the pit : we heard also in that Valley continual howling and
yelling, as of a people under unutterable misery, who there
sat bound in affliction and irons ; and over that Valley hang the
discouraging clouds of confusion : death also doth always
spread his wings over it.j In a word, it is every whit dread-
ful, being utterly without order.
Then said Christian, I perceive not yet, by what you have
said, but that this is my way to the desired haven.
Men. Be it thy way ; we will not choose it forop.r-.
So they parted ; and Christian went on his way, but still
^vith his sword drawn in his hand, for fear lest he should be
lulted. (u)
I saw then in my dream, so far as this Valley reached, there
was on the right hand a very deep Ditch ; that Ditch is it into
which the blind hath led the blind in all ages, and have both
there miserably perished. Again, behold, on the left hand
there was a very dangerous Q,uag, into which if even a good
man falls, he finds m> bottom for his foot to stand on ; into that
* Psa. xliv. 19. i Job iii. 5. x. 22.
(u") These men were spies, not Pilgrims : and they related what they
had observed at a distance, but had never experienced, — They represent
those who have been conversant wit,h godly people and ' bring an evil
report on the good land,' to prejudice the minds of numbers against the
right ways of the Lord. Such men pretend to have made trial of religion, and
found it to be comfortless and dreary : they give a caricatured description
of the sighs, groans, terrors and distresses of pious persons, and of all the
dreadful things to be seen and heard among them : and they avail them-
selves of every unguarded or hyperbolical expression, which escapes a
tempted believer, of the enthusiastic accounts which some people give of
their experience ; and even of the figurative language, which is often em-
ployed in speaking of inward conflicts under images taken from external
things. Thus they endeavour to excuse their own apostasy, and to ex-
pose to contempt the cause which they have deserted. Nothing they can
say, however, concerning the disorder or confusion to which religion may
sometimes give occasion, can induce the Christian to conclude that he has
mistaken his way, or that it would be advisable for him to turn back, or
deviate into any by-path : on the contrary their representations are suited
to excite his vigilance and circumspection.
J 8 Qiristian's Perplexity
Quag king David once did fall, and had, no doubt, therein been
smothered, had not he that is able plucked him out.*
The path- way was here also exceeding narrow, and there-
fore good Christian was the more put to it ; for when he sought
in the dark to shun the Ditch on the one hand, he was ready
to tip over into the mire on the other : also when he sought to
escape the mire, without great carefulness he would be ready
(0 fall into the Ditch. Thus he went on, and I he ird him here
'gh bitterly : for besides the dangers mrntioned above, the
•th-way was here so dark, that ofttimes when he lift up his
)t to set forward, he knew not where, nor upon what ho,
<ould set it next.
About the midst of the Valley, I perceived the mouth of hell to
].>e, and it stood also hard by the way-side. Now, thought Chris-
tian, what shall I do ? And ever and anon the flame and smoke
would come out in such abundance, with sparks and hideous
noises, (things that cared not for Christian's sword, as did
Apollyon before,) that he was forced to put up his sword, and
betake himself to another weapon, called all-prayer: so he
cried in my hearing, ""O Lord, 1 beseech thee dehvc my soul."!
Thus he v/ent on a great while, yet still the flames would be
reaching towards him : also he heard doleful voices, and rush-
iugs to and fro, so that sometimes he thought he should be torn
in pieces, or trodden down like mire in the streets. This
frightful sight was seen, and these dreadful noises were heard
by him for several miles together : and coming to a place
where he thought he heard a company of fiends coming for-
ward to meet him, he stopt, and began to muse what he had
best to do. Sometimes he had half a thought to go back ;
then again he thought he mi;jht be half way through the val-
ley: he remembered also how he h.)d already vanquished
many a danger ; and that the danger of going back might be
much more than for to go forward. So he resolved to go on :
yet the fiends seemed to come nearer md nearer : but when
they were come even almost at him, he cried oui with a most
vehement voice, *' I will walk in the strength of the Lord
<"od ;" so they gave back, and came no fiirther." {w)
• Fsa. Ixix. 14. t Psa. cxvi. 4. Eph. vi. 18.
(«;) The fatal presumption, into which men are soothed, through igno-
ance and false doctrine of various kinds, is intended by the ' deep Ditch,'
into which '• the blind lead the blind," and perish with them. — * The
dangerous Quig,' on the other side of the narrow way, represents the
opposite extreme, despair of God's mercy : and the mire of it agrees with
Christian did not know his own voice, 89
One thing I would not let slip : I took notice that now poor
Christian was so confounded that he did not know his own
voice ; and thus I perceived it : just vyhen he was come over
against the mouth of the burning pit, one of the wicked ones
got behind him, and stept up softly to him, and whisperingly
the Slough of Despond. — Iii these opposite ways multitudes continually
perish ; some concluding that there is no fear, others that there is no hope.
But the danger to which a real believer is exposed, of verg^iijo^ towards
one of these extremes in times of inward darkness and disconsolalion, is
especially implied. They, who have had much opportunity of convers-
ing with persons professing the peculiar doctrines of the gospel, have met
v/ith many who once were zealous and joyful : but their religious affec-
tions have declined ; their .duties are comparatively scanty and formal ;
thieir walk unsteady, and their hearts cold and uncomfortable. They call
themselves backsliders, aod complain of desertion : yet they have no
heart to use proper means of recovering their vigour and cheerfulness ;
but love to be soothed in their present condition; and quiet themselves
by presuming they are true believers, and abusing the doctrine of final
perseverance. — Many of this cast are doubtless u7/.o//j/ deceived. But
even the true Christian, when greatly discouraged, may be powerfully
terjipted to seek peace of mind, by ar2:uing with liimself on the safety of
his state, or trying to be satisfied without his' former zeal, activity, and
Consolation: a.!* ^^nn:, v- !l imi,! prompters to suggest to him, that this is
the case of all -ud that fervent love belongs only to
voung convert . • their own hearts. This is the more
plausible, because tlia intrca^e oi sound judgment and abiding spiritual
affections abate* that earnestness (often indiscreet and disproportioned,)
which sprang from mere selfish principles : and v/hen religious professiou
is so common as not to expose a maa to reproach or persecution, many
retain it, who have scarcely any appearance cf spirituality, and who in-
fect others with their contagious converse and example. But, while the
well instructed, consistent believer, under the deepest discouragement,
dreads and shilns this presumption, he is liable to sink into despondency ;
and may be led to condemn all his past experience as delusion, to rank
himself among the stony ground hearers, to conclude that it is useless
for him to pray or seek any more, and to lie down in enfeebling dejection.
And again, perceiving this danger, he finds it very difficult in the present
dark state of his soul, to avoid it, without seeming to abuse the free
grace of the gospel. Tl'^is state of mind is attended by much distress
and perplexity, and makes way for many terrors and temptations : so that
though a man be not perplexed with doubts about the truth of the Scrip-
tures,'he may be unable to make much use of them for his direction and
comfort ; and earnest instant prayer must be his only resource. Cases
sometimes occur, in which, through a concurrence of circumstances, this
trial continues and increases for some time : but the true Christian is, as
it were, constrained to press forward, and by faith he will at length put
his enemies to flight. — Some have thought that the general notions of ap-
paritions also was here alluded to, as giving the tempter an occasion of
increasicg the terror of such persons as are in that respect credulous and
timorous.
M 8*
■• Christian is comforted by hear.'ng one speak,
suggested many grievous blasphemies to him, which he verily
thought had proceeded from his own mind. This put Chris-
tian more to it than any thing that he met with before ; even
to think that he should now blaspheme him that he loved so
much before ; yet if he could have helped it he would not have
done it : but he had not the discretion either to stop his ears, or
to know from whence those blasphemies came, (x)
When Christian had travelled in this disconsolate condition
some considerable time, he thonght he heard the voice of a
man, as going before him, saying, " Though 1 walk through the
valley of the shadow of death I will fear none ill, for thou art
with me."*
Then was he glad, and that for these reasons : — -First, be-
ause he gathered from thence, that some w^ho feared God
were in this Valley as well as himself i—Secondl}^ for that he
perceived God was w^ith them, though in that dark and dismal
state : and w^hy not, thought he, v.ith me ; though by reason ol
* Psa. xxiii. iv.
(.r) The case here intended is not uncommon among' conscientio as per-
aojis of stron-^ imaginations, in circumstances of distressing temptation
Thoughts are suddenly excited in their minds, with which their previous
reflections had no connexion, even as if words were spoken to them. —
These suggestions are suited to induce them to think hardly of God, or
bis service, or his decrees; and this they abhor as direct blasphemy : or
to harass them with other hateful ideas ; which they consider as unpar-
donably criminal, inconsistent with a state of grace, and a mark of final
reprobation. Yet did these suggestions accord to the state of their hearts
they would be defiling but not distressing ; and instead of rejecting them
at once with decided abhorrence, they would give them entertainment,
and v/illingly employ their thoughts about them, as far as they dared ;
•" for the carnal mind is enmity against God," and can only, be deterred
iVom blasphemy, on many occasions, by the dread of his vengeance : so
that the distress they experience is exactly proportioned to the degree in
which they have learned to love God, and hate every thing* displeasing
and dishonourable to him ; and is itself an evidence of their conversion.
Our author had been so much baffled by this stratagem of the tempter,
that it Y/ould have been, extraordinary had he omitted it : for thesub-
sequent discovery he made of his mistake, and of the v/ay of resisting the
devil in this case, qualified him to give suitable cautions to others. — The
intrusion of evil thoughts should excite us to greater earnestness in prayer,
i.)ious meditations, or adoring praise- ; for this, above all things, will bb
found to close the mind most effectually against them.
The following lines come in here as before : —
t Poor man ! where art thou now ? thy day is night :
Good man, be not cast down, thou yet art right.
The way to heav*n lies by the gates of hell :
Cheer up, hold out, with thee it shall go well»*
The daybreaks J and cheers Chi^istiati. 9\
the impediment that attends this place, I cannot perceive it?*
— Thirdly, for that he hoped (could he overtake them) to have
company hy and by. — So he went on, and called to him that
-.was before : but he knew not what to answer ; for that he
also thought himself to be alone. And by and by the day
broke : then said Christian, " He hath turned the shadow of
death into the morning."! (?/)
Now morning being come, he looked back, not of desire to
return, but to see by the light of the day what hazards he had
gone through in the dark : so he saw more perfectly the Ditch
that was on the one hand, and the Quag that was on the other ;
also how narrow the way was which lay betivixt them both :
also now he saw the hobgoblins, and satyrs, and dragons of the
pit, but all afar off, for after break of the day they came not
nigh ; yet they were discovered to him, according to that
which is written, ** He discoverelh deep things out of dark-
ness, and bringeth out to light the shadow of death. "J
Now was Christian much affected with his deliverance from
all the dangers of his solitary way ; which dangers, though he
feared them more before, yet he saw them more clearly now,
because the light of the day made them conspicuous to him.
And about this time the sun was rising ; and this was another
mercy to Christian ; for } ou must note, that though the first
part of the Valley of the Shadow of Death was dangerous ; yet
this second part, which ho was yet to go, was, if possible, far
more dangerous ; for, from the place where he now stood,
even to the end of the Valley, the way was nil along set so full
of snares, traps, gins and nets here ; and so full of pits, pitfalls,
deep holes, and shelvings down there; that had it now been
dark, as it was when he came the first part of the way, had he
had a thousand souls they had in reason been cast away : but,
as I said, just now the sun was «ising. Then said he, " His
* Job ix. 11. t Amos v. 8. j: Job xii. 22.
(jj) Few things more effectually support the tempted, than to learn
that others, "vvhom they consider as believers, have been or are in similar
circumstances : for the idea, that such a state ot mind is inconsistent with
true faith, gives the enemy his principal advantage. Indeed, this often
proves the means of their deliverance : for in due season that light, af-
fection, and consolation, for which they have long mourned, thirsted,
prayed, and waited, will be vouchsafed them ; and the review of the dan-
gers they have escaped, now more clearly discerned than before, will en-
large their hearts with admiring gratitude to their great and gracious
Deliverer.
92 Two Giants^ Pope and Pagan.
candle shiiieth on my head, and by his light I go through dark-
ness.."* (r)
in this light therefore he came to the end of the Valley.
ow I saw in my dream, that at the end of this Valley lay
ijiood, bones, ashes, and mangled bodies of men, even of Pil-
grims that had gone this way formerly ; and while I was mus-
ing what should be the reason, I espied a little before me a
cave, where two giants. Pope and Pagan, dwelt in old time ; by
whose power and tyranny the men, whose bones, blood, ashes,
&c. lay there, were cruelly put to death. But by this place
Christian went without Inuch danger, whereat I somewhat won-
dered : but I have learnt since, that Pagan has been dead many
a day : and, as for the other, though he be yet alive, he is, by
reason of age, and also of the many shrewd brushes that he met
with in his younger days, grown so crazy and stiff in his joints,
that he can now do little more than sit in his cave's mouth
grinning at Pilgrims as they go by, and biting his nails because
he cannot come at them.
So I saw that Christian went on bis way ; yet, at the sight
of tbe old man, that sat in the mouth of the cave, he could not
tell what to think ; especially because he spake to him, though
he could not go after him, saying, * You will never mend till
more of you be burned.' But he held his peace, and seta
good face on it, and so went by and caught no hurt. («) Then
sang Christian,
^ Job xxix. 3.
(s) Various interpretations are given of this second part of the Valley,
which only show, that the author's precise idea in it, lies more remote
from general apprehension, than in other passages : for they all coin-
cide with some of the difficulties or dangers that are clearly described un-
der other emblems. — In general we are taught by it, that believers are
not most in danger when under ^le deepest distress ; that the snares and
devices of the enemy are so laany and various,* thro ugh the several stages
of our pilgrimage, as to baffle all description or enumeration ; and that
all the emblems of the Valley of Humiliation, and of the Shadow of
Death, could not fully represent the thousandth part of them. Vv^ere it
not, therefore, that the Lord undertakes to guide his people, by the light
of his word and Spirit, they never could possibly escape them ail.
(a) The inhabitants of Britain are not thought to be in any immediaU
danger, either from Pope or Pagan. Yet something very like the philo-
sophical part of paganism seems to be rising from the dead ; and as, even
by the confession of the late king of Prussia, who was a steady friend to
the philosophical infidels, they * are by no means favourable to general
toleration,' it is not improbable but pagan persecution may also in due
Christian overtakes Faithful. 9S
' O world of wonders I (I can say no less)
That I should be preserv'd in tliat distress
That I have met with here ? O blessed be
That hand that from it hath delivered me !
Dangers in darkness, devils, hell and sin,
Did compass me, while I this vale was in :
Yea, snares, and pits, and traps, and nets, did lie
My path about, that worthless silly I
Might have been catch 'd, entangled, and cast down :
But, since I live, let Jesus wear the crown.'
Now as Christian went on his way he came to a little ascent,
which was cast up on purpose that Pilgrims might see before
them. Up there, therefore. Christian went ; and looking for-
ward he saw Faiihful before hi-ra upon his journey. Then
said Christian aloud, ' Ho ho, so ho ; stay, and I will be your
companion.' At that Faithful looked behind him ; to whom
Christian cried again, ' Stay, stay, till I come up to you,' but
Faithful answered, * No, I am upon my life, and the avenger of
blood is behind me.'
At this Christian was somewhnt moved, and putting to all his
strength he quickly got up with Faithful, and did also overrun
him ; so the last was first. Then did Christian vainglorious-
ly smile, because he had gotten the start of his brother :
but not taking good heed to his feet, he suddenly stumbled and
fell, and could not rise again until Faithful came up to help
him. (6)
time revive. Nay, it may be questioned, whether popery may not yet
so far recover its vigour, as to make one more alarming struggle against
vital Christianity, before that Man of Sin be finally destroyed. — Our
author, however, has described no other persecution than what protes-
tants in his time carried on against one another with very great alacrity.
(b) This ascent may denote those moments of encouragement, in which
tempted believers rise superior to their difficulties ; and are animated to
desire the company of their br*^thren, whom dejection under humiliating
experiences disposes them to shun. — The conduct of Christian intimates,
that believers are sometimes ready to hinder one another, by making
their own attainments and progress a standard for their bretliren ; but
the lively exercise of faith renders men intent on pressing forward, and
more apt to fear the society of such as would influence them to loiter,
than to stop for them. This tends to excite useful emulation : but, while
it promotes diligence, it often gives occasion to those risings of vainglory
and self-preference, which are the forerunners of some humiliating fall :
and thus believers often feel their need of help from those very persons
whom they have foolishly undervalued. Yet this gives occasion to those
mutual good offices, which unite them more closely in the nearest ties of
tender affection,
94 . They converse about their Citij.
Then I saw in my dream, they went very lovingly on toge-
ther, and had sweet discourse of all things that had happened to
them in their pilgrimage : and thus Christian began.
illy honoured and well-beioved brother Faithful, I am glad
that I have overtaken you ; and that God has so tempered our
spirits that we can walk as companions in this so pleasant a path.
Faith. I had thought, dear friend, to have had your compa-
ny quite from our town, but you did get the start of me :
wherefore I was forced to come thus nmch of the way alone.
Chr, How long did you stay in the City of Destruction, be-
fore you set out after me on your pilgrimage ?
Faith, Till I could stay no longer ; for there was great
t:dk presently after 3^ou was gone out, that our city would in a
short time with fire from heaven be burned down to the
ground.
Chr. What ! did your neighbours talk so ?
Fai'h. Yes, it was for a while in every body's mouth.
Chr. What ! and did no more of them but you come out to
escape the danger ?
Faith. Though there was. as f said, a great talk thereabout,
yet I do not think they did firmly believe it. .For in the heat
of the discourse, I heard some ot them deridingly speak of you
and of your desperate journey, for so they called this your pil
grimage. But I did believe, and dos till, that the end of our city
will be with fire and brimstone from above ; and therefore 1
have made mine escape, (c)
Chr. Did you hear no talk of neighbour Pliable ?
Faith. Yes, Christian, I heard that he followed you till he
(c) This episode, so to speak, and others of the came kind^ give our
author a happy advantage of varying the characters and experiences ol
Christians, as found in real life ; and of thus avoiding the common fault
of making one man a standard for others, in the circumstances of his re-
ligious progress. — It often happens, that they who have been acquainted
before their conversion, and hear little of each other for some time after,
find at leugth that they were led to attend to religion about the same pe-
riod, without having opportunity or courage to confer together respect-
ing it. The decided separation of a sinner from his old companions and
pursuits, to walk with God in all his ordinances and commandments,
from avowed dread of " the wrath to come," as well as the hope of eter-
nal life, frequently excites serious thoughts in the minds of others, whiclf
they are not able wholly to shake off. In many indeed this is a mere
transient alarm, insufficient to overcome the propensities of the carnal
mind : but when it arises from a real belief of God's testimony, it will
at leno^th produce a happy change.
Christian inquires concerning Pliable. 95
came at the Slough of /)e5/)oncZ ; where, as some said, he fell
in ; but he would not be koown to have so done ; but I am sure
he was soundly bedabbled with that kind of dirt.
Chr, And what said the neighbours to him ?
Faith, He hath since his going back been had greatly in de-
rision, and that among all sorts of people ; some do mock and
despise him, and scarce will any set him on work. He is now
seven times worse than if he had never gone out of the city.
CViT. But why should they be so set against him, ^ince they
also despised the way that he forsook ?
Faith. Oh, they s:iy, ' Hang him ; he is a turncoat ! he was
not true to his profes**ion.' I think God has stirred up even
his enemies to hiss at him, and make him a proverb, because he
hath fors;jken the way.''^
Chr. Had you no talk with him before you came out ?
Faith. I met him once in the streets, but he leered away on
the other side, as one ashamed of what he had done : so 1
spake not (o him.
Chr. Well, at my first setting out I had hopes of that man ;
but now I fear he will perish in the overthrow of the city : for
*' it hath happened to him according to the true proverb. The.
dog is turned to his vomit again ; and the sow that was washed
to her wallowing in the mire.'t
Faith. They are my fears of him too : but who can hinder
that which will be ?
Well, neighbour Faithful, said Christian, let us leave him,
and talk of things that more immediately concern ourselves, (c?)
Tell me now what you have met with in the way as you
came : for I know you have met with some things, or else it
may be writ for a wonder. /
Faith. I escaped the Slough of Despond that I perceive you
fell into, and got up to the Gate without that danger ; only 1
met with one, whose name was Wanton, that had like to have
done me a mischief.
■^ Jer. xxix. 18, 19. t2 Pet. ii. 22.
(cf) Apostiates are often ashamed, to own they have had c(>nvi«itions. —
3-Lren their former companions assume a superiority over them, do not
think them hearty in the cause of ungfodliness, and despise their cowar-
dice and instability : wliile feeling; that they want an apolog-y, they have
recourse to lies and slanders with abject servility. — On the other hand
they shun religious people, as afraid of encountering their argument?,
warnings, and expostulations ; and thus are in all respects exceedingly
contemptible and wretched.
96 Cfirisiian converses Tscith Faithful.
Chr. It -vvas well you escaped her net : Joseph was hard put
to it by her, and he escaped her as you did ; but it had like to
have cost him his lite.* But what did she do to you ?
Faith. You cannot think, but that you know something, what
a flattering tongue she had ; she lay at me hard to turn aside
with her, promising me all manner of content.
Chr. Nay, she did not promise you the content of a good
conscience.
Faith. You know what I mean ; all carnal and fleshly con-
tent.
Chr. 1 hank God y'ou Have escaped her : *Uhe abhorred of
the Lord shall tall into her ditch. "t
Faith. Nay, I know not whether I did wholly escape her
or no.
Chr. Why^ I trow you did not consent to her desires ?
Faith. No, not to defile myself, for I remembered an old wri-
ting that 1 had seen, which saith, *' her steps take hold of hell."]:
So I shut mine eyes, because I would not be bewitched with
her looks : — then she railed on me, and I went my w'<iy. (e)
Chr, Did you meet with no other assault as you came ?
Faith. When I came to the foot of the hill called Ditiiculty,
I met with a very aged man, who asked me what I was, and
whither bound ? I told him that I was a Pilgrim going to the
Celestial City. Then said the old -man. Thou lookest like an
lionest fellow : wilt thou be content to dwell with me for the
wages that I shall give thee ? Then I asked him his name, and
where he dwelt ? He said his name was Adam the First, and that
he dwelt in the town of Deceit. § I asked him then whp.t was his
work ? and what the wages that he would give ? He told me,
that his work was many delights ; and his wages, that I should
be his heir at last. I further asked him, what house he kept,
and what other servants he had ? So he told me, that his house
* Gen. xsxix. 11 — 13. t Frov. xxiii. 14. + Prov. v. 5. Jobxxxi. 1.
5 Eph. iv. 22.
(e) Some men are preserved from desponding fears, and th? £u\^gcslions
i^f worldly wisdom, by receiving more di?tin<:t views of the truths of the
gospel ; and thus they proceed with less hesitation and interruption, in
f-eking to Christ for salvation : yet, perbti ?, their temperature, turn of
mind, habits of life, and peculiar situation, render iheiu more accessible
to temptations of another sort ; and they are more ^''i danger from the
fascinations of fleshly lusts. Thus in different ways . , Lord makes his
T'.eople sensible of their depravity, weakness, and expos- < ;;> nation ; while
he so moderate? the temptation, or interpo.-es for their I'iiiveranee, that
they are preserved, and taught to ascribe all the^lory to h.s name.
Faithful was tempted by Adam the First. 97
was maintained with all the dainties in the world : and that his
servants were those of his own begetting. Then I asked how
many children he had ? He said that he had but three daugh-
ters, " the Lustof the fleshy the Lust of the eyes, and the Pride of
life;^^^ and that I should marry one of them if I would. Then I
asked how long time he would have me to live with him ? And
he told me, as long as he lived himself.
Chr. Well, and what conclusion came the Old man and you
to at last ?
Faith, Why, at first I found myself somewhat inclinable to
go with the man., for I thought he spake very fair ; but looking
in his forehead as 1 talked with him, I saw there written,
** Put off the old man with his dee(is."
Chr. And how then ?
Faith. Then it came burning hot into my mind, whatever he
said, and however he flattered, when he got me home to his
house, he would sell rae for a slave. So 1 bid him forbear to
talk, for I would not come near the door of his house. Then
he reviled me, and told me, that he would send such a one after
me that should make my way bitter to my soul. So I turned to
go away from him ; but just as 1 turned myself to go thence, 1
felt him take hold of my flesh, and gave me such a deadly
twitch back, that I thought he had pulled part of me after him-
self: this made me cry, ^' O wretched man !"t — So I went on
my way up the hill. (/)
Now, when I had got about half way up, I looked behind
me, and saw one coming after me, swift as the wind ; so he
overtook me just about the place where the settle stands.
Just there, said Christian, did I sit down to rest me ; but
* I John ii. 16. t Rom. vii. 24.
(/) Those Christians, who, by strong faith or assured hope, endure
hardships more cheerfully than their brethren, may sometimes be expos-
ed to greater danger from the alluremeats of outward objects. Deep
humiliation and great anxiety about the event, in many instances, tend to
repress the lusts of the heart by supplying a contin^l succession of other
thoughts and cares ; while constant encouragement, readily attained, too
often leads a man to experience them more forcibly. Nay, the same
persons, who under pressing solicitude seem to be entirely delivered from
some peculiar corruptions, find them revive and become very importu-
nate when they have obtained more confidence about their salvation. —
The Old Adam, the corrupt nature, proves a constant snare to many be-
lievers, by its thirsting after the pleasures, riches, honours, and pride of
the world ; nor can the victory be secured without great difficulty and
trouble, and strong faith and fervent prayer.
N 9
9B Faithful was almost slain by Moses.
being overcome with sleep, I there lost the Roll out of my
bosom.
Faith. But, good brother, hear me out : so soon as the man
overtook me, he was but a word and a blow, for down he
knocked me, and laid me for dead. But when I was a little
come to myself again, I asked him wherefore he served me
so ? He said, because of my secret inclining to Adam the First :
and with that he struck me another deadly blow on the breast,
and beat me down backward : so 1 lay at his foot as dead as
before. So when 1 came to myself agiiin I cried him mercy :
but he said, I know not how to show mercy ; and with that
knocked me down again. He had doubtless made an end of me,
but that one came by and bid him forbear.
Chr. Who was it that bid him forbeu' ?
Faith. I did not know him at first, but as he went b}' I per-
ceived the holes in his hands and in his &ide : then I conclud-
ed that he was our Lord. So I went up the hill.
Chr. That man that overtook you Wiis Moses. He spareth
none, neither knoweth he how to show mercy to those that
tr^msgress his law.
Faith. I know it very well ; it was not the fii*st time (hat he
has met with me. It was he that came to me when I dwelt
securely at home, and that told me he would burn my house
over my head if I staid there, (^g)
Chr. But did 3'ou not see the house that stood there on the
top of that hill on the side of which Moses met you '
(^) The doctrine of Moses did not essentially differ from tnat of Chrirt :
but the giving of the law, that ministration of condemnaion to all sin-
ners, formed so prominent a part of his dispensation, in which the gospel
was exhibited under types and shadows, that *^ the law" is said to have
been " given by Moses," while *' grace and truth came by Jesus C/hrist ;"
especially, as the shadows were of no further use v/hen the Substance
was come. Even such desires of things forbidden as are effectually op-
posed and repressed, being contrary to the spirituality of the jirccept
"Thou shalt not covet," often greatly discourage the new convert,.who
does not duly recollect, that the gospel is intended to relieve those who
feel themselves justly condemned by the law. Yet these tenors prove
the occasion of deeper humiliation, and greater simplicity of dependence
on the mercy of God in Christ Jesus, as "the end of the law for righteous-
ness to every one that believcth." Many for a time escape discourage-
ment, because they are but superficially acquainted with their own hearts ;
yet it is proper they should be further instructed by such conflicts as are
here described, in order to their greater stability, tenderness of conscience,
and compassion for their brethren, in the subsequent part of their pil-
grimage.
Faithful refutes Discontent, 99
Faith Yes, and the lions too, before I came at it : but, for
the lions, I think they were asleep ; for it was about noon : —
and, because I had so much of the clay before me, I passed by
the Porter and came down the hill, (h)
Chr. He told me, indeed, that he saw you go by ; but I wish
you had called at the house, for they would have showed you
so many rarities, that you would scarce have forgot them
to the day of your death. But pray tell me, did you meet no-
body in the Vidley of Humility ?
Faiths Yes, 1 met with one Discontent, who would wiUingly
have persuaded me to go back agiiin witli him : his reason
was, for th-it the Valley was altogether without honour. He
told me, moreover, that there to go was the way to disoblige all
my friends, as Pride, Arrogancy, Self-conceit, Worldly-glory,
with others, who he knew, as he said, svould be V^ery much
offended if I made such a fool of myself as to wade through
this Valley.
Chr. Well, and how did you answer him ?
Faith. I told him that although all these that he named
might claim kindred of me, and that rightly, (for indeed they
were my relations according to the flesh ;) yet since I became
a Pilgrim they have disowned me, as I also have rejected them,
and therefore they are to me now no more than if they had
never been of my lineage. I told him, moreover, that as to
this Valley, he had quite misrepresented the thing ; for '« be-
fore honour is humility," "and a haughty spirit before aHlJ."
Therefore, said 1, I had rather go through this Valley to the
honour that was so accounted by the wisest, than choose that
which he esteemed most worthy our affection&. (z)
Chr. Met you with nothing else in that Valley ?
(h) This circumstance seems to imply that, in our author's juj<yment,
even eminent believers sometimes declme entering into communion with
their brethren, according to his views of it ; and that very lively g^ections
and strong consolations may render them less attentive to externals. In-
deed ho deemed this a disadvantage and a mistake^ (which seems intimat-
ed hj Faithfufs not calling either at the House of the Interpreter, or at
the house Beautiful,) yet thai is not sufficient reason why other Chris-
tians should not cordially unite with them. This is a beautiful example
of that candour, in respect of tliose things about v/hich pious persona dif-
fer, that consists with decided firmness in the great essentials of faith and
holiness.
(t) While some believers are most tried with inward fears and con-
flicts, others are more tempted to repine at the outward degradation, re-
proach or ridicule, to which religion exposes them, A man, perhaps, at
iOO Faithful is assaulted hy Shame,
Faith. Yes, I met with Shame ; but of all the men that I
•.net with in my pilgrimage, he, I think, bears the wrong name.
The other would be said nay, after a little argumentation and
somewhat else : but this bold-faced Shame would never have
done.
Chr. Why, what did he say to you ?
Faith, What ! why he objected against religion itself. He
said. It was a pitiful, low, sneaking business for a man to mind
religion: he said, that a tender conscience was an unmanly
thing ; and that for a man to \^atch over his words and ways,
so as to tie up himself from that hectoring liberty that the
brave spirits of the times accustom themselves unto, would
make him the ridicule of the times. He objected also, that
but few of the flighty, rich, or wise, were ever of my opinion ;
nor any of them neither, before they were persuaded to be
fools, and to be of a voluntary fondness to venture the loss of
all for nobody else knows what.* He moreover objected the
base and low estate and condition of those that were chiefly
the Pilgrims of the times in which they lived ; also their igno-
rance, and want of understanding in all natural science. Yea, he
did hold me to it at that rate also about a great many more things
than here I relate ; as, that it was a shame to sit whining
and mourning under a sermon, and a shame toxome sighing and
groaning home ; that it was a shame to ask my neighbour for-
giveness for petty faults, or to make restitution where I had
taken from any. He said also, that religion made a man grow
strange to the great, because of a few vices, (which he called by
finer names ;) and made him own and respect the base, be-
*JohnTii. 48. 1 Cor. i. 26. iii. 18. Phil. iii. 7—9.
first, may flatter himself with the hope of avoiding the peculiarities and
extravagances, which have brought enmity or contempt on some profes-
sors of the gospel ; and of insuring; respect and affection, by caution, up-
rightness, and benevolence : but further experience and knowledge con-
strain him to adopt and avov/ sentiment?, and associate with persons,
that the world despises. And, seeing himself invincibly impelled by his
conscience, to a line of conduct which insures the reproach of enthusiasm
and folly, the loss of friends, and manifold mortifications, be is powerfully
assaulted by discontent ; and tempted to repine, that the way to heaven
lies through such humiliations and vA'orldly disappointments : till the con-
siderations, adduced in Faithful's answer, enable him at length to over-
come this assailant, and to ^'- seek the honour that cometh from Go(^
only."
Pilgrims need Vigilance, 101
cause of the same religious fraternity ; and is not this, said he,
a shame ?
Ch7\ And what did you say to him .
Faith, Say 1 I could not tell what to say at first. Yea, he
put me so to it that my.yjood came up in my face ; even this
Shame fetched it Up, an4 Ka|hi]l4i©sJ beat ih^ q«ite off. But at
last I began to consider tllaf ^*th>ii^ Which' is highly esteemed
among men is had in^abbtfvin^tic^^'kh^txiio? ; /,nd I thought
again, this Shame telb rie -^^hutHieaAKi^ ;iyiit^».t iells me no-
thing what God or the word of God is. And I thought, more-
over, that at the day of doom we sh;dl not be doomed to death
or life, according to the hectoring spiritsvof the world, but ac-
cording to the wisdom and law of the Highest. Therefore,
thought I, what God says is best,-is best, though all the men in
the world a;:e against it : seeing, then that God prefers his re-
ligion ; seeing God prefers' a tender conscience ; seeing
they that make themselves fools for the kingdom of hea-
ven are wisest ; ^ndnhat the poor man that loveth. Christ
is rioherthan the greatest man in the world that hates
him; ?Shame, depart, thou art an enemy to my salvation;
shall I entertain thee against my sovereign Lord ? how then
shall 1 look him in the face at his coming ? Should I now be
ashamed of.his ways and servants, how can I expect the bless-
ing ?t But indeed this Shame was a bold villain ; 1 could
scarcely shake him out of my company : yea, he w^ould be
haunting of me, and continually vvhispering me in the ear,
with some one or other of the infirmities that attend religion :
but at last I told him, it was but in vain to attempt further in
this business ; for those things that he disdained, in those did I
see most glory : and so at last I got past this impo.rtunate
one. (k)
* Luke xvi. 15. t IVI^ark viii. 38.
(/;) Persons of a peculiar turn of mind, when enabled to overcome
temptations to discontent about worldly degradation, are exceedinsriy
prone to be inQuenced by a false shame, and to profess religion with a
timid caution ; to be afraid of declaring their sentiments with freedom in
some places and companies, even when the most favourable opportunity
occurs ; to shun in part the society of those whom they most love and
esteem, lest they should be involved in the contempt cast on them ; to
be reserved and inconstant in attending on the ordinances of God, enter-
ing a protest against vice and irreligion, bearing testimony to the trutli,
and attempting to promote the gospel : being apprehensive lest these
things should deduct from their reputation for good sense, prudence,
learning, or liberality of mind. Men, who are least exposed to thosP con-
9*
102 Shame must be repelled by Prayer.
And when I had shaken him off, then I began to sing
* The trials that those men do meet withal,
That are obedient to the heavenly call,
Are manifold and suited to the flesh,
And come, and come, and come agnin afresh ;
That (\o^^, \)r sometime el§^, "\7e;by them may
Be taken, x5vercome,' ai2d^ cast' Jtway. :
O let, the Pilg-cims, Ipt \lie Pil^ri.«is ^^hen
Be vi^iiiiT^L, 3|i4(iqicit th^m^h^ef \ikemen.'
Chr. 1 am glad, my brother, that thou didst withstand this
villain so bravely ; for of all, as thou sayest, 1 think he has the
wrong name : for he is so bold as to follow us in the streets,
and to attempt to put us to shame before all men ; that is, to
make us ashamed of that which is good. But if he was not
himself audacious, he would never attempt to do as he does: but
let us still resist him ; for, notwithstanding all his bravadoes,
he promoteth the fool, and none else. " The wise shall in-
herit glory," said Solomon ; " but shame shall be the promo-
tion of fools.-'*
Faith. I think we umst cry to him for help agamst Shame,
'i:it would have us be '* valiant for truth upon the earth."
^ Prov. iii. 35.
Hicts in which Christian was engaged, arc often most baffled by this ene-
my : nor can others readily make proper allowances for them in this case,
any more than they can for such as experience those dark temptations of
which they have no conception. Constitution, habits, connexions, ex-
tensive acquaintance with mankind, and an excessive sensibility, united
to that pride which is common to man, continually suggest objections to
every thing the world'despises, which they can hardly answer to them-
selves, and excite such alarms as they cannot surmount : while a delicate
sense of propriety, and the specious name of prudence, supply them with
a kind of half excuse for their timidity. The constant trouble which
this criminal and unreasonable shame occasions some persons, contrary
to their judgment, endeavours and prayers, gave our author the idea,
that ' this enemy bears a wrong name.' Many a suggestion made to the
mind in this respect from time to time, is so natural, and has so strong a
party within, (especially in those who are more desirous of honour than
of wealth or pleasure ;) that men can scarcely help feeling for the mo-
ment as if there were truth in it, though they know upon reflection that
it is most irrational. Nay, these feelings insensibly warp their conduct ;
though they are continually self-condemned on the retrospect. There
are some who hardly ever get the better of this false shame ; and it often
brings their sincerity into doubt, both with themselves and others : but
flourishing Christians at length in good measure rise superior to it, by
such considerations as are here adduced, and by earnest perseverin*
prayer.
The Pilgrims overtake Talkative, 103
Chr. You say true : but did you meet nobody else in that
Valley ?
Faith. No, not I ; for I had sun-shine all the rest of the
way through that, and also through the Valley of the Shadow
of Death. (0
Chr. It was well for you ; 1 am sure it fared far otherwise
with me : I had for a long season, as soon almost as I entered
into that Valley, a dreadful combat with that foul liend Apol-
lyon ; yea, I thought verily he would have killed me, especi-
ally when he got me down and crushed me under him as if he
would have crushed me to pieces : for as he threw me, my
sword flew out of my hand ; nay, he told me he was sure
of me ; but ''1 cried to God, and he heard me, and delivered
me out of all my troubles." Then I entered into the Valley
of the Shadow of Death, and had no light for almost half the
way through it. I thought 1 should have been killed there
over and over : but at list day brake, and the sun rose, and I
went through that which was behind with far more ease and
quiet. ^
Moreover, I saw in my dream, that as they weftt on, Fmth-
ful, as he chanced to look on one side, saw a man, whose name
was Talkative, walking at a distance beside them ; for in this
place there was room enough for them all to walk. He was
a tall man, and something more comely at a distance than at
hand. To this man Faithful addressed himself in this
manner : (m)
(I) Christian in great measure escaped the peculiar temptations that
assaulted Faithful ; yet he sympathized witli him : nor did the latter
deem the gloomy experiences of hfs brother visionary or imaginative,
though he had been exempted from them. One man, from a complication
of causes, is exposed to temptations of which another is ignorant; and in
this case he needs much sympathy, which he seldom meets vrith : while
they, who are severe on him, are liable to be baffled in another way,
which, for want of confidence in habit, temperature, and situation, he is
equally prone to disregard. Thus Christians are often led reciprocally
to censure, suspect, or dislike each other, on those very grounds which
should render them useful and encouraging counsellors and companions 1
. (rn) The character here introduced, under a most expressive name, is
an admirable portrait, drawn by a masterly hand from some striking
original, but exactly resembling numbers in every age and place, where
the truths of the gospel are generally known. — Talkative is not so called
merely from his loquacity ; but also from the peculiarity oi his reljgious
profession, which gives scope to his natural propensity, by furnishing
liim with a copious subject, ajad enabling him to display his talents, or
Beek credit among pious persons, without the trouble and expense of
104 Talkative^ s plausible Discourse with Faithful.
Friend, whither away ? are you going to the heavenly
country ?
Talk, I am going to that same place.
Faith, That is well ; then I hope we may have your good
company ?
Talk. With a very good will, will I he your companion
Faith. Come on then, and let us go together, and let us.
spend our time in discoursing of things that are profitable.
Talk. To talk of things that are good, to me is very accepta-
ble, with you or with any other ; and 1 am glad that I
have with me those that incline to so good a work. For, to
speak the truth, there are but few that care thus to spend their
time as they are in their travels ; but choose much rather to
he speaking of things to no profit : and this hath beeu a trou-
ble to me.
Faith. That is indeed a thing to be lamented : for what
things so worthy of the use of the tongue and mouth of men
on earth, as are the things of the God of heaven ?
Talk. I hke you wonderful well, for your saying is full of
conviction : and, I will add, what thing is so pleasant, and
what so profitable, as to talk of the things of God ?
What things so pleasant ? that is, if a man hath any delight
in things that are wounderful : for instance, if a man doth de-
light to talk of the history or the mystery of things ; or if a
iiian doth love to talk of miracles, wonders, or signs ; where
^ hall he find things recorded so delightful, and so sweetly pen-
ned, as in the Holy Scripture ?
Faith. That's true : but to be profited by such things in
our talk, should be that which ^we design.
Talk. That is it that I said ; Yor to talk of such things is most
jToiitable : for by so doing a man may get knowledge of many
things ; as, of the vanity of earthly things, and the benefit of
things above. Thus in general, but more particularly, by this
a man may learn the necessity of the new birth ; the insufli-
practical godliness. Sncli vain talkers especially appear wlien religious pro-
fession is safe, and reputable, and even in many cases conducive to secular
advantage. They may, therefore, be expected in our age and nation,
particularly in populous places, where the preaching or profession of any
doctrine excites little attention or surprise, but insures regard and fa-
vour from a numerous body who hold the same opinions. Such men
appear above others^ pushing themselves into notice, and becoming more
conspicuous than humble believers : but their profession, specious at a
distance, will not endure a near and strict investigation.
Talkative^ s dislike of had Discourse. 105
ciency of our works ; the need of Christ's righteousness, &c.
Besides, by this a man may learn by talk what it is to repent,
Jo believe, to pray, to suffer, or the like : by this also a man
may learn what are the great promises and consolations of the
gospel, to his own comfort. Further, by this a man may
karn to refute false opinions, to vindicate the truth, and also
to instruct the ignorant.
Faith. All this is true, and glad am I to hear these things
from you.
Talk. Alas ! the want of this i^ the cause that so few un-
derstand the need of faith, and the necessity of a work of grace
in their soul, in order to eternal life ; but ignorantiy live in
the works of the law, by which a man can by no means obtain
the kingdom of heaven.
Faith. But by your leave, heavenly knowledge of these is
the gift of God ; no man attaineth to them by human industry,
or only by the talk of them.
Talk. All this I know very well : fora man can receive no-
thing except it be given him from heaven ; all is of grace, not
of works : I could give you a hundred Scriptures for the con-
firmation of this.
Well then, said Faithful, what is that one thing that we shall
at this time found our discourse upon ?
TalkJ What you will ; I will talk of things heavenly or
things earthly ; things moral or things evangelical ; things
sacred or things profane ; things past or things to come ; things
foreign or things at home ; things more essential or things cir-
cumstantial ; provided that all be done to our profit.
Now did Faithful begin to wonder ; and stepping to Chris-
tian, (for he walked all this while by himself) he said to him,
but softly. What a brave companion have we got ! Surely this
man will make a very excellent Pilgrim, (w)
(?i) Zealous Christians, who are not well established in judgment and
experience, are often greatly taken with the discourse of persipns, who
speak fluently and plausibly on various subjects, with a semblance of
truth and piety : and they sometimes feel, as it were, a defect in their
harangues, which makes them hesitate, though they are easily satisfied
with specious explanations. — Talkative's discourse is copied, with sur-
prising exactness, from that of numbers who Icvira doclrinalli; to discuss
even experimental subjects, of which they never felt the energy and effi-
cacy in their own souls. Men of this stamp can take up any point in re-
ligion with great ease, and speak on it in an ostentatious manner ; but the
humble believer forgets himself while from his heart he expatiates on
topics which he longs to recommend to those whom he addresses, iju-^
o
106 Faithful undeceived by Christian.
At this Christian modestly smiled, and said, This man, with
whom you are so taken, will beguile with this tongue of his
twenty of them that know him not.
Faith. Do you know him then ?
C%r. Kow him I yes, better than he know^s himself.
Faith. Pray what is he ?
Chr. His name is Talkative ; he dwelt in our town. I
wonder that you should be a stranger to him ; only I consider
that our town is large.
Faith. Whose son is he ? and whereabout doth he dwell ?
Chr. He is a son of one Say-well, he dv/elt in Prating- row ;
jmd he is known of all that are acquainted with him, by the
name of Talkative, in Prating- row ; and notwithstanding his
fine tongue, he is but a sorry fellow.
Faith. Well, he seems to be a very pretty man.
CJir. That is, to them that have not thorough acquaintance
v.ith him ; for he is best abroad, near home he is ugly enough :
your saying that he is a pretty man, brings to my mind what I
have observed in the work of the priinter, whose pictures show
be3t at a distance, but very near more unpleasing*
Faith. But I am ready to think you do but jest, becausfe you
smiled.
Chr. God forbid that 1 should jest (though I smiled) in this
'aatter, or that I should accuse any fdsely.— I will- give you a
further discovery of him : this mnn is for any xompany, and
for any talk ; as he talketh now with you, so will he talk when
he is on the ale-bench ; and the more drink he hath in his
crown, the more of these things he hath in his mouth : reli-
gion hath no place in his heart, or house, or conversation ; all
he hath lieth in his tongue, and his religion is to make a noise
therewith.
mility au<I charity, however, disppse men to make the best of others, and
to distrust themselves : so that, unless connected with projiortionable
depth of judgment, and acuteness of disceromeut, they put them off their
guard, in respect of vainglorious talkers. It would be conceited and un-
canJid, they think, to suspect a man, who says so many good things, with
great confidence and zeal ; their dissatisfaction with the conversation they
suppo.^e was their own fault ; if they di5a::reed with the speaker, proba-
bly they were in an error ; if a doubt arose in their minds about his spi-
rit or motive, it might be imputed to their own pride and envy. — Thus
they are seduced to sanction what they ought to protest against, and to
avoid ; and that even by means of the most amiable dispositions ! — What
follows is peculiarly calculated to rectify such mistakes, and to expose the
consequences of this ill-judged candour.
Men shun to deal with Talkative, 107
Faith. Say you so ! then am I in this man greatly deceived.
Chr, Deceived! you may be sure of it: remember the pro-
verb, " They say, and do not :" but " the kingdom of God is not
in word, but in "power."* He talketh of prayer, of repent-
ance, of faith, and of the new birth ; but he knows but only io
talk of them. I have been in his family, and have observed
him both at home and abroad ; and I know what I say of him
is the truth. His house is as empty of religion as the white of
an egg is of savour. There is there neither prayer, nor si^n
of repentance for sin ; yea, the brute, in his kind, serves God
far better than he. He is the very stain, reproach, and shamf^
of religion, to all that know him ;t it can hardly have a good
word in all that end of the town where he dwells, throu4;h
him. Thus say the common people that know him, — 'A saint
abroad, and a devil at home.' His poor family fmds it so : h^'
is such a churl, such a railer at, and so. unreasonable with his
servants, that they neither know how to do for, or speak to him.
Men that have an}^ dealings with him say, it is better to deal
with a Turk than with him, for f lirer dealing they shall have
at their hands. This Talkative, if it be possible, will go beyond
them, defraud, beguile, ;md ovei'reach them. Besides, lie
brings up his sons to follow his steps ; and if he findeth in any
of them ^foolish timorousness, (for so he calls the first appear-
ance of a tender conscience,) he calls them fools and block-
heads, and by no means will employ them in much, or speak
to their commendation before others. For my part, I am of
opinion that he has, by his wicked life, caused many to stumble
and fall ; and will, if God prevents not, be the ruin of many
more, (o)
* Matt, xxiii. 3. 1 Cor. vi. 20. t Rom. ii. 23, 24.
(o) lliose believers who have made the most extensive and accurate
observation on the state of religion in their own age and place, and are
most acquainted with the internal history of the church in other lands, or
former periods, may be deemed inferior in charity to their brethren ; be-
cause they surpass them in penetration, and clearly perceive the mischiels
which arise from countenancing specious hypocrites. They would '•'' do
good to all men," " bear with the infirmities of the weak," " restore in
meekness such as are ov^ertakenin a fault,'" and make allowances for tlie
tempted : but they dare not sanction sucli men as talk about religion and
disgrace it; as mislead the simple, stumble the hopeful, prejudice the
observing, and give enemies a plausible objection to the truth. Here chari-
ty consiTnins us to run the risk of being deemed uncharitable^ by unmasking
the hypocrite, and undeceiving the deluded. We must not indeed speak
needlessiT/ against any one, nor testify more than we know to be true even
100 The Differ eyice between Saying dn3 Doing.
Faith, Well, my brother, I am bound to believe you ; not
only because you say you know him, but also because like a
Christian you make your reports of men. For I cannot think
that you speak these things of ill-will, but because it is even so
as you say.
Oir. Had I known him no more than you, I might perhaps
have thought of him as at the first you did : yea, had 1 receiv-
ed this report at their hands only that are enemies to religion,
I should have thought it had been a slander, (a lot that often
fiills from bad men's mouths upon good men's names and pro-
fessions :) but all these things, yea, and a great many more as
bad, of my own knowledge, I can prove him guilty of. Be-
sides, good men are ashamed of him ; they can neither call
him brother nor friend ; the very naming him among them
makes them blush, if they know him.
Faith, Well, I see that saying and doing are two things, and
hereafter I shall better observe this distinction.
Chr, They are two things indeed, and are as diverse as are
the soul and the body ; for, as the body without the soul is but
a dead carcass, so sayings if it be alone, is but a dead carcass
also. The soul of religion is the practical part : " Pure reli-
gion and undefiled before God and the Father, is this : to visit
the fartherless and widows in their atHiction, and to keep him-
self unspotted from the world."* This Talkative is not aware
of ; he thinks that hearing and saying will make a good Chris-
tian ; and thus he deceiveth his own soul. Hearing is but as
the sowing of the seed ; talking is not sufficient to prove that
fruit is indeed in the heart and life : and let us assure ourselves
that at the day of doom men shall be judged according to their
fruits :t it will not be said then, 'Did you believe V but,
'Were you Doers, or Talkers only ?' and accordingly shall they
be judged. The end of the world is compared to our harvest :
and you know men at harvest regard nothing but fruit. Nui
that any thing can be accepted that is not of fi:iith ; but I speak
this to show you how insignificant the profession of Talkative
will be at that day.
Faith. This brings to my mind that of Moses, by which he
describeth the beast that is clean :t — he is such an one that
* James i. 2, 3, 22—27. t Matt. xiii. 23. xxv. 31 — 46.
ij: Levit. xi. Deut. xiv.
against a suspected person : but we should show, that vain talkers belong
to the world, though numbers class them among religious people, to the
^rreat discredit of the cause.
Faithful wants to be rid of Talkative, 109
parteth the hoof, and cheweth the cud ; not that parteth the
hoof only, or that cheweth the cud only. The hare cheweth
the cud, hut yet is unclean because he parteth not the hoof.
And this truly resembleth Talkative ; he cheweth the cud, he
seeketh knowledge ; he cheweth upon the word ; but he di-
videth not the hoof, he parteth not with the way of sinners ;
but, as the hare, retaineth the foot of a dog or bear, and there-
fore he is unclean.
Chr. \ ou have spoken, for aught I know, the true gospel
sense of those texts. And I will add another thing : Paul cail-
eth some men, yea, and those great talkers too, ''sounding
brass and tinkling cymbals ;" that is, as he expounds them in
another place, " things without life, giving sound."* " Things
without life ;" that is, without the true fiith and grace of the
gospel ; and consequently things that sh dl never be placed
in the kingdom of heaven among those that are the children of
life, though their sound, by their talk, be as if it were the
tongue or voice of an angel. (/?)
Faith. Well, 1 was not so Ibnd of his company at first, but
am as sick of it now. What shall we do to be rid of him ?
Chr. Take my advice and do as 1 bid you, and you shall find
* 1 Cor. xiii. 1—3. xiv. 7.
(p) Talkative seems to have been introduced on purpose, that the aU'
thor might have a fair opportunity of stating his sentiments concerning:
the practical nature of evangelical religion, to which numbers in his day
were too inattentive ; so that this admired allegory has fully established
the important distinction between a dead and a living faith, 07i which the
whole controversy depends. We may boldly slate doctrines of the gospel
with all possible energy and clearness, and every objection must ulti-
mately fall to the ground, and every abuse be excluded, provided this
distinction be fully and constantly insisted on : for they arise without ex-
ception, from substituting some false notions of faiths in the place of that
living, active, and efficacious principle, which ihe Scriptures so constant-
ly represent as the grand peculiarity of vital godliness. The language
used in this passage is precisely the same, as is now branded with the op-
probrious epithet of legale by numbers who would be thought to admire
the Pilgrim ; as any impartial person must perceive, upon an attentive
perusal of it ; and indeed some expressions are used, which they who are
accustomed to stand before siich as " make a man an offender for a word,"
have learned to avoid. * The practice part" is accurately defined to be
the unfailing effect of that inward life which is the soul of religion. True
faith justifies, as it forms the sinner's relation to Christ; but it alwayi»
" works by love," and influences to obedience : hence the inquiry at the*
day of judgment will be rather about the inseparable fruits of feith, thaft,
about its essential properties and nature.
10
110 Faithful asks Talkative a Questioii.
that he will soon be sick of your company too, except God
shall touch his heart and turn it.
Faith, What would you have me to do ? (9)
Chr, Why, go to him, and enter into some serious discourse
about the power of religion ; and ask him plainly, (when he
has approved of it, for that he will,) whether this thing be set
up in his heart, house, or conversation ?
Then Faithful stepped forward again, and said to Talkative^
Come, what cheer ? how is it now ?
Tclk. Thank you, well ; I thought we should have had a
great deal of talk by this time.
Faith, Well, if you will, we will fall to it now ; and since
you left it with me to state the question, let it be this : ' How
doth the saving grace of God discover itself, when it is in the
heart of man ?
Talk, I perceive, then, that our talk must be about the
poxs)e7' of things ? well, it is a very good question, and I shall be
willing to answer you : and take my answer in brief thus. —
First, where the grace of God is in the heart, it causeth there a
great outcry against sin. — Secondly, —
Faith, Nay, hold, let us consider of one at once : I think
(9) When "we speak to loose professors, \vc should alwa^'s keep two
things in view ; either to get rid of such ensnaring and dishonourable
companions, or to use proper means to convince them of their fatal mis-
take. There is indeed more hope of the most ignorant and careless than
of them : yet " with God all things are possible," and we sliould not de-
spair of any, especially as the very same method is suited to bolli tlie
ends proposed; which the subsequent discourse most clearly eviiices. V^ery
plain and particular declarations of those things, by which true believers
are distinguished from the most specious hypocrites, (wlietlicr in conver-
sation or preaching,) are bes-t calculated to undeceive and alarm fal^e
professors ; and form the most commodious fan, by v*^hich the irreclaima-
ble tray be winnowed from the society of real Christians. This is of great
importance : for they are Achans in the camp of Israel, yea, spots and
blemishes to every company that countenances them. Doctrinal, or
even practical discussions, if confined to general terms, do not startle
them ; they mimic the language of experience, declaim against the
wickedness of the world, and the blindness of pharisees, and strenuously
oppose the opinions held by some rival sect or party : they can endure
the most awful declarations of the wrath of God against the wicked ;
supposing themselves to be unconcerned : nay, they will admit that they
are backsliders, or inconsistent believers. But when the conversation cr
sermon compels them to complain, ' in so saying thou condemnest us
also ;" they will hear no longer, but seek refuge under more comfortable
■preachers, or in more candid company ; and represent their faithful moni,-
tors as censorious, peevish, and melancholy.
Knowing and Doing distinguished. JU
you should rather say, It shows itself by inclining the soul to
abhor its sin.
Talk. Why, what difference is there between crying out
against, and abhorring of sin ?
Faith, Oh ! a great deal ! A man may cry out against sin of
policy, but he cannot abhor it but by virtue of a godly antipa-
thy against it. I have heard many cry out against sin in the
pulpit, who yet can abide it well enough in the heart, house,
and conversation. Joseph's mistress cried out with a loud
voice, as if she had been very holy ; but she would willingly,
notwithstanding that, have committed uncleanness with him.*
Some cry out against sin, even as the mother cries out against
her child in her lap, when she calleth it slUt and naughty girl,
and then falls to hugging and kissing it.
Talk. You he at the catch, I perceive.
Faith. No, not I, I am only for setting things right. But
what is the second thing whereby you would prove a disco-
very of a work of grace in the hearth- -
Talk. Great knowledge of gospel mysteries.
Faith. This sign should have been tirst : but, first or last, it
is also false ; for knowledge, great knowledge, may be obtain-
ed in the mysteries of the gospel, and yet no work of grace in
the soul.t Yea, if a man have all knowledge he may yet be
nothing, and so consequently be no chii^of God. When
Christ said, "Do you know all these things ? and the disciples
had answered, Yes ; he added, "Blessed are ye if ye do them."
He doth not lay the blessing in the knowing of them, but in the
doing of them. For there is a knowledge that is not attended
with doing : ''* he that knoweth his Master's will, and doeth it
not." A man may know like an angel, and yet be no Chris-
tian ; therefore your sign is not true. Indeed to know is a
thing that pleaseth talkers and boasters ; but to do is |hat which
plcaseth God. Not that the heart can be good without -know-
ledge ; for without that the heart is nought. There are there-
fore two sorts of knowledge : knowledge that resteth in the
bare speculation of things ; and knowledge that is accompani-
ed with the grace of faith and love, v/hich puts a man upon
doing even the will of God from the heart : the first of these
will serve the talker ; but without the other the true Chris-
♦ Gen. xxxix. 11 — 15. t 1 Cor. xiii.
\ 12 The Fruits of True Faith.
fian is not content : '' Give me understanding and I shall keep
thy law ; yea, I shall observe it with my whole heart."* (r)
Talk. You lie at the catch again ; this is not for edification.
Faith, Well, if you please, propound another sign how this
work of grace discovereth itself where it is.
Talk, Not I, for I see we shall not agree.
Faith. Well, if you will not, will you give me leave to do it ?
Talk. You may use your liberty.
Faith. A work of grace in the soul discovereth itself, either
to him that hath it, or to standers by. „
To him that hath it, thus : it gives him conviction of sin, es-
pecially of the defilement of his nature, and the sin ofunbehef,
for the sake of which he is sure to be damned, if he findeth
not mercy at God's hand by faith in Jesus Ciirist.t This sight
and sense of things worketh in him sorrovr and shame for sin ;
he findeth, moreover, revealed in him the Saviour of the
world, and the absolute necessity of closing with him for life ;
at the which he findeth hunger ings and thirstings after him : to
wjiicii hungerings, &c. the promise is made. J (s) Now aecord-
* Psa. cxix. 34. t Psa. xxxviij. 18. Mark xvi. 1. Johnxri. 8, 9. Acts iv.
12. Rom. vii. 24. J Jer. xxxi. 19. Matt. v. 6. Gal. i. 15, 16. Rev. xxi. 6.
V) Spiritual knowledge, obtained by an implicit belief of God^s sure
imony under the teaching of the Holy Spirit, producing a hearty love
^1 levealed truth, is. always humbling, sanctifying and transforming : but
speculativt \i.xioYf\e^^e is a mer^ notion of divine things, as distant from a
man's own concern in them, or a due apprehension of their excellency
and importance, v/hich puffs up the heart with proud self-preference,
feeds carnal and malignant passions, and leaves the possessor under the
power of sin and Satan.
(5) Divine teaching convinces a man that he is justly condemned for
fransgressing the law, and cannot be saved unless he obtain an interest in
the merits of Christ by faith ; and that unbelief, or neglect of this great
salvation, springs from pride, aversion to the character, authority, and law
of God, a|id love to sin and the world ; that it implies the guilt of treating
the truth^f God as a lie, despising his wisdom and mercy, demanding
happiness as a debt from his justice, and defying his "wrath revealed
from heaven against all ungodliness and unrighteousness of men." This
conviction makes way for discovering that a free salvation by faith is
exactly suited to his case : he perceives the glory of the divine perfections
harmoniously displayed in the person and redemption of Christ ; and his
heart is inwardly drawn to close with the invitations of the gospel, and
to desire above all things the fulfilment of its exceedingly great and pre-
cious promises to his soul. — The expression revealed in him is taken from
St. Paul :* but as his conversion was extraordinary without the inter-
vention of means or instruments, and as he seems rather to have intended
his appointment to the ministry, and that communication of the know-^
* Gal, i. 16.
How a Work of Grace is Shown. 113
ing to the strength or weakness of his faith in his Saviour, so
is his joy and peace, so is his love to holiness, so are his de-
sires to know him more, and also to serve him in this world.
But though, I say, it discovereth itself thus unto him, yet it is
hut seldom that he is able to conclude that this is a work of
grace ; because his corruptions now, and his abused reason,
make his mind to misjudge in this matter : therefore in him
that hath this work there is required a very sound judgment,
before he can with * steadiness conclude that this is a work of
grace. (0
To others it is thus discovered : — First, By an experimen-
tal confession of his faith in t^'hrist. — Secondly, By a life an-
swerable to that confession ; to wit, a life of holiness ; heart-
hohness, family-holiness, Tif he hath a family,) and by conver-
sation-holiness in the world ; which in the general teacheth
him inwardly to abhor his sin, and himself for that, in secret ;
to suppress it in his family, and to promote hohness in the
world ; not by talk only, as a hypocrite or talkative person
may do, but by a practical subjection in fiith and love to the
power of the word.* — And now, sir, as to this brief descrip-
tion of the work of grace, and also the discovery of it, if you L
have aiight to obje<;^t, object ; if not, then give me leave toJ'^
propound to you a second question. ^
Talk. Nay, my part is not now to object,'t)ut to hear : let
me therefore have your second question.
Job xlii. 5, 6. Psa. 1. 23. Ezek. xx. 43. Matt. v. 8. John xiv. 15.
Rom. X. 9, 10. Phil. i. 27.
ledge of Christ to his soul, by which he was qualified as an apostle to re-
veal him to mankind, and not simply that divine teaching by which he
was led to become a Christian ; perhaps it is not accurately applied to
the ordinary experience of believers. Our author, however, evidently
meant no more, than the illumination of the Holy Spirit enabling a man
to understand, believe, admire, and love the truths of the Bible respect-
ing Christ; and not any nev/ revelation, declaring his interest in the Sa-
viour, by a whisper, vision, or any such thing. These enthusiastic expec-
tations and experiences have deceived many and stumbled more ; and
have done greater harm to the cause of evangelical religion, than can
be conceived or expressed.
(/) The prevalence of those fervent desires and earnest expectations,
in which the exercise of true faith greatly consists, is the proper evidence
of saving grace ; and the sweet spirit of reliance and confidence which is
inseparable from frequent and earnest applications to the Saviour, put
vigour into all holy affections and exertions. But few, comparatively,
have such strong faith, and distinct views, and sound judgment, and vic-
tory over corrupt passions, as habitually to draw the proper conclusion
from their own experience. This our author has judiciously noticed.
P 10*
ll4 Faithful sJiows Talkative his Hypocrisff,
Faith, It is this ; Do you experience this first part of this
description of it ? and doth your life and conversation testify
the same ? or standeth your rehgion m zvord or in tongue^ and
not in deed and truth ? Pray, if you incline to answer me in
this, say no more than you know the God above will say Amen
to ; and also nothing but what 3'our conscience can justify you
in : *' For not he that commendeth himself is approved, but
whom the Lord commendeth." Besides, to say I am thus and
thus, when my conversation and all my neighbours tell me I
lie, is great wickedness.
Then Talkative at first began to blush : but, recovering
himself, thus he replied : You come now to experience, to con-
science, and God ; and to appeal to him for justification of what
is spoken. This kind of discourse 1 did not expect ; nor am I
disposed to give an answer to such questions : because 1 count
not myself bound thereto, unless you take upon you to be a
catechizer ; and though 3^ou should so do, yet 1 may refuse to
make you my judge. But I pray, will you tell me -why you
ask me such questions ?
Faith. Because I saw j^ou forward to talk, and because I
knew not that you had aught else but notion. Besides, to
tell 3^ou all the truth, I have heard of you, that you are a
man whose religion lies in talk, and that your conversation
gives this your mouth-profession the lie. They say you are a
spot among Christians; and that religion fiireth the worse for
your ungodly conversation ; that some already have stumbled
i\i your wdcked ways, and that niore are in danger of being
destroyed thereby : your religion and an alehouse, and covet-
ousness, and uncleanness, and swearing, and lying, and vain
company-keeping, &c. will stand together. The proverb is
true of 3^ou which is said of a whore, to w^it, that ' she is a
shame to all women ;' so you are a shame to all professors. (?«)
(u) It is not enoug-li to state practical and experimental subjects in the
plainest and most distinguishing manner : we ought also to apply them
to men's consciences, by the most solemn and particular interrogations. —
In public, indeed, care must be taken, not to turn the thoughts of a con-
gregation to an individual : yet we should aim to lead every one to re-
flect on his own case, and excite his conscience to perform the office of a
faithful monitor. But in private, when we have ground to suspect that
men deceive themselves, such plain dealing is the best evidence of disin-
terested love. It is at present, alas ! much disused, and deemed incon-
sistent with politeness ; so that, in many cases, an attempt of this kind,
would be considered as a direct outrage and insult : and perhaps in some
circles, the language of these plain Pilgrims might be exchaoged for that
The good Effects of Faithfulness^. 1 15
Talk, Since you are ready to take up reports, and to
judge so rashly as you do, I cannot but conclude you are some
peevish or melancholy man, not fit to be discoursed with ;— -
and so, adieu.
Then came up Christian, and said to his brother, I told you
how it would happen ; your words and his lust could not
agree. He had rather leave your company than reform his
life : but he is gone, as I said : let him go, the loss is no man's
but his own : he has saved us the trouble of going from him ;
for he continuing (as 1 suppose he will do,) as he is, he would
have been but a blot in our company : besides the apostle
says, " From such withdraw thyself. "(ta;)
Faith, But I am glad we had this little discourse with him ;
it may happen that he will think of it again : however, I have
dealt plainly with him, and so am clear of his blood if he
perisheth.
Chr, You did well to talk so plainly to him as you did ; there
is but little of this faithful dealing with men no w-a-days, and
that makes religion to stink in the nostrils of manyas it doth :
for they are these talkative fools, whose religion is only in
words, and are debauched and vain in their conversation, that,
being so much admitted into the fellowship of the godly, do
puzzle the world, blemish Christianity, and grieve the sincere.
I wish that all men would deal with such as you have done ;
which would be less offensive, without deducting from its energy ; yet
zeal for the honour of the gospel, and love to the souls of men, are,
no doubt, grievously sacrificed to urbanity in this age of courteous insin-
cerity.
(w) This apostolic rule is of the greatest importance. While consci-
entious Christians, from a mistaken candour, tolerate scandalous profes-
sors, and associate with them, they seem to allow that they belong to the
same family ; and the world will charge their immoralities on the doc-
trines of the «:ospel, saying of those who profess them, * They are all
alike, if we could find them out.' But did all, who " adorn the doctrine
of God our Saviour," withdraw from such m.en ; their crimes would rest
with themselves, and the world would be compelled to see the difference
between hypocrites and real Christians. This is also the most effectual
method of exciting self-deceivers or inconsistent professors to self-exami-
nation, and of thus brino;ing them to be ashamed and humbled in true re-
pentance : and, at the same time, it tends to deprive such men of that
influence, which they often employ to mislead and prevent hopeful inquir-
ers and unestablished believers. Even the best conducted discipline
would have but a partial effect in preventing these evils, if not followed
u]^ by this conduct of individuals ; and, where the former cannot be ob-
tamed, the latter would produce happier consequences than believers in
general can suppose.
116 Evangelist overtakes the Pilgrims.
then should they be either made more comformahle to religion ^
or the company of saints would be too hot for them.
' How Talkative at first lifts up his plumes I
How bravely doth he speak I How he presumes
To drive down all before him ? But so soon
As Faithful talks of heart-work, like the moon
That's past the full, into the wane he goes :
And so will all but helhat heart-work knows.'
Thus they went on talking of what they had seen by t,he way,
and so made that way easy which would otherwise no doubt
have been tedious to them : for now they went througli a
Wilderness.
Now when they were got almost quite out of this Wilder-
ness, Faithful chanced to cast his eye buck, and espied one
coming after them : and he knew him. Oh ! said Faithful to
his brother, Who comes yonder ? Then Christian looked, and
said, It is my good friend Evangelist. Aye, and m}^ good friend
too, said Faithful, for it was he that set me in the way to. the
Gate.. Now vras Evangelist come up unto them, and thus sa-
luted them :
Peace be with j^ou, dearly beloved ; and peace be to your
helpers.
Chr, Welcome, welcome, my good Evangelist ; the sight of
thy countenance brings to my remembrance thy ancient kind-
ness and unwearied labouring for my eternal good.
And a thousand times welcome, said good Faithful, thy coni-
panj", O sweet Evangelist, how desirable is it to us poor
Pilgrims.
Then said Evangelist, How hath it fared with you, my
friends, since the time of our last parting ? what have you
mot with, and how have you behaved yourselves ?
Then Christian and Faithful told him of all things that had
happened to them in the way ; and how, and with v/hat difficul-
ty, they had arrived at this place.
Right glad am I, said Evangelist, not that you met With
trials, but that you have been victors, and for that you have,
notwithstanding many weaknesses, continued in the way to this
very day. I say right glad am I of this thing, and that for mine
own sake and yours. I have sowed and you have reaped ;
and the day is coming, when '' both he that sowed and they
that reaped shall rejoice together ;" that is, if you hold ont ;
Evangelist foretells Persecutions. 117
*^ for in due time ye shall reap, if you faint not."* The crown
is before you, and it is an incorruptible one ; " so run that you
may obtain" it. Some there be that set out for this crown, and
after they have gone far for it, another comes in and takes it
from them ; *' hold fast therefore that you have, let no man
take your crown :"t you are not yet out of the gunshot of the
devil : *' you have not resisted unto blood, striving against
sin :" let the kingdom be always before you, and believe
steadfastly concerning things that are invisible. Let nothing
that is on this side of the other world get within you : and,
above all, look well to your own hearts and to the lusts there-
of, for they are "deceitful above all things, and desperately
wicked :" set your faces Uke a flint j you have all power in
lieaven and earth on your side, (x) ,
Then Christian thanked him for his exhortation ; but told
him withal, that they would have him speak farther to them
for their help the rest of the way ; and the rather for that,
they well knew that he was a prophet, and could tell them of
things that might happen unto them, also how they might re-
sist and overcome them. To which request Faithful also con-
sented. So Evangelist began as foUoweth : *
My sons, you have heard in the words of the truth of the gos-
pel, that " you must through many tribulations enter into the
kindom of heaven." And again, that *' in every city bonds
and aflflictions abide you ;" and therefore you cannot expect
that you should go long on your pilgrimage withouf them, in
some sort or other. You have found something of*the truth of
these testimonies upon you already, and more will immediate-
ly follow : for now, as you see, you are almost out of this
Wilderness, and therefore you will soon come into a Town
that you will by and by see before you ; and in that town you
* John iv. 36. Gal. vi. 9. t 1 Cor. ix. 24—27. Rev. iii. 11.
(r) The author, intending in the next place to represent his Pil^^ims
as exposed to severe persecjution, and to exhibit in one view what Chris-
tians should expect, and may be exposed to, irom the enmity of the world,
very judiciously introduces that interesting; scene by Evangelist's moetiag
them, with suitable cautions, exhortations^ and encouragements. The
minister, by whose faithful labours a man is first directed into the way
of salvation, commonly retains great influence, and is considered with
special affection, even when various circumstances have placed him at a
distance under some other pastor. The conversation, therefore, of such
a beloved friend tends to recall to the minds of believers their former fears,
trials, and deliverances, which animates them to encounter farther diffi^
culties, and opens the way for seasonable counsels and admonitions.
118 The Tow7i of Vanity ; and Vanity -Fail'.
will be hardly beset with enemies, who will strain hard but
they will kill you ; and be you sure that one or both of you
must seal the testimony, which 3^ou hold, with blood : but " bo
you faithful unto death, and the King will give yoxi a crown of
life." He that shall die there, although his death will be un-
natural, and his pain perhaps great, he will yet have the bet-
ter of his fellow : not only because he will be arrived at the
Celestial City soonest, but because he will escape many mise-
ries that the other will meet with in the rest of his journey.
But when you are come to the Town, and shall find fulfdled
what I have here related, then remember your friend, and
quit yourselves like men ; and " commit the keeping of your
souls to your God, as unto a faithful Creator." (?/)
Then I saw in my dream, that when they were got out of
vthe Wilderness, they presently saw a Town before them ; the
I name of that Town is Vanity ; and at tl e Town there is a Fail"
kept, called Vanity-Fair : it is kept all the ye ir long : it bear-
eth the name of Vanit^^-Fair, because the Town where it is kept
is *' lighter than Vanit3^" and also because all that is there
sold, or that cometh thither, is Vanity. As is the saying of the
wise man, *' All that cometh is vanity."*
This Fair is no new-erected business, but a thing of ancient
standing : 1 will show you the origin of it.
Almost five thousand years agone there were Pilgrims walk-
A\g to the Celestial City, as these two honest persons are ; and
Beelzebub, Apollyon, and Legion, with their companions, per-
ceiving, by the path that the Pilgrims made, that their way
to the City lay through this town of Vanitj^ they contrived
here to set up a Fair ; a Fair, wherein should be sold all sorts
* Eccles. i. e, 14. ii. 11, 17. xi. S. Isa. xl. 17.
(jj) The able and faithful minister can foretell many things, from his
knowledge of the Scriptures, and enlarged experience and observation,
of which his people are not aware. He knows beforehand, that " throng])
much tribulation they must enter mto the kingdom of God ;'' and th^
circumstances of the times aid him in discerning what trials and difficul-
ties more especially await them. A retiied life shelters a believer from
the enmity of the world : and timid men are often tem})ted on this account
to abide m the wilderness ; to choose obscurity and solitude for the sake
of quiet and safety, to the neglect of those active services for which they
are qualified. But when Christians are called forth to more public situa-
tions, they need peculiar cautions and instructions : for inexperience ren-
ders men inattentive to the words of Scripture ; and they often do not at
all expect, or prepare for, the trials which are inseparable from Ih'ose
scenes, on which they are perhaps even impatient to enter.
Things seen and sold in Vanity-Fair, 119
of vanity ; and that it should last all the year long : therefore at
this Fair are all such merchandise sold, as houses, lands, trades,
places, honours, preferments, titles, countries, kingdoms,
lusts, pleasures ; and delights of all sorts, as whores, bawds,
wives, husbands, children, masters, servants, lives, blood,
bodies, souls, silver, gold, pearls, precious stones, and what
not !
And moreover, at this Fair there is at all times to be seen
jugglings, cheats, games, plays, fools, apes, knaves, and rogues,
and that of every kind
Here are to be seen too, and thst for nothing, thefts, mur-
ders, adulteries, fdse-swearers, and that of a blood-red colour.
And as in other Fairs of less moment there are several rows
and streets under their proper names, where such and such
wares are vended, so here likewise you have the proper
places, rows, streets, (viz. countries and kingdoms) where the
wares of this Fair are soonest to be found. Here is the Bri-
tain Rou% the French Row, tlie Itali.m Row, the Spanish Row,
the German Row, where several sorts of vanities are to be
sold. But as in other Fairs some one commodity is as th(;
chief of all the Fair, so the ware of Rome and her merchan-
dise is greatly promoted in this Fair : only our English nation,
with some others, have taken a dishke thereat, [z)
{z) Our author evidently clesio:ned to exhibit in his allegory the graiul
•utlines of the difficultiee, temptations, and sufferings, to which behevers
are exposed in this evil world ; which, in a work of this nature, must be
related as if they came upon them one after another in regular succession ;
thouirh in actual experiencr" several may meet.together, many may mo-
lest the same person a<?ain and again, and some harass him in every
stage of his journey. We should, therefore, singly consider the instruc-
tion conveyed by every allegorical incident, without m-easuring our ex-
perience, or calculating our progress, by corapar>ng them with circvm-
stances^ which might be reversed or altered with almost endless variety.
In general, Vanity-Fair represents the wretched state of things, in those
populous places especially where true religion is neglected and persecuted,
and indeed of "the whole world lying in wickedness," as disrtirguished
from the church of redeemed siiniers. This continues the san^e (in re-
spect of the gen'sral principles, conduct, and pursuits of mankind,) througii
all ages an;! nations : but Christians are called to mix more with it, at
some times than at others ; and Satan, the god and priijce of it, is permit-
ted to excite fierce persecution in some places, and oa some occasions,
while at other times he is restraiaed. Tvlany, therefore, seem to spend all
their days in the midst of Vanity-Fair, and of continual insults or in-
juries ; while others are only sometimes thus exposed, and pass most
of their lives unmolested : and a few are favoured with so obscure a
situation, and such peaceable times, that they are very little acquainted
1^0 The Way to iJie City through the Fair,
3Ughl
Nov/, as I said, the way to the Celestial City lies just through
this t:)wn where this lusty Fair is kept ; and he that will go to
with these trials. — Mr. Bunyan, living in the country, had frequent op-
portunities of witnessing those Fairs, which are held first in one town and
then in another ; and of observing the pernicious effects produced on the
principles, morals, health, and circumstances of young persons especially,
by thus drawing together a multitude, from motives of interest, dissipa-
tion and excess. He must also, doubtless, have found them to be a very
dangerous snare to serious or hopeful persons : so that his delineation ot
this case under allusions taken from this scene, wHU be more interesting
and affecting to those who have been spectators of it, than to such as have
moved in higher circles, or dv,'elt chiefly m populous cities. — Worldly
men covet, pursue, grasp at, and coutend for the things of time and sense,
with eagerness and violence, so that their whole conduct aptly resembles
the bustle, selfishne*;?, artifice, dissipation, riot,and tumult of a large crowd-
ed Fair. The profits, pleasures, honojrs, possessions, and distinctions of the
world, are as transient and frivolous as the events of the fair-day; with
which the children are delighteu, hut which every man of sense contemns.
Solomon, after a complete ex^'iriment, pronounced the whole to be
"vanity of vanities:" the veriest vanity imaginable, a complex vanity,
an accumulation of ciphers, a lo'tery consisting entirely of blanks ; every
earthly object being unsuitable to the wants of the rational soul, unsub-
stantial, unsatisfactory, disappomtmg, and perishing. — Yet this traffic of
vanities is kept up all the year : because the carnal mind always hankers
after one worldly trifle or other, and longs * for change of follies and re-
lays of joy ;' while objects suited to its feverish thirst are always at hand
to allure it, deriving their efficacy from continually pressing, as it were,
on the senses. — When our first parents were fatally prevailed on to join
Satan's apostasy, they '"forsook the fountain of living waters, to hew out
to themselves broken cisterns ;•"' and the idolatry of seeking happiness from
the creature instead of the Creator, has been universal among all their
posterity. Since the promise of a Saviour opened to fallen men a door
of hope, the tempter has continually tried to allure them by outward ob-
jects, or induce them by the dread of pain and suffering to " neglect so
great salvation." Thus the prince of the devils sets up this Fair ; and
by teaching men to abuse the good creatures of God to vile purposes, oi-
to expect from them such satisfaction as they were never meant to uffor 1,
he has used them as baits to the ambition, avarice, levity, and sensual; y
of the carnal mind. No crime has ever been committed on earth, or con-
ceived in the heart of man, which did not arise from this universal apos-
tasy and idolatry; from the excess, to which the insufficiency of the ob-
ject to answer the proposed end, gives rise ; and from the vile passiou-
which the jarring interests or inclinations of numberless competitor? for
honour, power, wealth, and pleasure, cannot fail to excite. As the
streams of impiety and vice, which flow from this source, are A'arie<3. ;k-
cording to men's constitutions, educations, habits and situations ; so diffe-
rent worldly pursuits predominate in divers nations, or stages of civiliza-
tion. Hence the manifold variations in the human character, which
equal the diversity of their complexions, shape or capacities, though tliey
be all of one nature. To tliis an allusion is made by ' the rows' in this
Fair. The merchandise of Rome, which suited a rude and ignorant age,
A HuhbuO in i^e F'ai'r. 1^1
the City, and yet not go through this town, '^ must needs go
out of the world." The Prince of Princes himself, when
here, went through this Town, to his own country, and that
upon a Fair-day too : yea, and as I think, it was Beelzehub
the chief lord of this Fair that invited him to buy of his vanities :
yea, he would have made him Lord of the Fair, would he but
have done him reverence as he went through the town : yea,
because he was such a Person of honour, Beelzebub had him
from street to street, and showed him all the kingdoms of the
world in a little time, that he might if possible allure that
Blessed One to cheapen and buy some of his vanities. But
he had no mind to the merchanchse, and therefore left the
Town without laying out so much as one farthing upon these
vanities.* This Fair, therefore, is an ancient thing, of long
standing, and a very great Fair. («)
Now these Pilgrims, as I said, must needs go through this
Fair. Well, so they did ; but behold, even as they entered
into the Fair, all the people in the Fair were moved, and the
Town itself, as it were, in a hubbub about them ; and that for
several reasons : for.
First, the Pilgrims were clothed with such kind of raiment
as was diverse from the raiment of any that traded in that Fair.
* Matt. iv. a, 9. Luke iv. 5—7.
has now given place to the more plausible wares of sceptical philosophers
which are more agreeable to the pride of learning and human reasoning.
Even things lawful in themselves, when sought, or possessed in a manner
which is not consistent with '' seeking Jirst the kingdom of God, and his
riglUeousness," become allurements of Satan to draw sinneis into his fatal
s^nare.
(«)* Christianity does not allow men to " bury their talent in the earth,"
or to put *' their light under a bushel :" they should not "go out of the
world," or retire into cloisters and deserts : and therefore, thej'^must ail
go through this Fair. Thus our Lord and Saviour endured all the temp-
tations and sufferings of this evil world, without being at all impeded or
entangled by them, or stepping in the least aside to avoid them. The age
in which he lived peculiarly abounded in all possible allurements ; and
he was exposed to such enmity, contempt, and sufferings, as could nevei-
be exceeded or equalled. But "he went about doing good ;" and his
whole conduct, as well as his indignant repulse of the tempter's insolent
offer, hath emphatically shown his judgment of all earthly things, and ex
hibited to us " an example that we should follow his steps."
Here are inserted the following lines : —
* Behold Vanity-Fair ! The Pilgrims there
Are chained, and stoned beside : ;
Even so it was our Lord past here,
And on mount Calvary died.
Q 11
1^2 They are made the Authors of this Disturhance,
The people, therefore^ of the Fair made a great gazing
lipon them : some said they were fools ;* some, they were
bedlams, and some, they were outlandish men.
Secondly, And as they wondered at their apparel, so they
did likewise at their speech ; for few could understand what
the}^ said :; they naturally spoke the language of Canaan ; hut
the}^ that kept the Fair were the men of this world : so that
from one end of the Fair to the other they seemed barbarians
each to the other.
Thirdly, But that which did not a little amuse the m.orch uv
disers was, that these Pilgrims set very light by all t'leir
wares : they cared not so much as to look upon them : and if
they called upon them to buy, they would put their fingers \n
their ears, and cry, *' Turn away mine eyes from beholdin:!;
vanity ;"t and look upwards, signif3'ing that their trade ;:nd
traffic was in heaven. \ (h)
One chanced, mocking]}', beholding the carriages of the
* 1 Cor. iv. 9, 10. t Psa. cxix. Pw. % ^'''^'^- i'i- 20, 21.
(}j) The presence of real Christians in those places, where a lar;^e
concourse of worldly men are collected foi* sinful purposes, must pro-
duce a disturbance and effervescence; and the smaller the niimber is of
those who by their action?, words, or silence, protest against vice and im-
piety, Ihe fiercer the opposition that will be excited. A pious clersrymnn,
on board a vessel, v/here he was a sin^^le exception to the general unsroii-
liness that prevailed, gave great offence by constantly but silently with-
drawing, when oaths or unseemly discourse made his situation uneasv :
and he was called to account for so assuming a singularity I — Consiste'^.t
believers, appearing in character among v/orldly people, and not disguis-
ing their sentiments, ulwaj'^s excite this opposition ; but more accommo-
dating professors escape it. An avowed dependence on the righteous-
ness and atonement of Christ for acceptance, gives vast offence to those
who rely on their own good works for justification : and conformity to \h^.
example, and obedience to the commandments of the Redeemer, are
deemed precise and uncouth in the judgment of those who " walk record-
ing to the course of this v/orld ;"' and they deem the Christian intane or
ouflandish for his peculiarities. His discourse, seasoned with piety, hu-
mility, ?nd spirituality, so differs from the *' filthy conversation of th^
w^icked," and the polite simulation of the courtly, that they can have no
intercourse with him, or he v/ith them : and w'len he j^neaks of the love
ofChriat, and the satisfaction of communion with him, while f/try " bla-:-
pbeme the worthy name by which he is called ;"" they mu«t seem harhari-
nns each to the other. J>ut above all, the believer's contempt of worldly
things, when they interfere with the will and a'lory of God, forms sncli a
testimony against all the pursuits and conduct of carnal men, as must ex-
cite their greatest astonishment and indignation ; while he shuns with
dread and aV)horrence, as incompatible with salvation, those very things
to which they wholly addict themselves without the least remorse.
Cause of the Hubbub. 123
men, to say unto them, ' What will ye buy ?' but they look-
ing gravely upon him, said, "We buy the truth. "^ At that,
there was an occasion taken to despise the men the more :
some mocking, some taunting, some speaking reproachfully,
and some calling upon others to smite them. At last things
came to a hubbub and great stir in the Fair, insomuch that all
order was confounded. Now was word presently brought to
the great One of the Fair, who quickly came down, and depu-
ted some of his most trusty friends to take those men into ex-
amination about whom the Fair was almost overturned. So
the men were brought to examination ; and they that sat upon
them, asked them whence they came, whither they went, and
what they did there in such an unusual garb ? The men told
them that they were Pilgrims and strangers in the world ; and
that they were going to their own Country, which was the
heavenly Jerusalem ;t and that they had given no occasion to
the men of the Town, nor yet to the merchandisers, thus to
abuse them, and to let them in their journey ; except it was
for that, when one asked them what they would buy, they said
they would *' buy the truth." — But they that were appointed
to examine them, did not believe them to be any other than
bedlams, and mad, or else such as came to put all things into a
confusion in the Fair. Therefore they took them and beat
them, and besmeared them with dirt, and then put them into
the cage, that they might be made a spectacle to all the men
of the Fair, (c) There therefore they lay for some time, and
* Prov. xxiii. 23. t Heb. xi. 13—16.
(c) When the scoffs of those, " who think it strani^e that Christians will
not run with them to the same excess of riot," extort from them a full
and explicit declaration of their principles, it may be expected that the
reproaches and insults of their despisers will be increased ; and then all
the mischief and confusion which follow will be laid to their charge —
* There were no such disputes about religion before they came ;' " These
men who turn the world upside down are come hither also ;" "they exceed-
ingly trouble the city," town or village by their uncharitable discourse
and example ! — Thus Satan takes occasion to excite persecution, when
he fears lest the servants of God should successfully disseminate their
principles : and persecuting princes and magistrates, his *• most trusty
friends,' are deputed by him to molest and punish their peaceable subject",
for conscientiously refusing conformity to the world, or fur dissenting
from doctrines and modes of worship which they deem unscriptural.
Thus the most valuable members of the community are banished, impri-
soned or, murdered ; multitudes are tempted to hypocrisy : encourage-
ment is given to time-servers to seek secular advantages by acting contra-
ry to their consciences ; the principles of sincerity and integrity aregene-
124 The Consequences of their Behaviour,
were made the objects of any man's sport, or malice, or re-
venge ; the great One of the Fair laughing still at all that be-
fell them. But the men being patient, and " not rendering
railing for railing, but contrariwise blessing," and giving goocl
words for bad, and kindness for injuries done ; some men in
the Fair, that were more observing and less prejudiced than
the rest, began to check and blame the baser sort for their con-
tinual abuses done by them to the men : they therefore in an-
gry manner let fly at them again, counting them as bad as the
men in the cage, and telling them that they seemed confede-
rates, and should be made partakers of their misfortune. The
others replied that, for aught they could see, the men were
quiet and sober, and intended nobody any harm : and that
there were many, that traded in their Fair, that were more
worthy to be put into the cage, yea, and pillory too, than were
the men that they had abused. Thus, after divers words had
passed on both sides, (the men behaving themselves all the
while very wisely and soberly before them ;) they fell to some
blows and did harm one to another. Then were these two
poor men brought before their examiners again, and there
charged as being guilty of the late hubbub that had been in the
Fair. So they beat them pitifully, and hanged irons upon them,
and led them in chains up and down the Fair, for an example
and terror to others, lest any should speak in their behalf, or
join themselves unto them. But Christian and Faithful behav-
ed themselves yet more wisely, and received the ignominy
and shame that was cast upon them with so much meekness
and patience, that it won to their side (though but few in com-
parison of the rest,) several of the men in the Fair. This put
the other party yet into a greater rage, insomuch that they con-
cluded the death of these two men. Wherefore they threat-
ened that neither rage nor iyons should serve their turn, but that
rally weakened or deetroyed by multiplied prevarications and false pro-
fessions ; and numerous instruments of cruelty and oppression are involv-
ed in this complication of atrocioas crimes. — Our author doubtless drew
many of his portraits, in the subsequent historical picture, from originals
then sufficiently known ; and if any think that he has heightened his co-
lourings, it may furnish them v/ith a subject for gratitude, and a reason for
content and peaceable submission to our rulers. In Fox*s Martyrs we
meet with authenticated facts, that fully equal this allegorical representa-
tion : nay, ^ The Acts of the Apostles' give us the very same view of the
subject.
Their Sufferings and Comforts. 125
they should die for the abuse they had done^ and for deluding
the men of the Fair, {d)
Then were they remanded to the cage again, until further
orders should be taken with them. So they put them in, and
made their feet fast in the stocks.
Here, also, they called again to mind what they had heard
from their faithful friend Evangelist, and were the more con-
tiruied in their way and sufferings by what he told them would
happen to them. They also now comforted each other, that
whose lot it was to suffer, that even he should have the best
of it ; therefore each man secretly wished that he might have
that preferment : but committing tiiemselves to the all-wise
disposal of Him that ruleth all things, with much content they
abode in the condition in which they were, until they should
be otherwise disposed of.
Then a convenient time being appointed, they brought them
forth to their trial in order to their condemnation. When the
time was come they were brought before their enemies, and
arraigned. The Judge's name was Lord Hategood : their in-
dictment was one and the same in substance, though somewhat
varying in form ; the contents whereof was this :
That they were enemies to, and disturbers of their trade ;
that they had made commotions and divisions in the town, and
{d) The contempt, injustice, and cruelty, with which persecutors treat
the harmless disciples of Christ, gives them an occasion of discovering
that amiable conduct and spirit which accord to the precepts of Scrip-
ture, and the example of persecuted prophets and apostles ; and this of-
ten produces the most happy effects on those who are less prejudiced,
which still more exasperates determined opposers ; yet it frequently pro-
cures a short respite for the persecuted, while worldly people quarrel
about them among themselves. And even if greater severity be at lengtli
determined on, persevering prudence, meekness, and patience, amidst all
the rage of their enemies, will bear testimony for them in the consciences
of numbers; their religion Avill appear beautiful, in proportion as their
persecutors expose their own odious deformity. God will be with thcHi'
to comfort and deliver them : he will be honoured by their profession
and behaviour, and many will derive the most important advantage, from
their patient sufferings and cheerful fortitude in adhering to the truths
of the gospel. But when believers are put off their guard by ill usage ;
when their zeal is rash, contentious, boasting, or disproportionate ; when
they are provoked to render " railing for railing," or to act contrary t©
the plain precepts of Scripture : they bring guilt on their conscience?,
stumble their brethren, harden the hearts and open the mouths of oppos-
ers, dishonour God and the gospel, and gratify the great enemy of souls ;
who malignantly rejoices in their misconduct, but is tortured when they
endure sufferings in a proper manner.
11*
126 Tliey are brought forth to Trial.
had won a party to their own most dangerous opinions, in con-
tempt of the law of their Prince.
Then Faithful began to answer, that he had only set him-
self against that which had set itself against Him that is
higher than the highest. And, said he, as for disturbance, I make
none, being myself a man of peace ; the parties that were won
to us were won by beholding our truth and innocence ; and
t hey are only turned from the worse to the better. And as to
\\\Q king you talk of, since he is Beelzebub, the enemy of our
f iord, I defy him, him and all his angels, (c)
Then proclamation was made, that they that had aught to
say for their lord the king against the prisoner at the bar,
should forthwith appear and give in their evidence. So there
f'iime in three witnesses, to wit, Envy, Superstition, and Pick-
tliank. They were then asked if they knew the prisoner at
the bar ; and what they had to say for their lord the king
against him.
Then stood forth Envy, and said to this effect : My lord, I
have known this man a long time, and will attest upon my oath
J»efore this honourable bench, that he is (/)
Judge, Hold, give him his oath.
(t) The description of the process, instituted against the Pilgrims, is
given in language taken from the legal forms used in our courts of justice,
whicli in Mr. Bunyan's days were shamefully perverted to subserve the
most iniquitous oppressions. — The allegorical narrative is framed in such
a manner, as emphatically to expose the secret reasons, which influence
men to persecute their inoffensive neighbours ; and the very names em-
ployed declare the several corrupt principles of the heart, from whence this
atrocious conduct results. — Enmity against God, and his holy character,
law, worship, truth, and servants, is the principal source of persecution; the
Judge in Faithful's trial. The interference of spiritual religion with men's
covetous, ambitious, and sensual pursuits ; and the interruption it gives to
their false peace, and unanmity in ungodliness or hypocrisy, which it tends
10 expose and undermine, form the grounds of the indictment : that is, when
the persecuted can truly answer, that they ' only set themselves against
that which sets itself against Him, who is higher than the highest ;' and
v/hen they do not suffer '' as evil doers, busy bodies in other men's mat-
ters," ambitious competitors for secular advantages, or contentious dispu-
•ants about political questions.
(J) The names of these witnesses declare the character of the most ac-
tive instruments of persecution. Even Pilate could perceive that the
Jewish Scribes and Priests were actuated by envy^ in delivering up Jesus*
to him. His instructions descredited their's, and diminished their repu-*
tation and influence ; he was more followed than they : and in propor-
tion aa he was deemed a teacher sent from God, they were disregarded as
blind guides. Thus formal instructors, and learned men, who are stran-
gers to the power of godliness, have always affected to despise the profes-
Envy'^s Testimonif, 127
So they svvare him. — Then he said, My lord, this man, not-
withstanding his plausible name, is one of the vilest men in our
country ; he neither regardeth prince nor people, law nor
custom ; but doeth all that he can to possess all men with cer-
tian of his disloyal notions, (g) which he in the general calls
' principles of faith and holiness.' And, in particular, I heard
him once myself affirm, that Christianity and the customs of
our Town of Vanity were diametrically opposite, and could
not be reconciled. By which saying, my lord, he doth at
once, not only condemn all our laudable doings, but us in the
doing of them.
sors and preachers of the gospel as ignorant enthusiasts. They envy the
reputation acquired by them, and are ansiry at the success of their doc-
trines. If they have not the authority to silence the minister^ they will
brow-beat such of his hearers as are within the reach of their influence ;
especially if they have affronted them by forsaking their uninteresting in-
structions. If they cannot prevail upon " the powers that be" to interfere ;
they will employ reproaches, menaces, or even oppression, to obstruct
the progress of evangelical ministers : should any obsolete law remain
unrepealed, of which they can take advantage, they will be the first to
enforce it ; and if the rulers engage in persecution, they will take the lead
as prosecutors and witnesses. — As this was rema?kably the case in our
author's days ; and as the history of the old and new Testament, and
every authentic record of persecutions, give the same view of it ; we can-
not be greatly at a loss to know what was especially meant by this em-
blem. In other respects there is seldom much in the circumstances of
pious persons, to excite the envy of their ungodly neighbours ; as thy de-
spise their spiritual privileges and comforts.
(g) It has always been the practice of envious accusers to represent
those, who refuse religious conformity, as disloyal and disaffected to the
civil government of their country ; because they judge it " right to obey
God rather than man !" How grievous then is it, that any, who profess
the gospel, should give plausibility to such calumnies ! How desirable for
them, after the example, and in obedience to the precepts, of Christ and
his Apostles, " by well doing to put to silence the ignorance of foolish
men," " to avoid all appearance of evil," '' to render to Cesar the things
that are Cesar's," and to constrain even enemies t-o bear testimony to
their peaceable deportment 1 This would exhibit their patient suffering
for conscience sake as amiable and respectable, in the eyes of all not im-
mediately engaged in persecution ; and would give a sanction to their
most bold and decided testimony against every kind of vice, impiety, and
false religion. But when they revile the persons of rulers, or make re-
ligion the pretext for intermeddling out of their place in political matters,
and in attempting to disturb the peace of the community ; they exceed-
ingly strengthen men's prejudices against the doctrines of the gospel, and
the whole body of those who profess them ; and thus give occasion, and
furnish an excuse, for that very persecution of which they complain, in
other respects with the greatest justice.
1 28 Superstition mid Pickthank^s Deposition.
Then did the Judge say unto him, Hast thou any more to
say?
Envy. My lord, I could say much more, only I would not
be tedious to the court. Yet if need be, when the other gen-
tlemen have given in their evidence, rather than any thing shall
be wanting that will despatch him, I will enlarge my testimony
against him. — So he w^as bid to stand by.
Then they called Superstition, and bid him look upon the
prisoner : they also asked what he could say for their lord the
king against him ? Then they sware him ; so he began :
My lord, I have no great acquaintance with this man, nor
do I desire to have further knowledge of him ; however, this 1
know, that he is a very pestilent fellow, from some discourse
that the other day I had with him in this town ; for then, talk-
ing with him, I heard him say that our religion was naught,
and such by which a man could by no means please God.
Which sayings of his, my lord, your lordship very well knows
what necessarily thence will follow, to v/it, that we still do
worship in vain, are yet in our sins, and finally shall be dam-
ned : and this is that which 1 have to say. (/i)
Then was Pickthank sworn, and bid- say what he knew in
the behalf of their lord the king against the prisoner at the bar.
(h) Superstition represents another class of underliu2^ persecutors ; (for
the principals are often masked infidels.) Traditions, human invention?,
forms and externals, appear to them decent, venerable and sacred ; and
are mistaken v/ith pertinacious igfnorance, for the substance of religion.
As mere circumstances of worship, some of these may very well answer
the purpose ; provided they be not imposed^ magnified above their
value, or substituted in the place of things essentially good : others are
bad, in their origin, use and tendency ; yet the truths, ordinances and
commandments of God are made void that men may keep them ! What
is pompous or burdensome appears to such men meritorious ; and the ex-
citement of mere natural passions, (as at a tragedy,) is deemed a most
needful help to true devotion. They are, therefore, eminently qualified
to bs witnesses against the faithful servants of God : for they " think Ihey
are thus doing him service," while they are opposing a company of pro-
fane despisers of their idolized forms ; a set of fanatics, heretics, and pesti-
lent schismatics 1 Their religious zeal contracts and hardens their hearts ;
and the supposed goodness of the cause sanctifies their bitter rage, enmity
and calumuy. The extreme odiousness of these proceedings should excite
all who love the truth, to keep at the utmost distance from such obstinate
confidence and violence; to discountenance them to the utmost, in the
zealots of their own sentiments ; and to leave the enemies of the gospel,
if possible, to monopolize this disgrace. For, hitherto, almost all parties
have been betrayed into it, when advanced to power ; and this has given
the enemies of Christianity their most plausible arguments against it.
Faithful's Anrscer, 129
My, lord and you gentlemen all, this fellow I have known
a longtime, and have heard him speak things that ought not to
be spoken ; for he hath railed on our noble prince Beelzebub,
and hath spoken contemptibly of his honourable friends, whose
names are the lord Old-man, the lord Carnal-delight, the lord
Luxurious, the lord Desire-of-vain-glory, my old lord Lech-
ery, Sir Having-greedy, with all the rest of our nobihty : and
he hath said, moreover, that, if all men were of his mind, if
possible, there is not one of these noblemen should have any
longer a being in this town. Besides, he hath not been afraid
to rail on you, my lord, who are now appointed to be his
Judge, calling you an ungodly villain, with many other such-
like vilifying terms, with which he hath bespattered most of
the gentry of our town, (i)
When this Pickthank had told his tale, (he Judge directed
his speech to the prisoner at the bar, saying. Thou runagate,
heretic, and traitor, hast thou heard what these honest gen-
tlemen have witnessed against thee ?
Faith, May I speak a few words in my own defence ?
Judge, Sirrah, sirrah, thou deservest to live no longer, but
to be slain immediately upon the place ; yet, that all men may
see our gentleness towards thee, let us see what thou hast to
say.
Faith, I say then, in answer to what Mr. Envy hath spoken,
1 never said aught but this, that what rule, or laws, or custom,
or people, were flat against the word of God, are diametrically
opposite to Christianity. If I have said amiss in this, convince
(i) Pickthank represents a set of tools that persecutors continually use ;
namely, men of no religious principle ; who assume the appearance of
zeal for any party, as may best promote their interests ; and who mward-
ly despise both the superstitious and the spiritual worshipper. These men
discern little in the conduct or circumstances of believers to excite either
their rage, or envy ; but if their superiors be disposed to persecute, they
will afford their assistance ; for preferment runs in this channel. So that
they bear their testimony irom avarice or ambition, and flatter the most
execrable characters, in order to get forward in the world : this being the
grand object to v/hich they readily sacrifice every thing else. The names
of those against whom Faithful spoke, show that his crime consisted in
protesting, by word and deed, against vices, which the great too often
think themselves privileged to commit without censure ; and not in re-
viling the persons, or misrepresenting the actions of superiors. The for-
mer may with great propriety be done at all times ; and on some occasions
the testimony against sin cannot be too closely applied to the consciences
of the guilty, without respect of persons : but the latter is always unjust
3nd unscriptural.
R
ISO 2'he Judge's Charge to the Jury,
rfte of my error, and I am ready here before you to make my
recantation.
As to the second, to wit, Mr. Superstition, and his charge
against me, 1 said only this, that in the worship of God there
is required a divine faith ; but there can be no divine faith
Avithout a divine revelation of the will of God. Therefore,
whatever is thrust into the worship of God, that is not agreea-
ble to divine revelation, cannot be done but by a human faith,
which faith will not be profitable to eternal life.
As to what Mr. Pickthank hath said, I say, (avoiding terms,
as that I am said to rail, and the like,) that the prince of this
town, with all the rabblement, his attendants, by this gentle-
man named, are more fit for a being in hell than in this Town
and Country ; and so the lord have mercy upon me. (Ji)
Then the Judge called to the jury, (who all this while stood
])y to hear and observe ;) Gentlemen of the jury, 3^ou see this
man about whom so great an uproar hath been made in this
Town ; you have also heard what these v/orthy gentlemen have
witnessed against him ; also you have heird his reply and
confession. It lieth now in your breasts to hang him or save
his life ; but yet I think meet to instruct you into our law.
There was an act made in the days of Pharaoh the great,
(fc) Faithful's defence is introduced by these lines, as in the foregoing
instances : —
' Now, Faithful, play the man, speak for thy God ;
Fear not the wicked's malice, nor their rod :
Speak boldly, man, the truth is on thy side ;
Die for it, and to life in triumph ride.'
Christians in such circumstauces should be more concerned for the ho-
nour of God than for their own credit orsaiety; and they should take
occasion to bear a decided testimony to the truths, commandments and
institutions of the Scripture : leaving it to their accusers, judges, or hear-
ers, to determme what sentiments or practices are thus proved to be anti-
christian, or what numbers' of " teachers in Israel" are exposed as blind
guides. That faith, (by which alone we approach to God, and accepta-
bly worship him.) has no other object than divine revelation ; nothing
-one without the express icarrant of Scripture can be proiilable to eter-
al life, whatever may be said for its expediency; but eveTy thing foist-
ed into religion contrary to that sacred rule must be an abomination. —
Human faith may please men ; but without a divine faith it is impossible
to please God, either in general or any particular action. , And, as we
can seldom speak against the vile lusts of men, without being judged by
implication to rail against such as are notoriously addicted to them, we
cannot be the followers of Him, " whom the world hated, because he tes-
tified of it that its works were evil," unless we be willing to risk all con-
sequences in copying his example.
Faithful is Condemned, 331
servant to our prince, that lest those of a contrary rehgion
should multiply and grow too strong for him, their males
should be thrown into the river."-* — There was also an act
n^ade in the days of Nebuchadnezzar the great, another of his
servants, that whoever would not fall down and worship his
golden image, should be thrown into a fiery furnace. t — There
was also an act made in the days of Darius, that whoso for
some time called upon any God but him should be cast into
the lions' den. J Now the substance of these laws this rebel
has broken, not only in thought, (which is not to be borne)
but also in word and deed ; which must therefore needs be
intolerable.
For that of Pharaoh ; his law was made upon a supposition
to prevent mischief, no crime yet being apparent. But here
is a crime apparent. For the second and third ; you see he
disputeth against our religion ; and for the treason he hath
confessed, he deserveth to die the death. (/)
Then went the jury out, whose names were Mr. Blind-man,
Mr. No-good, Mr. Malice, Mr. Love-lust, Mr. Live-loose,
Mr. Heady, Mr. High-mind, Mr. Enmity, Mr. Liar, Mr. Cru-
elty, Mr. Hate-light, and Mr. Implacable ; who every one
gave in his private verdict against him among themselves, and
afterward unanimously concluded to bring him in guilty be-
fore the judge. And first Mr. Blind-man, the foreman, said, ' I
see clearly that this man is a heretic' Then said Mr. No-
good, * Away with such a fellow from the earth.' ' Ay,' said
Mr. Malice, ' for I hate the very looks of him.' Then said
Mr. Love-lust, * I could never endure him.' ' Nor I,' said Mr.
Live-loose, ' for he would always be condemning my way.'
* Exod. i. t Dan. iii. :]: Dan. vi.
(/) A more just and keen satyrical description of such legal iniquities,
can scarcely he iina2:ined, than that contained in this passage. The sta-
tutes and precedents adduced, (with a humorous and well imitated re-
fcrence to the style-and manner, in which charges are commonly given to
juries ;) showMiiat patterns persecuting legislators and magistrates choose
to copy, and whose kingdom they labour to uphold. ISor can any im-
}>artial m,an deny, that the inference is fair which our author meant the
reader so deduce ; namely, (hat nominal protestants, enacting laws requir-
ing conformity to their own creeds and forms, and inilictiug punishments
on such as peaceably dissent from them, are actually involved in the guiit
of these heathen persecutors, and of their anti-christian successors; even
if their doctrine and worship be allowed to be scriptural and spiritual. —
For these methods only serve to promote hypocrisy, and to expose the
conscientious to the malice, envy or avarice of the unprincipled.
132 FaithfuVs ?^orments and Death.
-Hang him, hang him,' said Mr. Heady. ' A sorry scrub/
said Mr. High-mind. ' My heart riseth against him,' said Mr.
Enmity. ' He is a rogue,' said Mr. Liar. * Hanging is too
good for him,' said Mr. Cruelty. ' Let us despatch him out of
the way,' said Mr. Hate-hght. Then said Mr. Implacable.
' Might I have all the world given me, I could not be reconcil
cd to him : therefore let us forthwith bring him in guilty of
death.' And so they did ; therefore he was presently con-
demned to be had from the place where he was, to the place
from whence he came, and there to be put to tlie most cruel
death that could be invented.
They therefore brought him out to do with him according to
their law : and first they scourged him, then they buffeted
him, then they lanced his flesh with knives ; after that they
stoned him wuth stones, then pricked him with their swords ;
and last of all they burned him to ashes at the stake. Thus
came Faithful to his end. (m)
Now 1 saw that there stood behind the multitude a chariot
and a couple of horses w^aiting for }'iuthful ; who, so soon as his
adversaries had despatched hiin, was taken up into it, and
straightway was carried up through the clouds, wath sound of
trumpet, the nearest way to the Celestial Gate. But, as for
(m) The names of the jury-men, and their general and particular ver-
dicts, the cruel execution of Faithful, and ihe happy event of his suffer-
ing?, need no comment. It was not indeed the practice of the tnnes in
which our author lived, to inflict death on those who were persecuted for
conscience sake : yet very great rigours were used ; the system then adopt-
ed, if carried to its consequences, must have ended in the extermination
of all non-conformists from the land ; it was natural to expect still great-
er cruelty from persons who were found capable of the severities already
experienced ; and without all doubt many actually lost their lives, in one
way or other, by the persecutions to Avhich they were exposed. All
those, who feel a di?position to employ the power of the magistrate
against such as differ from them in religious matters, should attentively
consider the contemptible and odious picture here delineated with the
most entire justice, of the whole race of persecutors, and of their charac-
ters, principles, motives, and conduct : that they may learn to hate and
dread such an anti-christian practice, and shun the most remote approach-
es to it. On the other iiand, they v;ho are exposed to persecutiorij or in
danger of it, should study the character and conduct of Faithiul, that
they may learn to suffer in a Christian spirit, and to ^.dorn the gospel la
the fiery trial. — The following lines are here introduced as before : —
* Brave Faithiul ! bravely done in word and deed I
Judge, witnesses, and jury have, instead
Of ovei coming thee, but shown their rage,
When they are dead, thou'lt live from age to age.'
Faithful is taken to Glory, Christianas Escape, 133
Christian, he had some respite, and was remanded back to
prison ; so he there remained for a space : but he that over-
rules all things, having the power of their rage in his own
hand, so wrought it about that Christian for that time escaped
them and went his way. (ji)
And as he went he sung, saying,
<• Well, Faithful, thou hast faithfully profest
Unto thy Lord, with whom thou shalt be blest,
When faithless ones, with all their vain delights,
Are crying out under their hellish plights.
Sing, Faithful, sing, and let thj' name survive,
For though they kilfd thee, thou avi yet alive.'
Now I saw in my dream that Christian went not forth alone ;
for there was one whose name was Hopeful, (being so made
by the beholding of Christian and Faithful, in their words and
l>ehaviour in their sufferings at the Fair,) who joined himself
unto him ; and entering into a brotherly covenant, told him
tliat he would be his companion. Thus one died to make tes-
timony to the truth, and another rises out of his ashes to be a
coippanion with Christian. This Hopeful also told Christian,
that there were many more of the men in the Fair, that would
take their time and follow after, (o)
(ti) When the believer has done liis work, the wrath of man may be
permitted to expedite his removal to his heavenly inheritance ; but all
the malice and power of earth and hell are utterly unavailing to cut off
any one till the purposes of God respecting him are accomplished. Thus
the Apostles were preserved during Saul's persecution, and Peter was
rescued from the hands of Herod. The Lord has various methods of pro-
tecting and liberating his servants : sometimes he intimidates their perse-
cutors; the paroxysm of their fury abates; or they are disheartened by
ill success in their efforts to extirpate the hated sect ; the principles and
instruments are left to qiiarrel among themselves ; their cruelties disgust
the people, so that they dare not proceed ; political interests engage even
ungodly princes to promote toleration, and chain up the demon persecution :
or the Lord raises up one of his own servants to authority, tliat he may
be a protector of his church, and disappoint the devices of his enemies,
(o) ' The blood of the martyrs is the seed of the church :' for suITorings
properly endured, form the most convincing and useful kind of preaching,
'i'he name of Christian's nev/ companion denotes the opinion, which esta-
blished believers from at first, of such as beginto profess the gospel in an
intelligent manner. The nature of an allegory rendered it impracticahje
to introduce the new convert, as beginning his pilgrimage frojn the same
place, or going through the same scenes, as Christian had done : neither
could Faithful, for the same reason, be represented as passing the river
afterward mentioned. But the brolJierb/ covenant^ in which H ^ :fai
joined himself with his companion, rauyt he supposed to imply the sub-
stance of all that had been spoken of, as necessary to final acceptance,
12
134 Christian and Hopeful overtake By-ends.
So I saw that quickly after they got out of the fair, they
overtook one that was going before them, whose name was By-
ends : so they said to him, What countryman. Sir ? and. How
far go you this way ? He told them that he came from the town
of Fair-speech, and he was going to the Celestial Cit}^, hut told
them not his name.
From Fair-speech ? said Christian : is there any good that
lives thei;^ ?*
Yes, said By-ends, I hope.
Chr Pray, Sir, what may I call you ?
By. I am a stranger to you and you to me : if yon be going
this way, I shall be glad of your company : if not, I must be
content.
Chr. This town of Fair-speech I have heard of it, and, as I
remember, they say it's a wealthy place.
By. Yes, I will assure you tliat it is ; and I haye very many
rich kindred there.
Chr. Pray who are your kindred there, if a man m;jy be so
bold ?
By. Almost the whole town : and, in particular, my lord
Turn-about, my lord Time-server, my lord Fair-speech, from
whose ancestors that town first took its' name : also Mr.
Smooth-man, Mr. Facing-both-ways, Mr. Any -thing ; and the
parson of our parish, Mr. Two-tongu?s, was my mother's own
brother by father's side : and, to tell you the truth, I am a
gentleman of good quality, yet my great grandfather was but a
waterman, looking one way and rowing another, and I got most
of my estate by the same occupation
Chr. Are you a married man ?
By. Yes, and my wife is a very virtuous woman, tiie daugli- ^
ter of a virtuous woman ; she was my Lady Feigning's daugh-
ter, therefore she came of a very honourable family, and is
arrived to such a pitch of breeding, that she knov/s how to
carry it to all, even to prince and peasant. It is true, v/c
somewhat differ in religion from those of the stricter sort, but
yet in two small points. First, we never strive against wind
and tide. Secondty, we are always most zealous when reli-
gion ^oes in his silver slippers ; we love much to walk with him
in the stree t, if the sun shines, and the people applaud 'it.\p)
'-^ Prov. XX vi. 25.
(p) The cliaracter of By-ends, and the group that attended him, forms
a clear detection and merited condemnation of a large company of false
Christian detects By-ends. 135
Then Christian stept a little aside to his fellow Hopeful,
saying, It runs in my mind that this is one By-ends of Fair-
speech ; and if it be he, we have as very a knave in our compa-
ny, as dwelleth in all these parts. Then said Hopeful, Ask
him ; methinks he should not be ashamed of his name. So
Christian came up with him again, and said, « Sir, you talk as
professors ; and is not at all inferior in importance to the preceding severe
satire on open persecutors. — When rest is given to the church, hypocrites
often multiply more -than real Christians. — The name of this man, and
those of his town and relations, do not merely describe his original cha-
racter and situation, (as Christian was at first called Graceless of the
City of Destruction ;) but they denote the nature of his religious profess
sion. Believers look back on their former principles and behaviour with
shame and abhorrence ; but hypocrites, when reproved for evident sins,
excuse them, because Christ came to save the lost, and because he is
merciful to the chief of sinners. Christian would readily have granted
that ' no good lived' at his native city ; and on that very account ne had
renounced it with all his old connexions : but By-ends hoped better of
Fair-speech, and gloried in his honourable relations there. Yet he was
ashamed of his name ; for men are unwilling to allow that they seek no-
thing more than worldly advantages by religion. The names here select-
ed are most emphatically descriptive of that whole company of professed
Christians, who, under various pretences, suppose " that gain is godliness."
The polite simidaiion and dissimulation^ which some most courtly waiters
have inculcated, as the summit of good breeding, the perfection of a finish
ed education, and the grand requisite for obtaining consequence in society
if introduced into religion, and adopted by professors or preachers of the
gospel, in connexion with fashionable accomplishments and an agieeable
address, constitute the most versatile, refined, and insinuating species of
hypocrisy that can be imagined : and a man of talents, of any occ^jpationt
or profession, may render it very subservient to his interests ; by insuring
the patronage or custom of those to whom he attaches himself, without
giving much umbrage to the world, which may indeed despise such a
character, but will not deem him worthy of hatred. He may assume any
of the names here provided for him, as may best suit his line in life ; and
may shape his course, in subserviency to his grand concern, with consid-
erable latitude ; provided he has prudence enough to keep clear of scan-
dalous vices: he will not be long in learning the beneficial art of using two
tongues with one mouth, and of looking one way and rowing another :
and perhaps he may improve his fortune by an honourable alliance, with
some branch of the ancient family of the Feignings. The grand differ-
ence betwixt this whole tribe, and the body of true Christians, consists in
these two things : Christians seek the salvation of their souls, and at the
same time aim to glorify God, and be useful to their neighbours ; but
hypocrites profess to be religious in order to obtain friends, patrons, cus-
tomers, or applause : those follow the Lord habitually, whatever tribula-
tions arise because of the word ; but these conceal or deny their profes-
sion, when, instead of gaining by it, they are exposed to reproach or per-
secution.
13& Christian detects By-ends,
if you knew something more than all the world doth : (q) and^
if I take not my mark amiss, I deem I have half a guess of you ;
is not your name Mr. By-ends, of Fair speech ?
By. This is not my name, but indeed it is a nick-name that
is given me by some that cannot abide me, and I must be con-
tent to bear it as a reproach, as other good men have borne
their's before me.
Chr. But did you never give an occasion to men to call you
by this name ?
By, Never, never ! the worst that ever I did, to give them
an occasion to give me this name, was, that I had always the
luck to jump in my judgment with the present way of the
times, whatever it was ; and my chance was to get thereby.
But if things are thus cast upon me, let me count them a
blessing ; but let not the malicious load me therefore with
reproach.
Chr. 1 thought indeed that you were the man that I heard
of, and, to tell you what I think, I fear this name belongs to
you more properly than you are willing we should think it
doth.
By. Well, if you will thus imagine, I cannot help it: you
shall iind me a fair company-keeper if j^ou will still admit me
your associate.
Chr. If you will go with us, you must go against wind and
tide, the which, I perceive, is against your opinion ; you must
also own religion in his rags as well as when in his silver slip-
pers : and stand by him too when bound in irons, as well as
when he walketh the streets with applause.
By. You must not impose, nor lord it over my faith ; leave
me to my liberty, and let me go with you.
Chr. Not a step further, unless you will do in what I pro-
pound, as we.
Then said By-ends, I shall never desert my old principles,
since they arc harmless and profitable. If I may not go with
(9) Ths people of the world, who avow their real character, know
how to serve Mammon by neglecting and despising God and religion ;
and the disciples of Christ can serve God by renouncing the world and
its friendship : but time-servers talk as if they had found out the secret of
uniting these two discordant interests, and thus of ' knowing something
more than all the world.' — This is the most prominent feature in this
group of portraits, which in other respects exhibits great dissimilarities,
and contains the faces of persons belonging to every division of professed
Christians on earth.
Christian and Hopeful part from By-ends. . 137
you, 1 must do as I did before you overtook me, even go by
myself, until some overtake me that will be glad of my com-
pany, (r)
Now I saw in my dream that Christian and Hopeful forsook
him, and kept their distance before him ; (5) but one of them
looking back, saw three men following Mr. By-ends, and be-
hold as they came up with him he made them a very low con-
gee ; and they also gave him a compliment. The men's
names were Mr. Hold-the- world, Mr. Money -love, and Mr.
Save-all ; men that Mr. By-ends had formerly been acquainted
w^ith ; for in their minority they were school-fellows, and
were taught by one Mr. Gripeman, a school-master in Love-
Gain, which is a market- town in the county of Coveting, in
the north. This school-master taught them the art of getting,
either by violence, cozenage, flattery, lying, or by putting on
n guise of religion ; and these four gentlemen had attained
much of the art of their master, so that they could each of
them have kept such a school themselves.
Well, when they had, as 1 said, thus saluted each other, Mr.
Money-love said to Mr. By-ends, Who are they upon the
road before us ? for Christian and Hopeful were yet within
their view.
By. They are a couple of far countrymen, that after their
mode are going on pilgrimage.
Money. Alas ! why did they not stay, that we might have
(?') When hypocrites are charged with their double-dealing and obvi-
ous crimes, they commonly set it dov/n to the account of persecution, and
class themselves with that blessed company, of v/hom "all manner of evil
is spoken /«/5e/i/, for the name of Christ :"" as if there were no difference
between suffering as a Christian, and being a scandal to the very name
of Christianity ! Thus they endeavour to quiet their minds, and keep up
their credit ; deeming themselves at the same time very prudent and for-
tunate^ in shifting about so as to avoid the cross, and secure their tempo-
ral interests. The Apostle says concerning these men, " from such turn
away, " and the decided manner in which Christian warns By-ends, and
renounces his company, though perhaps too plain to be either approved
or imitated in this courtly candid age, is certainly warranted and required
by the Holy Scriptures.
(s) In the second edition, printed 1678, all the subsequent part of this
episode is wanting; till Christian and Hopeful enter the plain Ease *. but
there can be no doubt of its ha\ang been added by the author himself;
for it is his manner entirely. This induces a doubt, whether some other
alterations from that edition were not made by the Author; and on this
ground, it has been necessary to exercise a discretionary power in admit-
ting^ or rejecting them.
S 12*
J138 By-ends and his Party censure Christian
had their good company? for they, and we, and you, Sir, I
bope, are all going on pilgrimage, (j)
By. We are so indeed : but the men before us are so rigid,
and love so much their own notions, and do also so lightly es-
teem the opinions of others, that let a man be ever so godly,
yet if he jumps not with them in all things, they thrust him
quite out of their company.
Save, That's bad : but we read of some that are righteous
overmuch, (w) and such men's rigidness prevails with them to
(/) It might hare been supposed that the persons, here introduced,
were settled inhabitants of the Town of Vanity, or the City of Destruc-
tion : but indeed they professed themselves Pilgrims, and desired du-
ring the sun-shine to associate with Pilgrims ; provided they
would allow them, to /loZf/ the worlds love money ^ smd save «Z/, whatever
became of faith and holiness, of honesty, piety, truth, and charity ! — Co-
vetousness, whether it consist in rapaciously trying to get money, to
hoard or to lavish, in purchasing consequence, power, or pleasure, or in
supporting mag-nificence and the pride of life ; or in parsimony as to the
ordinary proportion of expenditure ; or in tenacity, when duty requires a
man to part with it ; is'a vice not so easily defined as many others. At
the same time it enables a man, m various ways, to reward those who can
V:e induced to connive at it, and to render it dangerous to oppose him : s©
that it is not wonderful that it generally finds more quarter, even among
religious persons, than other vices, which are not marked with so black a
brand in the Holy Scriptures. Too many professing to be the disciples
of Christ, ^' bless the covftous, whom God abhorreth," and speak to them
as if they were doubtless true Christians ; because of their steadiness in
the profession of a doctrinal system, and a mode of worship ; attended by
morality, where money is not concerned and scandal might be incurred ;
and a narrow disproportionate contributipn from their abundance, to sup-
port the interest of a society or a party. Thus the " vile person is called
liberal, and the churl is said to be bountiful :" and the idolatry of worship-
ping m-oney has seldom been execrated equally with that of them, " whose
god is their belly ;" unless when so enormous as to become a kind of in-
sanity.— The most frugal support of religious worship, with the most dis-
interested pastors and managers, is attended with an expense that the
poor of the flock are utterly unable to defray : by this opening, Hold-the-
world and Money-love frequently obtain admission, and acquire undue
influence among Pilgrims. And when the efiect of remaining selfishness
in the hearts of true believers, insinuating itself under the specious plea
of prudence and necessity, and the ill consequences of specious hypocritea
ascociating with them, are duly considered ; with the censure that must
fall upon a few obscure individuals who attempt to stem the to/rent ; it
will appear evident that the rich, and they who are growing rich have
more need of self-examination and jealousy over their own hearts than
Rny other persons ; because they will be less plainly warned and reprov-
ed, in public and private, than their inferiors.
They applaud their ovan Principles, 139
judge and condemn all but themselves : but I pray what and
how many were the things wherein you differed ?
By. Why they, after their headstrong manner, conclude,
that it is their duty to rush on their journey all weathers ; and
1 am for waiting for wind and tide. They are for hazarding
all for God at a clap, and I am for taking all advantages to se-
cure my life and estate. They are for holding their notions
though all other men be against them ; but I am for religion in
what, and so far as, the times and my safety will bear it.
They are for religion when in rags and contempt ; but I am
for him when he walks in his golden slippers, in the sun-shine,
and with applause.
Hold. Ay, and hold you there still, good Mr. By-ends : for
my part, I can count him but a fool, that having the liberty to
keep what he has, shall be so imwise as to lose it. Let us be
*' wise as serpents ;" it is best 'to make hay when the sun
shines ;' you see how the bee lieth still in winter, and bestirs
her only when she can have profit with pleasure. God sends
sometimes rain and sometimes sun-shine : if they be such fools
as to go through the first, yet let us be content to take fair
weather along with us. For my part, I like that religion best
that will stand with the security of God's good blessings unto
us : for who can imagine, that is ruled by his reason, since
God has bestowed upon us the good things of this life, but that
he would have us keep them for his sake ? Abraham and Solo-
mon grew rich in religion. And Job says that a good man
'' shall lay up gold as dust." But he must not be such as the
,men before us, if they be as you have described them.
Save. I think that we are all agreed in .this matter, and
therefore there needs no more words about it.
Money. No, there needs no more words about this matter
indeed ; for he that believes neither scripture nor reason, (and
(w) This expression of Solomon was probably intended to caution us
against excessive zeal for some detached parts of religion to the ne-
glect of others, or against superstitious austerities and enthusiastical delu-
sions, or any extremes, which always lead men off from vital godliness :
or, as some think, it is the objection of an opponent, which he afterward
answers : but it is the constant plea of those, who neglect the most essen-
tial duties of their place and station, to avoid the cross, and preserve their
worldly interests ; and thus *< they wrest the Scriptures to their own de-
struction."
By ends proposes a question : Money-love's ansiacer, 140
you see we have both on our side,) neither knows his own
liberty, nor seeks his own safety, (w)
By. My brethren, we are, you see, going all on pilgrimage,
and for our better diversion from things that are bad, give me
leave to propound unto you this question :
Suppsose a man, a minister or tradesman, &c. should have
m advantage lie before him to get the good blessings of this life,
et so as that he can by no means come by them except, in
tppearance at least, he becomes extraordinary zealous in some
points of religion that he meddled not %vith before, may he
not use this means to attain his end, and yet be a right honest
man ?
Money, I see the bottom of your question ; and, with these
gentlemen's good leave, 1 will endeavour to shape you an an-
swer. And tirst, to speak to your question, as it concerns a
minister himself. Suppose a minister, a worthy man, p9ssess-
ed but of a very small benefice, and has in his eye a greater,
more fat and j)lump by far : he has also now an opportunity of
getting of it ; yet so as by beinc more studious, by preaching
more frequent!}^ and zealously, and because the temper of the
people requires it, by altering of some of his principles : for
my part, 1 see no reason but a man may do this, provided he
has a call, ay, and more a great deal besides, and yet be an
honest man. For why ?
1. His desire of a greater benefice is lawful; this cannot
be contradicted, since it is set before him by Providence ; so
tlien he may get it if he can, making no question for con-
science' sake.
2. Besides, his desire after that benefice makes him more
(jL()) This dialogue is not in the least more absurd and selfish, than the
♦liscourse of many %vho attend on the preaching of the gospel, and expect
to be thought believers. They connect " the wisdom of the serpent" with
his craft and malice, not with the harmlessness of the dove : if v/oridly
ucre be the honey, they imitate the bee, and only attend to religion when
hey can gain by it : they cut and shape their creed and conduct to suit
' lO times, and to please those among whom they live : they determine
o keep what they have at any rate, and to get more, if it can be done
v/ithout open scandal ; never seriously recollecting that they are mere
stewards of providential advantages, of which a strict account must at last
be given ; and, instead of willingly renouncing or expending them, for
the Lord's sake, when his providence or commandment requires it, they
determine to hoard them up for themselves and families, or to spend them
in worldly indulgence ; i^nd then quote and pervert scripture to varnish
over this base idolatry.
141 They propose ilie question to Christian^
studious, a more zealous preacher, &:c, ; and so makes him a
better man, yea, makes him better improve his parts ; which
is according to the mind of God.
3. Now, as for the complying with the temper of his peo-
ple by deserting, to serve them, some of his principles, this
argueth that he is of a self-denying temper, of a sweet and
winning deportment ; and so more fit for the ministerial func-
tion.
4. I conclude, then, that a minister that changes a small for
agrea^ should not, for so doing, be judged as covetous ; but
rather, since he is improved in his parts and industry thereby,
be counted as one that pursues his call, and the opportunity
put into his hand to do good, {x)
And now to the second part of the question, which concerns
the trn^lofiman you mentioned : suppose such an one to have
but a poor employ in the world ; but by becoming religious
he may mend his market, perhaps get a rich wife, or more
and far better customers to his shop. For my part, I see no
reason but this may be lawfully done. For why ?
1. To become religious is a virtue, by what means soever a
man becomes so.
2. Nor is it unlawful to get a rich wife, or more custom to
my shop.
3. Besides, the man that gets these by becoming religious,
gets that which is good, of them that are good,' by becoming
good himself; so then here is a good wife, and good custom-
ers, and good gain, and all these by becoming religious,
which is good : therefore, to become religious to get all these
is a good and profitable design.
(x) There is a fund of satirical humour in the supposed case here very
gravely ?tatpd ; and if the author, in his accurate observations on man-
kind, selected his example from amon^ the mercenaries that are the scan-
dal of the established church, her most faithful friends will not greatly
resent this conduct of a dissenter. — The loorthy clergyman seeks first
(not "the kingdom of God and his righteousness,-' or the glory of God in
the salvation of souls, but) a rich benefice : to attain this primary object,
means must be used ; and hypocritical pretensions to diligence, zeal, pie-
ty, with some chan.i^e of doctrine, merely to please men, seem most likely
to succeed ; and so this most base, prevaricating, selfish and ungodly plan
is adopted I In how many thousands of instances has this been an awful
reality ? How often has it been pleaded for, as prudent and laudable, by
rnen, not only pretending to common honesty and sincerity, but calling
themselves the disciples of Jesus Christ !
m
142 Christian's Scriptural Aiisner,
This answer, thus made by this Mr. Money-love to Mr. By-
ends's question, was highly applauded by them all ; wherefore
they concluded upon the whole that it was most wholesome
and advantageous. And because, as they thought, no man was
able to contradict it, and because Christian and Hopeful were
yet within calVthey jointly agreed to assault them v/ith this
question as soon as they overtook them ; and the rather be
cause they had opposed Mr. By-ends before. So they called
after them, and they stopped and stood still till they came up to
them : but they concluded, as they went, that not Mr. By-
ends, but old Mr. Hold-the-world, should propound the ques-
tion to them ; because, as they supposed, their answ^er to
him would be w^ithout the remainder of that heat, that was
kindled between Mr. By-ends and them at their par ting a little
before.
So they came up to each other, and, after a short salutation,
Mr. Hold-the-world propounded the question to christian and
his fellow, and bid them to answer it if they could.
Then said Christian, Even a babe in religion may answ^er
ten thousand such questions. For if it be unlawful to follow
Christ for loaves, ;.s it is ;* how much more is it abominable
to make him and religion a stalking-horse to get and enjoy the
world ? Nor do we tind any other than heathens, hypocrites,
devils, and witchi s, that are of this opinion.
Heathens : for when Hrimor and Shechem had a mind to the
daughter and cattle of Jacob, and saw that there w^ere no ways
for them to come at them, but by becoming circumcised ;
they say to their companions, '• If every male of us be cir-
cumcised, as they are circumcised, shall not their cattle, and
their substance, arid every beast of their's be ours ?" Their
daughters and their cattle were that which they sought to ob-
tain, and their religion the stalking-horse they made use of to
come at them. Read the whole story. Gen. xxxiv. 20 — 24.
The hypocritical Pharisees were also of this rehgioii : long
prayers w^ere the pretence : but to get widow^s' houses was
their intent, and greater damnation was from God their judg-
ment.!
Judas the devil w^as also of this religion : he was religious for
the bag, that he might be possessed of what was therein ; but
he was lost, a castaway, and the very son of perdition.
Simon the witch was of this religion too ; for he would have
* John vi. 26, 27. t Luke xx. 46, 47.
The Plain Ease, and the Hill Lucre. 143
liad the Holy Ghost, that he might have got money therewith ;
and his sentence from Peter's mouth was accordingly.*
Neither will it out of my mind, but that that man, that takes
up religion for the world, will throw away religion for the
world ; for so surely as Judas designed the world in becoming
religious, so surely did he also sell religion and his Master for
the same. — To answer the question therefore affirmatively, as
I perceive you have done, and to accept of, as authentic, such
answer, is both heathenish, hypocritical, and devilish ; and
your reward will be according to your works. — Then they
stood staring one upon another, but had not whereivith to an-
swer Christian. Hopeful also approved of the soundness of
Christian's answer ; so there was a great silence among them.
Mr. By-ends and his company also staggered and kept behind,
that Christian and Hopeful might outgo them. Then said
Christian to his fellow. If these men cannot stimd before the
sentence of men, what will they do with the sentence of God ?
And, if tliey are mute when dealt with by vessels of cla3^
what will they do when they shall be rebuked by the flames
of a devouring fire ? {y)
Then Christian and Hopeful outwent them again, and went
till they came at a delicate plain, called Ease ; where they
went with much content : but that plain was but narrow, so
thev were quickly got over it. Now at the further side (if
* ActsTiii. 18—23.
(y) God permits Satan to bait his hook Avith some worldly advantage, in
order to induce men to renounce their profession, expose their hypocris}',
or disgrace the gospel : and they, (poor deluded mortals I) call it ' an
opening- of Providence.' The Lord indeed puts the object in their way, if
they will break his commandments in order to seize upon it : but he doeif
this in order to prove them, and to show whether they most love him or
their worldly interests ; and it is the devil that tempts them to seize the
advantage 'by sinful compliances or hypocritical pretences that he may
" take them captive at his will." The arguments here adduced, by an
admirable imitation of the pleas often used on such occasions, are only
valid on the supposition that religion is a mere extprniu appearance, and
has nothing to do with the slate of the heart and alFections ; and in sliorl,
that hyfjocrisy and -pieiy are words precisely of the same meaning. — Upon
the whole, the answer of Christian, thought somewhat rough, is so appo-
site and conclusive, that it is sufncicnt to fortify every honest and atten-
tive mind against all the arguments, which the whole tribe of time-serv-
ing professors of Christianity ever did, or ever can adduce, in support of
tlieir ingenious schemes and assiduous efforts to reconcile religion with
covetousness and love of the v/crld, or to render it subservient to their
secular interests.
144 The Silver Mine, and Demas.
that plain was a little Hill, called Lucre, and in that Hill u
silver mine, which some of them that had formerly gone that
way, because of the rarity of it, had turned aside to see ; but
going too near the brink of the pit, the ground, being deceitful
under them, broke, and they were slain : some also had been
maimed there, and could not to their dying day be their own
men again, (z)
Then I saw in my dream, that a little off the road, over
against the siver mine, stood Demas, gentleman-like, to call
to passengers to come and see ; who said to Christian and
his fellow% Ho ! turn aside hither, and I will show you a
thing, (a)
(s) When the church enjoys outward peace and prosperity (which has
been generally but for a transient season,) they, who profess the gospel, are
peculiarly exposed to the temptation of seeking -worldly riches and
distinctions ; and many in such circumstances are more dis(;0DCfcrted and
disposed to murmur, if excluded trom sharing these idolized prizes, than
Christians in general appear to have been, under the most cruel persecu-
tions ; when these objects w^ere placed at such a distance as to lose most
of their attractive influence. — But the Hill Lucre, with the silver mine,
is a liilleout of the I'il^^iym's path, evet in times of the greatest outv.ard
rest and security : and s hile those, " who will be rich, fall into temptation
and a snare, and into many foolish and hurtful lusts, which drown men in
destruction and perdition :" others, forgetting that "the love of money is
the root of all evil, having coveted after it, have erred from the Aiith, and
pierced themselves through Vvith many sorrows/'
(«) We know not in what way the love of this present world influenc-
ed Demas to forsake St. Paul ; and it is not agreed wliether he afterward
repented, or whether he was finally an apostate : yet our author is war-
ranted by the general opinion in thus using his name, and afterward ^
joining it with those of Gehazi, Judas, and others, who perished by that
idolatry. The love of money does not always spring from a desire of co-
vetously hoarLiing it : but often from a vain affectation of gentility which
is emphatically implied by the epithet gentleman-like^ bestowed on De-
mas. The connexions that professors form in a day of ease and prosperi-
ty, and the example of the world around them, and even that of numbers
who would bo thought to love the gospel, seduce them insensibly into a
style of living that they cannot afford, in order to avoid the imputation
of being sordid and singular. An increasing family insures additional
expense ; and children 'genteelly educated naturally expect to be provid-
ed for accordingly. Thus debts arc contracted and gradually accumu-
late : it is neither so easy nor reputable to retrench, as it v/as to launch
out: and numerous tempters indiice men thus circumstanced to turn
a*ide to the Hill Lucre; that is, to leave the direct path of probity and
piety, that they may obtain supplies to their urgent and clamorous neces-
sities.— Young persons, when they first set out in life, often lay the foun-
dation for innumerable evils, by vainly emulating the expensive style of
those in the same line of business, or the same rank in the community,
Christianas Inquiry, 1.45
€hr. What things so deserving as to turn us out of the way ?
Demas, Here is a silver mine, and some digging in it for
who are enabled to support such expenses, either by extensive dealings
or unjustifiable means. Many are the bankruptcies, which originate
from this mistaken conduct : and besides this, it is often found, that fair
profits are inadequate to uphold the appearance which was at first need-
lessly assumed ; so that necessity is pleaded for engaging in those branches
of trade, or seizing on those emoluments, which the conduct of worldly
people screen from total scandal, but which are evidently contrary to the
word of God, and the plain rule of exact truth and rectitude ; and which
render their consciences very uneasy. But who can bear the mortifica-
tion of owning himself poorer than he v as thouglit to bo.'' Who dare
risk the consequences of being suspected to be insolvent .'' — In these en-
snaring circumstances, professed Christians, if not powerfully infiueDced
by religious principle?, will be almost sure to embrace Demas's invitation,
along with By-ends, Money-love, and Save-all ; and if they be " not
drowned in destruction and perdition," will " fall into temptation and a
snare, and pierce themselves through with many sorrows." It therefore
is incumbent on every one, well to consider, that it is as unjust to contract
debts for superfluous indulgencies, or to obtain credit by false appearan-
ces of affluence, as it is to defraud by any other imposition : and that this
kind oi dishonesty makes way for innumerable temptations to more din-
graceful species of the same crime : not to speak of its abi-olute incXDusis-
tency with piety and charity.
But none are in this respect so much exposed as ministers and their
families, when, having no private fortune, they are situated among tlie
affluent and genteel : and by yielding to the temptation, they are ofLen
incapacitated from paying their debts with punctuality : they are indu-
ced to degrade their oiTice by stooping to unsuitable methods of extricating
theniielves out of diiTiculties, from which strict frugality would have pre-
served them, and by laying tlicmselves under obligation? to such men as
are capable of abusing their purchased superiority : and, al ovfe"iill,they arc
generally led to place their children in situations and cnnnexicns higlily
unfavourable to the interests of their souls, in order to procure them a gen-
teel provision. If we form our judgement on this subject from the Holy
Scripture, we shall not think of finding the true ministers of Christ among
the higher classes in the community, in matters of external cppearance or
indulgence. That information and learning which many of them have
the opportunity of acquii ing, may render them acceptable company to
the affluent, especially to such as love them for their work's sake ; and
even the exercise of Christian tempers will improve the urbanity acquir-
ed by a liberal education, where faithfulness is not concerned. But if a
minister thinks, that the attention of the great or noble requires him to
copy their expensive style of living, he grievously mistakes the matter. —
For this will generally forfeit the opinion before entertained of his good
sense and regard to propriety : and his o^cm/decli* rations, concerning the
vanity of earthly thhigs, and the Chribtian's indifference to them, will be
suspected of insincerity ; while it is observed, that he conibrms to the
world, ?LS far or even farther than his circumstances will admit : and thw»
respect will often be changed mto disgust. Nay, indeed, the superior
orders in society do not choose to be too closely copied, in those thiogfs
T 13
^ 46 Answered by Demas.
treasure ; if you will come, with a little pains you may richly
provide for yourselves.
Then said Hopeful, Let us go see.
Not I, ^aid Christian, I have heard of this place before now,
and how many have there been slain ; and besides, that trea-
sure is a snare to those that seek it ; for it hindereth them in
their pilgrimage.
Then Christian called to Demas, sa3^ing, is not the way dan-
gerous ? hath it not hindered many in their pilgrimage ?
Demas. Not very dangerous, except to those that are care-
less.— Bnt withal he blushed as he spake.
Then said Christian to Hopeful, let us not stir a step, but
still keep on our way. (6)
which they deem their exclusive privileges ; especially by one who,
(they must think,) secretly depends on them to detray the expense of the
intrusive competition. The consistent minister of Christ will certainly
desire to avoid every thing mean and sordid, and to retrench in every
other way rather than exhibit the appearance of penury : but, provided
he and his family can maintain a decent simplicity, and the credit of pimc-
tuality in his payments, he will not think of aspiiing any higher. If, in
order to do this, he be compelled to exercise considerable self-denial, he
will think little of it, while he looks more to Jesus and his Apostles, than
to the few of a superior rank who profess the gospel: a^id could he afford
Fomething genteel and fashionable, ha would deem it more desirable to
devote a larger portion to pious and charitable uses, than to squander it
in vain affectation. — Perhaps Satan never carried a more important point,
within the visible church, than when the opinion was adopted, that t.'te
clergy were gentlemen byprofcssion; and when he led them to infer Irciii
it, that they and their families ought to live in a genteel and fashiojiabh
style. As the body of the clergy have been mostly but slenderly provid-
ed for : when they were thus taught to imitate the appearance of the af-
fluent, the most effectual step was taken to reduce them to abject depend-
ence ; to convert them into parasites and flatterers ; to render them
very indulgent to the vices of the rich and great ; or even to tompt them
to become the instruments of accomplishing their ambitious or licentious
designs; and no small part of the selfishness and artifices of the clergy,
which are now made a pretext for abolishing the order, and even for re-
nouncing Christianity, have in fact, originated from this fatal mistake.
In proportion as the same principle is adopted by ministers of any descrip-
tion, similar effects will follow ; and a degree of dependence, inconsistent
with unembarrassed faithfulness, must be the consequence : nor can we
in all cases, and v.'ithout respect of persons, "declare the whole counsel
of God/' unless we be willing, if required, to be, and to appear us, the
poor followers of Him " who liad not where to lay his head."
(h) Inexperienced believers are very liable to be seduced by the exam-
ple and persuasions of hypocrites ; and to deviate from the direct path,
in order to obtain worldly advantages, by means that many deem fair
and honourable, fn this case the counsel and vrarnings of an experienc-
ed companion are of the greatest moment.
By-ends and his party perish at the Mine, 147
Hope, I will warrant you when By-ends comes up, if he
hath the same invitation as we, he will turn in thither to see.
Chr. No doubt thereof, for his principles lead him that way,
and a hundred to one but he dies there.
Then Demas called again, saying, But will you not come
over and see ?
Then Christian roundly answered, sayin'g, Demas', thou art
an enemy to the right ways of the Lord of this way, and hast
been already condemned, for thine own turning aside, by one of
his Majesty's Judges ;* and why seekest thou to bring us into
the like condemnation ? Besides, if we at all turn aside, our
Lord the King will certainly hear thereof, and will there put us
to shame, where we would stand with boldness before him.
Demas ^cried again that he also was one of their fraternity ;
and that if they would tarry a, little he also himself would walk
with them.
Then said Christian, What is thy name ? Is it not the same
by the which I have called thee ?
Demas. Yes, my name is Demas : I am the son of Abraham.
Chr, I know you : Gehazi was your great grimdfather,
and Judas your father, and you have trod their steps ; it is
but a devilish prank that thou usest : thy father was hanged for
a traitor, and thou deservest no better reward. t Assure thy-
self that when we come to the King we will tell him of this
thy behaviour. — Thus they went their way.
By this time By-ends and his companions were come again
within sight, and they at the first beck went over to Demas.
Now, whether they fell into the pit by looking over the brink
thereof, or w^hether they went down to dig, or whether they
were smothered in the bottom by the damps that commonly
arise, of these things I am not certain ; but this I observed,
that they never were seen again in the way. — Then sang
Christian : —
' By-ends and silver Demas both agree ;
One calls, the other runs, that he may be
A sharer in his lucre ; so these two
Take up in this -world, and no further go."
Now I saw that, just on the other side of this plain, the
Pilgrims came to a place where stood an old Monument hard
by the highway side, at the sight of which they were both
concerned, because of the strangeness of the form thereof,
* 2 Tim. iv. 10. t 2 Kings v. 20—27. Matt. xxvi. 14, 15. xxvii. 3—5.
1 4E The Momime^itj or Lofs fVife.
for it seemed to them as if it had been a woman transformed
into the shape of a pillar. Here therefore they stood looking
and looking upon it ; but could not for a time tell what they
should make thereof : at last hopeful espied written above
upon the head thereof a writing in an unusual hand ; but he.
being no scholar, called to Christian (for he was learned,) to
see if he could pick out the meaning : so he came, and after a
little laying of letters together, he found the same to be this,
* Remember Lost's wife." So he read it to his fellow ; after
which they both concluded that that was the pillar of salt into
which Lost's wife was turned, for her looking with a covetous
heart when she was going from Sodom.* Which sudden and
amazing sight gave them occasion of this discourse.
Chr. Ah, my brother I this is a seasonable sight : it came
opportunely to us after the invitation which Demas gave us to
come over to view the Hill Lucre ; and had w^e gone over, as
he desired us, and as thou wast inclining to do, my brother we
had, for aught I know, been made ourselves a spectacle for
those that shall come after to behold.
Hope, I am sorry that I was so foolish, and am made to
v/onder that 1 am not now as Lot's w ife ; for wherein was the
difference betwixt her sin and mine ? she only loaked back, and
( had a desire to go see. Let grace be adored, and let me be
ashamed that ever such a thing should be in mine heart.
Chr. Let us take notice of what we see here for our help
for time to come ; this woman escaped one judgment, for she
iell not by the destruction of Sodom ; yet she was destroyed
hy another, as we see, she is turned into a pillar of salt.
Hope. True, and she may be to us both caution and exam-
'jle ; caution, that we should shun her sin ; or a sign of what
judgment will overtake such as shall not be prevented by this
■ aution : so Korah, Dathan, and Abiram, with the two hun-
dred and fifty men that perished in their sin, did also become
a sign or example to others to beware. t But above all, 1 muse
at one thing, to wit, how Demas and his fellows can stand so '
confidently yonder to look for that treasure, which this wo-
man but for looking behind her after, (for we read not that
she stept one foot out of the way,) was turned into a pillar of
salt ; especially since the judgment which overtook her did
make her an example within sight of where they are i for
* Gen. xix. 26. t Num. xxvi. 9, 10.
The River of the Water of Life. 149
they cannot choose but see her, did they but Uft up their
eyes, (c)
Chr, It is a thing to be wondered at, and it argueth that
their heart is grown desperate in that case ; and I cannot tell
whom to compare them to so fitly, as to them that pick pock-
ets in the presence of the judge, or that will cut purses under
the gallows. It is said of the men of Sodom, that " they were
sinners exceedingly," because they were sinners " before the
Lord," that is, in his eye-sight, and notwithstanding the kind-
nesses that he had showed them ; for the land of Sodom was
now like the garden of Eden heretofore.* This therefore
provoked him the more to jealousy, and made their plague as
hot as the fire of the Lord out of heaven could make it. Audit
is most rationally to be concluded, that such, even such as these
are, that shall sin in the sight, yea, and that too in despite, of
such examples that are set continually before them to caution
them to the contrary, must be partal^ers of severest judgments.
Hope, Doubtless thou hast said the truth ; but what a mercy
is it, that neither thou, but especially i, am not made myself
this example ! This ministereth occasion to us to thank Gqd,
to fear before him, and always to " remember Lot's wife."
I saw then, that they went on their way to a pleasant River,
which David the king called *' the River of God ;" but John,
" the River of the water of iife."t Nowt heir way lay just up-
on the bank of the River : here therefore Christian and his com-
panion walked with great delight : they drank also of the water
of the River, which was pleasant and'enliveningto their weary
spirits. Besides, on the banks of this River, on either side,
were green trees for all manner of fruit ; and the leav'es they
* Gen. xiij. 10, 13. t Psa. Ixv. 9. Ezek.xlvii. Rer.xxi. I.
(c) It is indeed most wonderful that men, who profess to believe the
Bible, can so confidently attempt to reconcile the love of the world with
the service of God ; when the instruction?, warnings and ex-araples^in the
sacred volume, which show the fatal consequences of such endeavours,
are so numerous, express, and affecting 1 If Lot's wife, who merely han-
kered after the possessions she had left behind in Sodom, and looked back
with a design of returninof, was made a monument of the Lord's ven-
geance, and a warding to all future ages ; what will be the doom of those
professed Christians, who habitually prefer worldly gain, or the vain
pomp and indulgence that may be purchased with it, to the honour of
Christ, and obedience to his most reasonable commandments.^ The true
cause of this infatuation is here assigned : they ' do not lift up their eyes ;'
and it is to be feared most of them never will, before " they lift them up
in hell, being in torments."
13*
j 60 The Pilgrims being refreshed depart.
ate to prevent surfeits, and other diseases that are incident ta
those that heat their blood by travels. On either side of the
River was also a meadow, curiously beautified with lilies ;
and it was green all the year long. In this meadow they lay
down and slept : for here they might lie down safely.* When
they awoke, they gathered again of the fruit of the trees, and
drank again of the water of the River, and then lay down again
to sleep. Thus they did several days and nights Then they
^-^ng :
' Behold ye how these crystal streams do glide,
To comfort Pilgrims by the highway-side.
The meadows green, besides their fragrant smell,
Yield dainties for them : and he that can tell
What pleasant fruit, yea, leaves these trees do yield,
Will soon sell all that he may buy this field.'
So when they were disposed to go on (for they were not
as yet at their journey's end,) they ate, and drank, and de-
parted, (d)
'■^ Psa. xxiii. Isa. xiv. 30.
(rf) When Abraham had given place to his nephew Lot, and receded
sV(.ra his interest for the credit of his religion, he was immediately favour-
ed with a mott encouraging vision.* Thus the Pilgrims, having been
enabled to resist the temptation to turn aside for lucre, v ere indulged
with more abundant spiritual consolations.t The Holy Spirit, the inex-
haustible source of life, light, holiness and joy, is represented by the
'• River of God ;" even that " River of the water of life, clear as crystal,
;oceeding out of the throne of God and the Lamb."| All believers par-
ike of his sacred influences, which prepare the soul for heavenly felicity,
■?Qd are earnests and pledges of it : but there are seasons when he com-
municates his holy comforts in larger measure; when the Christian sees
such glory in the salvaticm of Christ; so clearly ascertains his interest in
it ; and realizes his obligations and privileges, with such lively exercises
of adoring; love, gratitude and jo)', that he is raised above his darkness
and difficulties; enjoys sweet communion with God; forgets, for the
moment, the pain of former conflicts and tlie prospect of future trials ;
finds his inbred corruptions reduced to a state of subjection, and his mala-
dies healed by lively exercises of faith in the divine Saviour ; and antici-
pates with unspeakable delight the glory that shall be revealed. Then
communion with humble believers, (the lilies that adorn the banks of
the river,) is very pleasant ; and the soul's rest and satisfaction in God
and his service are safe, and his calm confidence is well grounded ; beino*
widely different from every species of carnal security. Had this River
been intended as the emblem of pardon, justification and adoption, as
some understand the passage, it would not have beea thus occasionally
introduced ; for these belong to believers at all times, without any inter-
* Gen. xiii. 14, 18. t Mark x. 23—30. J Rev. xxii. 1..
Rough Road and By-path Meadow. 151
Now I beheld in my dream, that they had not journeyed far
but the River and the way for a time parted ; at which they
were not a httle sorry, yet they durst not go out of the way*
Now the way from the River was rough, and their feet tender
by reason of their travels : so '* the souls of the Pilgrims w^ere
much discouraged because of the way."* Wherefore, still as
they went on, they wished for better way. Now a little be-
fore them, there was on the left hand of the road a Meadow, and
a stile to go over into it ; and that Meadow is called By-path
meadow. Then said Christian to his fellow. If this Meadow
lieth along by our way-side let's go over into it. Then he
went to the stile to see, and behold a path lay along by the
way on the other side of the fence. 'Tis according to my
wish, said Christian, here is the easiest going ; come, good
Hopeful, and let us go over, (e)
* Num. xxi. 4.
ruption or variation : but the more abundant consolations of the Spirit
are not vouchsafed in the same manner, and on them the actual enjoy-
ment of our privileges in a great measure depends.
(e) Believers, even when in the path of duty, walking by faith, and
supported by the sanctifying influences of the Spirit, may be abridged of
those holy consolations which they have experienced : and if this trial be
accompanied with temporal losses, poverty, sickness, the unkindness of
friends or ill usage from the world, they may be greatly discouraged; and
Satan may have a special advantage in tempting them to discontent, dis-
trust, envy or coveting. Thus, being more disposed to ' wish for a better
way,' than to pray earnestly for an increase of faith and patience, they
are tempted to look out for some method of declining the cross, or shifting
the difficulty which wearies them : nor will it be long before some expe-
dient for a temporary relief will be suggested. The path of duty being
rough, a by-path is discovered whfch seems to lead the same way : but, if
they will thus turn aside, though they need not break through a hedge,
they must go over a stile. The commandments of God mark out the
path of holiness and safety : but a deviation from the exact strictness of
them may sometimes be plausible, and circumstances may seem to invite
to it. Men imagine some providential interposition, giving ease to the
weary ; and they think that the precept may be interpreted v/ith some
latitude, that prudence should be exercised, and that scrupulousness about
little things is a mark of legality or superstition. Thus by " leaning to
their own understandings," and '^ trusting in their own hearts," in-
stead of asking counsel of the lord, they hearken to the tempter. Nor
is it uncommon for Christians of deeper experience, and more established
reputation to mislead their juniors, by turning aside from the direct line
of obedience. For the Lord leaves them to themselves, to repress their
self-confidence, and keep them entirely dependent on him ; and thus
teaches young converts to follow no man further than he follows Christ.
1 52 The Pilgrims turn aside,
Hope. But how if this path should lead us out of the way ?
That's not Uke, said the other. Look, doth it not go along
by the way-side ? — So Hopeful being persuaded by his fellow,
"went after him over the stile. When they were gone over,
and were got into the path, they found it very easy for their
feet ; and, withal, they looking before them espied a man
walking as they did, and his name was Vain-confidence : so
they called after him and asked him whither that way led ?
He said, to the Celestial Gate. ' Look,' said Christian, ' did
not I tell you so ? by this you may see we are right.' So they
followed, and he went before them. B"ut behold the night
came on, and it grew very dark ; so that they that were be-
hind lost the jight of him that went before. (/)
He therefore that went before, (Vain-confidence by name,)
not seeing the w^ay before him, fell into a deep pit,* which
was on purpose there miide by the prince of those grounds to
catch vainglorious fools withal, and was dashed in pieces with
his fall, (g)
Now Christian and his fellow heard him fall : so they called
to know the matter ; but there was none to answer, only they
"^ Isa. ix. 16.
(f) It would not be politic in Satan to tempt believers at first to fla-
grant crimes, at which their hearts revolt : and therefore he endeavours
to drav/ them aside, under various pretences, into such plausible devia-
tions as seem to be of no bad repute or material consequence. But every
wrong step makes way for further temptations, and serves to render other
sins apparently necessary : and if it be a deliberate violation of the least
precept in the smallest instance, from carnal motives, it involves such self-
will, unbelief, ingratitude, and worldly idolatry, as will most certainly ex-
pose the believer to sharp rebukes and painful corrections. The example
also of vain pretenders to religion, of whom perhaps, at the first interview,
too favourable r.n opinion has been formed, helps to increase the confi-
dence of him who has departed from the path of obedience : for these
men often express the strongest assurance, and venture to violate the pre-
cepts of Christ, under pretence of honouring his free grace, and knowing
their liberty and privilege I But darkness must soon envelope all who fol-
low such guides, and the most extreme distress and danger are directly in
the way they take.
(g) This circumstance may represent- the salutary effects which are
sometimes produced on offending believers, by the awful death of some
vainglorious hypocrite, to whom they have given too much attention.
The Lord, however, will in one way or other deliver his servants from
the temporary prevalence of vain-confidence ; while presumptuous trans-
gressors perish in the pit of darkness and despair.
A7id are in Banger^ and Alarmed. 153
heard a groaning. Then said Hopeful, Where are we now ?
Then was his fellow silent, as mistrusting that he had led hmi
out of the way ; and now it began to rain, and thunder and
lighten, in a very dreadful manner ; and the water rose
amain, (/i)
Then hopeful groaned in himself, saying, * O that I had
kept on my way V
Chr, Who. could have thought that this path should have
led us out of the way ?
Hope, 1 was afraid of it at the very first, and therefore gave
you that gentle caution. I would have spoken plainer, but
that you are older than I.
Chr. Good brother, be not offended, I am sorry I have
brought thee out of the way, and that I have put thee into such
imminent danger : pray, my brother, forgive me ; I did not do
it of an evil intent.
Hope, Be coniforted, my brother, for I forgive thee j and
believe, too, that this shall be for our good.
Chr. I am glad I have with me a merciful brother : but we
must not stand thus ; let us try to go back again.
Hope. But, good brother, let me go before.
Chr. No, if you please, let me go first, that if there be any
danger 1 may be first therein ; because by my means we are
both gone out of the way. (i)
No, said Hopeful, you shall not go first ; for your mind be-
ing troubled may lead you out of the way again. — Then, for
their encouragement, they heard the Toice of one saying,
" Let thine heart be towards the highway ; even the way that
thou wentest turn again."* But by this time the waters were
greatly risen, by reason of which the way of goina: back was
* Jcr. xxxi. 21.
(/i) The holy law condemns every transgression : when the Christian,
therefore, has fallen into wilful sin, he is often led to fear that his faith is
dead, that he is still under the law, ^nd that his person as well as his con-
duct is liable to its righteous condemnation. I'hus he is brought back
again, as it were, to the tempest, thunder and lightning of mount Sinai.
(i) This dialogue is very n.itm;tT ^n^l instriirtiyp, and exhibits that
spirit of mutual tenderness, forbearance, and sympathy, which becomes
Christians in such perplexing circumstances. They, who have misled
others into sin, should not only ask forgiveness of God, but of them also ;
and they who have been drawn aside by the example and persuasion of
their brethren, should be careful not to upbraid or discourage them, when
they become sensible of their fault.
w
154 Giant Despair finds the Pilgrims,
very dangerous. (Then I thought that it is easier going out
of the way when we are in, than going in when we are out.)
Yet they adventured to go back ; but it was so dark, and the
flood was so high, that in their going back they had hke to
have been drowned, nine or ten times, (k)
. Neither could they, with all the skill they had, get a^ain to
the stile that night. Wherefore at last, lighting under a little
shelter, they sat down there till the day brake ; but being
weary they fell asleep. Now there was not far from the place
where they lay, a Castle, called Doubting-Castle, the owner
whereof was Giant Despair : and it was in his grounds they
now were sleeping. Wherefore, he getting up in the morning
early, and walking up and down in his fields, caught Christian
and Hopeful asleep in his grounds. Then with a grim and
surly voice he bid them awake, and asked them whence they
were, and what they did in his grounds ? They told him they
were Pilgrims, and that they had lost their way. Then said
the Giant, You have this night trespassed on me by trampling
in, and lying on, my ground, and therefore you must go along
with me. So they were forced to go, because he was stronger
than they. They also had but little to say, for they knew
themselves in a fault. The Giant, therefore, drove them be-
fore him, and put them into his Castle into a very dark dun-
(fc) When such as have turned aside are called upon in Scripture to re-
tura to God and his ways, the exhortation implies a promise of accept-
ance to all who comply with it, and may be considered as immediately
addressed to every one with whose character and situation it corresponds.
It might be thought, indeed, that an experienced believer, when convinced
of any sin, would find little diificulty in returning to his duty and recover-
ing his peace. But a deliberate transgression, however trivial it might
seem at the moment, appears upon the retrospect to be an act of most un-
grateful and aggravated rebellion ; so that it brmgs such darkness upon
the soul, and guilt on the conscience, as frequently causes a man to sus-
pect that all liis religion has been a delusion. And, when he would at-
tempt to set out aneAV, it occurs to him, that all his past endeavours and
expectations, for many years, have been frustrated, he can entertain little
hope of bettor success hereafter ; as he knows not how to use other mean!»,
or greater earnestness, than he has already employed, as he fears, to no
purpose. Nor will Satan ever fail, in these circumstances, to pour in such
suggestions as may overwhelm the soul with an apprehension that the
case is hopeless, and God inexorable. The believer will not, indeed, be
prevailed upon by these discouragements wholly to neglect all attempts to
recover his ground : but he often resembles a man who is groping in the
dark and cannot find his way, or who is passing through a deep and rapid
stream, and struggling hard to keep his head above water.
^nd shuts them up in Doubting-Castle. tlb
georij nasty and stinking to the spirits of these two men. (J)
Here then they lay, from Wednesday morning till Saturday
f/) When David had fallen into the depths of sin and distress, he cried
most earnestly to the Lord ; and Jonah did the same in the fish's belly.
Extraordinary cases require singular diligence ; even as greater exertion
is necessary to get out of a pit than to walk upon level ground. When
believers, therefore, have brought themselves, by transgressions, into great
terror and anguish of conscience, it is foolish to expect that God will
" restore to them th€ joy of his salvation,'' till they have made the most
unreserved confessions of their guilt : humbly deprecated his deserved
Avrath in persevering prayer, and used peculiar diligence in every thing
that accompanies repentance and faith in Christ; and tends to greater
watchfulness, circumspection, and self-denial. But they often seek re-
lief in a more compendious way : and, as they do not wholly omit their
customary religious exercises, or vindicate and repeat their transgressions;
they endravour to quiet themselves by general notions of the mercy of
God through Jesus Christ, and the security of the new covenant ; and the
storm in their consciences subsiding, they ' find a little shelter,' and •"• wait
for a more convenient opportunity" of recovering their former life and
vigour in religion. Inieed the very circumstances which should excite
us to peculiar earnestness, tend, through the depravity of our nature, to
blind and stupify the heart : Peter and the other disciples "slept for sor-
row," when they were more ej'pecially required " to watch and pray, that
they might not enter into temptation." Siuch repeated sins and mistakes
bring believers into deep distresses. Growing more and more heartless
in religion, and insensible in a mo&t perilous situation, they are led hahiiu-
ally to infer that they are hypocrites ; that the encouragements of Scrip-
ture belong not to them ; that prayer itself will be of no use to them : and,
when they are at length brought to reflection, they are taken prisoners by
Despair, and shut up in Doubting-Castle. This case should be carefully
distinguished from Christian's terror* in the City of Destruction, which
induced him to " flee from the wrath to come ;" from the Slough of De-
spond, into which he fell when diligently seeking salvation ; from the
burden he carried to the cross ; from his conflict with Apollyon, and his
troubles in the Valley of the Shadow of Death ; and even from the ter-
rors that seized him and Hopeful in By-path-meadow, which would have
speedily terminated if they had not slept on forbidden ground, and stopped
short of the refuge the Lord hath provided. — Despair, like a tremendous
giant, will at last seize on the souls of all unbelievers : and when Chris-
tians conclude, from some aggravated and pertinacious misconduct, that
they belong to that company, even their acquaintance with the Scripture
will expose them to be taken captive by him. They do not indeed fall
and perish with Vain-confidence : but for a season they fmd it impossible
to rise superior to prevailing gloomy doubts bordering on despair, or to
obtain the least comfortable hope of deliverance, or encouragement to use
the proper means of seeking it. Whenever we deliberately quit tlie plain
path of duty, to avoid hardship and self-denial, we trespass on Giant De-
spair's grounds ; and are never out of his reach till renewed exercises of
deep repentance and faith in Christ, producing unreserved obedience,
especially in that injtance where before we refused it, have set our feet
lo6 Giant Despair heats the Pilgrims,
Mght, without one bit of bread, or drop of drink, or light, or
any to ask how they did : they were therefore, here in evil
case, and were far from friends and acquaintance.* Now in
this place Christian had double sorrow, because it was through
his unadvised haste that they Vv^ere brought into this distress. (m)
Now Giant Despair had a wife, and her name was Diffidence :
so when he was gone to bed, he told his wife what he had done ;
to wit, that he had taken a couple of prisoners, and cast them
into his dugeon for trespassing on his grounds. Then he ask-
ed her also what he had best do further to them ? So she ask-
ed what they were, whence they came, and whither they
were bound ? and he told her. Then she counselled him that
Avhen he arose in the morning he should beat them without
* Psa. Ixxx. viii.
in the highway we had forsaken. This w^ cannot attain to, wiLhosjtthe
special ^race of God, which he may not see ^ood immediately to commu-
nicate ; in the mean time every effort must be accompanied with dis-
couragement and distress : but if, instead of persevering:, amidst our
anxious fears to cry to him for help, and wait his time of showing mercy ;
we endeavour to bolster up some false comldence, and take shelter in a
refuge of lies, the event will be such as is here described. It will be m
vain, after such jierverscness, to pretend that we have iuadveitently mis-
taken our way : '^ our own hearts will condemn us ;" how then can "we
have confidence toward God, who is greater than our hearts, and knoweth
all things ?"' the grim Giant will prove too strong for us, and shut us uj)
in his noiaoiiie dungeon, and the recollection of our former hopes and
comforts will only serve to aggravate our wo. — These lines are iiere in-
serted : —
' The Pilgrims now, to gratify the flesh,
Will seek its ease, but, oh I how they afresh
Do thereby plunge themselves new griefs into I
Who seek to please the flesh themselves undo.'
(m) Perhaps the exact time, from Wednesday morning till Saturday
night, was mentioned, under the idea that it was as long as life can srene-
rally be supported in such a situation. The believer may be brought
by wilful sin to such a condition that, to his own apDrehension, de-
struction is inexntable. Even a true Christian may sink so low as tn
have no light or comfort from the Scriptures and the Holy Spirit ;
nothing to sustain his almost expiring faith and hope ; no heli) or pity
from his brethren, but severe censures or more painful suspicions ; the
horror? of an accusing consci-^^nce, the dread of God as an enemy, con-
n^^cted with sharp and multiplied corrections in his outward cirf;um?tan-
ces ; and all thi? as the price of the ease or indulgence obtained by some
wilful trnnsgrcssion ! Now who that reallt/ believes this, will take encou-
ragement to sin from the doctrine of final perseverance ? VV'onld a man, for
a trivial gain, leap down a precij)ice, even if he could be sure that he
should escape with his life? No, the dread of the anguish of broken bone?,
and of being made a cripple to the end of his days, would eflectually cun
him from such a madness.
1
And urges them to Suicide, 1 57
nny mercy. So when he arose he getteth a grievous crab-
tree cudgel, and goes down into the dungeon to them, and
there first falls to rating them as if they were dogs, although they
gave him never a word of distaste : then he falls upon them,
and beat them fearfully, in such sort as they were not able to
help themselves, or to turn them upon the floor. This done
he withdraws, and leaves them there to condole their misery,
and to mourn under their distress : so all that day they spent
the time in nothing but sighs and bitter lamentations. The
next night she talked with her husband about them further,
and understanding that they were yet alive, did advise him to
counsel them to make away with themselves : so when morning
was come he goes to them in a surly manner, and, perceiving
them to be very sore with the stripes that he had given them
the day before, he told them that, since they were never like
to come out of that place, their only way would be forthwith to
make an end of themselves, either with knife, halter, or poi-
son : for why, said he, should you choose life, seeing it is at-
tended with so much bitterness ? But they desired him to let
them go ; with that he looked ugly upon them, and rushing to
them, had doubtless made an end of them himself, but that he
fell into one of his fits, (for he sometimes fell into fits,) and
lost for a time the use oi his hand. Wherefore he withdrew,
and left them as before to consider what to do. (71) Then did
the prisoners consult between themselves whether it was best
to take his counsel or no ; and thus they began to discourse :
(71) Despair seldom fjlly seizes any man in this world ; and the strono:-
est hold it can g;et of a true believer amounts only to a prevailing^ distrust
of God's promises, with respect to his own case : for this is accompanied by
some small degree of latent hope, discoverable in its effects, though unper-
ceived amidst the distressing feelings of the heart. Perhaps this was in-
tended in the allegory by the circumstance of Despair's doing nothing to
the Pilgrims, save at the instance of his wife Diffidence. Desponding
fears, when they so prevail as to keep men from prayer, make way for
temptations to suicide, as the only relief from misery : but when there is
any true faith, however it may seem wholly out of exercise, the tempta-
tion will be eventually overcome, provided actual insanity do not inter-
vene ; and this is a very uncommon case among religious people, what-
ever slanders their enemies may circulate, in order to prejudice men's
minds against the truth. — Most, if not all, modern editions read, *for he
sometimes in sun-shiny weather fell into fits :' but the words in sun-shiny
weather^ are not in the old edition before me. If the author afterward
added them ; he probably intended to represent those transient glimpses
of hope, which preser^-^e believers from dire extremities in their most ftiS'
couraged seasons.
U
1 58 HopefuVs arguments against Suicide.
Brother, said Christian, what shall we do ? The life that we
now live is miserable ! for my part, I know not whether is
best, to live thus, or die out of hand ; *' my soul chooseth
strangling rather than life,"* and the grave is more easy for me
than this dungeon ! Shall we be ruled by the Giant ?
Hope. Indeed our present condition is dreadful, and death
would be far more welcome to me than thus forever to abide :
but yet let us consider, the Lord of the country to which we are,
going hath said, " Thou shalt do no murder ;" no, not to ano-
ther man's person ; much more then are we forbidden to take
his counsel to kill ourselves. Besides, he that kills another
can but commit murder upon his body : but, for one to kill
himself, is to kill body and soul at once. And moreover, my
brother, thou talkest of ease in the grave, but hast thou for-
gotten the hell whither for certain the murderers go ? for " no
murderer hath eternal life,'^ &c. And let us consider again,
that all the law is not in the hand of Giant Despair : others, so
far as I can understand, have been taken by him as well as we,
and yet have escaped out of his hands. Who know^s, but that
God, that made the w^orld, may cause that Gi:int Despair may
die, or that, at some time or other, he may forget to lock us
in ; or that he m.ay in a short time have another of his fits be-
fore us, and may lose the use of his limbs? and if ever that
should come to pass again, for my part, I am resolved to pluck
up the heart of a man, and to try my utmost to get from under
his hand. I w^as a fool that 1 did not try to do it before : but
however, my brother, let us be patient, and endure a while :
the time may come that may give us a happy release : but let
us not be our own murderers. With these words Hopeful at
present did moder-^te the mind of his brother ; so they conti-
nued together, in the dark, that day in their sad and doleful con-
dition, (o)
* Job vii. 15.
(o) They, who have long walked with stable peace in the ways of God,
are often known to be more dejected, when sin hath filled their consciences
with remorse, than younger professers are ; especially if they have caused
others to offend, or brought reproach on the orospcl. Their recent con-
duct, as inconsistent with their former character and profes-sion, seems a
decided proof of self-deception ; they deem it hopeless to be°:in all over
asfain ; Satan endeavours to the utmost to dishearten new converts by
their example; and the Lord permits them to bt overwhelmed for a time
with discouragement, for a warning to others ; to vindicate the honour of
his truth which they have disgraced-, to counterpoise such attainmepls
The Giant fiercely threatens them* 1 59
Well, towards evening the Giant goes down into the dungeon
again to see if his prisoners had tiken his counsel : but when
he came there he found them ahve, and, truly, alive was all.
For now, what for want of bread and water, and by reason of
the wounds they received when he beat them, they could do
little but breathe. But, I say he found them alive ; at which
he fell into a grievous rage, and told them that, seeing they
had disobeyed his counsel, it should be worse with them than
if they had never been born.
At this they trembled greatly, and I think that Christian fell
into a swoon ; but coming a little to himself again, they renew-
ed their discourse about the Giants's counsel, and whether yet
they had best take it or no. Now Christian again seemed to be
for doing it, but Hopeful made his second reply as followeth.
My brother, said he, rememberest thou not how valiant thou
hast been heretofore ? Apollyon could not crush thee ; nor
could all that thou didst hear, or see, or feel, in the Valley
of the Shadow of Death ; what hardship, terror, and amaze-
ment hast thou already gone through, and art thou now no -
thing but fear? Thou seest that I am in the dungeon with thee,
a far weaker man by nature than thou art ; also this Giant has
wounded me as well as thee, and hath also cut ofif the bread
and water from my mouth, and with thee I mourn without the
light. But let us exercise a little more patience : remember
how thou playedst the man at Vanit}'-F air, and was neither
afraid of the chain or cage, nor yet of bloody death : where-
fore let us, at \edst to avoid the shame that becomes not a
Christian to be found in, bear up with patience as well as we
can. (p)
or services, as might otb^^rwise " exalt them above measure ;" and to show
that none has any stren^jth independent of Him, and that he can make use
of the feeble to assist the strong, when he sees g:ood. — HopefuFs arj^uments
against self-murder are conclusive : doubtless men in general venture on
that awful crime, either dishelievms: or forgetting the doctrine of Scrip-
ture concernm'4 a future and eternal state of retribution. It is greatly to
be wished, that all serious person? would avoid speaking of self-murderers,
as having j9w/ an end to their exisicnce ; \ hich certainly tends to mj'slead
the mind of the tempted, into very err<.neou3 apprehensions on this most
important subject. — This discourse aptly represents the fluctuation of
men's minds under great despondency ; their struggles against despair,
with purposes at some future opportunity to seek deliverance ; their pre-
sent resolution ; and the way in which feeble hopes, and strong fears of
future wrath keep them from yieldmg to the suggestions of the enemy.
(}») Serious recollection of past conflicts, dangeis, and deliverances, h
160 The GianVs Wife counsels him concerning the Pilg
Now night being cDme again, and the Giant and his wife be-
ing in bed, she asked him concerning the prisoners, and if they
had taken his counsel : — to which he rephed, ' They are stur-
dy rogues, they choose rather to bear sl\ hardships than to
make away with themselves.' Then said she, ' Take them into
the Castle-yard to-morrow, and show them the bones and skulls
of those that thou hast already despatched, and make them
believe, ere a week comes to an end, thou also wilt tear them
in pieces, as thou hast done their fellows before them." (9)
So when the morning was come the Giant goes to them
again, and takes them into the Castle-yard, and shows them as
his wife had bidden him : these, said he, were Pilgrims, as you
are, once, and they trespassed in my grounds, as you have
done ; and whea I thought fit I tore them in pieces, and so
within ten days I will do you : go get you down into your den
again. — And with that he beat them all the way thither. They
lay therefore all day on Saturday in a lamentable case, as
before. Now, when night was come, and when Mrs. Diffi-
dence and her husband the Giant were got to bed, they began
to renew their discourse of their prisoners ; and, withal, the
old Giant wondered that he could neither by his blows nor
counsel bring them to an end. And with that his wife replied,
I fear, said she, that they live in hopes, that some will come
to relieve them, or that they have picklocks about them, by
the means of which they hope to escape. And sayest thou so,
peculiarly useful to encourage confidence in the power and mercy of God,
and patient waiting for him im the most difficult and perilous situations :
and conference with our brethren, even if they too are under similar trials,
is a very important mean of resisting the devil, when he would tempt us
to renounce our hope, and have recourse to desperate measures.
{q) The Scripture exhibits some examples of apostates who have died
in despair, (as king Saul and Judas Iscariot;) and several intimations are
given of those, to whom nothing " remains but a certain fearful looking
for of judgment and fiery indignation.'* A few instances also have been
recorded in different ages, of notorious apostates, who have died m blas-
phemous rage and despair. These accord to the man in the iron cage at
the house of the Interpreter, and are awful warnings to all professors,
'' while they think they stand, to take heed lest they fall." But the hy-
pocrite generally overlooks the solemn caution ; and the humble Chris-
tian, having a tender conscience, and an acquaintance with the deceitful-
ness of his own heart, is very apt to consider his wilful transgression as the
unpardonable sin, and to fear, lest the doom of former apostates wi^ at
length be his own. This seems intended, by the Giant showing the
Pilgrims the bones of those he had slain, in order to induce them to self-
murder.
The Pilgrims begin to pray, and are released, 161
my dear ? said the Giant ; I will therefore search them in the
morning.
Well, on Saturday about midnight they began to pray, and
continued in prayer till almost break of day (r)
Now a little before it was day, good Christian, as one half
amazed, brake out in this passionate speech : ' What a fool,'
quoth he, 'am I, thus to lie in a stinking dungeon when I may
as well walk at liberty ! I hive a key in my bosom called
Promise, that will, I am persuaded, open any lock in Doubting-
Castle.' Then said Hopeful, ' That's good news, good bro-
ther, pluck it out of thy bosom and try.'
Then Christian pulled it out of his boeom, and begaii to try
at the dungeon door ; whose bolt as he turned the key gave
back, and the door flew open with ease, and Christian and
Hopeful both came out. Then he went to the outer door that
led into the Castle-yard, and with this key opened that door also.
Afterward he went to the iron-gate, for that must be opened
too, but that lock went extremely hard ; yet the key did open
it. Then they thrust open the gate to make their esbape with
(r) Perhaps the author selected ' Saturday at midnight' for the precise
time when the prisoners began to pray, in orJer to intimate, that the re-
turn of the Ijord's day, and that preparation which serious persons are re-
minded to make for its sacrsd service?, are often the happy means of reco-
vering those that have far^n into sin and despondency. — Nothing will be
effectual for the recoverins:; of the fallen, till th^y ' begin to pray' with fer-
Tcncy, importunity, and perseverance. Ordinary diligence will in this
case be unavailing : they have sought ease to the flesh, when they ought
to have " watched unto prayer ;" and they must qow watch and pray when
others sleep : and they must struggle against reluctancy, and persist in re-
peated approaches to the mercy-sea<., till they obtain a gracious answer.—
But such is our nature and situation, that in proportion as we have spe-
cial need for earnestness in these devout exercises, our hearts are averse
to them. The child, while obedient, anticipates the pleasure of meeting
his affectionate parent ; but, when conscious of having offended, he, from
shame, fear, and pride, hides himself, and keeps at a distance. Thus un-
belief, guilt, and a proud aversion to unreserved self-abasement, wrought
©nby Satan's temptations, keep even the believer, when he has fallen into
any aggravated sin, from coming to his only Friend, and availing himself
of his sole remedy : " He keeps silence, though his bones wax old with his
roaring all the day long.''* But when stoutness of spirit is broken down,
and a contrite believing frame of mmd succeeds, the offender begins to
cry fervently to God for mercy, with humiliating confess^jons, renewed ap-
plication to the blood of Christ, and perseverance amidst delays and dis-
couragements : and then it will not be very long; ere he obtain complet*
delivwance.
* Psa. xxxii. 3 — 5.
X 14*
^ Q2 The Delectable MotmtainS'
speed, but that gate, as it opened, made such a creaking that it
waked Giant Despair, who hastily rising to pursue his pri-
soners felt his limbs to fail, so that he could by no means go af-
ter them. Then they went on, and came to the King's high-
way again, and so were safe because they were out of his ju-
risdiction.
Now, v;hen they were gone over the stile, they began to
contrive with themselves what they should do at that stile, to
prevent those that should come after from failing into the
hand of Giant Despair. So they consented to erect there a pil-
lar, and to engrave on the side thereof, ' Over this stile is the
way to Doubting-Castle, which is kept by Giant Despair, who
despiseth the King of the Celestial Country, and seeks to de-
stroy h:^ holy Pilgriifis.' Many therefore that followed after
read whvit was written, and escaped the danger, (s)
This, done, they sang as follows :
' Out of the way v/e went, and then -we found
What 'twas to tread upon fnrtidden ground ;
And let them that come after have a care
Ledt heedlessness make them as we to fare,
Lest they, for trespassing, his prisoners are
Whose Castle's Doubting, and whose name'? Despair.'
They went then till they came to the Delectable JVIountnins,
which mountains belong to the Lord of that Hill of which we
(s) The promise of eternal life, to every one without exception, v/ho
believeth in Christ, is especially intended by the key; but without ex-
cluding any other cf '^ the exceeding great and precious promises" of tha
gospel. The believer, being enabled to recollect such as peculiarly suit
* his case, and conscious of cordially desiring the promised blessings, has the
* key in his bosom, which will open any icck in Doubting-Castle :' and
while he pleads the promises in faith, depending on the merits and atone-
ments of Emmanuel, " as coming to God through him ;" he gradually re-
sumes his confidence, and begins to wonder at his past despondency. Yet
remains of unbelief, recollection of his aggravated guilt, and fear lest he
should pre!5 lime, often render it difficult for him entirely to dismiss dis-
couraging dovibts. — Bat let it especially be noted that the faith which de-
livered the Pilgrims from Giant Despair's castle, induced them v/ithout de-
lay to return into the highway of obedience, and to walk in it with m ore
circumspection than before, no more complaining of its roughness ; and to
devise every method of cautioning others against passing over the stile
into By-path-meadow. Whereas a dead faith and a vain confidence keep
out all doubts and fears, even on forbidden ground, and under tlie wails of
Despair's castla ; till at length the poor deluded wretch is unexpectedly
and irresistibly seized upon, and made his prey. And if Christians follow
Vain-confidence, and endeavour to keep up their hopes when neglecting
I'he Pilgrims converse with the Shepherds, 163
have spoken before : so they went up to the mountains, to be-
hold the gardens and orchards, the vineyards and fountains of
water; where also they drank, and washed themselves, and
did freely eat of the vineyards. Now there was on the tops of
these mountains Shepherds feeding their flocks, and they stood
by the highway side. The Pilgrims therefore went to them,
and leaning upon their staves (as is common with weary Pil-
grims when they stand to talk with any by the way) they ask-
ed, ' Whose Delectable Mountains are these ? and whose be
the sheep that feed upon them ?'
Shep. These mountains are Emmanuel's Land, and they are
within sight of his City ; and the sheep also are his, and he
laid down his life for them, (t)
their known duty; let them remember, that, (whatever some men may
} retend,) they will surely be thus brought acquainted with Diffidence,
immured in Doubting-Castle, and terribly bruised and frighted by Giant
Despair ; nor will they be delivered till they have learned, by painful ex-
perience, that the assurance of hope is inseparably connected with the
self-denying obedience of faith and love.
(/) When oflfending Christians are brought to deep repentance, renew-
ed exercises of lively faith, and willing obedience in those self-denying
iluties which they had declined, the Lord '•• restores them the joy of his
salvation,'' and their former comforts become more abundant and perma-
nent.— The Delectable Mountains seem intended to represent those calm
seasons of peace and comfort, which consistent believers often experience
in their old age. They have survived, in a considerable degree, the ve-.
hemence of their youthful passions, and have honourably performed their
parts, in the active scenes of life : they are established, by long experi*-
Rnce, in the*simplicity of dependence and obedience : the Lord graciously
exempts them from peculiar trials and temptations : their acquaintance
with the ministers and people of God is enlarged, and they possess the re-
spect, confidence, and affection of many esteemed friends : they have much
leisure for communion with God, and the immediate exercises of religion :
and they often converse with their brethren on the loving kindness and
truth of the Lord till " their hearts burn within them." Thus Meaning
on their staves,' depending on the promises and perfections of God in as-
sured faith and hope, they anticipate their future happiness " with joy un-
speakable and full of glory." — These things are represented under a va-
riety of external images, according to the nature of an allegory. — The
Shepherds and their flocks denote the more extensive acquaintance of
many aged Christians with the Ministers and Churches of Christ, the
Chief Shepherd, " who laid down his life for the sheep." — This is ' Em-
manuePs land ;' for, being detached from worldly engagements and con-
nexions, they now spend their time almost wholly among the subjects of
tlie Prince of Peace, and as in his more especial presence.
TJie following lines are added here, as before : —
^ Mountains delectable they now ascend.
Where Shepherds be, which to them do commend
164 The Karnes of the Shepherds,
•■k
Chr. Is iHis the wiy to the Celestial City ?
Shep. You ar? just in your way.
* Chr. How fl^r is it thither ?
Shep. Too icx for any but those that shall get thither in^
deed, {ji)
Chr. is the way safe or dangerous ?
Shep. Safe for those for whom it is to be safe ; " but trans-
gresi Ji's shaU fdll therein."*
Chr. Is there in this place any relief for Pilgrims that are
weary and faint in the way ?
Shep. The Lord of these Mountains hath given us a charge
" not to be forgetful to entertain strangers ;"t therefore the
good of tlie place is before you.
I saw hIso in my dream, that, when the Shepherds perceiv-
ed that they were wayfaring men, they also put questions to
them, (to which they made answer, as in other places ;) as,
When<;2 came you ? and how got you into the way ? and by
what means have you so persevered therein ? for but few of
them that begin to come hitlier do show their face on this
Mountain. ButA^'hen the Shepherds heard their answer, be-
ing pleased therewith, they looked very lovingly upon them
and said, ' Welcome to the Delectable Mountains.'
The Shepherds, I say, whose names were Knowledge, Ex-
perience, Watchful, and Sincere, (w) took them by the hand,
* Hos. xiv. 9. t Heb. xiii. 1, 2.
Alluring things, and things that cautions are :
Piigriins are steady kept by faith and fear."*
(w) The certainty of the final perseverance of true believers is con-
Vinually exemplified in their actually persevering, notwithstanding all ima-
ginable inward and outvv^ard impediments. Many hold the doctrine who
are not interested in the priviliBge ; and whose conduct eventually proves
that they " had no root in themseh^es :"'* but the true believer acquires
new strength by his very trials and mistakes, and possesses increasing evi-
dence that the new covenant is made with him; for, " having obtained
help of God," he still "continues in Christ's word," and *^ abides in him :"
and. while temptations, persecutions, heresies, and afflictions, which stum-
ble transgressors and detect hypocrites, tend to quicken, humble, sanctify,
and establish him ; he may assin-edly conclude, that "he shall be kept by
the power of God, through faith, unto salvation."
I {ic) These names imply mach nsefi.l instruction, both to Ministers and
Christians, by showing them what endowments are most essential to the
pastoral office. — The attention given to preachers should not be propor-
tioned to the degree of their confidence, vehemence, accomplishments,
* 1 John, ii. 19.
Mai slain by a Fall from Mount Error. 165
ard had ihem to their tents, and made them partake of that
nhic'i was ready at present. They said, moreover. We would
that you should stay here a while, to be acquainted with us, and
yet more to solace yourselves with the good of these Delecta-
ble Mountains. They told them that they were content to
stay : and so they went to their rest that night, because it was
very late.
Then [ saw in my dream, that in the morning the Shep-
herds called to Christian and Hopeful to walk with them upon
the Mountains : so they went forth with them, and walked u
while, having a pleasant prospect on every side.
Then said the Shepherds one to another, Shall we show
these Pilgrims some wonders ! So, when they had concluded
to do it, they had them first to the top of a Hill, called Error,
which was very steep on the furtherest side, and bid them
look down to the bottom. So Christian and Hopeful looked
down, and saw at the bottom several men dashed all to pieces
by a fall that they had from the top. Then said Christian,
What meaneth this ? The Shepherds answered. Have you not
heard of them that were made to err, by hearkening to Hy-
meneus and Philetus,* as concerning the faith of the resurrec-
tion of the body ? They answered, Yes. Then said the Shep-
herds, Those that you see lie dashed in pieces at the bottom
of this Mountain are they ; and they have continued to this
day unburied, as you see, for an example to others to take heed
how they clamber too high, or how they come too near thi)
brink of this Mountain, (x)
* Tim. ii. 17, 18.
graceful delivery, eloquence, or politeness ; but to iha.t of their knowledge
of the Scriptures, and of every subject that relates to the glory of God and
the salvation of souls ; their experience of the power of divine truth in
their own hearts, of the faithfulness of God to his promises, of the believ-
fir's conflicts, difficulties, and dangers, and of the manifold devices of Satan
to mislead, deceive, pervert, defile, or harass the souls of men ; their watch-
fulness over the people, as their constant business and unremitted care, to
caution them against every snare, and to recover them out of every error
into which they may be betrayed ; and their sincerity^ as manifested by a
disinterested, unambitious, unassuming, patient, and affectionate conduct ;
by proving that they deem themselves bound to practise their own in-
structions, and by a uniform attempt to convince the people, that they
*' seek not their's but them.''''
{x) Human nature always verges to extremes. In former times the
least deviation from an established system of doctrine was reprobated as a
damnable heresy ; and some persons, even at this day, tacitly laying claim
to iafjillibility, deem every variation from their standard an error, and
i66 Men Blinded hy Giant Despair,
Then I saw that they had them to the top of another Mouii-
tain, and the name of that is Caution, and bid them look afar
off : which when they did, ^noy perceived, as they thought,
several men walking up and Jown among the tombs that were
there : and they per'^ -ived that the men were biind, because
they stumbled somei^mes upon the tombs, and because they
could not get out fr';in among them. Then said Christian,
What means this ?
The Shepherds tlicn t.n&wered, Did you not see a little
below these Mount^ns a Stil-3 that leads into a Meadow on the
left hand of this w.;y ? They answered, Yes. Then said the
Shepherds, From that Stil? there goes a pUh that leads direct-
ly to Doubting-Cattle, vliich is kept by Giant Despair : and
these men (pointing to ti^em among the tombs) came once on
pilgrimage, as you do now, even till they came to that same
Stile. And, bee lUse the right way was rough in that place,
every error inconsi-tent ■with true piety. But the absurdity and bad ef-
fects of this I ig-otry having f;eea discovered and expoced, it has become
far more comu.oD .o consici- r iudiiferonce alout theological truth, as es-
sential to cando'jr and lir;e aiity of sentinient ; and to vilify, as narrow-
minded bigots, all .vho -^ cot;tend earnestly ior the faith once delivered to
the saints,'' however averae they may be to persecution, or disposed to
benevolence toVv'^.-ds such as differ from them. Thus the great end for
which prophets aud apc>>Jes were inspired, martyrs shed their blood, and
the Son of GoJ h.mself :ame into the world and died on the cross, is pro-
nounced a matter of no moment I revelation i-e virtuallv rejected ! (fo'r wc
may know, w J; out the i>ible, that men ou2:ht to be sober, honest, sincere,
and benevolent :) and tiose prhiciplcb, from which pU genuine hohness
must arise, ar^ contemned as eiithusiasm and foolishness ! Some errors
may indeed c«. isist W)l»i true faith : (for who will say that he is in nothing
mistaken .'') yet no error is absolutely harmless ; all must, in one way or
other, originate from a wrong state of mmd or a faulty conduct, and pro-
portionably c mntcrac' the uesign of revelation : and some are absolutely
inconsistent wiih repe.:tance, humility, faith, hope, love, spiritual worship,
and holy obcd cnce, and consequently mcompatible with a state of ac-
ceptance and salvation. These are represented by ' the hill Error,' and a
scriptural specimen h adduced. Professed Christians fall into delusions
by in iulging self-conceit, vain-glory, nnd curiosity ; by " leaning to their
own understandings, ' and ''•intruding info the things they have not seen,
vainly puffed -p by their fleshly m.nd,'' and by speculating on subjects
which are too deep for them. For t^"i fruit o" '' the tree of knowledge,"
in respect of religioi?? o unions not exurccsly revealed, is scill forbidden ;
and men vainly thinking it " good for food, and a tree to be desired to make
one wise ;" L.ii desiritig •'•to be as g<-'J'»," understan-Ung and accounting
for every thing; {&}'• into destructive heresies, do immense mischief, and
become awful esainples for the warning of their contemporaries and sue-
By-way to HelL I It^
they chose to go out of it into that Meadow, and there w^re
taken by Giant Despair, and cast into Doubting-Castle ; where
after they had a while been kept in the dungeon, he at last did
put out their eyes, and led them among those tombs, where he
has left them to wander to this very day, that the saying of the
wise man might be fulfilled, '* He that wandereth out of the
way of understanding, shall remain in the congregation of the
dead."* Then Christian and Hopeful looked upon one an-
other, with tears gushing out, but yet said nothing to the Shep-
h cards. (?/)
Then 1 saw in my dream, that the Shepherds had them to
another place in a bottom, where was a door, in the side of a
jiill, and they opened the door and bid them look in. They
looked in, therefore, and saw that within it was very dark
and smoky ; they also thought that they heard a rumbling
noise, as of tire, and a cry of some tormented ; and that they
smelt the scent of brimstone. Then said Christian, What
means this ? The Shepherds told them. This is a by-way to
hell, a way that hypocrites go in at : namely, such as sell their
birthright, with Esau ; such as sell their Master, with Judas ;
ifuch as blaspheme the gospel, with Alexrinder ; and that lie
and dissemble, with Ananias and Sapphira his wife.
Then said Hopeful to the Shepherds, I perceive that these
had on them, even every one, a show of pilgrimage, as we
have now, had they not ?
• Shep. Yes, and held it a long time too.
Hope. How far might they go on in pilgrimage in their days,
since they notwithstanding were thus miserably cast away ?
* Prov. xxi 16.
(j/) Many professors, turning aside from the line of conscientious obedi-
ence to escape difficulties, experience great distress of mind ; which not
being able to endure, they desperately endeavour to disbelieve or pervert
all they have learned concerning religion : thus they are blinded by Sa-
tan through their despondings, and are given over to strong delusions, as
the just punishment of their wickedness."^ Notwithstanding their prc-
fossion, and the hopes long formed of them, they return to the company
of those v/ho are dead in sin, and buried in worldly pursuits; differing
from them merely in a few speculative notions, and being far more hope-
less than they. This is not only the case with many, at the first begin-
ning of a religious profession, as of Pliable at the Slough of Despond, but
with some at every stage of the journey. Such examples may very pro-
perly demand our tears of godly sorrow and fervent gratitude ; when we
reflect on our own misconduct, and the loving kindness of the Lord, who
hath made us to differ, by first implanting, and then preserving, faith ia
our hearts.
* 2 Thes. ii. U— 13.
168 Titt Hill Clear,
Shep. Some farther, and some not so far as these Mountains.
Then said the Pilgrims one to another, We had need cry to
the strong for strength.
Shep. Ah, and you will have need to use it when you have
it, too. {z)
By this time the Pilgrims had a desire to go forwards, and
the Shepherds a desire they should ; so they walked together
towards the end of the Mountains. Then said the Shepherds
one to another. Let us here show to the pilgrims the gates of
the Celestial City, if they have skill to look through our per-
spective glass. The Pilgrims then lovingly accepted the mo-
on : so they had them to the top of a high Hill, called Clear,
and gave them their glass to look.
Then they essayed to look, but the remembrance of that
last thing that the Shepherds had showed them made their hands
shake ; («) by means of which impediment they could not
look steadily through the glass ; yet they thought they saw
something like the Gate, and also some of the glory of the
place.
' Thus by the Shepherds secrets are reveal'd,
"Which from all other men are kept conceal'd :
Come to the Shepherds then, if you would see
Things deep, things hid, and that mysterious be.'
When they w^ere about to depart, one of the Shepherds gave
(z) No man can see the heart of another, or certainly know him to be a ,
true believer : it is, therefore, proper to warn the most approved persons,
" while they think they stand, to take heed lest they fall." Such cau-
tions, with the diligence, self-examination, watchfulness and prayer which
tliey excite, are the means of perseverance and establishment to the up-
right.— An event may be certain in itself, and yet inseparable from the
method in which it is to be accomplished f^ and it may appear very un-
certain to the persons concerned, especially if they yield to remissness ;t
so that prayer to the Almighty God for strength, with continual watch-
fulness and attention to every part of practical religion, is absolutely ne-
cessary to " the full assurance of hope unto the end.":(:
(a) Such is the infirmity of our nature, even when in a measure reno-
vated, that it is almost impossible for us vigorously to exercise one holy
ajTection, without failing in some other. When we confide in God, with
assured faith and hope, we commonly are defective in reverence, humili-
ty, aud caution : on the other hand, a jealousy of ourselves, and a saluta-
ly fear of coming short or drawing back, generally weaken confidence in
God, and interfere with a joyful anticipation of our future inheritance.
But, notwithstanding this deduction, through our remaining unbelief, such
experiences are very advantageous. — "Be not high-minded, but fear:"'
for '•' blessed is he that feareth always."
* Actji xxvii. S2~31. t 1 Pet. iv. 18. % Heb. vi. 10—12.
Jl Youifinamed Ignorance. 16.9
>them A note of the 'way. Another of them bid them Beware of
the Flatterer. The third bid them Take heed that they sleep
not upon the enchanted Ground, And the fourth bid them God
speed. So I awoke from my dream.
And I slept and dreamed again, and saw the same two Pil-
grims going down the Mountains along the highwny towards
the City. Now a little below these Mountains on the left hand
lieth the Country of Conceit, from w^hich Country there comes
into the way in which the Pilgrims walked a little crooked
lane. Here therefore they met with a very brisk lad that
came out of that Country, and his name was Ignorance, (b)
So Christian asked him from what parts he came, and whither
he was going ?
(6) Multitudes of ig^norant persons entirely disregard God and religion ;
and others have a show of piety, which is grave, reserved, austere, dis-
tant, and connected with contemptuous enmity to evangelical truth. But
there are some persons of a sprightly disposition, who are more conceited
and vainglorious than haughty and arrogant : who think well of them-
selves, and presume on the good opinion of their acquaintance ; who are
open and communicative, though they expose their ignorance continually :
who fancy themselves very religious, and expect to be thought so by
others ; who are willing to associate with evangelical professors, as if they
all meant the same thing ; and who do not express contempt or enmity,
unless urged to it in self-defence. This description of men seems to be
represented by the character next introduced, about which the author has
repeatedly be^^towed much pains. Christian had soon done with Obsti-
nate and Worldly-wise-man : for such men, being outrageous against the
gospel, shun all intercourse with established believers, and little can be
Cone to warn or undeceive them : but brisk, conceited, shallow persons,
who are ambitious of being thought religious, are shaken off with great
diificulty ; and tiiey are continually found among the hearers of the gospel.
They often intrude themselves at the most sacred ordinances, when they
have it in tiieir power ; and sometimes are favourably thought of, till fur-
ther acquaintance proves their entire ignorance. — Pride, in one form or
another, is the universal fault of human nature ; but the frivolous vain-
glory of empty-talkers differs exceedingly from the arrogance and formal
felf-importance of Scribes and Pharisees, and arises from a different con-
stitution and education, and other habits and associations. This is the
Town of Conceit, where Ignorance resided. A lively disposition, a weak
capacity, a coni'usea judgment, the want^of information about religion and
almost every other subject, a proportionable blindness to all these defects,
and a pert forward self-sufficiency, are the prominent features in this
portrait : and if a full purse, secular influence, the ability of conferring
favours, and the power to excite fears, be added, the whole receives its
highest fiuishing. With these observations on this peculiar character,
and a few hints as we proceed, the plain language of the author o-a tliii
Eubject will be perfectly intelligible to the attentive reader.
Y 16
1 70, Christian discourses tvitJi Igno7*anc:e,
Ignor. Sir, I was bom in the Country that lieth off there a
little to the left hand, and I am going to the Celestial City.
Chr. Bat how do j^ou think to get in at the Gate ? for you
may find some difficulty there.
' As other goo 1 people do,' said he.
Chr. But what have you to show at that Gate, that may
cause that the Gate should be opened to you ?
Ignor. I know my Lord's will, and have been a good liver :
I pay every man his own ; 1 pray, fast, pay tithes, and give
alms, and have left my Country for whither I am going.
Chr. But thou earnest not in at the Wicket-gate that is at
the head of this way ; thou c '.mest in hither through that same
crooked lane ; and therefore I fear, however thou mayest
think of thyself, when the reckoning-day shall come, thou wilt
have laid to thy ch trge that thou art a thief and a robber, in-
steatl of getting admittance into the City.
Ignor. Gentlemen, ye be utter strangers to me, I know you
not ; be content to follow the religion of your Country, and I
will follow the religion of mine. I hope all will be well. And,
as for the Gate that you talk of, all the world knows that that
is a great way off of our Country. I cannot think that any
man in all our prirts doth so much as know the way to it, nor
need they mntter whether they do or no ; since we have, as
you see, a fine pleasant green lane that comes down from our
Country the next way into it.
When Christian saw that the man was wise in his own con-
ceit, he said to i Jopoful whisperingly, " There is more hopes
of a fool than of him ;"* and said, moreover, " When he that
is a fool walketh by the w ly, his wisdom faileth him, and he
saith to ev3ry one that he is a fool."t What, shall we talk
farther with him, or outgo him at present, and so leave him to
think of what he hath heard already, and then stop again for
him afterward, anri see if by degrees we can do any good of
him ? Then said Hopeful,
* Let Ignorance a little while now mnse
On what is said, and let him not refuse
Good coi.risel to embrace, lest he remain
Still ignorant of what's the chicfest :;ain.
God saith, tnosc that no understandmg have,
Although 113 made them, them he will not save.'
He further added, It is not good, I think, to say all to him at
* Prov. xxvi. 12. t Eccles. x. 3.
Tum-away carried offhy Devils^ 17.1
once ; let us pass him by, if you will, and talk to him anoi^,
even as he is " able to bear it." (c)
So they both went on, and Ignorance he came after. Now
when they had passed him a little way they entered into a very
dark lane, .where they met a man whom seven devils had bound
with seven strong cords, and were carrying of him back to the
door that they saw on the side of the hill.* Now good Chris-
tian began to tremble, and so did Hopeful his companion ; yet
as the devils led away the man, Christitn looked to see if he
knew him ; and he thought it might be one Turn-away that
dwelt in the Town of Apostasy. But he did not p'jrfectly see
his face, for he did hang his he 'd like a thief that is found.
But being gone past, Hopeful looked after him, and spied on
his back a paper with this inscription, ' Wanton professor and
damnable apostate.' (c?)
Then said Christian to his fellow. Now I c:dl to remembrance
that which was told me, of a thing that happened to a good man
hereabout. The name of the man was Little-faith ; but a
good man, and he dwelt in the Town of Sincere. The thing
was this : — at the enterino; in at this passige, there comes
down from Broad- way Gate a lane called Dend-man's-lane ; so
called, because of the murders that are commonly done there ;
* Matt. xii. 45.. Pro v. v. 22.
(c) It is best not to converse much at once with persons of this charac-
ter : but after a few warnin;r3 to leav(^ thenri to their reflections : for their
scl f-conceit is often cherished by allercations, in which they deem them-
selves very expert, however disg^ustin^ their discourse may prove to
others. "*"
(d) The dark lane seeras to mean a season of prevalent impiety, and of
great aff.iction to the people of God. — Here the impartial author takes
occasion to contrast the character of fgnorance x^itl? ihat oi Turn-away.
Loose evangelical professors look doMm with buperciijous disdain on those
who do not understand the doctrines of gfiace ; and think themselv<°s more
enli2;htentd, and better /acquainted with the b erly of the ;;ospel, than
more practical Christians : but in dark times wanton professors often turn
out damnable apostates^ and the detection of th-ir ?jypocrisy makos them
ashamed to show their faces among those believers, over whom *hey be-
fore affected a kind of superiority. When con^ ictir.as subside, and Christ
has not set up his kinj^dom in the heart, the "nelean spirit resumes his
former habitation, and " takes to him?elf seven othor spii-its more wicked
than hiu-self," who bind the poor wretch faster than ever in the cords of
sin and delusion ; so that his last state is more hopeless than the first.
Such apostasies, raakp the hearts of the upright to tremMe ; but a recol-
lection of the nature of Turn-away 's profession and coniidence giadually
removes their difficulties, and they recover their hope, and learn to take
heed to themselves.
i 72 Christian relates how Little-faith was robbed,
and this Little-faith going on pilgrimage, as we do now, chanced
to sit down there and slept ; now there happened at that time
to come down the lane from Broad-way Gate three sturdy
rogues, and their names were Faint-heart, Mistrust, and Guilt,
three brothers ; and they, espying Little-faith where he was,
came galloping up mth speed. Now the good man was just
awaked from his sleep, and was getting up to go on his journey.
So they came up all to him, and with threatening language
bid him stand. At this Little-faith looked as white as a clout
and had neither power to fight nor flee. Then said Faint-
heart, ' Deliver thy purse ;' but he making no haste to do it,
(for he was loth to lose his money,) Mistrust ran up to him, and
thrusting his hand into his pocket pulled out thence a bag of
silver. Then he cried out ' Thieves ! thieves 1' With that Guilt,
with a great club that was in his hrmd, struck Little-faith on the
s^head, and with that blow felled him flat to the ground, where
he lay bleeding as one that would bleed to death, (e) All this
while the thieves stood by. But at last, they hearing that
some were upon the road, and fearing lest it should be one
Great-grac?, that dwells in the city of Good-confidence, they
belook thi'rnselves to their heels, and left this good man to
shift for himself (/) Now after a while Little-faith came to
(k) The ensuing episode concerning L'ttle-faith was evidently intendetl
to prevent w "ak Christians being dismayed by the awful things spoken of
hypocrites and api>3tates. In times of persecution, many who seemed to
be religious, openly return into the broad way to destruction ; and thus
Satan murders the souls of men, by threatening to kill tiieir bodies. This
is Dead-mau's-lane, leading V^ack to Broad -way-gate. All true believers
are indeed preserved from drawing back to perdition : but the weak in
faith, being ,3,int-h-arted^ and mistrusting the promises and faithfulness of
God, are beti ayed into sinful com].>liances or negligences ; they lie down
to sleep when they have special need to watch and be sober ; they con-
ceal or perhaps deny their profsssioxj, are timid and negligent in duty; or
in other respects act contrary to their consciences, and thus contract g-itzV/.
So that Faint-heart threatens and assaults them ; Mistrust plunders them;
and Guilt beats them down, and makes them almost despair of life. As
the robbery v/as committed in the Hark lane before mentioned, this seems
to have been the author's precise meaning: but any unbelieving fears,
that induce men to neglect the means of grace, or to adopt sinful expedi-
ents of s'*curiug themselves, which on the review bring guilt and terror to
their consciences, may also be intended.
(/) As these robbers represent the inward effects of unbelief and diso-
bedience, and not any outward enemies. Great-grace may be the emblem
of those believers or ministers, who, having honourably stood their ground,
rideavoar to restore the fallen in the spirit of meeloiess, by suitable en-
ouragements. The compassionate exhortations or honourable examples
He preserves his Jecseu and Certijicate, 173
himself, and getting up, made shift to scrabble on his way.
This was the story.
Hope. But did they take from him all that ever he had 1
Chr, No : the place where his Jewels were, they never
ransacked : so those he kept still. But, as I was told, the
good man was much afflicted ibr his loss ; for the thieves got
most of his spending money. That which they got not, as I
said, were Jewels ; also he had a little odd money left, but
scarce enough to bring him to his journey's end ;* nay, if I was
not misinformed, he was forced to beg as he went, to keep him-
self alive, (for his Jewels he might not sell.) But beg and do
what he could, * he went away,' as wo say, ' with many a hun-
gry belly,' the most part of the rest of the way.
Hope. But is it not a wonder they got not from him his cer-
tificate, by which he was to receive his admittance at the Ce-
lestial Gate ?
Chr. it is a wonder : but they got not thj.t : though they
missed it not through any good cunning of his ; for he, being
dismayed v/ith their coming upon him, had neither power nor
skill to hide any thing, so it was more by good Providence than
by his endeavour that they missed of that good thing.j
Hope. But it must needs be a comfort to him that they got
not his Jewels fronl him.
Chr» It might have been great comfort to him, had he used
it as he should : hut they that told mc the story said that he
made but little use of it all the rest of the ^^ay ; and that, be-
cause of the dismay that he had in taking away his money.
Indeed he forgot it a great part of the rest of his journey ; and
besides, when at any time it came into his mind, ivA he began
to be comforted therewith, then would fr-^sh thoughts of his
loss come again upon him, and those thoughts would swallow up
all.
Hope. Alas, poor man ! this could not but be a great grief
unto him !
Chr. Grief! ay, a grief indeed. Would it not have been so
to any of us, had we been used as he, to be robbed and wound-
* Pet. iv. 18. t 2 Tim. i. 14. 2 Pet. ii. 9. '
of such eminent Christians keep the failed from entire dt spondency, and
both tend to bring them to repentance, and to inspire them when peni-
tent, and trembling at i\vi word o. God, with ?ome hope oi finding mercy
and grace in this time of ur^nt need ; which ^eems to be allegorically
represented by the flight of i^ robber^, when they heard that Great-grace
was on the road. %'^
15*
1 74 The JVature of Little faith'' s Jewels.
ed too, and that in a strange place, as he was ? It is a wonder
he did not di3 with grief, poor heart! I was told that he scat-
^tered almost all the rest of the way with nothing but doleful
and bitter complaints : telling also to all that overtook him, or
that he overtook, in the way as he went, where he was robbed,
arid how ; and who they were that did it, and what he lost ;
how he was wounded, and that he hardly escaped with
life, (g)
Hope. But it is a wonder that his necessity did not put him
npon selling or pawning some of his Jewels, that he might have
herewith to relieve himself in his journey.
Chr, Thou tdkestlike one upon whose head is the shell to
this very day ; for what should he pawn them ? or to whom
should he sell them ? In all that country where he was rob-
bed his Jewels were not accounted of ; nor did he want that
relief which could from thence be administered to him. Be-
sides, had his Jewels been missing at the Gate of the Ce-
!o?ti;d City, he had (-md that he knew well enough,) been ex-
ided from an inheritance there, and that would have been
rse to him than the appearance and villany of ten thousand
Tteves."
Hope, Why art thou so tart, my brother ? Esau sold his
birthright, and that for a mess of pottage ;* and that birth-
•'^ht was his greatest Jewel : and, if he, why might not Little-
. th do so too ?
CJir. Esau did sell his birthright indeed, and so do many
bssides, and by so doing exclude themselves from the chief
blessing ; as also that caitiff did : but you must put a difference
betwixt Esau and Little-faith, and also betwixt their estates.
* Heb. xii. 16.
(g) The believer's union with Christ, and the sanctification of the Spi-
% sealing his acceptance and renderinj^ him meet for heaven, are his in-
jlaable and unalienable jewels. But he may by sin lose his comfort?,
and not be able to perceive the evidences of his own safety : and even
\vhen again ena-bled to hope that it will be well with him in the event ;
he may be so harassed by the recollection ot the loss he has sustamed,
the effects of his misconduct on others, and the obstructions he hath *hrown
in the way of his own comfort and usefulness, that his future life may be
rendered a constant scene of disquietuie and painful reflections. Thus
the doctrine of the believer's final perseverance is both maintained and
Sfuarded from abuse : and it is not owing to a man's own care, but to the
Lord's free marcy, powerful interpoEition, and the engagements of the new
covenant, that unbelief and guilt do not rob him of his title to heaven, as
11 as of his comfort and coniidcncc.
Hie difference between him and Esau. 175
Esau's birthright was typical, but Little-faith's Jewels were
not so. Ksau's belly was his God, but Little-faith's belly was
not so. Esau's want lay in his fleshly appetite, Little-faith's
did not so. Besides, Esau could see no further than to the
faltilling of his lusts : " For 1 am at the point to die," said
he, *' and what good will this birthright do me ?"t But Little-
faith, though it was his lot to have but a little faith, was by his
little faith kept from such extravagances, and made to see and
prize his Jewels ihore than to sell them as Esau did his birth-
right. You read not any where that Esau had faith, no not so
much as a little ; therefore no marvel, if where the flesh only
bears sway, (as it will in that man where no faith is to resist,) if
he sells his birthright, and his soul and all, and that to the devil
of hell : for it is with such as it is with the ass, " who in her
occasions cannot be turned away :"* when their minds are set
upon their lusts, they will have them, whatever they cost. But
Little-faith was of another temper, his mind was on things di-
vine ; his livelihood was upon things that were spiritual and
from above ; therefore, to what end should he that is of such
a temper sell his Jewels ; (had there been any that would, have
bought them,) to fill his mind with empty things ? Will a man
give a penny to fill his belly with hay ? or can you persuade
the turtle-dove to live upon carrion like the crow ? Though
faithless ones can, for carnal lusts, pawn, or mortgage, or sell
what they have, and themselves outright to boot ; yet they that
have faith, saving faith, though but little of it, cannot do so.
Here, therefore, my brother, is thy mistake, (/i)
Hope. I acknowledge it ; but yet your severe reflection had
almost made me angry.
Chr, Why ? I did but compare thee to some of the birds that
are of the iDrisker sort, who will run to and fro in trodden
paths with the shell upon their heads :— but pass by that, and
consider the matter under debate, and all shall be well betwixt
thee and me.
Hope. But, Christian, these three fellows, I am persuaded
in my heart, are but a company of cowards : would they have
run else, think you, as they did, at the noise of one that was
* Jer. ii. 24.
(Ji) Many professors^ meeting with discouragements, give np their reli-
gion for the sake of this present world : but, if any thence argue, that true
believers will coj>y their example, they show that they are neither well
established in judgment, nor deeply acquainted with the nature of the di-
vine life, or the objects of its supreme desires and peculiar fears.
1 76 2'ke Rollers not easily resisted,
coming on the road ? Why di-i not Little-faith pluck up a
greater heart ? he might, methmks, have stood one brush with
them, ind have yielded when there had been no remedy.
Chr. That they are cowar -s, many have said, but few liave
found it so in the time oj triiil. As for a great heart, Little-
faith had none ; and 1 perceive by thee, my brother, hadst thou
been the man concerm d, thou ^rt but for a brush, and then to
yield. And verily, since this is the height of thy stomach
now they are at a distjmce from us ; should they appear
to thee, as they did to him, they might put thee to second
thoughts.
But consider again, they are but journeymen thieves, they
serve under the king of the bottomless pit ; who, if need be, will
come in to theii aid himself, nA his voice is as the roaring of
a lion. *" I myself have been engaged as this Little-faith was ;
and i found it a terrible thing. 1 hese three villains set upon
me, and 1 beginning like a Christian to resist, they gave but a
call, and in came their master : I would, as the saying is, have
'j:iven my life for a penny ; but that, ' ds God would have it, I
v.as clothed with armour of proof. Ay, and yet, though I was
-0 harnessed, I found it hard work to quit myself like a man :
i;0 man can tell what in that combat attends us, but he that hath
been in the battle himself.
Hope, Well but they ran, you see, when they did but sup
pose that one Great-grace was in the way.
Chr. True, they have often fled, both they and their mas-
ter, when Great-grace hith appv-ared ; and no marvel, for he
is the King's Champion : but, ! trow, you will put some differ-
ence between Little-faith and the King's Champion. All the
King's subjects are not his Champions ; nor can they, when
tried, do such feats of war as he. Is it meet to think that a
little child should handle Goliath as David did ? or that there
should be the strength of an ox in a wren ? Some are strong,
some are weak ; some have great f tith, some have little ;
this man was one of the weak, and therefore he went to the
wall.
Hope. [ would it had b^en Gre .t-gr.ice for their sakes.
Chr, If it had been he, he might h^ive had his hands full :
for I must tell you that, though Great-grace is excellent good
at his weapons, and has, and can, so long as he keeps them at
sword's point, do well enough with them ; yet if they get with-
♦ 1 Pet. V. 8.
Great-grace sorely pressed by the Robbers, 111
m liim, even Faint-heart, Mistrust, or the other, it shall go
hard but they will throw up his heels : and when a man is
down, you know, what can he do ?
Whoso looks well upon Great-grace's face, shall see those
scars and cuts there that shall easily give demonstration of
what I say. Yea, once I heard he should say, (and that when
he was in the combat,) " We despaired even of life." How
did these sturdy rogues and their fellows make David groan,
mourn, and roar ? Yea, Heman and Hezekiah too. though
Champions in their day, were forced to bestir them when
by these assaulted ; and yet, notwithstanding, they had their
coats soundly brushed by them. Peter, upon a time, would
go try what he could do ; but though some do say of him that
he is the Prince of the Apostles, they handled him so that they
made him at last afraid of a sorry girl.
Besides, their king is at their whistle ; he is never out of
hearing ; and if at any time they be put to the worst, he, if
possible, comes in to help them : and of him it is said, '* The
sword of hirii that layeth at him cannot hold ; the spear, the
dart, nor the habergeon ; he esteemeth iron as straw, and
brass as rotten wood : the arrow cannot make him flee, sling-
stones are turned with him into stubble ; darts are counted as
stubble ; he laugheth at the shaking of a spear."* What can
a man do in this case ? It is true, if a man could at every turn
have Job's horse, and had skill and courage to ride him, he
might do notable things ; for *' His neck is clothed with thun-
der ; he will not be afraid as the grasshopper ; the glory of his
noistrils is terrible ; he paweth in the valley, and rejoiceth ia
his strength ; he goeth on to meet the armed men : he mock-
eth at fear, and is not affrighted, neither turneth he back from
the sword : the quiver rattleth against him, the glittering spear
and the shield : he swallovveth the ground with fierceness and
rage, neither believeth he that it is the sound of the trumpet.
He saith among the trumpets, Ha, ha ; and he smelleih the
battle afar off, the thunder of the captains, and the shouting."!
But for such footmen as thee and 1 are, let us never desire
to meet with an enemy ; nor vaunt as if we could do better,
when we hear of others that they have been foiled ; nor be
tickled at the thoughts of our own manhood, for such common-
ly come by the worst when tried. Witness Peter, of whom I
made mention before, he would swagger, ay, he would ; he
would, as his vain mind prompted him to say, do better, and
Z * Job xli. 26—29. - t Job xxxix. 19—25.
178 Shield of Faith, the only security against Rohhen,
stand more for his Master than all men ; but who so foiled and
run down by these villains as he ?
When therefore we hear that such robberies are done on
the King's highway, two things become us to do: first, to go out
harnessed, and to be sure to take a shield with us ; for it was
for want of that, that he that laid so lustily at Leviathan could
not make him yield ; for, indeed, if that be wanted . he fer.rs
us not at all. Therefore he th.it hnd skill h;ith said, " Above
all, take the shield of faith, wherewith ye shall be able to
quench all the fiery darts of the wicked."* (i)
It is good also that we desire of the King a convoy, yea, that
he will go with us himself. This made David rejoice v.hen in
the Valley of the Sh ..iow of Doath ; and Moses was rather
for dying where he stood than to go one step without his God.t
O my brother, if hi will but i^o along with us, what need
we be afraid often thousand that shall set themselves against
us ? but without him the proud helpers fall under the
slain.J (k)
* Eph. Ti. 16. t Exod. xxxiii. 15. if Psa. iii. 5— 8. xxvii. 1—3. I-a. x. 4.
(i) Young converts often view temptations, conflicts, and persecutions,
in a very diflfereut lii^ht than experienced believers do. VVarra with z.^al,
and full of confidence, which they ima:,'ine to be wholly genuine, and
knowing comparatively little of their own hearts, or the nat ire of the
Christian conflict, they resemble new recruits, who are apt to boast ^v^mt
•eat thin^rs they will do : b it the old di-ciple, thouL'h much stronger in
ath, and possessing habitually more vigour of holy affection, knows him-
self too well to boast, and «"a!vs With modesty of the past, and diffidence
of the future ; like the veteran soldier, of approved valour, who has often
been in actual service — They, who have boasted bpforehaud what they
Vrould <lo.aiid suffer, rather than deny the faith, have generally either
proved apostates, or been taught their veakuess by painful experience.
\ad when a real believer has thus falJen, Ihe recollection of past boast-
t ',.=? adds to hi? remorse and terror; and S.itan will attempt to drive bina
io despair : so that, indeed, '•no i 'an can tell whnt in such a combat at-
ten.ls us, but he t'lat has been in the battle himself — Even thev, who
■.vsre mo=t remarkable i(»^ strength of faith, have often been overcome
J the hour of temi>ration ; and, when guilt got within them, they found
: no easy matter to recover their hope and comfort : how then can the
^veak in faith be expect>>d to overcome in such circumstances ? The ac-
r ommodatum of the par^^ages from Job to this conflict, seems merely intend-
d to lmi>!y, that the assaults of Satan on these occa'-ions, are more terri-
lo tiian any thing in the visible or -ation can be : and that every possi-
!;!e advantage V ill be ne^'dfiil in order fo withstand in the evil day.
Qc) Instead of saying, "though all men deny thee, yst will not I," it
behoves us to use all means of grace diligently ; and to b^ instant in
prayer, that the Lord himself mav rotect us by his pov/er, and animate
us by his presence ; and then only shall we be enabled to overcome both
the fear of man, and the temptations of the devil.
Hie Ptlgnms taken in Flatterer^ s Ket. 179
1, for my part, have been in the fray before now ; and
though, through the goodness of Him that is best, I am, as you see,
ahve, yet I cannot boast of my manhood. Glad shall I be if I
meet with no more such brunts ; though 1 fear we are not got
beyond all danger. However, since the lion and the bear
have not as yet devoured me, 1 hope God will also deliver us
from the next uncircumcised Philistine.
* Poor Little-faith I hast been among the thieves r
Wast robb'd ? remember this, w'joso believes,
And get more faith ; then shall yoa victors be
Over ten thousand, else scarce over three.'
So they went on, and Ignorar.ce followed. They went
then till thoy came at a place where they saw a Way put itself
into their Way, and seemed withal to lie as straight js the Way
which they should go ; and here they knew not which of the
two to take, for botli seemed straight before them : therefore
here they stood still to consider. And ;;s they were thinking
about the way, behold a man of black flesh, but covered with
a very light robe, came to them, and asked them why they
stood there ? They answered they were going to the Celes-
tial City, but knew not which of these ways to take. * Follow
me,' said the man, * it is thither th it 1 am going.' So they fol-
lowed him in the Way that but now came into the road, which
by degrees turned, and turned them to from the City that they
desired to go to, that in a little time their faces were turned
away from it : — ^yet they followed him. But by and by, before
they were aware, he led them both within the compass of a
net, in which they were both so entangled, that they knew not
what to do ; and with that the white robe fell off the black
man's back : — then they saw where they were. Wherefore
there they lay crying some time, for they could not get them-
selves out.
Then said Christian to his fellow. Now do I see myself in an
error. Did not the Shepherds bid us beware of the Flatter-
er ? As is the saying of the wise man, so we have found it this
day, *' A man that fiattereth his neighbour spreadeth a net for
his feet."*
Hope. They also gave u? a note of directions about the way,
for our more sure finding thereof; but therein we have also
forgotten to read, and have not kept ourselves from " the
* Vtqx. xxiv. 5.
180 The Shilling One chastises the Pilgrtms,
paths of the destroyer." Here David was wiser than we ; for
saith he, '* concerning the works of men, by the word of thy
lips I have kept me from the paths of the destroyer."! Thus
they lay bewailing themselves in the net. At last they espied
a Shining One coming towards them with a whip of small cord
in his hand. When he v/as come to the place where they were,
he asked them whence they came, and what they did there ?
They told him that they were poor Pilgrims going to Zion, but
were led out of their way by a black man clothed in white, who
bid us, said they, follow him, for he was going thither too.
Then said he with a whip, It is Flatterer, *' a false apostle, that
hath transformed himself into an angel of light."J So he rent the
net, and let the men out. Then s.ad he to them, Follow, me,
that I may set you in your way again : — so iw led them back to
the way which they had left to follow the Flatterer. Then he
asked them, saying. Where did you lie the last night ? They
said, with the Shepherds upon the Delectable Mountains. He
asked them then, if they had not of them Shepherds a note of
direction for the way ? They answered, Yes. But did you,
said he, when you were at a stand, pluck out and read your
note ? They answered, No. He asked them, Why ? They
said, They forgot. He asked, moreover, if the Shepherds did
not bid them beware of the Flatterer ? They answered. Yes ;
but we did not imagine, said they, that this fine-spoken man
had been he. J
Then I saw in my dream that he commanded them to lie
down ;§ which when they did, he chastised them sore, to
^each them the good way wherein they should walk :!1 and as
lie chastised them, he said, " As m.-ny as I love, I rebuke
iuid chasten ; be zealous, therefore, and repent."1F This done,
he bids them go on their way, and take good heed to the other
directions of the Shepherds. So they thanked him for all his
kindness, and went softly along the right way, singing:
' Come hither, you that walk along the way,
See how the Pilgrims fare that go astray :
They cutched are in an entangling net, '
'Cause they good counsel lightly did forget :
""Y'xs true, they rescu'd were, but yet, you see.
They're scourg'd to boot : let this your caution be.' (J)
* Psa. xvii. 4. t Cor. xi. 13, 14. Dan. xi. 32. ^ Rom. xvi. 17, 18.
5 Deut. xxix. 2. || 2 Chron. vi. 26, 27. If Rev. iii. 19.
(/) This Way, which seemed as straight as the right Hay^ and in enter-
ing on which there was no Stilt to climb over, must denote some very plan-
One coming to meet the Pilgrims, 181
Now after a while they perceived, afar oflf, one coming
softly and alone all along the highway to meet them. Then ^
sible and gradual deviation from the simplicity of the gospel, in doctrine
or practice. Peculiar circumstances may require the believer to act ;
\vhile so much can be said in support of different measures, as to make
him hesitate : and if he Pxierely consider the subject in his own mind, or
consult with hi? friends, without carefully examining the Scripture, and
praying for divine direction ; he will very probably be seduced into the
wrong path ; and, if he listen to the Flatterer, he will certamly be misled,
Biit what is meant by the Flatterer? — It cannot reasonably be supposed
that the author meant to state that the Pilgrims he. kened to such as
preach justification by the works of the law; or flatter men's self-compla-
cency by harangues on the dignity of human nature, and the unbiassed
freedom of the will, the suificiency of reason in matters of religion, or the
goodness of the heart . for experienced Christians cann<>! be this imposed
on. And ^ross antinomianism can never greatly attract tlie attention of
those, who have been in Doubting-Castle for turning aside into By-path-
meadow. — But thtj human mind is always accessible to flattery, in one
form or other ; and there have iii every age been teachers and professed
Chrifctians, who have soothed men into a good opinion of their state on
insufficient grounds ; or fed their spiritual pride by expressing too favour-
able thoghts of their attainments, which is often mistaken for a very
loving spirit. 'I'his directly tends to induce unwatchfulness, and an unad-
visi 'i way of deciding in diflicult cases : and thus men are imperceptibly
led to consult their own inclini;i on, case, or interest, instead of the will
and gloiy of God. In the mean time, s ich flatterers commend their pru-
dence, in allow ing themselves a little rest ; persuade th^m that they are
entitled to distinction, and exempted from general rules ; insinuate, that
they lire too well acqiiainted w ith Satan's devices, to be deceived ; and ia
short ?eem to make their opinion the standard of right and wrong. Some
excellent men, from a natural easiness of temper, united with spiritual
lovo and genuine candour, luis undesigned /y too much sooth then Ire-
thren : but the Flatterer is * a black man in a white robe ;' a designing hypo-
crite, who, with plausibihty, fluency of speech, talents, eloquence, or po-
lite accomplishments, and \ ery evangelical views of religion, '• serves not
our Lord Jesus Christ, but his own belly ; and by good words and fair
speeches deceives the hearts of the simple.'" Such a man will not shock
serious minds by gross antinomianism : but he vill insist disproportion-
ately and indiicrimiaately on privileges, promises, and con^olatory topics ;
and thus put his auditors into good humour with themselves, and conse-
quently with him, in order to obtaiu advantages, not so easily acquired
by other means. — There are many other Jlaiterers : but this description,
coming far more in the way of evangelical professors than any other, seems
emphatically to be intended. Satan aims to lull men into a fatal security,
wholly or in part ; flatterers of every kind are his principal agents ; and a
smooth undistinguishing gospel, and want of plain-dealing in private, has
immense influence in this respect. Ton often, it is to be feared, the
})reaGher uses flattery in the pulpit and the parlour, and is reciprocally
flattered or rev/arded : and what wonder is it, if ungodly men takfe up the
business as a lucrative trade, and serve their own selfish purposes, by
quieting uneasy consciences into a false peace, misleading unwary soulsi
16
182 The vain reasonings of Atheist,
said Christian to his fellow, Yonder is a man with his back
towards Zion, and he is coming to meet us.
Hope. I see him ; let us take heed to ourselves now, lest
he should prove a Flatterer also.
So he drew nearer and nearer, and at last came up to them.
His name was Atheist ; and he asked them, « Whither they
were going V
Chr. We are going to the Mount Zion.
Then Atheist fell into a very great laughter.
Chr. What is the meaning of your laughter ?
Ml. I laugh to see w^hat ignorant parsons you are, to take
upon you so tedious a journey ; and yet are like to have no-
thing but your travel for your pains.
Chr. Why, man ? do you think we shall not be received ?
Aih. Received ! there is no such place as you dream of in
all this world.
Chr. But there is in the vyorld to come.
Ath. When 1 was at home, in mine own country, I heard as
you now affirm, and from that hearing went out to see, and
entangling incautious believers in a net, and thus bringing a scandal on
the gospel ? " Satan is transformed into an angel of light, and his ministers
into min'sters of righteousness ;" and if this were the case in the apostles'
days, in the midst of terrible persec'itions ; it may well be expected, that
the same attempts will be made at other times. Among persons not much
acquainted with the gospel, a different method of reduction will be em-
ployed ; in some places by vain philosophy or pharisaioal self-righte-
ousuess, in others by enthusiastic imaginations or dreams of sinless perfec-
tion : but among established Christians, some plauaible s(;heme, flattering
man as wise and strong in Christ, and as knowing their liberty and privi-
lege?, must be adopted ; such as were propagated among the Corinthians,
or those professed Christians whom James, Peter, and Jude successively
addressed. In the present state of religious profession, a more important
caution, I apprehend, cannot be given by the united voice of all tiiose
ministers, whom the Shepherds represent, than this, ' Beware of the Flat
terer ;' of all teachers who address the self-preference of the human heart,
and thus render men forgetful of ' taking heed to their way accordmg to
the word of God.' For if men overlook the precepts of Scripture, and
forsake practical distinguishing preachers, to follow such as bolster up
their hopes in an unscriptural manner ; they will either be fatpJIy de
ceived, or drawn out of the path of truth and duty, taken in the net of
error, and entangled among injurious connexions and with perplexing
difli&ulties. They will indeed at length be undeceived as to these Jiae-
spoken men, but not till they scarcely know what to do or what will be-
come of them. For when the Lord plucks their feet out of the net, he
will humble them in the dust for their sin and folly ; and make thein
thankful to be delivered, though with severe rebukes and conections.
The Pitgrims iurii away from Atheist. 183
have been seeking this city these twenty years, but find no more
of it than I did the the first day 1 set out.*
Chr. We hiive both heard and believe that there is such a
place to be found.
■ Ath. Had not I when at home believed, I had not come thus
far to seek ; but finding none, (and yet I should had there
been such a place to be found, for I have gone to seek it fur-
ther than you ;) 1 am going back again, and will seek to refresh
myself with the things that I then cast away, for hopes of that
which I now see is not.
Then said Christian to Hopeful his fellow, Is it true which
this man hath said ?
Hope, Take heed, he is one of the Flatterers : remember
what it hath cost us once already for our hearkening to such
kind of fellows. What ! no Mount Zion ? Did we not see from
the Delectable Mountains the Gate of the City? Also, are v/e
not now to walk by faith ?t Let us go on, said Hopeful, lest
the man with the whip overtake us jtgain. You should have
taught me that lesson which I will roumi you in the ears with-
al : *' Cease, my son, to hear the instruction that causeth to
err from the words of knowledge ;"| 1 say, my brother,
cease to hear him, and let us behove to the saving of the soul.
Chr. My brother, I did not put the question to thee for that
1 doubted of the truth of your belief myself, but to prove thee,
and to fetch from thee a fruit of the honesty of thy heart. As
for this man, 1 know that he is blinded by the god of this world.
Let thee and I go on, knowing that wehavebelief of the truth,
and ** no lie is of the truth/'§
Hope. Now do I rejoice in hope of the glory of God. — So
they turned away from the man, and he, laughing at them, went
his way. (?n)
* Eccles. X. 15. Jer. xvii. 15. t 2 Cor. v. 7. J Prov. xix. 27.
Heb. X. 39. 5 1 John ii. 21.
(m) Some false professors gradually renoimce " the truth as it is in
Jesus :" but others openly set themselves agamst all kinds of religion, and
turn scoffers and infidels. Indeed uone are more likely to become avow-
ed atheists, than such as have for many years hypocritically professed the
gospel ; for tiiey ofien acquire an acquaintance with the several parts of
religion, their connexion with each other, and the arguments with which
they are supported ; so that they know not where to beginfif they would
oppose any particular doctrine or precept of revelation. Yet they hate
the whole system ; and, havmg never experienced those effects from the
truth, which the Scripture ascribes to it, they feel, that if there be any re-
ality in religion, their own case is very dreadtul, and wish to shake off
186 HopefuVs Strivings against his first Convictioi.c,
Oir. And did you presently fall under the power of this
conviction ?
Hope. No, I was not willing presently to know the evil of
sin, nor the damnation that follows upon the commission of it ;
but endeavoured, when my mind at first began to be shaken
with the word, to shut mini eyes against the light thereof.
Chr. But what was the cause of your carrying of it thus to
the first workings of God's Blessed Spirit upon you ?
Hope. The causes were — 1. I was ignorant that this was
the work of God upon me. I never thought that by awaken-
ings for sin God at first begins the conversion of a sinner.
2. Sin was yet very sweet to my flesh, and 1 was loth to leave
it. 3. I could not tell how to part with mme old companions,
their presence and actions were so desirable unto me, 4. The
hours in which convictions v, ore upon me were such trouble-
some and such he art- affrighting hours, that I could not bear, no
not so much as the remembrance of th.^m upon my heart.
Chr. Then it seems, sometimes you got relief of your
trouble ?
Hope. Yes, verily, but it would come into my mind again ;
and then I would be as bad, nay worse than I was before.
CJir. Why, what was it that brought your sins to mind
again ?
Hope. Many things : as, if I did but meet a good man in the
street ; or if I have heard any read in the Bible ; or if mine
head did begin to ache ; or if I were told that some of my
neighbours were sick ; or if I heard the bell toll for some that
were dead ; or if I thought of dying myself; or if I heard that
sudden death happened to others : but especially when I
thought of myself, that I must quickly come to judgment.
Chr. And could you at any time, with ease, get off the guilt
of sin, when by any of these ways it Ciune upon you ? (o)
Hope. No, noi heartily ; for then they got faster hold of
(o) This word is used here and in other phices, not to signify the evil of
sin in the sight of God^ and the transgressor's deserved liableness to pu-
nishment : but the remorse and fear of wrath, u'ith which the convinced
sinner is oppre-scJ, and irom which he often seeks relief by means which
exceedingly increase his ac'nal guilt. Nothing except a free pardon, by
faith in the atoning sacrifice of Christ, caatake away^m//: but the unea-
siness of a man's conscience may be for a time removed by various expe-
dients. The words guilt or guilty, are often used in this latter sanse, by
modern divines ; but it does not seem to be scripturally accurate, and may
produce misapprehension?.
External Amendment insufficient, 187
my conscience : and then, u 1 did jut think of going back to
sin, (though ray mind was turned against it,) it would be doui)le
torment to me.
Chr. And how did you do then ?
Hope. I thought I must endea^^our to mend fiiy life ; for else,
thought I, 1 am sure to be damned.
Ckr. And did you endeavour to mend ?
Hope. Ye^; and fled from not only my sins, but sinful com-
pany too, and betook me to rehgious duties, :is praying, rending,
weeping for sin, speaking truth to my neit^nbours, &c. These
things I did, with many other, too much here to relate.
Chr. And did you think yourself wni then?
Hope. Yes, for a while ; but at ihe last my trouble came
tumbling upon me again, and that over the iieck of all my re-
formations.
Chr. How came that about, since you were now reformed ?
Hope. There were several thin^i brought it upon me ; es-
pecially such sayings as these — " All ou righteousnesses are
as filthy rags :" — ** By the works of th law no man shall be
justified :" — " When we have done all vhese things, say, We
are unprofitable :"* with many •:iore such like, from whence
1 began to reason with myself tlius : — li'all my righteousnesses
are filthy rags ; if by the deeds of the I iw no man can be justi-
fied ; and if when we have done all we are yet unprofitable
— then it is but a folly to think of hi aven by the law. I fur-
ther thought thus : If a m im runs i hundred pounds into the
shopkeeper's debt, and after that saail pay for all that he shall
fetch : yet, his old deb* s^ i.nds sVii in the book uncrossed, for
the which the shwpke-^per nr ^ue him, and cast him into
prison till he shall pay the deoi.
Chr. Well, and how did you apply this to yourself?
Hope. Why, I thought thus with myself: I have by my sins
run a great way into God's book, and that my now reforming, will
not pay ofi* that score ; theri ibre 1 should think still, undei* all
my present amendments, * But how shall I be free from that
damnation, that I brought myself in danger of by my former
truiisjgressions ?'
< itr. A very good application : — but pray go on.
Hope. Another thing that hath troubled me, even since my
late amendments, is, that, if I look narrowly into the best of
what I do now, I still see sin, new sin, mixing itself with the
* Isa. Ixiv. 6. Luke xvii. 10. Gal. ii. 16.
188 A perfect Righteousness needful.
best of what I do : so that now I am forced to conclude that,
notwithstanding my formar fond conceits of myself and duties,
1 have committed sin enough in one duty to send me to hell,
though my former life had been faultless.
Clir, And what did you then do ?
Hope. Do ! 1 could not tell whnt to do, till I brake my mind
to Faithful ; for he and I were well acquainted. And he told
me that unless I could obtain the righteousness of a man that
never had sinned, neither mine own, nor all the righteousness
of the world, could save me.
Chr. And did you think he spake true ?
Hope. Had he told me so, when I was pleased and satisfied
with mine own amendments, 1 had called him fool for his
pains ; but now, since 1 see mine own infirmity, and ihe sin
that cleaves to my besl performances, 1 have been forced to be
of his opinion.
Chr. But did you think, when at first he suggested it to you,
that there was such a man to be found, of whom it might justly
be said that he never commited sin ?
Hope. I must confess the words at first sounded strangely,
but, after a little more talk and company with him, I had full
conviction about it.
Chr. And did you ask him what man this was, and how you
must be justified by him ?*
Hope. Yes, and he "told me it was the Lord Jesus, that
dwelleth on the right hand of the Most High : And thus,
said he, you must be justified by him — even by trusting to
what he hath done by himselt, in the days of his flesh, and suf-
nred when he did hang on the tree. I asked him further
liow that man's righteousness could be of that efiicacy to justify
another before God ? And he told me he was the mighty God,
and did what he did, and died the death also, not for himself,
but for me, to whom his doings and the worthiness of them
should be imputed, if 1 believed on him.
Chr. And what did you do then ?
Hope. I made my objections against my believing, for that I
thought he was not willing to save me.
Chr. And what said Faithful to you then ?
Hope. He bid me go to him and see. Then I said it was
presumption. He said, *I^o, for I was invited to come.'t —
Then he gave me a book of Jesus' inditing, to encourage me
* Rom. ir. Col. i. Heb. x. 2 Pet. i. t Matt. xi. 28.
IIoxB) Hopeful learned the Way of Justification, 189
the more freely to come ; and he said, concerning that book,
that every jot and tittle thereof stood firmer than heaven and
earth.* Then I asked him what I must do when I came ?
And he told me I must entreat upon my knees, t whith all my
heart and soul, the Father to reveal Him to me. Then I ask-
ed him further, how I must make my supplication to him ?
And he said, Go, and thou shalt find him upon a mercy-seat ;J
where he sits, all the year long, to give pardon and forgiveness
to them that come. I told him that 1 knew not what to say when
I came. And he bid me to say to this effect — " God be mer-
ciful to me a sinner," ' and make me to know and believe
m Jesus Christ : for I see, that if his righteousness had not
been, or 1 have not faith in that righteousness, I am ut-
terly cast away. Lord I have heard that thou art a merciful
God, and hast ordained that thy Son Jesus Christ should be
the Saviour of the world : and, moreover, that thou art wil-
ling to bestow him upon such a poor sinner as 1 am, (and 1 am
a sinner indeed :) Lord, take therefore this opportunity, and
magnify thy grace in the salvation of my soul, through thy Son
Jesus Christ. Amen.'
Chr, And did you do as you were bidden ?
Hope. Yes, over, and over, ahd over.
Chr. And did the Father reveal the Son to you ?
Hope, Not at the first, nor second, nor third, nor fourth,
*or fifth, no, nor at the sixth time neither.
Chr. What did you do then ?
Hope. What ! why I could not tell what to do.
Chr. Had you not thoughts of leavmg oflf praying ?
Hope. Yes, and a hundred times twice told.
Chr. And what was the reason you did not ?
Hope. I believed that that was true which had been told me,
to wit, that without the righteousness of this Christ, a!) the
world could not save me : and therefore, thought I witii my-
self, if I leave off I die, and I can but die at the thrrae of
grace. And withal thi^ came into my mind, " If it tarry, wait
for it, because it will surely come, and will not tarry.' § So
I continued praying, until the Father showed me his Son.
Chr. And how was he revealed unto you ?
Hope. 1 did not see him with my bodily eyes, but with the
eyes of mine understanding, ll and thus it was : One day I was
* Matt. xxiv. 35. t Psa. xcv. 6. Jer. xxix. 12, 13. Dan. vi. 10.
} Exod. XXV. 22. Leyit. xvi. 2. Heb. iv. 16. } Heb. ii. 3i
1! Eph. i. 18, 19.
1 90 Christ revealed to Hopeful.
very sad, I think sadder than at any one time in my life ; and
this sidness was through a fresh sight of the greatness and vi!e-
ness of my sins. And as I was then looking for nothing but
hcil, and the everlasting damnation of my soul, suddenly, as I
thought, I saw the Lord Jesus look down from heaven upon me,
and saying, " Believe on the Lord Jesus Christ, and thou shalt
be sived."*
But I repHed, ' Lord, I am a great, a very great sinner :'
and he answered, '* My grace is sufficient for thee." Then I
sai»l, ' But, Lord, what is believing ?' And then I saw from that
saying, *' He that cometh to me shnll never hunger, and he
that believeth on me shall never thirst,"! tlKit believing and
coming was all one ; and that he that came, that is,' run out in
his hrfart and :iffections after salvation by Christ, he indeed
believed in Christ. Then the wjter stood in mine eyes, and
I asked further, * Hut, Lord, may such a great sinner as I am,
be indeed accepted of thee, md be saved by thee ? And I
heard him say, *' And him thfit cometh to me, I will in no wise
cast out."| Then I said, ' But how. Lord, must 1 consider of
thee in my coming to thee, that my iaith may be placed aright
upon thee V Then he said, ' Christ Jesus came into the world
to sav3 sinners :" '* He is^liTe end of the law for righteo-us-
ness to every one that belieVes :" " He died for our sins, and
rose again for our justification :" " He loved na, and washed
us from our sins in his own blood :" '* He is mediator between
God and us :" '* He ever liveth to make intercession for us."§
From ill which I gathered tb t I must look for righteousness
in his person, and for satisiaction for my sins by his blood ;
that whdt he did in obedience to his Father's law, and in sub-
mitting to the penalty thereof, was not for himself, but for him
that will accept il for his salvation, and be thankiul. And now
v;as my heart full of joy, mine eyes" full of tears, and mine
affections running over with love to the name, people, and
ways of Jesus Christ, (p)
* Acts xvi. 30, 31. t John vi. 35. f John vi. 37. J 1 Tim. i. 15.
ilom. X. 4. Heb. vii. 24,25.
(p) ('ommg to Christ is properly the effect of faith : yet the lang-uagpe
here used is warranted l^y Scripture. — The word reveal^ and the vision of
Christ conversing with Hopeful, seem to sanction such things as have been
greatly mistaken and abused, and have occa<ioried many scandals and ob-
jections : yet it is evident, that tne au- iior mrant nothing contrary to the
most sober statement ofscrivtural truib. — Christ did not appear to Hope-
ful's senses^ but to his understanding • and the words spoken are no other
than texts of Scripture taken in their genuine meaning; not informing
Christian discourses with Ignorance. 191
Oir. This was a revelation of Christ to your soul indeed :
but tell me particularly what effect this had upon your spirit.
Hope, it made me see that all the world, notwithstanding alii
the righteousness thereof, is in a state of condemnation : it \
made me see that God the Father, though he be just, can justly j
justify the coming sinner : it made me greatly ashamed of the |
vileness of my former life, and confounded me with the sense i
of mine own ignorance : for there never came a thought into
mine heart, before now, that showed me so the beauty of ]
Jesus Christ : it made me love a holy life, and long to do
something for the honour and glory of the name of the Lord
Jesus ; yea, I thought that, had I now a thousand gallons of
blood in my body, 1 could spill it all for the sake of the Lord
Jesus.
1 saw then in my dream, that Hopeful looked back and saw
Ignorance, whom they had left beliind, coming after : ' Look,*
said he to Christian, ' how far yonder youngster loitereth
behind.'
Chr. Ay, ay, I see him : he careth not for our company.
Hope. But I trow it would not have hurt him, had he kept
pace with us hitherto.
Chr. That is true : but Til warrant you he thinketh other-
wise.
Hope. That I think he doth : but however, let us tarry for
him. So they did.
Then Christian said to him, Come away, man, why do you
stay so behind ?
Ignor. 1 take my pleasure in walking alone ; even more a
great deal than in company ; unless I like it better.
Then said Christian to Hopeful, (but softly,) Did I not tell
him, as by a new revelation, that his sins were pardoned, bnt encourag-
ing him to apply for tliis mercy and all other blessingi§ of salvation. So
that, (allowing for the nature of an allegory,) the whole account for sub-
stance exactly coincides with the experience of the most sober Chri?tians ;
who, having been deeply humbled, and ready to sink under discourage-
ment, have had such views of the love of Christ, of his glorious salvation,
the freeness of the invitations, the largeness of the promises, and the na-
ture of justifying faith, as have '"filled them with peace and joy in believ-
ing :" aud these have been followed by such abiding effects as are here
described, whidi completely distinguish them from all the false joys of
hypocrites and enthusiasts. OtViers indeed cannot relate so orderly an ac-
count of their convictions and comforts; yet they are brought, (though
by varied methods,) to the same reliance on Christ, and the tame devoted
obedience.
1^2 Good Thoughts of ourselves
you he cared not for our company ? But, however, come up
and let us talk away the time in this sohtary place. Then,
?[lirecting his speech to Ignorance, he said, Come, how do you
do / how stands it between God and your soul now ? (q)
Ignor, I hope well, for I am always full of good motions,
iliat come into my mind to comfort me as I walk.
J Chr, What good motions ? pray tell us.
Ignor. Why, I thmk of God and hei.ven.
Chr. So do the devils and damned souls. *
Ignor, But 1 think of them, and desire them, (r)
Chr. So do many that are never like to come there. " The
soul of the sluggard desires, and hath nothing."*
Ignor. But I think of them, and leave all for them.
Chr. That I doubt : for leaving of all is a h'^rd matter ;
yea, a harder matter than many are aware of. But w}^}^ or
by what, art thou persuaded that thou hast left all for God and
heaven ?
Ignor. My heart tells me so.
Chr. The wise man says, " He that trusts his own heart is
a fool."t
Ignor. That is spoken of an evil heart, but mine is a good
one.
Chr. But how dost thou prove that ?
Ignor. It comforts me in hopes of heaven.
Chr. That may be through its deceitfulness ; for a man's
* Prov. xiii. 4. t Piov. xxviii. 26.
(5) Ta this dialogue Ignorance speaks exactly in character; and the an-
swers of the Pilgrims are conclusive against such absurd and unscribtural
grount-ls ot' confidence, as are continually maintained by many who "would
be though! pious Christians.
(r) The desire of heavenly feh'city, when the real pature of it is not un-
derstood, lliK- proper means of obtaining it are neglected, other objects are
prefL rred to rt, or sloth and procrastination intervene, is no proof that a
man will be saved.— In like manner this expression, the desire of grace is
grace, must be owned to be very fallacious and ambiguous. Men may be
notionii!!)^ convinced, that without grace they must perish, and mere self-
ishnGV:- n.y excite some feeble desires after it ; though worldly affections
prpiloi' '';-;'>, and the real valae of the spiritual good is not perceived.
But to h... ;;er anJ thirst for God and his righteousness, his favour, image,
and '^ervic.r, as the ?:ipreme good ; so that no other object can satisfy the
earnest desire of thf? heart, and every thing is renounced that interferes
with the pi.:---uit of It, is grace indeed, and shall be completed in glory.
Agree mth the Word of God. 193
heart may minister comfort to him in the hopes of that thing
for which he yet has no ground to hope. (5)
Ignor. But my heart and life agree together ; and therefore
my hope is well grounded.
C/tr. Who told thee that thy heart and life agree together ?
Ignor. My heart tells me so.
Chr. * Ask my fellow if I be a thief!' Thy heart tells thee
so ! except the word of God beareth witness in this matter,
other testimony is of no value.
Ignor, But is it not a good heart that has good thoughts ?
and is not that a good life that is according to God's command-
ments ?
Chr, Yes, that is a good heart that hath good thoughts, and
that is a good life that is according to God's commandments ;
but it is one thing indeed to have these, and another thing only
to think so.
Ignor, Pray what count you good thoughts, and a life ac-
cording to God's commandments ?
Chr, There are good thoughts of divers kinds ; — some re-
specting ourselves, — some God, — some Christ, — and some
other things.
Ignor. What be good thoughts respecting ourselves ?
Chr, Such as agree with the word of God.
Ignor. When do our thoughts of ourselves agree with the
word of God ?
Chr. When we pass the same judgment upon ourselves
which the word passes. — To explain myself; the word of
God saith of persons in a natural 'Condition, (^) " There is
none righteous, there is none that doeth good." It saith also,
that ** F'.very imagination of the heart of man is only evil, and
that continually."* And again, *' The imagination of man's
heart is evil from his youth." Now then, when we think
* Gen. vi. 5. Rom. iii.
(s) It is exceedingly dangerous to make comfort a groiinci of confidence ;
unless the nature, source, and effects of that comfort be considered : for
it may result entirely from ignorance and self-flattery, in a variety of
ways.
(/) " That which is born of the flesh, is flesh ;" « The carnal mind is
enmity against God ; for it is not subject to the law of God, neither in-
deed can be. So then they that are in the flesh cannot please God ;" for
"They are bi/ nature the children of wrath." This is man's natural con-
dition : but of the r*»generate it is said, '' Ye are not in the flesh, but in the
Spirit ;" " for that which is born of the Spirit, is Spirit ;" and to such per-
?ons the texts adduced do not apply.
Bb n
194 Tht Faith t^f Ignorance^
thus of ourselves, having a sense thereof, then are ourthoughtt
good ones, because according to the word of God.
Ignor. I will never beheve that my heart is thus bad.
Chr, Therefore thou never hadst one good thought con*
cerning thj^self in thy hfe. — But let me go on. As the word
passeth a judgment upon our hearts, so it passeth a judgment
upon our ways ; and when our thoughts of our hearts and ways
agree with the judgment which the word giveth of both, then
are both good, because agreeing thereto.
Ignor. Make out your meaning.
Chr, Why, the word of God saith that man's ways are
crooked ways, not good, but perverse : it sayeth they are na-
turally out of the good way, that they have not known it.* Now
when a man thus thinketh of his ways, I say, when he doth,
sensibly, and with heart-humiliation, thus think, then hath he
good thoughts of his own ways, because his thoughts now agree
with the judgment of the word of God.
Ignor, What are good thoughts concerning God ?
Chr. Even as I have said concerning ourselves, when our
thoughts of God do agree with what the word saith of him ;
and that is, when we think of his being and attributes as the
word hath taught ; of which I cannot now discourse at large.
But to speak of him with reference to us ; then we have right
thoughts of God when we think that he knows us better than
we know ourselves,- and can see sin in us when and where we
can see none in ourselves ; when we think he knows our in-
most thoughts, and thnt our he;irt, with all its depths, is always
open unto his eyes : also when we think that all our righteous-
ness stinks ill his nostrils, and that therefore he cannot abide
to see us stand before him m any confidence, even of all our best
performances, (u)
* Psa. cxxv. 5. Prov. ii. 15.
(ii) The external services, performed by unregenerate persons from
•elBsh motiTes, bein? scanty anu partial, and made the ground of self-com-
placency, and self-righteous pride, '" are abomination in the sight of God,"
however '•' highly esteemed among men :" " For men look at the outward
appearance, but the Lord looketh at the heart." Even the obedience of
a true believer, though it springs from right principles, and has some spi-
ritual excellency in it, is yet so delective and defiled by sin, that if it
'■were not accepted as the fruit of the Spirit through the mediation of
Christ, it must be condemned by the holy law, and rejected with abhor-
rence by a God of infinite purity. I\Ien may allow this in words, and yet
not know what it is to come as condemned sinners, for a free justification
and salvation, by faith iu Christ.
Ignorance declares his Faith, 195
fgnor. Do you think that I am such a fool as to think God
can see no further than 1 ? or that I would come to God in the
best of my performances ?
Chr, Why, how dost thou think in this matter ?
Ignor. Why, to be short, 1 think I must believe in Christ
for justification.
Chr. How ? think thou must beheve in Christ when thou
seest not thy need of him ! Thou neither seest thy original nor
actual infirmities ; but hast such an opinion of thyself, and of
what thou doest, as plainly renders thee to be one that did
never see a necessity of Christ's personal righteousness to
justify thee before God. How then dost thou say, I believe in
Christ ?
Ignor, I believe well enough for all that.
Chr, How tlost thou believe ?
Ignor, I believe that Christ died for sinners ; and that I
shall be justified before God from the curse, through his gra-
cious acceptance of my obedience to his law. Or thus, Christ
makes my duties, that are religious, acceptable to his Father
by virtue of his merits, and so shalll be justified.
Chr, Let me give an answer to this confessi6n of thy faith.
1. Thou believest with a fantastical faith ; for this faith is
no where described in the word.
2. Thou believest vvith ;i false faith : because it taketh jus-
tification/rom the personal righteousness of Christ, and applies
it to thy own.
3. This faith maketh not Christ a justifier of thy person,
but of thy actions: and of thy person for the actions' sake,
which is false, {w)
4. Therefore this fiith is deceitful, even such as will leave
thee under wr ith in ihe day of God Almighty : for true justi-
fying faith puts the soul, as sensible of its Ic^t condition by the
law, upon fleeing for refuge r.nto Cnrist's righteousness :
(which righteousness of bis is not an act of grace, by which he
maketh, for justification, thy obedience accepted with God, but
his personal obedience to the law, in doing and suffering for us
what that required at our hands :) this righteousness, I say,
{ic) The way of being justified by faith, for which Ignorance pleads,
may well be called ^fantasticaW as w^ell ab '•false ;' for it is no where laid
down in Scripture : and it not only changes the way of acceptance, but it
takes away the rule and standard of righteousness, and substitutes a vague
notion, called sincerity^ in its place, which never was, or can be, defioed
with precision.
196 Ignorance^ s OhjecUom ons'wtHa,
true faith accepteth ; under the skirt of which the soul bertlg
shrouded, and by it presented as spotless before God, it is ac-
cepted, and acquit from condemnation.
Ignor, What, would you have us trust to what Christ in his
own person hath done without us ? this conceit will loosen
the reigns of our lust, and tolerate us to live as we list ; for
what matter how we live, if we may be justified by Christ's
piersonal righteousness from all, when we believe it.
Chr. Ignorance is thy name, and as thy name is so art thou ;
even this thy answer demonstrateth what 1 say. Ignorant
thou art of what justifying righteousness is, and as ignorant
how to secure thy soul, through the faith of it, from the heavy
wrath of God. Yea, thou also art ignorant of the true effects
of saving faith in this righteousness of Christ, which is to bow
and win over the heart to God in Christ, to love his name,
his word, ways and people, and not as thou ignorantly im-
aginest.
Hope. Ask him if ever he had Christ revealed to him from
he;'ven ?
Jgnor. What ! you are a man for revelations ? I believe that
what both you, and all the rest of you, say about that matter,
is but the fruit of distracted brains.
Hope. Why man ! Christ is so hid in God from the natural
apprehensions of all flesh, that he cannot by any man be sav-
ingly known, unless God the Father reveals him to them, (a;)
Ignor. That is your faith, but not mine : yet mine, [ doubt
not, is as good as yours, though 1 have not in my head so many
whimsies r.s you.
Chr. Give me leave to put in a word : — ^you ought not so
slightly to speak of this matter : for this I will boldly affirm,
(even as my good Companion hath done) that no man can
know Jesus Christ but by the revelation of the Father ; yea,
and faith too, by f'fhich the soul layeth hold upon Christ, (if it
be right) must be wrought by the exceeding greatness of his
mighty power ;* the working of which faith, 1 perceive, poor
Ignorance, thou art ignorant oi'. Be awakened then, see thine
own wretchedness, and flee to the Lord Jesus ; and by his
* Matt. xi. 27. 1 Cor. xii. 3. Eph.i. 18, 19.
{x) Prill e, unbelief, and carnal prejudices or affections, so close the
mind of a sinner against the spiritual glory of the Person and redemption
of Christ, that nothing but trie illumination ot the Spirit removing this
veil can enable him to understand and receive the revelation of the sacred
Oracles on these important subjects.
Mvantages of Holy Fear, 197
righteousness, which is the ris:hteou9ness of God, (for he him-
self is God,) thou sh:\lt be delivered from condemnation.
Ignor. You go so fast I cannot keep pace with you : do you
go on before ; I must stay a while behind.
Then they said —
\
' Well, Ignorance, wilt thou yet foolish be
To sli°:ht good couriL<el, ten times giiven thee ?
And if Ihou yet refuse it, 'hoix ^halt know,
Ere long, the evil of thy doina: so.
Remember, man, in time ; stop, do not fear ;
Good counsel taken well saves ; therefore hear.
But if thou yet shall slight ft, thou wilt be
The loser, Ignorance, I il warrant thee.'
» ^._
Then Christian addressed thus himself to his fellow :
Well, come, my good Hopeful, I perceive that thou and I
must walk by ourselves again. ,
So I saw in my dream, that tliey.weut on apace before, and
Ignorance, he came hobbling after. Then said Christian to
his companion, it pities me much for this poor man ; it will
certainly go ill with him at last.
Hope. Alas ! there are abundance in our Town in his con-
dition, whole families, yea, whole streets, and that of Pilgrims
too ; and if there be so many in our parts, how many, think
3^ou, must there be in the place where he was born ? (y)
Chr. Indeed the word saith, " He hath blinded their eyes,
lest they should see," &;c.
But now we are b}?^ ourselves, what do you think -of such
men ? have they at no time, think you, convictions of sin,
and so consequently ^ fears that their state is dangerous ?
Hope. Nay, do you answer that question yourself, for you
are the elder man.
Chr. Then I sa}^ sometimes (as I think) they may ; but
they, being naturally ignorant, understand not that such
convictions tend to their good ; and therefore they do despe-
rately seek to stifle them, and presumptuously continue to
flatter themselves in the way of their own hearts.
Hope. I do believe, as you say, that fear tends much to
men's good, and to make them right at their beginning to go
en pilgrimage.
{y) Tf numbers of ignorant persons may be found among the apparent-
ly religious, what must be the case of those, who are left without instruc-
tion to their native pride and self-conceit ?
17*
1 08 The Ignorani endeavour to stifle Fear.
Chr. Without all doubt it doth, if it be right: for so says
the word, *' The fear of the Lord is the beginning of wisdom."*
Hope, How will you describe right fear ?
Chr. True or right fear is discovered by three things —
1. By its rise : it is caused by saving convictions for sin.— .
2. It driveth the soul to lay fast hold of Christ for salvation. —
3. It begetteth and continueth in the soul a great reverence of
God, his word, and ways, keeping it tender, and making it
afraid to turn from them, to the right hand or to the left, to any
thing that may dishonour God, break its peace, grieve the
Spirit, Qr cause the enemy to speak reproachfully, (z)
Hope, Well said ; I believe you have said the truth. —
Are we now almost got past the Enchanted Ground ?
Chr, Why ? are you weary of this discourse?
Hope, No verily, but that i would know where we are.
Chr, We have not now above two miles further to go
thereon. — But let us return to our matter. — Now the igno-
rant know not thit such convictions, that tend to put them in
fear, are for their good, and therefore they seek to stifle them.
Hope, How do they seek to stifle them ?
Chr, 1. They think that those fears are wrought by the
devil, (though indeed they are wrought of God ;) and, think-
ing so, they resist them, as things that directly tend to their
overthrow. 2. . hey also think that these fears tend to the
spoiling of their fiith ; when, alas for them, poor men that
they are, they have none at all ! — and therefore they harden
their hearts against them. 3. They presume they ought not
to fear, and therefore in despite ot them wax presumptuously
confident. 4. They see that those fears tend to take away
* Job xxviii. ^28. Psa. cxi. 10. Prov. i. 7. ix. 10.
(s) Fears of wrath are loo geuerally ascribed to unbelief, and deemed
prejudicial; bat this arises from ignorance and mistake; for belief of
God's testimony must excite fears in every heart, till it is clearly perceiv-
ed how that wrath may be escaped ; and doubts mingled with hopes must
arise from faith, till a man is conscious of having experienced a saving
change. These fears and doubts excite men to self-examination, watch-
fulness, and diligence ; and thus tend to the believer's establishment, and
" the full assurance of hope unto the end :" while the want of them often
results from unbelief -nd stupidity of conscience, and terminates in carnal
security and abuse of the gospel. Fears may indeed be excessive and un-
reasonable, and the effect of unbelief : but it is better to mark the ex-
tren^e, and caution men against it, than by declaiming indiscriminately
against all doubts and fears, to help sinners to deceive themselves, and
discourage weak believers from earnestly using the scriptural means of
"^ making their calling and election sure."
Talk about one Temporary, 1 99
from them their pitiful old self-holiness, and tnerefore they
resist them with all their might, (a)
Hope, I know something of this myself : for before I knew
myself it was so with me.
Chr. Well, we will leave at this time, our neighbour Igno-
rance by himself, and fall upon another prohtabh^ question.
Hope, With all my heart : but you shall still begin.
Chr, Well then, did you not know, about ten years ago, one
Temporary in your parts, who was a forward man in religion
then ?
Hope, Know him ! yes, he dwelt in Graceless, a town
about two miles off of Honesty, and he dwelt next door to one
Turnback.
Chr, Right ; he dwelt under the same roof with him. Well,
that man was much awakened once : I believe that then he
had some sight of his sins, and of the wages that was due
thereto.
Hope. I am af your mind, for, (my house not being above
three miles from him,) he would ofteiinuies come to me, and
that with many tears. Truly I pitied the man, and was not
altogether without hope of him : but, one may see, it is not
every one that cries, Lord, Lord.
Chr. He told me once that he was resolved to go on pilgrim-
age, as we go now ; but all of a surlden he grew acquainted
with one Saveself, and then he became a stranger to me. (6)
Hope, Now since we are talkin;^ about him, let us a little
inquire into the reason of the sudaen backsliding of him and
such others.
Chr. It may be very profitable ; but do you begin.
Hope. Well then, there are in my judgment four reasons
for it.
(a) The expression pitiful old self-holiness, denotes the opinion that
ignorant 4)ersons entertain of their hearts as good and holy ; while the
term, sef-righte9->(sness, relates to their supposed good lives : but nothing
can be further from our author's mean.ug, than to speak against ** sanctifi-
cation by the Spirit unto obedience,' as evidential of our union with
Christ, aud acceptance in his righteousness.
(b) Temporary was doctrmally acquainted with the gospel, but a stran-
ger to its sanctifying power. Such men have been forward in religion, but
that is now past; for they were always grace/e^^, and came short of ho-
nesty in their profession, if not in their moral conduct, and were ever
ready to turn back into the world at a convenient season. They have in-
deed been alarmed ; but terror without humiliation will never subvert
self- confidence : and of the numbers with whom some ministers converse
200 Reasons why cowardly ones go hack.
1. Though the consciences of such men are awakenerl, yet
their minds are not changed : therefore, when the power of
guiltweareth away, that which provoked them to be religious
ce iseth : wherefore they naturally turn to their own course
again ; even as -.ve see th. dog that is sick of what he hath
Ctiten, so long as his sickness prevails he vomits and casts up
all : not that he doth this of free mind, (if we may say a dog
has a mind,) but because it troubleth his stomach : but now,
when his sickness is over, atid so his stomach eased, his desires
being not at all alienate from his vomit, he turns him about,
and licks up all ; and so it is true which is written, *' The dog
is turned to his own vomit again."* Thus, I say being hot for
heaven by virtue only of the sense afid fear of the torments of
hell, as their sense of hell, and tHe fears of damnation, chills
and cools, so their desires for heaven and salvcttion cool also.
So then it comes to pciss that, when their guilt and fear is gone,
their desires for heaven and happiness die, and they return to
their course again.
2. Another reason is, they have slavish fears that do over-
master them :— I speak now of the fears thit they have of
men : "for th: loar of men bringeth u snare. "t So then,
though they seem to be hot for heaven so long as the flames
of hell ar about their ears, yet, when that terror is a little
over, tiiey betake themselves to second thoughts, namely, that
it is good to be wise, and not to run (for they know not what,)
the hazard of losing all, or at least of bringing themselves into
unavoidable and unnecessary troubles ; and so they fall in with
the world again.
3. I'he shanae that attends religion lies also as a block in
their way : they are proud andliauglity, and religion in their
eye is low and contemptible : therefore, when they have lost
their sense of hell and wrath to come, they return again to
their former course.
4. Guilt, and to meditate terror, are grievous to them ;
* 2 Pet. ii. 22. t Prov. xxix. 25.
under trouble of conscieace, and of whom they hope well, how many dis-
appoint their expectations, and after a time plunge deeper into sin than
ever '. Such convictions resemble the blossoms of the fruit-tree, which
must pret-ede the ripe fruit, but do not alv/ays produce it : so that we
cannot say, •■ The more blossoms there are, the greater abundance wiil
there be of fruit ;' though we may be assured that there can be no fruit
if there be no blossoms. The reasons and the manner of such men's de-
clensions anl apostacy are very justly and emphatically stated : though
perhaps not with sufHcient delicacy to suit the taste of this fastidious age.
The Steps to Aposiacy. 20 J
they like not to see their misery before they come mto it ;
though perhaps the sight of it first, if they loved that sight,
might make them flee whither the righteous flee and are safe :
but because they do, as 1 hinted before, even shun the thoughts
of guilt and terror ; therefore when once they are rid of their
awakenings about the terror and wrath of God, they harden
their hearts gladly, and choose such ways as will harden tnem
more and more.
Chr. You are pretty near the business, for the bottom of all
is, for want of a change in their mind and will. And therefore
they are but like the felon that standeth before the judge : he
quakes and trembles, and seems to repent most heartily ; but
the bottom of all is, the fear of the halter, not of any detesta-
tion of the offences ; as is evident, because, let but this man
have his liberty, and he will be a thief, and so a rogue still ;
whereas, if his mind was changed, he would be otherwise.
Hope. Now 1 have showed you the reasons of their going
back, do you show me th i manner thereof.
Chr. So I will willingly. — They draw off their thoughts, all
that they may, from the remembrance of God, death, and judg-
ment to come : — then they cast off by degrees private duties,
»iis closet-prayer, curbing their lusts, watching sorrow for sin,
"^and the like : — then they shun the company of lively and warm
Christians : — after that they grow cold to public duty ; as
hearing, reading, godly conference, and the hke : — then they
begin to pick holes, as we say in the coats of some of the
godly, and that devilishly ; thaftiiey may have a seeming colour
to throw religion (for the sake of some infirmity they have
spied in them,) behind their backs : — then they begin to ad-
here to, and associate th jms Ives with, carnal., loose, and wan-
ton men : — then they give w y to cam 1 and wanton discourses
in secret ; and glad ar<' they if thoy can see such things in any
that are counted honest, th it they may the more boldly do it
through their example. — After this, they begin to play with
little sins only : — and then being hardened, they show them-
selves as they are. Thus, being launched again into the gulf
of misery, unless a miracle of grace prevent it, they everlast-
ingly perish in their own deceivings. (c)
(c) " The hypocrite will not pray always ;" nor can he ever pray, v th
faith or sincerity, for spiritual blessings : but he may deprecate m;s<=»ry,
and beg to be made ha^py, and contmue to observe a form of private re-
ligion. But when such men begin to shun the company of lively Chris-
tians, to neglect public ordinances, and to excuse their own conduct, by
Cc
200 Reasons why eowardly ones go hack.
1. Though the consciences of such men are awakenerl, yet
their minds are not changed : therefore, when the power of
gUilt weareth away, that which provoked them to be rehgious
ce iseth : wherefore they naturally turn to their own course
again ; even as we see th*.: dog that is sick of what he huth
Ctiten, so long as his sickness prevails he vomits and casts up
all : not that he doth this of free mind, (if we may say a dog
has a mind,) but because it troubleth his stomach : but now,
when his sickness is over^ ahd so his stomach eased, his desires
bemg not at all alienate from his vomit, he turns him about,
and licks up all ; and so it is true which is written, '' The dog
is turned to his own vomit again."* Thus, I say being hot for
heaven by virtue only of the «enf?e afid fear of the torments of
hell, as their sense of hell, and tiie fears of damnation, chills
and cools, so their desires for heaven and salvation cool also.
So then it comes to pass that, when their guilt and fear is gone,
their desires for heaven and happiness die, and they return to
their course again.
2. Another reason is, they have slavish fejn;s that do over-
master them : — I speak now of the fears that they have of
men : " for th; lear of men bringeth -^ snare. "f So then,
though they seem to be hot for heaven so long as the flames
ofhell:^! about their ears, yet, when that terror is a little
over, tiiey betake themselves to second thoughts, namely, that
it is good to be wise, and not to run (for they know not what,)
the hazard of losing all, or at least of bringing themselves into
unavoidable and unnecessary troubles ; and so they fall in with
the world again.
3. I'he shame that attends religion lies also as a block in
their way : they are proud and "hauglity, and religion in their
r'j^i is low and contemptible : therefore, when they have lost
their sense of hell and wrath to come, they return again to
their former course.
4. Guilt, and to meditate terror, are grievous to them ;
* 2 Pet. ii. 22. t Prov. xxix. 25.
under trouble of conscieace, and of whom they hope well, how many dis-
appoint their expectations, and after a time plunge deeper into sin than
ever I Such convictions resemble the blossoms of the fruit-tree, which
must prer-ede the ripe fruit, but do not always produce it : so that we
cannot say, *■ The more blossoms there are, the greater abundance will
there be of fruit ;' though we may be assured that there can be no fruit
if there be no blossoms. The reasons and the manner of such men's de-
clensions anl apostacy are very justly and emphatically stated : though
perhaps not with suiiicieut delicacy to suit the taste of this fastidious age.
The Steps to Aposiacy, 20 J
they like not to see their misery before they come mto it ;
though perhaps the sight of it first, if they loved that sight,
might make them flee whither the righteous flee and are safe :
but because they do, as 1 hinted before, even shun the thoughts
of guilt and terror ; therefore when once they are rid of their
awakenings about the terror and wrath of God, they harden
their hearts gladly, and choose such ways as will harden tnem
more and more.
Chr. You are pretty near the business, for the bottom of all
is, for want of a change in their mind and will. And therefore
tliey are but like the felon that stmdeth before the judge : he
quakes and trembles, and seems to repent most heartily ; but
the bottom of all is, the fear of the halter, not of any detesta-
tion of the offences ; as is evident, because, let but this man
have his liberty, and he will be a thief, and so a rogue still ;
whereas, if his mind was changed, he would be otherwise.
Hope. Now 1 have showed you the reasons of their going
back, do you show me thi manner thereof.
Chr. So 1 will willingly. — They draw off their thoughts, all
that they may, from the remembrance of God, death, and judg-
ment to come : — then they cast off by degrees private duties,
i,ns closet-prayer, curbing their lusts, watching sorrow for sin,
^and the hke : — then they shun the company of hvely and warm
Christians : — after that they grow cold to public duty ; as
hearing, reading, godly conference, and the like : — then they
begin to pick holes, as we say in the coats of some of the
godly, and that devilishly ; that tiiey may have a seeming colour
to throw religion (for the sake of some infirmity they have
spied in them,) behind their backs : — then they begin to ad-
here to, and associate th jms Ives with, carnal, loose, and wan-
ton men : — then they ^; ve w y to cam ;1 and wanton discourses
in secret ; and glad ar<' they if they can see such things in any
that are counted honest, that they may the more boldly do it
through their example. — After this, they begin to play with
little sins only : — and then being hardened, they show them-
selves as they are. Thus, being launched again into the gulf
of misery, unless a miracle of i^race prevent it, they everlast-
ingly perish in their own deceivings. (c)
(c) " The hypocrite -will not pray always ;" nor can he ever pray, v. ith
faith or sincerity, for spiritual blessings : i)ut he may deprecate m;s<^ry,
and beg to be made ha, py, and contmue to observe a form of private re-
ligion. But when such men begin to shun the company of lively Chris-
tians, to neglect public ordinances, and to excuse their own conduct, by
Cc
202 The Country of Beulah,
Now I saw in my dream that by this time the Pilgrims were!
got over the Enchanted Ground, and entering into the Coun-I
try of Beulah,* whose ciir was very sweet and pleasant, the way]
lying directly through it, they solrXed themselves there for a|
se ison. Yea, here they heard cortinually the singing of birds, '
and saw every day the flowers appear in the earth, and heard
the voice of the turtle in the land. — In this country the sun
shineth night and day : wherefore this was bej'ond the Valley
of the. Shadow of Death, and also out of the reach of Giant
Despair, neither could they from this place so much as see
Doubting Castle. Here they were within sight of the City
they were going to : also here met them some of the inhabi-
icints thereof : for in this 1 md the Shining Ones commonly
walked, because it was upon the borders of heaven. In this
land also the contract between the Bride iind the Bridegrocni
was renewed : yea, here, "' as th(i bridegroom rejoiceth over
the Bride, so did their God rejoice over them." Here they
had no want of corn and wine ; for in this place they met
abundance of what they had sought for in all their pilgrimages.
Here they heard voices fn^rn out oi the City, loud voices,
saymg, " Say ye to the daughter of Zion, Behold, thy salvation
cometh 1 Behold his rewap; is with him!" Here all the inha- 1
bitants of the country called chem *' the holy people, the re-
deemed of the Lord, sought out — " &<c. (c?)
* Sol. Son^: ii. iO— 12. Isa. .xii. 4—12.
imitating: tlie devil, ihe acctser of the brethren, in calumniating pious per-
sons, maii:nifying their im^^-rfpctitms, insinuating suspicions of them, and
aiming to coniound all di.-tmctioa ..f charactf among men ; we may safe-
ly conclude their state to be perilous in the extreme. While professed
Christians should be exhorted carefully to look to themselves, and to
watch agamst the first incursions of this spiritual declensioii ; it should
also be observed, that the lamented infirmities and dulness of those who
persist in using the means of grace, and striving against sin ; who decided-
ly prefer the company of believers, and deen: them the excellent of the
earth ; and who are severe in judging themselves, but candid to others,
are of a contrary nature and teuuency to the steps of Temporary's apos-
tacy.
(f/) The word Beulah signifies married; and the prophet, in the pas-
sage whence it is quoted, pred}cted a very flourishing state of religion,
vriiich is yet in futurity : but the author accommodates it to the sweet
peace and confidence which tried believers commonly experience towards
the close of their lives. — This general rule admits indeed of exceptions :
but the author, having witnessed many of these encouraging scenes, was
vrilling to animate himself and his afflicted brethren with the hope of si-
milar triumphant joys. The communion of saints in prayer, praises, and
thanksgivings, with liberty and ardour, and hearts united in cordial love ;
The Pilgrims overcome with Delight, 205
Now, as they walked in this land, they had more rejoicing
than in parts more remote from the Kingdom to which they
were bound ; and drawing near to the City they had yet a
more perfect view thereof. It was builded of pearls and pre-
cious stones, also the streets thereof were paved with gold : so
that, by reason of the natural glory of the City, and the reflec-
tion of the sun beams upon it. Christian with desire fell sick ;
Hopeful also had a tit or two of the same disease ; wherefore
here they lay by it a while, crying out because of their pangs,
*' If you see my Beloved, tell him that I am sick of love." (e)
But, being a little strengthened, and better able to bear their
sickness, they wjdked on their way, and came yet nearer
and nearer, where were orchards, vineyards, and gardens, and
their gates opened into the highway. Now, as they came up
to these pl-ices, behold the Gardener stood in the way ; to
whom the Pilgrims said, ' Whose goodly vineyards and gardens
are these ?' He answered, ' I'hey are the King's, and ^re
planted here for his own delights, and also for the solace of
Pilgrims.' — So the Gardener had them into the vineyards, and
bid them refresh themselves with the dainties ;* he also show-
* Deut. xxiii. 24.
the beauties of holiness, and the consolations of the Holy Spirit; the healinjj
beams of the S^on of Righteousness, shining by the sweet light of divine
truth upon the soul ; exemptions from darkening temptations, and harassing
doubts ; lively earnests and near prospects of heavenly felicity ; a cheer-
ing sense of communion with the heavenly host, in their fervent adora-
tions, and a realizing apprehension of their ministering care over the heirs
of salvation ; a comfortable renewal of the acceptance of Christ, sealed
with the tokens, pledges, and assurances of his love ; gratitude, gubmis-
sion, confidence in God, hope, and the sweet exercise of tenderness, sym-
pathy, meekness, and humility, but little interrupted by the working of
the contrary evils : — these things seem to constitute the happy state here
represented. It is remarkable that the Psalms (which were intended,
.among Dth^r uses, to regulate the devotions and experiences of believers)
abound at first with confessions, complaints, fears, and earnest cries of dis-
tress or danger ; but towards the close become more and more the language
of confidence, gratitude and joy, and conclude with unmingled praises and
thanksgivings..
(e) In the immediate view of heavenly felicity, Paul " desired to de-
part hence and be with Christ, as far better" than life ; and David " faint-
ed for God's salriition." In the lively exercise of holy affections, the be-
liever ^rows weary of this sinful world ; and longs to have his faith chang-
ed for siefht, his hope swallowed up in enjoyment, and his love perfected,
and secured from all interruption and abatement. Were this frame of
mind habitual^ it might unfit men for the common concerns of life, which
appear very trifling to the soul when employed in delightful admiring ;
contemplation of heavenly glory.
204 Angels meet them,^
cdthem there the King's walks and the arbours, where he de-
lighted to be : and here they tarried and slept.
''Now I beheld in my dream, that they talked more in their
sleep at this time than ever they did in all their journey ; and,
being in a muse thereabout, the Gardiner said even to me,
Wherefore musest thou at the matter? it is the nature of the
fruit of the grapes of these vineyards ** to go down so sweetly
as to cause the lips of them that are asleep to speak." (/)
So I saw that when they awoke they addressed themselves
to go up to the i>ity. But, as 1 snid, the reflection of the sun
. upon the City, (for the City was pure gold*,) was so extreme-
ly glorious that they could not as yet with open face behold it,
but through an instrument made for that purpose. So F saw,
that as they went on, there met them two Men in raiment that
shone like gold, also their f ices shone as the light.
These Men asked the Pilgrims whence they came ? and
they told them. They also asked them where they had lodg-
ed, what difficulties wnd dangers, what comforts and pleasures,
they had met in the way ? and they told them. Then said the
Men that met them, ' You have but two difficulties more to
meet with, and then you are in the City.' (g)
Christian then ^md his companion asked the Men to go
along with them : so they told them they would : but, said
they, * You must obtain it by your own faith.' — So 1 saw in
my dream, that they went on together till they came in sight
of the Gate.
Now I further saw that betwixt them and the Gate was a
River ; but there was no Bridge to go over : the River was
very deep. At the sight therefore of this River, the Pilgrims
were much stunned ; but the Men that went with them, said,
' Youmu-t go through, or you cannot come at the Gate.'
The Pilgrims then began to inquire if there was no other
'^'Kev. xxi. 18. 2 Cor. iii. 18.
(/) AtlGndance on the public ordinances i? always the believer's duty
and ]■ ; ivilege ; yet he cannot at all time« deli^^ht in them : but, when holy
affect!')os are in lively exercise, he sweetly rests in these earnests of hea-
venly j'V ; and speaks freely and fervently of the love of Christ and th
ble??n)gs of salvation, to the edification of those around him ; who oftei
wonder at ^/itnessin^ such a change, from reserve and diffidence to bold-
ness and Gfirnestness, in urging others to mind the one thing needful
(g") Perhaps the author here alluded to those pre-intimations of death, J
that some persons seem to receive : and he appears to have ascribed them '
to the guardiaii angels, watching over every believer. — Death, and admis-
iion into the City, were the only difficulties that awaited the Pilgrims.
:1
River mthout a Bridge* 205
way to the Gate ? to which they answered, * Yes ; .but there
hath not any, save two, to wit, Enoch and EUjah, been per-
mitted to tread that path since the foundation of the world, nor
shall until the last trumpet sh.di sound.' The Pilgrims then,
(especially Christian) h:gm to despond in their minds, and
looked this way .ind that, but no way could be found by them,
by which they might escape th:i River. Then Ihey asked the
Men Mf the waters wf^re all of a depth ?' They said, no;
yet they could not help thorn in chat case : * For,' said they,
-you shdlfind it deeper or shallower, as you believe in the
King of the place.*
They then addressed th mselves to the water, and entering,
Christi^m began to sink, and crying out to his good friend
Hopeful, he said, '* I sink in deep w.it:*rs ; the billows go over
my head, all his waves go over me. Sel;»h."
Then said the other, • Be of good cheer, my brother ; I
feel the bottom and it is good.' Then said Christian, * Ah '
my friend, the sorrows of death have compassed me about, 1
shall not see the land that flows with milk and honey.' And
with that a great darkness and horror fell upon Christian, so
that he could not see before him. Also he here in great measure
lost his senses, so that he could neither remember nor orderly
talk of any of those sweet refreshments, that he had met with
in the way of his pilgrimage. But all the words that he spake
f^till tended to discover that he had horror of mind, and hearty
fears that he should die in that River, and never obtain en-
trance in at- the Gate. Here also, as they that stood by per-
ceived, he was much in the troublesome thoughts of the sins
that he had committed, both since and before he began to be a
Pilgrim, [li) It was also observed, that he was troubled with
(Ji) Death is aptly represented by a deep River without a bridge, se-
parating the be]ie\'er from his heavenly inheritance : as Jordon flo'A'ed
between Israel and the promised land. From this Rirer, nature sljrinks
back, even when faith, hope, and love, are in lively exercise ; but when
these dncline, alajm and consternation may unite with reluctance at the
thouL'hts of crossing it. The dieaded pangs that precede the awful sepa-
ration of those intima'.e associates, the soul and body; the painful parting
with dear friends and every earthly object; the gloomy ideas of the dark,
cold, and noisome grave ; and the solemn thought of launching into an
unseen eternity, render Death the king of terrors. — But faith in a crucifi-
ed, buried, risen, and ascended Saviour; experience of his faithfulness and':
love in times past; hope of an immediate entrance into his presence,-
where temptntion, conflict, sin and suffering will find no admiaeion ; and
the desire of perfect knowledge, holiness and felicity, will reconcile tho
18
20& Christianas Terrors in the River.
apparitions of hobgoblins and evil spirits : for ever and anon
he would intimate so much by words. Hopeful therefore
here had much ado to keep his brother's head above water ;
yea, sometimes he would be quite gone down, and then, ere a
while, rise up again half dead. Hopeful also would endeavour
to comfort him saying, * Brother, I see the Gate, and men
standing by to receive us ;' but Christian would answer, ' It is
you, it is you they wait for ; you have been hopeful ever <
since I knew you.' * And so have you,' said he to Christian.
' Ah, brother,' said he, ' surely if 1 was right, he would qow
rise up to help me ; but for my sins he hath brought me into
the snare, and h:ith left me.' Then said Hopeful, * My
brother, you have quite forgot the text, where it is said of the
wicked. ' There is no band in their death, but their strength
is hrm ; they are not Troubled as other men, neither are they
plagued like other men.' These troubles and distresses that
you go through in these waters, are no sign that God hath for-
saken you ; but are sent to try you, whether you will call to
mind to the inevitable stroke, and sometimes give a complete victory over
every fear. Yet if fjiith and hope be v/eakened, through the recollection
of any peculiar mi^cc^duct, the withholding of divine light and consola-
tion, or so!i-e violent assault of the temper, even the believer will be pecu»
liarly liable to alarm and distress. His reflecting^ mind, having been long
accastomed to consider the subject in its important nature and conse-
qaences, has very diff3rent apprehensions of God, of eternity, of judgment,
of siii, and of himself, than other men have. Sometimes experienced saints
are more desponding in tht^e circumstances than their junior brethren :
constitution has considerable eifect upon the mind ; and some men (like
Christian) are in every stage of their r-rofossion, more exposed to tempta-
tions of a discouraging nature, than to ambition, avarice, or fleshly lusts.
It has before been suggested, that the author probably meant to describe
the peculiarities of his own experience, in the character of Christian ; and
he may perhaps here have intimated his apprehension, lest he should not
meet death with becoming fortit -de. A conscientious life indeed is com-
monly favoured with a peaceful dose, even when forebodings to the con-
trary have troubled men during tht;ir whole lives : and this is so fdv gene-
raU that they be-rt proviiie for a comfortable death, who most diligently
attend to the duties of their station, and the improvements of their talents,
from evangelical principles ; whereas ^hey v/ho live negligently, and yield
to temptation, make, as it were, an a- ignatioa with terror to meet them
on their death-bed, a season when comfort is more desirable than at any
other. The Lord, however, is no man'? debtor : none can claim consola-
tion as their due : and, though a believe.'^ experience and the testimony
of his conscience may evidence the sincerity of his faith and love : yet he
must disclaim to the last every other depeijdence than the ri^hteousneis
and blood of Christ, and the free mercy of God in him.
Christian troubled by Evil Spirits > 207
inind that which heretofore you have received of his goodness,
and hve upon him in your distresess.'
Then I saw in my dream, that Christian was in a muse a
while. To whom also Hopeful added this word, ** Be of good
cheer, Jesus Christ maketh thee whole." And with that
Chi^istian brake out with a loud voice, * Oh, I see him again I
and he tells me, " When thou passest through the waters,
will be with thee ; and through river*, they shall not overflow
thee."* — Then they both took courage, anri the enemy was
after that as still as a stone, until they were gone over. Chris-
tian therefore presently found ground to stand upon, and so it
followed that the rest of the River was but shallow : thus they
got over, (i)
Now upon the bank of the River, on the other side, they
saw the two Shining Men again, whe there waited for them.
Wherefore being come out of the Kiver, they saluted them,
Stjying, " We are ministering spirits sent forth to minister for
those that shall be heirs of solvation." Thus they went along
towards the Gate. — Now you mu^^t note that the City stood
upon a mighty hill : but the Pilgrirni went up that hill with
ease, because they had these two Men to lead them up by the
arms : also they had lefi their nv»rtal garments behind them
in the River ; for though ihey wiiit in with them, they came
out without them. They thercfn-e went up here with much
agility and speed, though the fouudatic a upon which the City
V s framed wab higher thun the ••loucs : they therefore went
up through the regions of the ai], sweetly talking as they
went, being comforted, because they safely got over the River,
and had such glorious Companions to attend them. (Ji)
* Isa. xliii. 2.
(i) The temporary distresses ot dviug bel uvers often arise frcm bodily
disease, which interrupt: th'* free ex-cise oi tneir intellectual i/owers. Of
tills Satan will be sure to take advajra.re, as far as he is permitted ; and
"will sugg^est gloomy inia:.'inations, ».')l only to dijtress them, but to dia-
hearteu others by their example. — '"'' hat liiay in this ftate be painted be-
fore the fancy we cannot tell : but it s gnierallv observed, that such pain-
ful contiicts terminate in renewed hope i ao comfort, frequently by means
of the conversation and prayers of Chris tians and ministers ; so that they,
who for a time have been most distressed, ha^e at length died most tri-
umphantly. '
(A:) When " Lazarus died, he was carried hy an2:els into Abraham's ho-
som ;" and we have every reason to believe, that the services of these,
friendly spirits to the souls of departed saints are immediate and sensible;
and that their joy is such as is here defccribed. The beautiful description
that follows admits of no elucidation ; somo of the images indeed are taken
208 Tlie Pilgrims mount with ease to the City,
The talk that they had with the Shining Ones was about the
glory of the place ; who told them, that the beauty and glory
of it was inexpressible. There, said they, is " The Mount
Zion, the heavenly Jerusalem, the mnumerable company of
angels, and the spirits of just men made perfect."* You are
going now, said they, to the Paradise of God, wherein you
sh.ul see the Tree of Life, and eat of the never-fading fruits
thereof: and when you come there you shall have white robes
given you, and your w dk and talk shall be every day with the
King, even all the days of eternity.! There you shall not see
ag lin sum things as you saw when you were in the lower re-
gion upon the earth, to wit, sorrow, sickness, affliction, and
death, '*• for the former things are passed away."| You are
going now to Araham, to i<aac, and Jacob, and to the prophets,
men that God h ith taken tway from the evil to come, and that
are now *' restmg upon iheir beds, each one walking in his
righteousness." Tho men then asked, * What must we do in
the holy place ?' To whom it was answered, ' You must
there r^ceivp the comfort of all your toil, and have joy for all
your sorrow ; you must r.>ap what you have sown, even the
-jfruit of all your prayerss, and te.irs, and sufferings, for the
King, b;y the wjiy.§ in th t place you must wear crowns of
gold, and enjoy the perpetual sight and vision of the Holy
One, for there " you shrdi see Him »is he is."ii There also
you shall serve Him continually- with praise, with shouting,
and thanksnving, whoii you desireu to serve in the world,
though with much difficulty, because of the intirmity of your
fiesh. There your ey^-s sh ill be delighted vvith seemg, and
your enrs vvith hearing, the pleasant voice of the Mighty One
There you shall enjoy your friends ag^in, that are gone thither
before you ; -md tlr^re yon shali with joy receive even every
one th it iollows into the holy place after you. There also
you sh 11 be ciother: with s;lory and m j» ;Jty, and put into an
equipage tit to ride out >Mth the King of Glory. When he
shall come with sound of trumpet in tlie cloiuls, j.s upon the
ings of the wind, you shdl coiae with him ; and, when he
-ii'ill sit upon the throne of judgment, you shall sit by him :
yea and when he shall p ^ss sentence upon all the workers of
iniquity, let then) be angels or men, you shall have a voice
* Heb. xii. 22—24. + Rev. ii. 7. iii. 4. xsii. 5. t Isa. Ixv. 16.
5 Gal. vi. 7, 8. || 1 John, ui. 2.
from modern customs ; but ia all other respects it is entirely scriptural,
and very intelligible and animating to the spiritual mind.
They are conducted and nDelcomed by Angels. 20 D
m that judijment, becauo.- they were his and your enemies.
Also when he shall again return to the City, you shall go too
with sound of trumpet, iiid b3 ever with him.'*
Now, while th^y wer: thus drawing towards the Gate, be-
hold a company of Ihc heavenly host came out to meet them ;
to w^hom it was said by the other two Shining Ones, * These
are the men that havo loved our Lord, when they were in the
world, and that havo left all for bis holy name, and he hath
sent us to fetch theai, and we have brought them thufi far on
their desired journey, that they may go in and look their Re-
deemer in the face r.ith joy.' Then the heivmly host gave
a great shout, s;«ymg, ** Blessed are they that are called
to the marriage-sapper of the Lamb."t Tbere came out also
at this time to iiieet them several of the King's trumpx^ters,
clothed in vAnU) and shining raiment, who with* melodiou^
noises and loud made even the heavens to echo with their
sound.. These trumpeters saluted Christian and his fellow
with ten thousand \v olcomes from the world ; and this they
did w^ith shouting and sound of trumpet.
This done, they compassed them round on every side ;
some went before, some behind, and some on the right hand,
some on the left, (j.s it were to guard them through the upper
regions,) continudly sounding as they went, with melodious
noise, in notes on iugh ; so that the very sight was to them that
could behold it, is if heaven itself was come down to meet
them. Thus therefore they walkod on together ; and, as they
vy;ill;ed, ever md anon these trumpeters, evei) with joyful
sbund, wouJJ^ by mixing their music with looks ;md gestures,
still signily to Christian and his brother how welcome they
were into their company, and witli what gladness they came to
meet the n. And now were these two men, as it w^re, in
heaven, before they came at it, being swr.llowed u\) with the
sight of ;ngels, .md with hearing of thf,ir melodic u«^ r.'>tes. Here
also th'^y had the City itself in view : and tht y thought .they
heard all the bells therein to ring, to welcome them thereto.
But above all, the warm ;md joyfuv thoughts that they had
about their own dwelling there with such company, and that
for ever and ever. Oh ! bj^ what tongue or pen can their glori-
ous joy be expressed ? — Thus they came up to the Gate.
Now, whenlhey were come up to the Gate, there was
written over it, in letters of gold, *' Blessed are they that do
♦ Thess. iv. 13—17. Jude 14, 15. Dan. vii. 9, 10. 1 Cor. vi. 2, 3.
t Rev. xix. 9.
Dd 18*
210 They enter the City in Triumph,
his commandments, that they may have right to the tree of
hfe, and may enter in through the gates into the city."* (/)
Then 1 saw in my dream that the Shining Men bid them
call at the G.ite ; the which when they iid, some from above
locked over the Gate, to wit, Enoch, Moses, and Elijah, &lc.
to whom it was Siid, ' These Pilgrims are come from the City
of Destruction, ibr the love that thoy bear to the King of this
place ;' and tlien the pilgrims gave in unto them each man his
certiticate, which they liad received in the beginning : those
therefore were carrieti in to the King, who, when he had read
them, said, ' vVher-j are the men ?' to whom it was answered,
' They are standing without the Gate,' The King then com-
manded to *' open the Gate, that the righteous nation," said he,
• thai keepeth trutli may enter in. "t
Now I saw in my dream, that these two men went in at the
Gate ; and, lo ! as they entered, they were transiigured ; and
they had raiment put on that shone Hke gold. There was
also that met them w^ith harps and crowns, and gave them to
them ; the harps to praise withal, and the crowns in token oi
honour. Then I heard in my dream that all the bells in the City'
xang aguin for joy, and that it was sidd unto them, '* tmter ye
into the joy of your Lord." 1 also heard the men them-
selves, that they salig with a loud voice, saying, " Blessing,
and honour, and glory, and power, be to Him that sitteth upon
the throne, and to the Lamb for ever. "J
Now, just as the Gates were opened to let in the men, I
looked after them, and behold the City shone like the sun ;
the streets also were paved with gold ; and in them walked
muny men with crowns on their heads, palms in their hands,
an 1 golden harps, to sing praises withal.
There were also of them that had wings, and they answered
»ie another without intermission, saying, '' Holy, holy, holy
is the Lord." And after that they shut up the Gates : whicl\^
when I had seen, I wished myself among them.
'■^- P^ev. xxii. 14. t Isa. xxvi. 2. if Rev. v. 13, 14.
(/) The commandments of .God, ns given to sinners uniler a dispensa-
ji of mercy, coll them to repentance, faith in Christ, and the obedience
of fai h and love ; the believer habitually practises according to these
ccainaadments, from the time of his receiving Christ for salvation ; and
this f^vidences his interest in all the blessings of the new covenant, and
proves that he has a right throag;h grace to the heavenly inheritam^e.—
May the writer of these remarks, and every reader, have such *•• an abun-
dant entrance," as is here described, '* into the everlasting kingdom of our
Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ T
Ignorance ferried over by Vain-Hope. 211
Now, while 1 was gazin^; upon all these things I turned my
head to look back, and s<.w Ignoranje come up to the River-
side : but he soon got over, ami thai without ha^f the diiSicul-
ty which the other two men nut with. For it happened that
there was then in that place one Vvdn-hope, a ferry-man, that
with his boat helped liim over ; so he, as the other I saw, did
ascend the hill to come up to the Gate ; only he came alone ;
neither did any man meet him with the least encouragement.
When he hadcome up to the G.ite, he looked up to the writing
that was above, md then began to knock, supposing that en-
trance should have been quickly administered to him : but
he was asked by the men that looked over the top of the Gate,
* Whence come you ? And what would you have ?' He an-
swered, 'I have ate and drunk in the presence of the King,
and he has taught in our streets.' Then they asked him for
his Certificate, that they might go in and show it to the King : —
so he fumbled in his bosom for one and found none. Then,
said they. Have you non*" ? But the man answered never a
word. So they told the King, but he would not come down to
see him ; but commanded th.-^ two Shining Ones, that conduct-
ed Christian and Hopeful to the City, to go out and take Ig-
norance, and bind him hand and foot, and have him away.
Then they took him up, and carried him through the air to
the Door that 1 saw in the side of the hill, and put him in
there. Then I saw th t there was a way to hell, even from
the gates of heaven, as well as I'rom the City of Destruction, (m)
So I awoke, and beheld it was a dream.
{m) We frequently hear of persons that nave lived strangers to evangelical
religion, and the" power of godliness, dying w;t';i great composure and resig-
nation : and such instances are brought forv j <) as an objection to the neces-
sity wf faith, or of a devoted li.'e. But what du tlioy prove ? What evidence is
theie, that such men are saved ? Is it not far more likely that they continued
to the end under thp power of ignorance and self-conceit ; that Satan took .
care not to disturb them ; and that God j^ave them over to a strong delusion,
and left them to perish with a lie in their right hand ? Mtn, who have ne-
glected religion all their live?, or have habitnall v l«jr a length of years disgraced
an evangelical profession, being when ijear death visited by pious persons,
sometimes obtain a sudden and extraurdinary measure of peace and joy, and
die in this frame. This should in general be considered as a bad sign : for
deep humiliation, yea distress, united with some trembling hope in God's
mercy through the gospel, is far more suited to their case, and more likely to
be the effect of spiritual illumination. But when a formal visit from a minister
of any sect, a few general questions, and a prayer, (with or without the sa-
crament.) calm the mind of a dying person, whose life has been unsuitable to
the Christian profession : no doubt, could we penetrate the veil, we should see
him wafted across the River in the boat of Vain-hope, and meeting with the
awful doom tnat is here described. From such delusions, good Lord, deliter
us. Amen^
END OF PART I.
THE
PILGRIM'S PROGRESS.
P A. R T II.
COURTEOUS COMPANIONS,
SOME time since, to tell yon a dream that I had of Chris-
tian the Pilgrim, and of his dangerous journey towards the
Celestial Country, was pleasant to me and protitable to you.
I told you then also what 1 saw concerning his wife and chil-
dren, and how unwiUing they were to go with him on pil-
grimage : insomuch that he was forced to go on his progress
without them ; for he durst not run the danger of that destruc-
tion, which he feared would come by staying with them in the
City of Destruction. Wherefore, iia I then showed you, he
left them and departed, (a)
Now it hath happened, through the multiplicity of business,
that 1 have been much hind Ted And kept back from my wont-
ed travels into tho^<* parts where he went ; and so could not,
till now, obtain an opportunity to make further inquiry after
whom he left behind, th. t 1 might give you an account of them.
But, having had some concerns th it uiy of late, I went down
again thitht^rward. Now having taken up my lodging in a
wood, aboui a mile off the place, ^s 1 slept 1 dreamed a^fib
And, as 1 was in my (Uv mi, i) 'iold, an i^ed gentleman
came by where I lay ; and her ;use he was to go some part of
the v»^ay that 1 was travelling, methought I got up and went
(a) It has been before observed. Thai the first part oV ' The Pilgrim's
Progress' is in all resii-'cts the most complete : Yet there are many thmgs
in the second well worthy of Hhe pious reader's attention ; nor can there
be any doubt, but it was penned by the same author. It is not, however,
necessary, tliat <h<° annotator should b^ so copious upon it, as upon the
moTo snterestim: instructions tif the preceding part. In general, the lead-
ing incidents may be considere<l as the author's own exposition of his
meaninof in the former part; or as his dehn ation of some varieties, that
occur in events of a similar nature ; yet some particulars will demand,
and richly deserve, a more full and exact elucidation.
21 4 Sagacity gives an account
with him. So, as we walked, and as travellers usually do, I
w^as as ii' we fell into a discourse, and our talk happened to be
about Christian and his travels : for thus I began with the old
man :
' Sir,' said I, * what Town is that there below, that lieth on
the left-hand of our way ?'
Then said Mr. hagacity, (for that was his name,) ' It is the
City of Destruction, a populous place, but possessed with a
very ill-conditioned and idle sort of people.'
* I thought that uas that City,' quoth 1, ' I went once my-
self through that Town ; and th-^^efore 1 know that this report
you give of it is true.'
Sag, Too true ! I wish I could ^peak truth in speaking bet-
ter of them, that dwell therein.
* Well, Sir,' quoth I, ' then I perceive you to be a well-
meaning man, and so one that takes pleasure to hear and tell of
that which is good : pray did you nover hear what happened
to a man some time ago in this I own, (whose name was
Christian,) that went on a pilgrimage up towards the higher
regions ?'
Sag. Hear of him ! Ay, and I also heard of the molestations,
troubles, wars, captivities, cries, groans, frights, and fears that
he met with and ha^ on his journey. Besides, I must tell you
all our country rings of him , there are but few houses, that
have heard of him and his domgs, but h 've sought after and got
the rer-rds of his pilgrimnee : yea, I think ! may SRy, that
this hazardous journey has got many well-wishers to his ways ;
for, though when he Was here, he wms fool in every man's
mouth, yet now he is gone he is highly commended of all.
For it is said he lives bravely where he is : yea, many of
them that are resolved never to run his hazards, yet have
their nioutiis water nt his gains.
' They 'nay/ quoth 1, ' well think, if they think any thing
that is true, that he liveth well where he is ; for he now lives
at and in the Fountain of life, and has what he has without la-
bour and sorrow, for there is no grief mixed therewith. But
pray, what talk have the people about him ?'
Sag, Talk 1 the people talk strangely about him : some say,
that he now walks in white ;* that he has a chain of gold
about his neck ; that he has a crown of gold, beset with
pearls, upon his head : others say, that the Shining Ones that
♦ Rev. iii. 4. vi. 11.
Of Christian'* s Adventurer. 2 1 5
sometimes showed themselves to him in his journey, are he-
come his companions, and that he is as famiUar with them in
the phice where he is, as here one neighbour is with another.*
Besides, it is confidently affirmed concerning him, that the King
of the place where he is, h;is bestowed upon him already a
very rich and pleasant dwelling at court, and that he every
day eateth, autl drinketh, and w.dketh, and talketh, with him,
and receiveth the si^iiies and favours of him that is Judge of all
there. Moreover, it is expected of some, that his prince the
Lord of that Country, will shortly come into these parts,
and will know the reason, if they can give any, why his
neighbours set so little by him, and had him so much in deri-
sion, when they perceived that he would be a Pilgrim.t
For they say, that now he is so in the affections of his Prince,
and that his Sovereign is so much concerned with the indigni-
ties that were cast upon Christian, when he became a Pilgrim,
,that he will look upon all as if done to himself : and no mar-
vel, for it was for the love that he had to his Prince, that he
ventured as he did.| (b)
' I dare siy,' quoth I, * I am glad of it ; I am glad for the
poor man's sake, for that now he h^s rest from his labour,§
and for that he now ro,.ps the benefits of his tears with joy ;!l
and for that he has got beyond the i^un-shot of his en^'mies,
and is out of the Paach of them that hite him. I also am glad,
for that a rumour of these things is noised abroad in this coun-
try ; who can tell but that it my work some good effect on
* Zech. iii. 7. t Jude 14, 15.
+ Luke X. 16. 5 Rev. xiv. l3. || Fsa. cxxvi. 5, 6.
'b) Christians are the representatives ©n earth of the Saviour and
Judge of the world ; and the usa^e they meet with, whether good or Vjad,
commonly originates in men's love to him, or contemjjtuous enmity against
him. The decisions of the great day therefore will be made, with an
especial reference to this evidence of men's faith or unbelief. Faith works
by love of Christ, and of his people for his sake, which influences msn to
self-denying kindness towards the needy and dibtressG;! of the flock.
"Where these fruits are totally wanting, it is evident there is no love of
Christ, and consequently no faitli in him, or salvation by him. And as
true believers are the excellent of the earth, no man can have any ^'ood
reason for despiiiing, hating, aad injuring them ; so that this usage v/ill be
adduced as. a proof of positive enmity to Christ, and expose the condemned
sinn'^r to more aggravated misery. Indeed, it often appears after the
death of consistent Christians, that the consciences of their most scornful
opposers secretly favoured them : it must then surely be deemed the wisest
conduct by every refiecting person, to "• let these men alone,— ^Jest haply
he should be found to fi^ht against God."
f iS Chrhiiau's wife and children hecome Pilgrim.
some that are left behind ? — But pray, Sir, while it is fresh In
my mind, do you hear any thing of his wife and children ?
Poor hearts, I v/onder in my mind what they do.
Sag. Who ? Christiana and her sons ? They are like to do
as well as did Christian himself; for though they all played
the fool at first, and would by no means be persuaded by either
the tears or entreaties of Christian, yet s^^cond thoughts have
wrought wonderfully with them : so they have packed up,
and are also gone after him.
' Better and better,' quoth I! * But, what! w^ife and chil-
dren and all ?'
Sag. It is true : I can give you an account of the matter :
for I was upon the spot at the instant, and was thoroughly ac-
quainted with the whole affair.
* Then,' s:ud I, * may a marl report it for a truth ?'
Sag. You need not fear to affirm it : I mean, that they are
all gone on pilgrimage, both the good woman and her four
boys. And being we are, as I perceive, going some consi-
derable way together, I will give you an account of the whole
matter.
This Christiana, (for that was her name from the d^y that
she with her children betook themselves to a Pilgrim's life,)
after her husband was gone over the River, "^ and she could hear
of bim no more, her thoughts began to work in her mind.
First, for that she had lost h?r husband, and for that the
loving bond of that rehtion was utterly broken betwixt them.
For you know, said he to me, n-itur.* can do no less but enter-
tain the living w^ith many i heavy cogitation in the remem-
brance of the loss of loving relations. This, therefore, of her
husband, did cost her many a tear. But this was not all, for
Christiana did also begin to consider with herself, whether her
unbecoming behaviour towards her hii?band v»'as not one cause
thr-t she saw him no more ; and that in such sort he was taken
away from her. And upon this came into her mind, by
swarm>5, all her unkind, unnaturd, and ungodly carriage ^o her
dear friend ; which also clogged her conscience, and bid load
her with guilt. She was moreover much broken with calling
to remembrance the restless groans, the brinish tears, and self-
bemonnin^ of her husband, and how she did harden her heart
against all his entreaties, and loving persuasions, of her and
her sons, to go with him : yea, there was not any thing th^t
* Part i. p. 205 — 207.
Christiana fs admonislied by Dreams. 217
Christian either said to her, or did before her, all the while
that his burden did hang on his back, but it returned upon her
like a flash of lightning, and rent the caul of her heart in sun-
der ; especially that bitter outcry of his, " What shall I do to j
be saved ?" did ring in her e^^rs most dolefully.''^ 1
Then Siiid she to her children, ' Sons, we are all undone.
I have sinned away your father, and he is gone : he would
have had us with him, but I would not go myself : I also have
hindered you of life.' With that the boys fell into tears, and
cried to go after their father. ' Oh ! said Christiana, that it
had been but our lots to go with him ; then it had f-jred "'^11
with us, beyond what it is like to do now. For though I for
merly foolishly imagined concerning the troubles of your fa-
ther, that they proceeded of a foolish f;mcy that he had, or
for that he was over-run with melancholy humours : yet now
it will not out of my mind, but that they sprang from another
cause ; to wit, for that light of life was given him ;t by the
help of which, as I perceive, he has escaped the snares of
death.' Then they wept all again, and cried out, * Oh, wo
worth the day !' (c)
The next night Christiana had a dream ; and behold, she
saw as if a broad parchment was opened before her, in which
were recorded the sum of her ways, and the crimes, as she
thought, looked very black upon her. Then she cried out
aloud in her sleep, *' Lord, have mercy upon me a smner :"J
— and the little children heard her.
After this, she thought she saw two very ill-favoured ones
standing by her bed-side, and saying, * What shall we do with
* Part i. p. 19—22. t John viii. 12. :f Luke xviii. 13.
(c) It is here evident, that the author was intent on encouraging pious
persons to persevere in using all means for the spiritual good of their chil-
dren, even v/hen they see no effects produced by them. The Scripture
teaches us to expect a blessing on such endeavours : the dying testimony
and counsels of exemplary believers frequently make a deeper impression
than all their previous instructions : the death of near relations, who
have behaved well to such as despised them, proves a heavier loss than
was expected : the recollection of unkind behaviour to such valuable
friends, and of the pains taken to harden the hearts against their affection-
ate admonitions, sometimes lies heavy on the conscience ; and thus the
prayers of the believer for his children or other relatives, are frequently
answered after his death. And when some of them begin to inquire,
" What must we do to be saved?" these will become zealous instruments
m seeking the conversion of those, whom before they endeavoured to
prejudice against the ways of God.
Ee 19
218 S£cret visits Christiana,
this woman ? for she cries out for mercy waking and sleeping :
if she be suffered to go on as she begins, we shall lose her aa
we have lost her husband. Wherefore we must, by some
way, seek to take her off from the thoughts of what shall be
hereafter, else all the world cannot help but she will become a
Pilgrim.' (c/)
Now she awoke in a great sweat ; also a trembling was
\jif>on her ; but after a while she fell to sleeping again. And
ilnm she thought she saw Christian her husband in a place of
bliss among many immortcds, with a harp in his hand, standing
and playing upon it before One that sat on a throne, with a
.f?\inbow about his head. She saw also, as if he bowed his
nead'^^apj!^ his face towards the paved work that was under
ins^Pmice's feet, saying, ' I heartily thank my Lord and King
i^ bringing me into this place.' Then shouted a company
of them that stood round about and harped witli their harps :
but no man living could tell what they said, but Christian and
his companions.
Next morning, when she was up, had prayed to God, and
talked with her children a v»hile, one knocked hard at the
door ; to whom she spake out, saymg, * If thou comestin God's
name, come in.' So he said, ' Amen ;' and opened the door,
and saluted her with, ' Peace on this house.' The which
when he had done, he said, ' Christiana, knowestthou where-
fore I am come V Then she blushed and trembled, also her
heart began to wax warm with desires to know from whence
he came, and what his errand was to her. So he said unto
her, ' My name is S e^iiiL^ I dwell with thos?i that are high.
It is talked of, where I dwell, as if thou hadst a desire to go
thither : also there is a report, that thou art aware of the
(d) The minci, during sleep, is often occupied about those subjects that
have most deeply en^ragedthe wakino^ thoughts : ana it sometimes pleases
God to make use of ideas thus su;^gested, to i nfluence the conduct by ex-
citing fears or hopes. , Provided an intimation be scriptural, and the ef-
fect salutary, we need not hesitate to consider it as a divine monition,
however it was brought to the mind ; but, if men attempt to draw con-
clusions in respect of their acceptance or duty ; to determine the truth of
certain doctrines ; to prophecy, or to di3co\ er hidden things, b5'''dreanis
or visions of any kind ; they then become a very dangerous and disgrace-
ful species of enthusiasm. Whatever means are employed, conviction of
sin and a disposition earnestly to cry for mercy, are the work of the Holy
Spirit in the heart; and on the other hand, the powers of darkness will
•urely use every effort and stratagem to take off inquirers from thus
earnestly seeking the salvation of God,
He encourages and advises Her, 219
evil thou hast formerly done to thy husband, in hardening of
thy heart against his way, and in keeping of these babes in their
ignorance. Christiana, the Merciful One has sent me to tell
thee, that he is a God ready to forgive, and that he taketh de-
light to multiply the pardon of oft'ences. He also would have
thee to know that, he inviteth thee to come into his presence,
to his table ; and that he will feed thee with the fat of his
house, and with the heritage of Jacob thy father.'
* There is Christian, thy husband that was, with legions
more, his companions, ever beholding that Face that doth
minister life to the beholders : and they will all be glad,
when they shall hear the sound of thy feet step over thy
Father's threshold.'
Christiana, at this was greatly abashed in herself, and bow-
ed her head to the ground. This Vision proceeded, and said,
* Christiana, here is also a letter for thee, which I have brought
from thy husband's King ;' so she took it and opened it, but it
smelt after a manner of the best perfume.* Also it was writ-
ten in letters of gold. The conter.ts of the letter were these :
* tli.it the King would have her tlo as did Christian her hus-
band ; for that was the only way to come to his City, and to
dwell in his presence with joy for ever.' At this the good
woman was quite overcome : so she cried out to her Visiter,
* Sir, will you carry me and my children v/ith you, that wc
may also go and worship the Kmg V (e)
* Sol. Song i. 3.
(e) " The secret of the Lord is with. them that fear him." The intima-
tions given by Secret se^ms to represent the silent teachings of tlie Holy-
Spirit, by which the true meaning of the Scriptures is discovered, and the
real grounds of euc'>uragemeut bcought to the penitent's notice or recol-
lection. Thus he learns that the way of salvation is yet open to him : and
the invitations of the gospel prov<' more fragrant and refreshing than the
most costly ointment, and moro pr^-cious than the goM of Ophir. It is ob-
servable that Secret did not mforni Christiana that her sins were forgiven,
or that Christ and the promises belonsred to her ; but merely that she
ivas invited to come, and that comujg m the appointed way she would be
accepted, notwithstanding her pertinacious unbelief in the preceding part
of her life. Thus, without seeming to have intended it, the author hath
stated the scriptural medium between the extremes which have been con-
tended for with great ea ':- rness and immense mischief in modern days ;
while some maintain, thai sinnere should not be invited to come to Christ,
or commanded to repeiit and believe the gospel ; and others that they
should be urged to bcheve at ones, with foil assurance, that all the bles-
sings of salvation belong to them, even previously to repentance, or works
meet for repentance I
220 C^iristiana speaks to her Son,
Then said the Visiter, * Christiana, the hitter is before the
sweet.' Thou must, through troubles, as he did that went be-
fore thee, enter this Celestial City. (/) Wherefore I advise
thee to do as did Christian thy husband ; go to the Wicket-
gate yonder over the plain ; for that stands in the head of the
way up which thou must go, and I wish thee all good speed.
Also I advise thee, that thou put this letter in thy bosom ; that
thou read therein to thyself, and to thy children, until they
have got it by heart ; for it is one of the songs that thou must
smg while in this house of-thy pilgrimage :* also this thou must
deliver in at the far Gate.
Now I saw in my dream, that this old Gentleman as he told
me the story, did himself seem to be greatly affected there-
with. He moreover proceeded and said : So Christiana call-
ed her sons together, and began thus to address herself unto
them : * My sons, I have as you may perceive, been of late
under much exercise in my soul about the death of your
father : not for that I doubt at all of his happiness ; for I am
satisfied now that he is well. I have been also much affected
with the thoughts of mine own estate and your's, which 1
Terily believe is by nature miserable. My carriage also to
your father in his distress is a great load to my conscience :
for I hardened both my heart and your's against him and re-
fused to go with him on pilgrimage."
* Psa. cxix. 54.
(/) " Through much tribulation we must enter into the kingdom of
God !" Habitual self-denial, even in things lawful in themselves, yet in
many cases inexpedient, mortification of our sinful inclinations, inward
conflicts, the renunciation of worldly interests and connexions, the scorn
and hatred of the world, sore temptations, and salutary chastisements, are
very bitter to our natural feelings. Habits likewise, and situation often
render some of them extremely painful, like " cutting off a right hand,
or plucking out a right eye :" and deep poverty, persecution, or seasons ot
public calamity, may enhance these tribulations. If a man, therefore,
meet with nothing bitter, m consequence of his religious profession, he has
great reason to suspect that he is not in the narrow way ; yet many argue
against themselves, on account of those v^ery trials, which are a favoura-
ble token in their behalf But, on the other hand, the believer has " a
joy that a stranger intermeddleth not -with," which counterValanceth all
his sorrows so that even in this life he possesses more solid satisfaction
than they do, who choose the road to destruction from fear of the difficul-
ties attending the way of life. Satan is, however, peculiarly successful in
persuading men, that religion, the very essence of heavenly happiness,
will make them miserable on earth ; and that sin, the source of all the
misery in the universe, will make them happy ! By such manifest lies does
this old murderer support his cause I ^
I
She IS sorely afflicted. 521
* The thoughts of these things would now kill me outright,
but for that a dreair; which I had last night, and but that for the
encouragement this stranger has given me this morning. Come,
my children, let us pack up, and be gone to the Gate that leads
us to that Celesti:;! Country, that we may see 3^our father and
be with him and his companions, in peace, accofding to the
laws of that land.'
Then did her children burst out into tears, for joy that the
heart of their mother was so inchned. So the Visiter bid
them farewell : and they began to prepare to set out for their
journey. -
But while they were thus about to be gone, two of the wo-
men that wore Christi"ana's neighbours came up to her house,
and knocked at the door. To whom she said as before. At
this the women were stunned ; for this kind of language they
used not to hear, or to perceive to drop from the lips of Chris-
tiana. Yet thoy came in: but behold, they found the good
woman preparing to be gone from her house.
So they beg.m and said, 'Neighbour, pray what is your
meanii^g by this ?'
Christiana »riswered and said to the eldest of them whose
name was Mrs. Timorous, *I am preparing for a journey.'
(This Timorous was daughter to him that met Christian upon
the hill of Difficulty, and would have had him gone back for
fear of the lions.*)
Tim. For what journey, I pray you ?
Chr. Even to go after my old husband.— And with that she
fell a weeping.
Tiw. I hope not so, good neighbour ; pray, for your poor
children's sake, do not so unwomanly cast away yourself.
Chr. Nay, my children shall go with me, not one of them is
willing to stay behind.
liin. I wonder in my heart, what or who has brought you
into this mind !
Chr. Oh neighbour, knew you but as much as I do, I doubt
not but that you would go along with me.
Tim. Pr'ythee, what new knowledge hast thou got, that
so worketh off thy mind from thy friends, and that tempteth
thee to go nobody knows where ?
Then Christiana replied, I have been sorely afflicted since
my husband's departure from me ; but especially since he
* Part i. p. 58.
19*
522 Mercy inclines to accompany C%ristiana,
went over the River. But that which troubleth me most, \s
my churlish carriage to him, when he was under his distress
Besides, 1 am now as he was then ; nothing will serve me^
but going on pilgrimage. I was a dreaming last night, that I
saw him. O that my soul was with him 1 He dwelleth in the
presence of the King of the Country ; he sits and eats with
him at his table ; he is become a companion of immortals, and
has a house now given him to dwell in, to which the best
palaces on earth, if compared, seems to me but as a dung-
hill.* The Prince of the Palace has also sent for me, with
promises of entertainment, if I shall come to him ; his Mes-
senger was here even now, and brought me a letter, which
invites me to come. — And with that she plucked out her
letter, and read it, and said to them, what now will you sav to
this ?
Tim» Oh, the madness that has possessed thee and thy
husband 1 to run yourself upon such difficulties ! You have
heard, I am sure, what your husband did meet with, even in a
manner, at the first step that he took on his way, as pur neigh-
bour Obstinate can yet testify, for he went along with him ;
3/ea, and Pliable too, until they, like wise men, were afraid to
go any further.t We also heard, over and above, how.he
met with the lions, Apollyon, the Shadow of Death, and many
other things. Nor is the danger that he met with at Vanity-
Fair to be forgotten by thee. For if he, though a man, was so
hard put to it, what canst thou, being a poor woman, do ?
Consider also, that these four sweet babes are thy children,
thy flesh and thy bones. Therefore, though thou,shouldst be
so rash as to cast away thyself; yet for the sake of the fruit of
thy body, keep them at home.
But Christiana said unto her, Tempt me not, my neighbour :
I have now a price put into my hand to get gain, and I should
be a fool of the greatest sort, if I should have no heart to
strike in with the opportunity. And for that you tell me of all
these troubles that I am like to meet with in the way ; they
are so far from being to me a discouragement, that they show
I am in tlie right. The bitter comes before the sweet, and that
also will make the sweet the sweeter. Wherefore since you
. came not to my house in God's name, as I said, I pray you be-
gone, and do not disquiet me farther.
Then Timorous also reviled her, and said to her fellow,
* 2 Cor, y. 1—4. t Part i. p. 22—27.
Timorous tells her JVeighbours about Cfiristiana. 223
* Come, neighbour Mercy, let us leave her in her own hands,
since she scorns our counsel and company.' But Mercy was at a
stand, and could not so readily comply with her neighbour ;
and that for a two-fold reason. — 1st. Her bowels yearned over
Christiana. So said she within herself, * If my neighbour will
needs be gone, I will go a little way with her, and help her.' —
2dly. Her bowels yearned over her own soul ; for what
Christiana had said, had taken some hold upon her mind.
Wherefore she said within herself again, ' 1 will have yet
more talk with this Christiana ; and, if I find truth and life in
what she shall say, myself with my heart shall also go with
her.' (g) Wherefore Mercy began thus to reply to her neigh-
bour Timorous.
Mer. Neighbour, I did indeed come with you to see Chris-
tiana this morning : and, since she is, as you see, taking her
last farewell of this country, I think to walk this sun-shiny
morning a little with her, to help her on her way. — But she
told her not of her second reason, but kept it to herself.
Tim, Well, I see you have a mind to go a foohng too ; but
take Leed in time, and be wise ; while w^e are out of daneer,
we are oui , but, when we are in, we are in. So Mrs. Tim-
orous returned to her house, and Christiana betook herself to
iier journey. But, when Timorous was got home to her
house, she sends for some of her neighbours, to wit, Mrs.
Bat's-eyes, Mrs. Inconsiderate, Mrs. Light-mind, and Mrs.
Know-nothmg. So, when they were come to her house, she
falls to telling of the story of Christiana, and ol her intended
journey. And thus she began her tale —
Neighbours, having but little to do this morning, I went to
give Christiana o visit ;. and, when I came at the door, I
knocked, as you know it is our custom : and she answered,
* If you come in God's name, come in.' So in I went, think-
(g) The very things which excite the rage and scorn of some persons,
penetrate the hearts and conscience:^ of others. Thus the Lord makes
one, to differ from another, by preparing the heart to receive the good seed
of divine truth, which is sown iu it; yet every one willingly chooses the
way he takes, without any constraint or hindrance, except his own pre-
vailing dispositions. This consideration gives the gr^test encouragement
to the use of all proper means, in order to influence sinners to choose the
good part : for who knows but the most obvious truth, warning, or exhor-
tation, given in the feeblest manner, may reach the conscience of a child,
relative, neighbour, enemy, or even persecutor ; when the most convinc-
ing and persuasive discourses of eloquent and learned teachers have failed
to produce any effect.
224 The discourse of the Party.
ing all was well : but, when I came in, I found her prepanug
herself to depart the town ; she, and also her children. So 1
asked her, what was her meaning by that ? And she told me in
short that she was now of a mind to go on pilgrimage, as did
her husband. She told me also a dream that she had, and how
the King of the Country where her husband was, had sent her
an inviting letter to come thither
Then said Mrs. Know-nothtng, And, what, do you think she
will go ?
Tim. Ay, go she will, whatever come on't ; and methinks
I know it by this ; for that which was my great argument to
persuade her to stay at home (to wit, the troubles she vv as
like to meet with in the way,) is one great argument with her,
to put her forward on her journey. For she told me in so
many w^ords, ' The bitter goes before the sireet : yea, and for
asmuch as it doth, it makes the sweet the sweeter.'
Mrs. Bafs-eyes. Oh this blind and foolish woman ; and will
she not take warning by her husband's afflictions? For my
part, I see, if he were here again, he would rest him content
in a whole skin, and never run so many hazards for nothing.
Mrs. inconsiderate also replied, saying, " Away with such
fantastical fools from the Town : a good riddance, for my part,
I say of her ; should she stay where she dwells, and retain this
mind, who could live quietly by her ? for she will either be
dumpish or unneighbourly, to talk of such matters as no wise
body can abide. Wherefore for my part, I shall never be sor-
ry for her departure ; let her go, and let better come in her
room : it was never a good world since these w^himsical fools
dwelt in it.'
Then Mrs. Light-mind added as followeth ; ^ Come, put this
kind of talk away. I was yesterday at Madam Wanton's,*
where we were as merry as the maids. For who do you think
should be there, but I and Mrs. Love-the-flesh, and three or
four more, with Mr. Lechery, Mrs. Filth, and some others :
so there we had music and dancing, and what else v^ as meet to
fill up the pleasure. And, I dare say my lady herself is an ad-
mirable w^ell-bred gentlewoman, and Mr. Lechery is a pretty
fellow.' (Ji)
By this time Christiana was got on her way, and Mercy
* Part i. p. 95.
Qi) This dialogue, by the names, arguments and discourse introduced
into it, shov/s what kind of persons they in general are, who despise and
revile all those that fear God and seek the salvation of their souls ; from
Mercy goes with Qi nstiana. 2S 5
went along with her : so as they went, her children being
there also, Christiana began to discourse. * And, Mercy,' said
Christiana, ' I take this as an unexpected favour, that thou
shouldst set foot out of doors with me to accompany me a little
in my way.'
Then said young Mercy, (for she was but young,) * If I
thought it would be to purpose to go with you, I would never
go near the Town.'
' Well, Mercy,' said Christiana, * cast in thy lot with me, I
well know what will be the end of our pilgrimage ; my hus-
band is where he would not but be for all the gold in the
Spanish mines. Nor shalt thou be rejected, though thou goest
but upon my invitation. The King, who hath sent for me and
my children, is one that delighteth in mercy. Besides, if thou
wilt, I will hire thee, and thou shalt go along with me as my
servant. Yet we will have all things in common betwixt thee
and me : only go along with me.' (i)
what principles, affections, and conduct such opposition springs ; and oil
what grounds it is maintained. Men of the most profligate characters,
who never studied or practised reh^ion in their lives, often pass sentence
CD the sentiments and actions of pious persons, and decide in the most dif-
ficult controversies, without the least hesitation ; as if they knew the most
abstruse subjects by instinct or intuition, and were acquainted with the
secrets of men's hearts ! These presumers should consider, that they m'jst
be wrong, let who will be right ; that any religi<m is as good as open im-
piety and profligacy ; and that it behooves them to '' cast out the beam out
of their own eye," before they attempt " to pull out the mote from their
brother's eye." Believers also, recollecting the vain conversation from
which they have been redeemed, and the obligations shat have been con-
ferred upon them, should not disquiet themselves about the scorn and cen-
sure of such persons, but learn to pray for them, as entitled to their com
passion, even more than their detestation.
(i) There are renidrkable circumstances attending the conversion of
eome persons, with which others are wholly unacquainted. Tho sim^ular
dispensations of Providence, and the strong impressions made by the word
of God upon their minds, seem in their ov/n apprehension almc-st to
amount to a special invitation : whereas others are gradually and gently
brought to think on religious subjects, and to embrace the proposals of Ihe
gospel ; who are therefore sometimes apt to conclude, that they have
never been truly awakened to a concern about their souls : and this dis-
couragement is often increased by the discourse of such religious charac-
ters, as lay great stress on the circumstances attending conversion. Theso
misapprehensions, howfever, are best obviated, by showing that " the Lord
delighteth in mercy ;" that Christ " will in no wise cast out any that come
to him ;" and that they who leave all earthly pursuits to seek salvation,
and renounce all other confidence to trust in the mercy of God through
the redemption of hi5 Son, shall assuredly be saved.
Ff
226 Mercy goes mth Christiana. ^
Mer. But how shall I be ascertained, that I also shall be en-
tertained ? Had 1 this hope from one that can tell, I would
make no stick at all, but would go, being helped by Him that
can help, though the way was never so tedious.
Chr. Well, loving Mercy, I will tell thee what thou shalt'
do ; go with me to the Wicket-gate, and there I will further
inquire for thee ; and, if there thou shalt not meet with en-*
couragement, I will be content that thou shalt return to thy
place ; I also will pay thee for thy kindness which thou show-
est to me and my children, in the accompanying of us in our
v\'ay as thou dost.
Mer, Then will I go thither, and will take wlK\t shall fol-
low ; and the Lord grant that my lot may there fall, even as
the King of heaven shall have his heart upon me.
Christiana was then glad at heart ; not only that she had a
companion, but also for that she had prevailed with this poor
maid to fall in love with her o\vn salvation. So they went on
together, and Mercy began to weep. Then said Christiana,
* Wherefore weepeth .ay sister so ?'
* Alas !' said she, ' who can bui lament, that shall but rightly
consider what a state and condition my poor relations are in,
that yet remain in our sinful Town : am! that which makes my
grief the more, is, because they have no instruction, nor any
to tell them what is to come.'
Chr. Bowels become Pilgrims : and thou doest for thy
friends, as my good Christicm did for me when he left me ;
he mourned for that I would not heed nor regard him ; but his
Lord and our's did gather up his tears, and put them into his
bottle ; and now both I and thou, and these my sweet babes,
are reaping the fruit and benefit of them. I hope, Mercy,
that these tears of thine will not be lost ; for the truth hath
said, that, "They that sow in tears shall reap in joy" and
singing. And " He that goeth forth and weepeth, bearing pre-
cious seed, shall doubtless come again with rejoicing, bringing,
his sheaves with him."*
Then said Mercy,
' Let the Most Blessed be my Guide,
If't >ie his blessed will,
Unto his Gate, into ins Fold,
Up to his holy Hill :
* Pa a-cxxvi. 5, 6.
They come to Hie Slough of Despond. ^27
And let him never suffer me
To swerve or turn aside
From his free grace and holy ways,
Whate'er shall me betide.
And let him gather them of mine.
That I have left behind ;
Lord, make them pray they may be thine,
With all their heart and mind/
Now. my old friend proceeded, and said, — But, when Chris-
tiana came to the Slough of Despond,* she began to be at a
stand ; ' For,' said she, ' this is the place in which my dear
husband had like to have been smothered with mud.' She
perceived, also, that notwithstamiing the command of the King
to make this place for Pilgrims good, yet it was rather worse
than formerly. So I asked if that wns true ? Yes, said the
old gentleman, too true ; for many there be, that pretend to
l)e the King's labourers, and say th^y are for mending the
King's highways, that bring dirt and dung instead of stones,
and so mar instead of mending, (k) Here Christiana there-
fore, and her boys, did make a stand : but, said Mercy,
Come, let us venture ; only let us be wary.' Then they
* Part i. p. 27, 29.
(fc) The author seems to have observed a declension of evangelical re-
ligion, subsequent to the pubiication of his original Pilgrim. Probably
he was grieved to find many renounce or adulterate the gospel, by substi-
tuting plausible speculations, or moral lectures in its stead ; by narrowing
and confining it within the limits of a nice system, which prevents the
preacher from freely inviting sinners to come unto Christ ; by represent-
ing the preparation of heart requisite to a sincere acceptance of free sal-
vation as a legal condition of being received by him ; or by condemning
all diligence, repentance, and tenderness of conscience, as interfering wilii
an evangelical frame of spirit. By these, and various other misapprehen-
sions, the passage over the Slough is made worse, and they occasion mani-
fold discouragements to awakened sinners, even to this day. For, as the
promises^ strictly speaking, belong only to believers ; if invitations and ex-
hortations be not freely given to sinners in general, a kind of gulf will
be formed, over which no way can be seen : except as men take it for
granted, wltliout any kind of evidence^ that they are true believers, which
opens the door to manifold delusions and enthusiastic pretensions. But if
all be invited, and encouraged to ask that they may receive ; the awa-
kened sinner will be animated to hope in God's mercy and use the means
of grace, and thus giving diligence to make hi? calling and election sure,
Iva will be enabled to rise superior to the discouragements, by whidi
others are retarded. Labourers enough indeed are ready to lend their
a«''-istfince, in mending the road across the Slough ; but let them take care
tlial they use none but scriptural materials, or they will make bad worse.
22S Slough of Despond wdrse than before.
looked well to sheir steps, and made a shift to get staggering
over.
Yet Christiana had like to have been in, and that not once or
twice. — Now they had no sooner got over, but they thought
they heard words that said unto them, *' Blessed is she that
beheved, for there shall be a performance of what has been
told her from the Lord."*
Then they went on again ; and said Mercy to Christiana,
« Had I as good ground to hope for a lov ing reception at the
Wicket-gate, as you, 1 think no Slough of Despond could dis-
courage me.'
' Well,' said the other, ' you know your sore, and 1 know
mine ; and, good friend, we shall all have enough evil before
we come to our journey's end. For it cannot be imagined,
that the people that design to attain such excellent glories ^s
we do, and that are so envied that happiness as we are ; but
that we shall meet with what fears and snares, with what trou-
bles and afflictions, they can possibly assault us with that hate
us.' (0
And now Mr. Sagacity left me to dream out my dream by
myself Wherefore, methought I saw Christiana, and Mercy,
and the boys, go all of them up to the Gate : to which
when they came, they betook themselves to a short debate,
about how they must manage their calling at the Gate ; and
what should be said unto him that did open unto them ; so it
was concluded, since Christiana was the eldest, that she should
laiock for entrance, and that she should speak to him that did
open for the rest. So Christiana began to knock, and, as her
poor husband did, she knocked and knocked again. j But
instead of any that answered, they all thought that they heard
as if a dog came barking upon them ; a dog, and a great one
too ; and this made the women and children afraid. Nor
durst they for a while to knock any more, for fear the mastiii
should fly upon them. Now therefore they were greatly
tumbled up and down in their minds, and knew not what to do :
* Luke i. 45. t Part i. p. 39—43.
(/) Some persons ars discouraged by recollecting past sins, and imagin-
ing; them too heinous to be forgiven ; while others disquiet themselves by
the apprehension, that they have never been truly humbled and convert-
ed. Inded all the varieties in the experience of those, who upon the whole
are walking in the same path, can never be enumerated ; and some of
them are not only unreasonable, but unaccountable, through the weak-
ness of the human mind, the. abiding effects of peculiar impressions, the
remains of unbelief, and the artificei« of Satan.
(Christiana ana her sons enter the Gate, 229
knock they durst not, for fear of the dog ; go back they durst
not, for faar the Reaper of the Gate should espy them as they
went, and so be oifendecl with them ; at last they thought of
knocking again, and knockmg more vehemently than they did
at tirst. Then said the Keeper of the (iate, 'Who is there V
So the dog left otf to bark, and he opened unto them, (/n)
Then Christiana made low obeisance, .and said, ' Let not
our Lord be otfended with his handmaidens, for that we have
knocked at his princely Gate.' Then said the Keeper,
' Whence come ye ? And what is it that you would have ?'
Christiana answered. We are come from whence Chris-
tian did come, and upon the same errrand as he ; to wit, to
be, if it shall please you, graciously admitted, by this Gate,
into the way that leads into the Celestial City. And I answer,
my Lord, in the next place, that I am Christiana, once the wife
of Christian, that now is gotten above
With that the Keeper of the Gate did marvel, saying, is
she now become a pilgrim, that but a while ago abhorred that
life ?' Then she bowed her head, and said, ' Yea ; and so arc
these my sweet babes also."*
Then he took her by the hand, and led her in, and said also,
*' Suffer the little children to come unto me ;" and w^ith that
he shut up the Gate. This done, he called to a trumpeter
that was above over the Gate, to entertain Christiana with
shouting and sound of trumpet, for joy. So he obeyed, and
sounded, and tilled the air with his melodious notes.
Now all this while poor Mercy did stand without, trembling
and crying for fear that she was rejected. But when Christi-
ana, had gotten admittance for herself and her boys, then she
began to make intercession for Mercy.
And she said. My Lord, I have a companion of mine that
stands yet without, that is come hither upon the same account
as myself: one that is much dejected in her mind, for that she
comes, as she thinks, without sending for : whereas I was
sent to by my husband's King to come.
(m) The greater fervency new converts manifest in prayer for them-
selves and each other, the more violent opposition will they experience
from the powers of darkness. Many have felt such terrors whenever they
attempted to pray, that they have for a time been induced wholly to de-
sist : and doubtless numbers, whose convictions were superficial, have
thus been finally driven back to their former course of ungodliness. But
when the fear of God, and a real belief of his word possess the heart, such
disturbances cannot long prevent earnest cries for mercy ; navi they wi!l
eventually render them more fervent and important thaa ever.
23G Mercy ts admitted and comforted.
Now Mercy began to be very impatient, and each minute
was as long to her as an hour ; wherefore she prevented
Christiana i'rom a fuller interceding for her, by knocking at the
Gate herself. And she knocked then so loud, that she made
Christiana to start. Then said the Keeper of the Gate, ' Who
is there ?' And Christiana said, * It is my friend.'
So he opened the Gate and looked out, but Mercy was fal-
len down without in a swoon, for she fainted, and was afraid
that no Gate v ould be opened to her. >
Then he took her by the hand , and said, <* Damsel, 1 bid
thee arise."
' O Sir,' said she, ' I am fiiint ; there is ecarce life icii in
me.' But he answered, that one said, " When my sould iaint-
ed within me, I remembered the Lord, ;uid my prayer c^inie
unto thee, into thy holy temple."* ' Fear not, but stand upon
thy feet, and tell me wherefore thou art come.'
Mer. 1 am come for that unto which I was never invited, as
niy friend Christiana was. Her's was from the King, and mino
was but from her. Wherefore 1 presume.
Good, Did she desire thee to come with her to this place ?
Mer, Yes ; and, as my Lord sees, I am come ; and if there
is any grace and forgiveness of sins to spare, I beseech that
thy poor handmaid may be partaker thereof.
Then he took her again by the hand, and led her gently in,
and said, * 1 pray for all them that believe on me, by what
means soever they come unto me.' Then said he to those
that stood by, ' Fetch something, and give it Mercy to smell
on, thereby to stay her fainling-s.' So they fetched her a bun-
die of myrrh. A while after she revived.
And now was Christiana, and her boys, and Mercy, receiv-
ed of the Lord at the head of the way, and spoke kindly unto
by him. Then said they yet further unto him, ' We are sor-
ry for our sins, and beg of our Lord his pardon, and lurther
j^iiformation what we must do.'
' I grant pardon,' said he, ' by word and deed ; by word in
the promise of forgiveness ; by deed in the way I obtained it.
Take the first from my lips with a kiss, and the other as it
shall be revealed.'!
Now I saw in my dream, that he spake many good words
unto them, whereby they were greatly gladded. He also had
them up to the top of the Gate, and showed them b}? what
* Jonah ii. 7. t Sol. Song: i. 2 John xx. 19.
!Z7ie Pilgrims converse together. 2bi
deed they were saved ; and told them withal, that that sight
they would have again as they went along in the way, to their
comfort, (n)
So he left them awhile in a summer-parlour below, where
they entered into talk by themselves : and thus Christiana
began : ' O Lord how glad am I that we are got m hither !'
Mer. So you well may : but 1 of all have cause to leap for
joy-
Chr, I thought one time as I stood at the Gate, (because I
had knocked and none did answer,) that ail our labour had
been lost., especially when that ugly cur made such a heavy
barking at us.
A'ler. But my worst fear was, after I saw that you was
taken into his favour, anf| that I was left behind. Now,
thought 1, it is fultilled which is is written. " Two women shall
be grinding together, the one slnll be taken and the other
left."* I had much ado to forbear crying out. Undone ! And
f^. afraid I was to knock any more : but when i looked up to
3^ what was written over the Gate,t 1 took courage. I also
thought, that I must either knock again or die ; so I knocked,
but I cannot tell how ; for my spirit now struggled between
life and death, (o)
* Matt. xxiv. 41. t Part i. p. 39.
(?i) Pardon by i&ord seems to «lenote the g:enf>ral discovery of free sal-
vation by Jesus Christ to all that believe; which, bein-' depenclr^d on by
the humble sinner, is sealed by transient connforts and lively ufi'ect ion?.
P rr'O'ii by deed may relate to the manner^ m winch the blessmjc was pur-
d bv tiie Saviour ; and when ths is clearly understood, the bel/ever
lis to stable peace and hope. This coincides with the explanation al-
»' ^!vcn of the Gate, the Cross^ and iht Scpdchre ; and it will be fur-
onrirnied in the sfqiicl. The ' pardon by deed' must be waited for ;
^ the Pilgrims obtained a distant jjiimpse of tli*^' tieed by which tbcy
were saved ; for soD)e general af-p'rehfinsjoQs of redemption by the ciose
, of Christ are commonly connected with the belieyei'r first comfGi'l:,
though the nature and glory oi it be uiore fuily r.erceived as he pro<roeU_s.
t, (o) The express words of scriptural invitat'ons, exhortations and pro-
r^mi'ses prove more effectual to eiicourage those who are '-eady to give ap
. their liope?, than all the con<^olatory topics that can possiVdy be substitutoii
in their place. It is, therefore, much to be lamented, that pious men, by
ad'.i-rin:^ to a systematica] exactness of exi^re^r-ion, should clog their r.d-
dr -ses to sinners with exceptions and limitations, which the Spirit of Go*.!
did not see good to insert. They m ill not say that the omission was an
oversight in the inspired write tl^; or admit the thought for a moment,
that they can improve on their plan ; why then canr<»t they be satisfied
to " speak according; to the oracles of God," without affecting a more en-
232 Mercy^s reasons for knocking loudly,
Chr, Can you not tell how you knocked ? I am sure your
knocks were so earnest, that the very sound made me start :
I thought 1 never heard such knocking in all my life : I
thought you would come in by a violent hand, or take the
kingdom by storm.*
Mer, Alas, to be in my case ! who that so was could but have
done so ? You saw that the door was shut upon me, and that
there was a most cruel dog thereabout. Who, I say, that
was so taint-hearted as 1, would not have knocked with all
their might? — But pray, What said my Lord unto my rude-
ness ? Was he not angry with me ?
Chr, When he heard your lumbering noise, he gave a won-
derful innocent s'jiile : I believe what you did pleased him
well, for he showed no signs to the contrary, (p) But 1 mar-
vel in my heart why he keeps such a dog : had I known that .
before, 1 should not hnve had heart enough to have ventured
myself in this manner. (9) But now we are in, we are in, and
I am glad with 11 my he irt.
JVJer, I will ask, ii you please, next time he comes down,
why he keeps such a filthy cur in his yard ; I hope he will not
take it amiss.
Do so, s.iid the children, and persuade him to hang him. for
we are afnid he will bite u^? when we go hence.
So at last he came down to them again, and Mercy fell to
'^ Matt. xi. 12.
tire consistency ■* Great mischiei has thus been done by very different de-
scriptions ot men, wiki undesio:nediy concur in giving -atan an occasion of
sui;^esting to the tremblin J inquirer, that perhaps he may persevere in
asking, seeking and knock. rjg, with the greatest earnestness and importu-
nity, and yet finally le a cust-away I
(p) When the sinner prays under the urgent fear of perishing, he 13
excted to peculiar fervency of spirit : and the more fervent our prayers
ar •, the better are thev approved by the Lord, how much soever men may
object to the maimer or expressions of them.
(qr) Could soldiers, when they eulist, foresee all the dangers and hard-
ships to be encountered ; or could mariners, when about to set sail, be
fully aware of all trie dilficulttes of the voyage ; their reluctancy or dis-
couragement would be increased by the prospect. But, when they have
en^iaged, they find it impossible to recede ; and thus they press torward
through one labour and ' eril after anollier, till tne campaign or voyage be
accomplis.'ied. Thus it is with the Christian : but they strive for corrup-
tible things, which they may never live to obtain ; while hf: seeks for an
incorr(r,>t:bie crown of glory, of which no event can deprive him. If he
knew aJl from th^ first, it would be his only wisdom to venture : whereas
the case with them is often widely different.
Conversation respecting the Dog 2S5
the ground on her face, before him, and worshipped, and said,
• Let my Lord accept the sacrifice of praise which I now offer
unto him, with the calves of my hps.'
So he said unto her, ' Peace be to thee ; stand up.' But
she continued upon her face, and said, ** Righteous art thou,
0 Lord, when 1 plead with thee,- yet let me talk with thee of
thy judgments :"* wherefore dost thou keep so cruel a dog in
thy yard, at the sight of which such women and children as
we, are ready to jflee from the Gate for fear ?
He answered and said. That dog has another owner ; he
also is kept close in another m.ui's ground, only my Pilgrims
hear his barking: he belongs to the Castle which you see
there at a distance,! but can come up to the walls of this
place. He has frighted many an honest Pilgrim irom worse to
better, by the great voice of his roaring. Indeed he that
owneth him doth not keep him out of any good-will to me or
n)ine, but with intent to keep die Pilgrims from coming to
me, and that they may be afraid to come and knock at this
Gate for entrance. Sometimes also he has broken out, and
has worried some that I loved ; but 1 tnke all at present pa-
tiently. I also give my Pilgrims timely help, so that they urc
not delivered up to his power, to do th?m what his doggish
nature would prompt him to. But what ! my purchased one,
I trow, hadst thou known never so much beforehand, thou
wouldst iK)t have been afraid of a dog. The beggars that go
from door to door, will, rather than they will lose i supposed
alms, run the hazard of the b::vvling, barking, and biting too,
of a dog : and shall a dog in another ,ri:m's yard, a dog whose
barking 1 turn to the protit of Pilgrims, keep any from coming
to me ? "I deliver them from the lions, and my darling from
the power of the dog."
Then said Mercy, I confess my ignorance : I speak what I
understand" not : I acknowledge that thou doest all things well.
Then Christiana beg ;n to t;dk oi theix journey, and to in-
quire after the way.| So he fed them, and washed their feet,
and set them in the way of his steps, according as h«i had dealt
with her husband before.
So I saw m my dream, that they went on their way ; and
ihe weather was comfortable to them.
Then Christiana began to sing, s tying,
* Jer. xii. 1,2. t Part i. p. 40. ± Part i. p. 42.
Gg 20*
534 The hoys eat the enem\fsfruli.
* Bless'd be the day that I began
A Pilgrim for to be ;
And blessed also be that man
That thereunto mov'd me.
'Tis true, 'twas long ere I began
To seek to live for ever ;*
But now I ran fast as I can,
'Tis better late than never.
Our tears to joy^ our ftars to faith.,
Are turned, as we see ;
That our beginning, (.is one saith.)
Shows what our end will be.'
Now there was on the other side of the wall, that fenced in
the way, up which Christiana and her companions were to go,
a garden, and that belonged to him, whose w<js that barking
dog, of whom mention was made before. And some of the
frui^-:rees, that grew in the garden, shot their branches over
the wall ; and being mellow, they that found them did gather
them up and eat of them to their hurt. So Christiana's-boys,
(as boys are apt to do,) being pleas^^d with the trees, and with
the fruit that did hang thereon, did pluck them, and began to
eat. Their mother did also chide them for so doing, but still
the boys went on. (r)
' Well,' said'' she, ' my sons, you transgress, for that fruit is
none of ours :' but she did not know that they did belong to
the enemy : I'll warrant you, if she had, she would havo been
ready to d>e for fear. But that passed, and they went on their
way Now, by that they were ^one about two bow's shot
from the place that led them into the way, they espied two
very ill-favoured ones coming down apace to meet them. Witir
* j^Iatt. x: 16.
(r) The terrifying suggestionj< of Sat • give believers much present un-
easiness ; yet they often do them grefst <; )od, and seldom eventually hurt
them : but the allurements oi those v oddly objects which he throW'S in
their way, arc far more da i .-rous ;;! pernicious. Many of these, for
which the aged have no lon-ir an; , lish, are very attractive to young
persons : but, all those parerus or a a persons, who love the souls of their
childr'^n ani youo^ friends, insl' of conniving at them in their self-
ind i'^ence. from a ri.t ion, that Rllowance must be made for youth, should
employ all their influence and authority to restrain them from those vain
pleasures which " war against the soul," and are most dangerous when
least suspected. This fruit ray be found in the Pilgrim's path ; but it
grows in Beelzebub's garden, a -id should be shunned as poison. Many
diversions and pursuits, both in high and low life, are of this nature,
though often pleaded for as innocent^ by some persons who ought to know
better.
The women are assaulted by two men, 235
tliat Christiana and Mercy her friend, covered themselves with
their veils, and kept also on their journey : the children also
went on before : so that at last they met together. Then they
that came down to meet them, came just up to the women, as
if they would embrace them : but Christiana said, ' Stand back,
or go peaceably as you should.' Yet these two, as men that
are deaf, regarded not Christiana's words, but began to lay
hands upon them : at that Christiana waxed very wroth, and
spurned at them with her feet. Mercy also, as well as she
could, did what she could to shitt them : Christiana again said
to them, * Stand back, and be gone, for we have no money to
lose, being Pilgrims as you see, and such too as live upon the
charity of our friends.'
Then said one of the two men, We make no assault upon
your money, but are come out to tell you, that if you will but
grant one small request which we shall ask, we will make wo-
men of you for ever.
Now Christiana, imagining what they should mean, made
answer again, ' We will neither hear nor regard, nor yield to
what you shall ask. We are in haste, and cannot stay : our
business is of life and death.' So again she and her compan-
ions made a fresh essay to go past them : but they letted them
in their way.
And they said. We intend no hurt to your lives ; 'tis another
^ thing we would have.
' Ay,' quoth Christiana, * you would have us body and soul,
for I know 'tis for that you are come ; but we will die rather
upon the spot, than to suffer ourselves to be brought into
such snares as shall hazard our well-being hereafter.' And
: with that they both shrieked out, and cried. Murder f Murder!
and so put themselves under those laws that are provided for the
protection of women.* But the men still made their ap-
proach upon them, with design to prevail against them. They
therefore cried out again.
Now they being, as I said, not far from the Gate, in at
which they came, their voice was heard from where they were
thither : wherefore some of the house came out, and knowing
that it was Christian I's tongue, they made haste to her relief.
But by that they were got within sight of them, the women
were in a very great scuffle ; the children also stood crying by.
Then did he that came in for their relief call out to the ruffians,
* Deut. "sxii. 23—27.
230 We lose for want of asking,
saying, * What is that thing you do ? Would you make my
Lord's people to transgress ?' He also attempted to take
them ; but they did make their escape over the walls into the
garden of the man to whom the great dog belonged : so the
dog became their protector. This Reliever then came up to
the women, and asked them how they did. So they answered,
' We thank thy prince, pretty well ; only we have been some-
what affrighted : we thank thee also, that thou earnest in to
our help, for otherwise we hid been overcome.'
So after a few more words, this Reliever said as followeth :
I marvelled much, when you were entertained at the Gate
above, being ye know that ye are but wr;di women, that you
petitioned not the Lord for a Conductor : then might you have
avoided these troubles and dangers : he would have granted
3^ou one.
Alas ! said Christiana, we were so taken with our present
blessing, that dangers to come were forgotten by us : beside,
who could have thought that so ne;jr the King's palace there
should ha/e lurked such naughty ones ! Indeed it had been
well for us, had we asked our Lord for one ; but, since our
Lord knew it would be for our profit, I wonder he sent not
one dong witii us.
Rel. It is not always necessary to gi'ant things not asked for,
lest by so doing they become of little esteem ; but, ^^hen the
want of a thing is felt, it then comes under, (in the eyes of him
that feels it,) that estimate thiU properly is its due ; and so con-
sequently will be hereafter used. Had ray Lord granted you
a Conductor you would not, neither, so have bewailed that
oversight of your's in not asking for one, as now you have
occasion to do. So all things work for goo'd, and tend to make
you more wary, (s)
(5) Satan designs, by every means, to lake off awakened sinners from
the .^; eat concern of eternal salvation ; and he makes use of ungodly men
for that purpose, r^mong his -nanifold devices against the female sex. These
2.ve very ill-favoured to the gracious uiind ; however alluring their per-
sous, circumstances, or proposals may be to th • ^-arnal eye. As such vile
seducers are too often successful, they are e^iCoWened to attempt even
those who profess to be religious : nor are thermal ways repulsed by them ;
for many, of whom favourable hopes were once entertained, have thus
awfully '*• been again entangled and overcome, so that their last state has
been worse than the first." But when such proposals are repulsed with
decided adhorrence, and earnest prayers, the Lord will give deliverance
and victory. The faithful admonitions and warninic?- of a stated pastor
are especially intended by the Conductor, The Reliever seems to repre-
Corisiiana relates to Mercy her dreanu 237
Chr, Shall we go back agaia to my Lord, and confess our
folly, and ask one ?
Rel, Your confession of your folly will I present bim with ;
to go back again, you need not ; for in all places where you
shall come you will find no want at all ; for in every of my
Lord's lodgings, which he has prepared for the reception of
his Pilgrims, there is sufficient to furnish them against all at-
tempts whatsoever. But as 1 said, ** He will be inquired of
by them, to do it for them."* And it is a pooi: thing that is
not worth asking for. — When he had thus said, he went back
to his place, and the Pilgrims went on their way.
• Then said Mercy, ' What a sudden blank is here ! I made
account we had been past all danger, and that we should never
sorrow more.'
* Thy inuocency, my sister,' said Christiana to Mercy, * may
excuse thee much ; but, as for me, my faults is much the
greater, for that I saw this danger before [ came out of the
doors, and yet did not provide for it where provision might
have been had, I am much to be blamed.'
Then said Mercy ' How knew you this before you came
from home ? Pray open to me this riddle.'
Chr. Why, i will tell you. — Before I set foot out of doors,
one night, as 1 lay in my bed, I had a dream about this : for
methought 1 saw two men, as like these as ever the world
they could look, stand at my bed's feet, plotting how they
might prevent my salvation. 1 will tell you their very words
they said, (it was when I was in my troubles, ) * What shall
we do with this ^voman ? for she cries out waking and sleeping
for forgiveness : if she be suffered to go on as she begins, we
shall lose her as we have lost her husband.' This you know
might have made me take heed, and have provided when pro-
vision might huve been had.
' Well,' Sriid Mercy, * as by this neglect we have an occa-
sion ministered unto us to behold our imperfections, so our
Lord has t ken occ .si'.<n thereby to make manifest the riches
of his grac* ; for he, ..s we see, h.js followed us with unasked
kindness, and has delivered us from their hands that were
stronger than we, of his mere good pleasure.'
* Ezek. xxxvi. 37.
tent the occasional direction and good counsel of some able minister ; for
he speaks of Christ, as his Lord, and must therefore be considered as one
of the servants by whom help is «ent to the distressed.
238 The house of the Interpreter.
Thus now, when they had talked away a little more time,
they drew near to a house that stood in the way ; which
house was built for the reUef of Pilgrims ; as you will tind
more fully related in the first part of the records of the Pil-
grim's Progress.* So they drew on towards the house ; (the
house of the Interpreter ;) and, when they came to the door,
they heard a great talk in the house ; then they gave ear, and
he ird, as they thought, Christiana mentioned b}^ mua:5e. For
you must know, that there went along, even before her, a talk
of her and her children going on pilgrimage. And this was
the more pleasing to them, because they had heard that she was
Christian's wife, that woman who vv;{S some time rigo so unwil-
ling to hear of going on pilgrimage. Thus, therefore, they
stood still and heard the good people v/ithin commending her,
who they little thought stood at the door. — At last Christiana
knocked, as she had done at the Gate before. Now, when
she had knocked, there came to the door a 3^oung damsel,
named Innocent, and opened the door, and looked^ and, be-
tioid, two women were there.
Then s iia the damsel to them, 'With whom would you
speak in this place ?'
Christi ma answered. We understand \hC\X this is a privi-
leged place for those that are become Pilgrims, and we now
at this door are such : wherefore we pr.iy that we may be
partakers of that for which we are at this time are come ; for
the day, as thou seest, is very far spent, and we are loth to-
night to go any further.
Dam. Pray what may I call your name, that I may tell it to
my Lord within ?
Chr, My name is Chrii^tiana ; i wjis the wife of that Pilgrim
that some ye^rs ago di.i travel this -way ; and these be his four
children. This maiden is also my companion, and is going on
Pilgrimage too.
Then ran Innocent in, (for that was her name,) and said to
those within, ' Can you think who is at the door ? There is
Christiana .nd her children, and her comp mion, all waiting
for entertainment here!' Then they leaped tor joy, and wtnt
and told their master. So he came to the (ioor, .ind, looking
upon her, he said, ' Art thou that Christiana whom Christian
the good man left behind him, when he betook himself to a
Pilgrim's life ?'
* Part i. p. 43—55
Tiiey are welcomed hy the Interpreter, 239
Clir. I am that woman that was so hard-heartjed as to slight
my husband's troubles, and that left him to go on his journey
alone ; and these are his four children : but oow I also am
come, for I am convinced that no way is right but this.
Inter, Then is fulfilled th.it which is written of the man that
said to his son. " Go work to-d:iy in my vineyard ; and he said
0 his father, I will not ; but afterwards repented and went."* '
Then said Christiana, So be it : Amen. God make it a
true saying upon me, and grant that I may be found at the last
'* of him in pe<ice, without spot, arid blameless !"
Inter But why standfast thou at the door ? Come in, thou
daughter of Abraham : we were talking of thee but now, for
tidmgs have come to us before, how thou art become a Pil-
grim. Come, children, come in : come, maiden, come. — So
he had them «all into the house.
So, when they w^ore within, they were bidden to sit down
, and rest them ; the which when they had done, those that at-
: tended upon the Pilgrims in the house came into the room to
see them. And on^ smiled, and another smiled, and another
smiled, and they all smiled, for jo}^ that Christiana was become
a Pilgrim; they also looked opon the boys: they stroked
them over their faces with their hands, in token of their kind
reception of them : they also carried it lovingly to Mercy, and
bid them all welcome into their Master's house.
After a while, because supper wasliot re.dy, the Interpre-
ter took them into his significant rooms, and showed them
what Christian, Christiana's husband, had seen some time be-
fore. Here therefore they saw the Man in the Cage, the
Man and his Dream, the M^m that cut his way through his ene-
mies, and the Picture of the biggest of all ; together with the
rest of those things that were then so profitable to Christian.
This done, and, after those things had been somewhat di-
jested by Christiana and her company, the interpreter takes
f them apart again, and has them first into a room where w^as a
J'M-m that could look no way but downwards, with a muck-rake
in his hand : there stood also one over his head with a Celes-
tial Crow in his hand, and proffered him that Crown for his
muck-rake ; but the man did neither look up, nor regard,
but rake to himself the straws, the small sticks, and dust of the
floor.
* Matt. xxi. 28, 29.
240 Till man rvith the muck-rake.
Then said Christiana, I persuade myself that I know some-
what the meaning of this ; for this is the figure of a man in
this world : is it not, good Sir ?
Thou has said right, said he, and his muck-rake doth show
his carnal mind. And, whereas thou seest him r ither give
heed to rake up straws and sticks, and the dust of the floor,
than do what He says that Calls to him from above, with the
celestial crown In his hand ; it is to show, that heaven is but
as a fable to some, and that things here are counted the -jnly
things substantial. Now, whereas it w is also showed thee,
that the man could look no way but downwards, it is to let thee
know, that earthly things, when they are with power upon
men's minds, quite carry their hearts away from God.
Then said Christiana, Oh ! deliver me from this muck-rake.
That prayer, said the Interpreter, has Lun by till it is almost
rusty : *' Give me not riches,"^ is scarce thv prayer of one of
ten thousand. Straws, and sticks, and dust, with most are the
great things now looked after, {t)
With that Mercy and Christiana wept, and said, ' It is, alas !
too true.'
When the Interpreter had showed them this, he had them
into the very best room in the house : (m very brave room it
was :) so he bid them look round about, and see if they could
find any thing profitable there. Then they looked round and
round ; for there was nothing to be seen but a very great
spider on the wall ; and that they overlooked.
Then said Mercy, ' Sir, 1 see nothing :' but Christiana held
her peace.
But, said the Interpreter, * Look again ,' She therefore
looked again, and said, ' Here is not any thing but an ugly spi-
der, who hangs by her hands upon the wall.' ' Then,' said
he, * is there but one spider in all this spacious room V Then
the water stood in Christiana's eyes, for she was a woman
^ ProY. XXX. 8.
(/) Tlie emblematical instrnction at the Interpreter's house, in the for-
mer part, was so important and comprehensive, that no other selection
equally interesting could be expected : some valuable hints however, are
here adduced. The first emblem is very plain ; and so apposite, that it
is wonderful any person should read it without lifting up a prayer to the
Lord, and saying, ' Oh I deliver me from this muck-rake.' Yet, alas, it
is to be feared, such prayers are still linle used even by proftssors of the
gospel; at least they are contradicted by the habitual conduct of num-
bers among them.
The emhkm of the spider unfolded. Sfil
quick of apprehension : and she said, * Yes, Lord, there is
more here than one. Yea, and spiders whose veijom is far
more destructive than that which is in her.' The Interpreter
'ben looked pleasantly on her, and said, ' Thou hast said the
truth.' This made Mercy blush, and the Boys to cover their
faces, for they all began now to understand the riddle.
Then said the Interpreter again, ** The spider taketh hold
with her hands, (as you see,) and is in kings' palaces." And
wherefore is this recorded, but to show you, that how full of
the venom of sin soever you be, yet you may, by the hand of
faith, lay hold of, and dwell in, the best room that belongs to
the King's house above !
I thought, said Christiana, of something of this : but I could
not imagine it all. I thought, that we were like spiders, and
that we looked like ugly creatures, in what fine rooms soever
we were ; but that by this spider, this venomous and ill-
favoured creature, we were to learn how to act faith, that came
not into my thoughts ; that she worketh with hands ; and, as
I see, dwells in the best room in the house. — God has made
nothing in vain, (u)
Then they seemed all to be glad ; but the water stood in
their eyes : yet they looked one upon another, and also bow-
ed before the Interpreter.
He had them then into another room, where was a hen
and chickens, and bid them observe a while. So one of the
chickens went to the trough to drink, and every time she
drank she lifted up her head and her eyes towards heaven.
* See,' said he, * what this little chick doeth, and learn of her
(u) The instruction grounded on accommodation of Scripture, though
solid and important, is not so convincing to the understanding, as that
which results from the obvious meaning of the words ; though many per-
sons are for the time more excited to attention, by a lively exercise of the
imagination, and the surprise of unexpected inferences. This method,
however, should be used with great caution by the friends of truth ; for it
is a most formidable engine in the hands of those, who endeavour to per-
vert or oppose it. The author did not, however mean by tlie emblem of
the spider, that the sinner might confidently assure bin. self of salvatioq,
by the blood of Christ, while he continued full of the p<»ison of sin, with-
out experiencing or evidencing any change ; but only, that no conscious-
ness of inward pollution, or actual guilt, should discourage any one from
applying to Christ, and ^'•fleeing for refuge to lay hold m the hope set before
him," that thus he may be delivered from condemnation, and cleansed
from pollution, and so made meet for those blessed mansions, into which
uo unclean thing can find admission.
llh 21
542 TJie ken and chickens,
to acknowledge whence your mercies come, by receiving them
with looking up — Yet again,' said he, * observe and look :' so
they gave heed, and perceived that the hen did walk in a
fourfold method towards her chickens. 1. She had a common
call, and that she had all the day long. 2. She had a special
call, and that she had but sometimes. 3. She had a brooding
note. And, 4. She had an outcry.^
* Now,' said he, * compare this hen to your King, and these
chickens to his obedient ones. For, answerable to her, him-
self has his methods, which he walketh in towards his people :
by his common call he gives nothing ; by his special call he
always has something to give ; he has also a brooding voice
for them that are under his wing ; and he has an ovtcrij^ to
give the alarm when he seeth the enemy come. 1 choose,
my darlings, to lead you into the room where such things are,
because you are women, and they are easy for you.' {x)
* And, Sir,' said Christiana, ' pray let us see some more.'
So he had them into the slaughter-house, where was a butcher
killing of sheep : and behold the sheep was quiet, and took her
death patiently. * Then,' said the Interpreter, * you must
learn of this sheep to suffer, and to put up wrongs without
murmuring and complaints. Behold how quietly she takes
her death, and, without objecting, she suffereth her skin to be
pulled over her ears. — Your King doth call you his sheep.'
After this he led theni into his Garden, where was great
variety of floAvers : and he said, ' Do you see all these ?' So
Christiana said, * Yes.' Then said he again, * Behold the
* Matt, xxiii. 37,
(a:) Our Lord hath, in immense condescension, employed this emblem,
to represent his tender love to his people, for whom he bare the storm of
wrath himself, that they mi^ht be safe and happy under " the shadow of
his wings.'^* the common call signifies the general invitations of the gospel,
which should be addressed without restriction, to all men that come un-
der the sound of it ; " as many as ye find, bid to the marria_i»e." The spe-
cial call denotes those influences of the Spirit, by which the heart is sweet-
ly made willing to embrace the invitation, and apply for the blsesing, in
the use of the appointed means, by which sinners actually experience the
accomplishment of the promises, as their circumstances require. The
brooding note was intended to represent that communion w'th God, and.
those consolations of the Holy Spirit, which the Scriptures encoura2:e us
to expect, and by which the believer is trained up for eternal felicity :
ifhilst the out-cry refers to the warnings and cautions, by which believers
are excited to vigilance, circumspection, and self-examination, and to be-
ware of all deceiTers and delusions.
♦ Malt, xxiii. 37.
The Robin-red'hreast and Spider 243
fiowers are divers in stature, in quality, and colour, and smell,
and virtue ; and some are better than some ; also where the
gardener hath set them, there they stand, and quarrel not one
with another.' (i/)
Again he had them into his field, which he had sown with
wheat and corn ; but, when they beheld, the tops of ail were
cut off, only the straw remained. He said again, ' This ground
was dunged, and sowed ; but what shall we do with the crop V
Then said Christiana, * Burn some, and make muck of the
rest.' Then said the Interpreter again, ' Fruit, you see, is
that thing you look for, and for want of that you condemn it to
the fire, and to be trodden under foot of men : beware that in
this you condemn not yourselves.' (r)
Then, as they were coming in from abroad, they espied a
Robin with a great spider in his mouth : so the Interpreter
said, * Look here.' So they looked, and Mercy wondered, but
Christiana said, ' What a disp iragement is it to such a little
pretty bird as the Kobid-red-breast is ; he being also a bird
above many, that loveth to maintain a kind of sociableness
with men. I had thought they had lived upon crumbs of
bread, or upon other such harmless matter : I like him worse
than I did.'
The Interpreter then replied, * This Robin is an emblem,
very apt to set forth some professors by ; for to sight they
are, as this Robin, pretty of note, colour, and carriage ; they
(y) We ought not to be contented, (so to speak,) with a situation
amon;^ the uselej^s and noxious weeds of the desert : but if we be planted
anjong^the ornamental and fragrant flowers of the Lord's garden, we may
deem ourselves -utficienlly disimiriiished and honoured. We should,
therefore watch agamst envy and ambition, contempr of our brethren, and
con'ention. We ought to be satisfied in our place, doing "nothing
through strife or rain-irlory," or "with murmurings and disputings :" but
entleavouriug, in the meekness of wisdom, to diffuse a heavenly fragrance
around us, and " to a-lorn the doctrine of God our Saviour in all things.
(s) The labour and expen.-e of the husbandman arc not repayed by the
straw or the chaff, but by the corn. The humiliation and sMfferinas of
Christ, the publication of the gospel, the promise? and instituted ordi-
nances, and the labour of ministers, were not intended merely to bring
men to profess certain doctrines, and observe certain forms •. or even to
produce convictions, affections, or comforts, in any order or degree what-
soever ; but to render men fruitful in good works, by the influences of the
Spirit of Christ, and through his sanctifying truth : and all profession will
terminate in everlasting contempt and misery, which is not productive of
this good fruit, whatever men may pretend, or however they may deceiva
themselves and one another.
t44 The Interpreter's Instructions.
seem also to have a very great love fur professors that are
sincere ; and above all other to desire to associate with them,
and to be in their company, as if they could live upon the good
man's crumbs. They pretend also, that therefore it is that
they frequent the house of the godly, and the appointments of
the Lord ; but when they are by themselves, as the Robin,
they catch and gobble up spiders, they can change their diet,
drink and swallow down sin like water.'
So when they were come again into the house, because sup-
per as yet was not ready, Christiana again desired that the
Interpreter would either show or tell some other things that
are profitable.
Then the Interpreter began, and said : ' The fatter the sow
is, the more she desires the mire ; the fatter tl^c ox is, the
more gamesomely he goes to the slaughter ; and the more
healthy the lusty man is, the more prone he is unto evil.'
' There is a desire in women to go neat and fine, and it is a
comely thing to be adorned with that, which in God's sight is
of great price.'
' It is easier watching anight or two : so it is easier for oneto
begin to profess well, than to hold out as he should to the end.'
* Every ship-master, when in a storm, will willingly cast
that overboard that is of the smallest value in the vessel : hut
who will throw the best out first ? None but he that feareth
not God.'
* One leak will sink a ship ; and one sin will destroy a
sinner.' (a)
' He that forgets his friend, is ungrateful unto him : but he
that forgets his Saviour, is unmerciful to himself.'
* He that lives in sin, and looks for happiness hereafter, is
like him that soweth cockle, and thinks to fill his barn with
wheat or barley.'
* Tf a man would live w^ell, let him fetch his last day to him,
and make it always his company-keeper.'
' Whispering and change of thoughts prove that sin is in the
world.'
' If the world, which God sets light by, is counted a thing of
that worth with men ; what is heaven, that God commendeth ?'
(a) By repentance and faith in Christ, the leaks that sin hath made
are, as it were, stopped ; but one sin, habitually committed with allow-
ance, proves a man's profession hypocritical, however plausible it may be
in all other respects ; as one leak unstopped will a^Jsuredly at length iiixk
i\VB ship.
The supper with music and singing, 245
< [f the life that is attended with so many troubles, is so loth
to be let go by us, what is the Mfe above V
' Every body will cry up the goodness of men ; but who is
there that is, as he should be, affected with the goodness of
God?'
* We seldom sit down to meat, but we eat and leave : so
there is in Jesus Christ more merit and righteousness than the
whole world has need of/ (6}
When the Interpreter had done, he takes them out into his
garden again, and had them to a tree, whose inside was all
rotten and gone, and yet it grew ai^ had leaves. Then said
Mercy, ' What means this?' — * This tree,' said he, ' whose
outside is fair, and whose inside is rotten, is it, to which many
may be compared that are in the Garden of God : who with
their mouths speak high in behalf of God, but indeed will do
nothing for him ; whoso leaves are f lir, but their heart good
for nothing but to be tinder for the (tevil's tinder-box.'
ISow supper was ready, the table spread, and all things set
on board ; so they sat down and did eat, when one had given
thanks. And the Inter|:)reter did usually entertain those that
lodged with him, with music at meals ; so the minstrels played.
There was also one that did sing, and a very fioe voice he had.
His song was this —
» The Lord is only my support,
And he that doth me feed ;
How can I then want any thing,
V, hereof I stand in need ?'
When the song and music were ended, the Interpreter asked
Christiana what it was that at tirst did move her thus to betake
herself to a Pilgrim's life ? Christiana answered : First, the
loss of my husband came into my mind, at which I was heartily
grieved : but all that was but natural affection. . Then, after
{b) This observation is grounded on the »ood old distinction, that the -
merit of Christ's obedience unto death is sufficient for all, though only ef-
fectual to some ; namely, in one view of the subject, to the elect : in ano-
ther, to all who by faith apply for an interest in it. This makes way for
general invitations, and shows it to be every one's duty to repent and be-
lieve the gospel ; as nothing but pride, the carnal mind, and enmity to
God and religion, influence men to neglect so great salvation ; and, when
the regenerating power of the Holy Spirit accompanies the word, ftinnert
are made wilhng to accept the proffered mercy, and encouraged by th*
general invitations, which before they sinfully slighted.
21*
246 How Mercy became a Pilgrim,
that, came the troubles and pilgrimage of my husband into my
mind, and also how Hke a churl 1 had carried it to him as to
that. So guilt took hold of my mind, and would have drawn
me into the pond ; but that opportunely I had a dream of the
well-being of my husband, and a letter sent me by the King of
that country where my husband dwells, to come to him. The
dream and the letter together so wrought upon my mind, that
they forced me to this way.
' Inter, But met you with no opposition before you set out of
doors ?
Chr, Yes, a neighbour of mine, one Mrs. Timorous, (she
was kin to him that would have persunded my husband to go
back, for fear of the lions,) she also so befooled me, for, as she
called it, my intended desperate adventure : she also urged
what she could to dishearten me from it ; the hardship and
troubles that my husband met with in the way : but all this I
got over pretty well. But a dream that I had of two ill-looking
ones, that 1 thought did plot how to make me miscarry in my
journey, that hath troubled me ; yea, it still runs in my mind,
and makes me afraid of every one that 1 meet, lest they should
meet me to do me a mischief, and to turn me out of my wa3%
Yea, I may tell my Lord, though 1 would not every body knew
it, that between this and the Gate by which we got into the
way, we were both so sorely assaulted, that we were made to
cry out murder ; and the two, that made this assault upon us,
were like the two that I saw in my dream.
Then said the Interpreter, ' Thy beginning is good, thy lat-
ter end shall greatly increase.' So he addressed him to Mer-
cy, and said unto her, * And what moved thee to come hither,
sweetheart?' ~
Then Mercy blushed and trembled, and for a while continu-
ed silent.
Then said he, * Be not afraid, only believe, and speak thy
mind.'
Then she began, and said, « Truly, Sir, my want of experi-
ence is that which makes me covet to be In silence, and that
also that fiUeth me with fears of coming short at last. I cannot
tell of visions and dreams, as my friend Christiana can ; nor
know I what it is to mourn for my refusing of tL^ counsel of
those that were good relations.'
Inter. What was it then, dear heart, that hath prevailed with
thee to do as thou hast done ?
Mercy is recommended^ 247
Mer. Why, when our friend here was packing up to he gone
from our town, I and another went accidentally to see her.
So we knocked at the door, and went in. When we were
within, and seeing what she was doing, we asked her what she
meant ? She said, she was sent for to go to her husband ; and
then she up and told us how she hjid seen him in a dream,
dwelling in a curious place, among immortals, wearing a crown,
playing upon a harp, eating and drinking at his Prince's table,
imd singing praises to him for the bringing him hither, &c.
Now methought while she was telling these thmgs unto us, my
heart burned within me. And 1 said in my heart, [f this be
true, 1 will leave my father and my mother, and the land of my
nativity, and will, if I may, ^o along with Christiana.
So I asked her further of the truth of these things, and if she
would let me go with her ; for 1 saw how, that there was no
dwelling, but with the danger of ruin, any longer in our town.
Piut yet 1 came away with i\ heavy heart ; not for that I was
unwiUing to come away, but for that so many of my relations
were left behind. And I am come with all my heart, and will,
if I may, go with Chrisiiina, to her husband, and his King.
IrUer. Thy setting out is good, for thou hast given credit to
the truth ; (c) thou art a Ruth, who did, for the love she bare
!< (c) This is a most simple definition of failh : it is " the belief of the
truth," as the sure testimony of God, relative to our most important con-
cerns. When we thus reiUtlhos-e truths that teach us the peril of our
situation as justly condeLi::.ed s-aiers, we are moved with fear, and hum-
bled in repentance ; aud .vlion we thui. believe U^e report of a refuge pro-
vided for us, our hopes are excited. Those truths that relate to inestimable
blessings attainable by us, when really credited, kindle our fervent desires ;
while such as show is the glory, excellency and mercy of God our Sa-
viour, and our obligations to his redeeming grace, work by love, grati-
tude, and every fervent ajTsction. This living faith influences a man's
judgment, choice, and con uct ; and especially induces him to receive Je-
sus Christ for all the pur; uses of salvation, and to yield himself to his
service, as constrained by love of him and zeal for his glory. We need
no other ground for this faith, than the authenticated word of God. This
may be brought to our recollection by means of distress or danger, or even
in a dream, or with some very strong impression on the miod : yet true
faith rests only on the word ot God, according to its meaning as it stands
in the Bible ; and not in the manner in which it occurs to the thoughts,
or according to any new sense put upon it in a dream^ or by an impression ;
as this would be a jiew revelation. For if tire words, '* Thy sins are for-
given thee,'' should be impressed on my mind^ they would contain a decla-
ration nowhere made in Scripture concerning me ; consequently the be-
lief of them on this ground would be a faith not warranted by the word
248 They prepare for their departure.
to Naomi, and to the Lord her God, *' leave father and mother,
and the land of her nativity, to come out and go with a people
that she knew not before. The Lord recompense thy work,
ami a full reward be given thee of the Lord God of Isreal, un-
der whose wings thou art come to trust/'*
Now supper was ended, nd prep iration made for bed , the
women were laid smgiy alone, .md the l)oys by themselves.
Now when Mercy w ts in bed, she could not sleep for joy, for
that now her doubts of missing at last were removed further
from her than ever they were before. So she lay blessing
and praising God, who had such fivour for her.
In the morning they arose with the sun, ami prepared them-
selves for their departure ; but the interpreter would have
them tarry awhile ; ' For^' said he, 'you must orderly go from
hence.' Then said he to the damsel that lirst opened unto
them, * Take them and have them into the garden to the Bath^
and there wash them and make them clean from the soil which
they have gathered by travelling.' Then Innocent the damsel
took them, and led them into the garden, and brought them to
the Bath ; so she told them, that there they must wash and be
clean, for so her Master would have the women to do, that
called at his house as they were going on pilgriniage. Then
they went in and washed, yea, they and the boys and all ; and
they came out of that Bath not only sweet and clean, but also
much enlivened and strengthened in their joints. So when
they came in, they looked fairer a deal than when they went
out to the washing.
* Ruth ii. 11, 12.
of God. Now as we have no reason to expect such new revelations, and
as Satan can counterfeit any of these impressions, we must consider every-
thing of this kind as opening a door to enthusiasm, and the most danger-
ous delusions ; though many, who rest their confidence on them, have
also acripiural evidence of their acceptance, which they overlook. On
the other hand, should the followiuaf words be powerfully impressed on
my mind, " Him that cometh to me I will in no wise cast out," or " He
that confesseth and forsake! h his sin shall find mercy ;" I may deduce en-
couragement from the words, accordmg to the genuine meaning of them
as they stand in Scripture, without any drea I of delusion, or any pretence
to new revelations ; provided I be conscious, that I do come to Christ, and
confess my sins with the sincere purpose of forsaking them. But there
are so many dangers in this matter, that the more evidently our faith and
hope are grounded wholly on the plain testimony of God, and confirmed
by our subsequent experience and conduct ; the safer will our course be,
and the less occasiou will be given to the objections of our despisers.
They prepare for their departure, 249
When they were returned out of the garden from the Bath,
the Interpreter took them, and looked upon them, and said unto
them, ** Fair as the moon." Then he called for the seal,
wherewith they used to be sealed that were washed in his
Bath. So the seal was brought, and he set his mark upon
them, that they might be known in the places whither they
were yet to go. Now the seal was the contents and sum of the
passover, which the children of Israel did eat when the\^ came
out of the land of Egypt ;* and the mark was set between their
eyes. This seal greatly added to their beauty, for it was an
ornament to their faces. It also added to their gravity, and
made their countenances more like them of angels, (c?)
Then said the Interpreter again to the damsel that waited
upon the women, ' Go into the Vestry, and fetch out garments
for these people :' So she went and fetched out white raiment,
and laid it down before him : so he commanded them to put it
on : it was '* fine linen, white and clean.*' When the women
were thus adorned, they seemed to be a terror one to the
other ; for that they could not see that glory each one in her-
self, which they could see in each other. Now therefore they
began to esteem each other better than themselves. ' For you
are fairer than I am,' said one ; and, * You are more comely
than I am,' said another. The children also stood amazed, to
see into what fashion they were brought, (e)
* Exod. xii. 8—10.
{d) The author calls this * The Bath oi sanctification,' in a marginal
Jte : whence we may infer, that he especially meant to intimate, that
believers should constantly seek fresh supplies oi grace from the Holy
Spirit, to purify their hearts from the renewed defilement of sin, which
their intercourse with the world will continually occasion ; and to revive
and invigorate those holy affections, which in the same manner are apt to
grow languid. Yet he did not intend to exclude their habitual reliance
on the blood of Christ for pardon and acceptance ; for in both respects we
need daily washing. The sanctification of the Spirit unto obedience war-
rants the true Christian's " peace and joy in believin:,' ;" it gives him
beauty in the sight of his brethren ; it strengthens him for every conflict,
and service ; and the image of Christ, discernible in the spirit and con-
duct, seals him as a child of God and an heir of glory : while the inward
consciousness of living by faith in the Son of God for ail the blessings of
salvation, and experiencing all filial affections to ." ards God as his recon-
ciled Father, inspires him with humble joy and confidence.
(fi) The Pilgrims are supposed to have been jiiitified on their admission
at the Gate ; the Interpreter is the emblem of the Holy Spirit ; and the
raiment here mentioned rendered those who were adorned with it come-
ly in the eyes of their companions. We cannot, therefore, with propriety
li
t^O The Pilgrims set out, conducted by Great-Heart.
The Interpreter called for a man-servant of his, one Great-
heart, and bid him take a sword, and helmet, and shield : * and
take these my daughters,' said he, ' conduct them to the house
called Beautiful, at which pl;ice they will rest next.' (/) So
he took his weapons and went before them ; and the Interpre-
ter said, ' God speed.' Those also that belonged to the family
sent them away with many a good wish, bo they went on their
way, and sang —
* This place has been our second stage,
Here ue have heard and seen
Those good things, that f« om age to age
To others hid have bean.
The dunghill-raKer, spider, hen.
The chickt^n too, to me
Have taught a lesson ; let me then
Conformed to it be.
_The butcher, garden, and the field,
The robin and his bait,
Also the rotten tree dorh yield
Me ar2;uinent of weight ;
To move me tor to watch and pray,
To strive to be sincere ;
To take my cross up day by day.
And serve the Lord with fear.
Now I saw in my dream, that those went on, and Great-heart
before them ; so th-^y went and came to the place where Chris-
tian's burden fell off his back, and tumbled into a Sepulchre.*
Here then they mide a piuse ; here dso they blessed GodJ
Now, said Christiana, it com<-s to my mind what was said to us
^ Part i. p. 55.
explain it to signify the rrghteou?n.^ss of Christ imputed to tlie be-
liever, bat the renewal of the soul to holiness ; for this alone in its effects
is visible to the eyes of men. .They, 'vho have put on this raiment, are
also "clothed with humdity :". so that th;^y readdy perceive the excel-
lencies of other believers, but cannot discern their own, except when they
look in the glass of GodV worl. At the same time they become very ob-
servant of their own defect*, and severe in animadverting on them, but
proportionably candid to their brethren : and thus they learn the hard
lesson of "• esteeming others hotter than iHemselv* s.'"
(/) The stated pastoral carf of a Vij^ilant minister, who is strong in
faith, and courageous in the cans, of God, is represented by the conductor
of the Pilgrims. We shall have repeated o.v; ortnniUes of showing-, how
desirous the author was to recommend this advantage to his readers, to
,excite them to be thankful for it, and to avail themselves of it when gra-
ciously afforded them.
They come to the Cross and the Sepulchre, 551
at the Gate, to wit, that we should have pardon by word and
deed ; by word, that is, by the promise ; by deed^ to wit, in
the way it was obtained. What the promise is, of that 1 know
something ; but what it is to have pardon by deed^ or in the way
that it was obtained, Mr. Great-heart, I suppose you know ;
which, if you please, let us hear your discourse thereof.
Gr,-H. Pardon by the deed done, is pardon obtained by some
one for another that hath need thereof: not by the person par-^
doned, but in 'the way,' saith another, ' in which 1 have ob-
tained it.' — So then, (to speak to the question more at large,)
the pardon that you and Merc}^ and these boys, have attained
is by another ; to wit, by him that let you in at that Gate : and
he hath obtained it in this double way : he hath performed
righteousness to cover you, and spilt blood to wash you in.
Chr, But if he parts with his righteousness to us, what will
he have for himself?
1? Gr.-H. He has more righteousness than you have need of,
^or than he needeth himself.
Chr. Pray make that appear.
V Gr,-H. With all my heart : but first I must premise, that
he, of whom we are now about to speak, is one that has not
his fellow. He has two natures in one person, plain to be dis-
tinguished, impossible to be divided. Unto each of these na-
tures a righteousness belongeth, and each righteousness is es-
sential to that nature. So that one may as easily cause the na-
. tures to be extinct, as to separate its justice or righteousness
from it. 0{ these righteousnesses, therefore, we are not made
partakers, so that th(^y, or any of them, should be put upon us,
that we might be made just, and live thereby. Besides these,
there is a righteousness which this person has, as these two na-
tures are joined in one. And this is not the righteousness of
the Godhead, as distinguished from the manhood ; nor the
righteousness of the manhood, as distinguished from the God-
head ; but a righteousness which standeth in the union of both
natures, and may properly be called the righteousness that is
essential to his being prepared of God to the capacity of the
mediatory cfRce, which he was intrusted with. If he parts
with his tirst righteoasness, he parts with his Godhead : if he
parts witli his second righteousness, he parts with the purity of
his manhood : if he parts with his third, he parts with tiiat per-
fection which capacitates hi Qi to the office of medidtion. He
has therefore another righteousness, which standeth in per-
£5? The Righteousness of ChrisL
formance, or obedience to a revealed will : and that is what
he puts upon sinners, and that by which their sins are covered.
Wherefore he saith, *' As by one man's disobedience, many
were made sinners ; so by the obedience of one, shall many
be made righteous."*
Chr. But are the other righteousnesses of no use to us ?
Gr,'H, Yes : for though they are essential to his natures
and oHice, and cannot be communicated unto another, yet it is
by virtue of them that the righteousness that justifies is for that
I "urpose efficacious. The righteousness of his Godhead gives
\irtue to his obedience ; the righteousness of his manhood
g- veth capability to his obedience to justify ; and the righteous-
ness that standeth in the union of these two natures to his of-
fice, givsth authority to that righteousness to do the work for
which it was ordained.
So then here is a righteousness that Christ, as God, has no
n.^ed of; for he is God without it ; here is a righteousness that
Christ, as man, has no need of to make him so, for he is per-
fect man without it : again, here is a righteousness that Christ,
as God-man, has no need of, for he is perfectly so without it.
Here then is a righteousness that Christ, as God, and as God-
man, has no need of, with reference to himself, and therefore
he can spare it ; a justifying rigTiteousness, that he for himself
wanteth not, and therefore giveth it away. Hence it is called
'' the gift of righteousness. "t — This righteousness, since Christ
Jesus the Lord has made himself under the law, must be given
away ; for the law doth not only bind him that is under it, to
do justly, but to use charity. Wherefore he must, or ought by
the law, if he hath two coats, to give one to him that has none.
Now our Lord indeed hath two coats, one for himself, and one
to spare : wherefore he freely bestows one upon those that
have none. And thus, Christiana and Mercy, and the rest of
you that are here, doth your pardon come by deed^ or by the
work of another man. Your Lord Christ is he that worked,
and hath given away what he wrought for, to the next poor beg-
gar he meets.
But again, in order to pardon by deed, there must something
be paid to God as a price, as well as something prepared to
cover us withal. Sin has delivered us up to the just course of
a righteous law : now from this course we must be justified by
way of redemption, a price being paid for the harms we have
* Rom. T. 19. t Rom. r. 17.
Redemption by the blood of Clirist, 2^3
done ; and this is by the blood of your Lord, who came and
stood in your place and stead, and died your death for your
transgressions. Thus has he ransomed you from your trans-
gressions, by blood, and covered your polluted and deformed
souls with righteousness ;* for the sake of which, God passeth
by you, and will not hurt you, when he comes to judge the
world, (g)
Chr. This is brave : now I see that there was something to
be learned by our being pardoned by word and deed. Good
Mercy, let us labour to keep this in mind ; and my children,
do you remember it also. — But, Sir, was not this it that made
* Rom. viii. 34. Gal. iii. 13,
(s) This discourse, on * Pardon by the deed done,' confirms the inter-
pretation that hath been given of the Cross, and of Christian's dehverancc
from his burden. The doctrine is, however, here stated in a manner to
■which some may object, and indeed it is needlessly systi^matical and rather
obscure. By ' the righteousness of Christ, as God,' his essential divine
attributes of justice and holmess must be intended. * His righteousne??,
as Man,' denotes his human nature as free from all the defilements of sin.
* The righteousness of his person, as he hath the two natures joined iu
one,' can only mean the perfection of his mysterious person in all respects :
and his capacity of acting as our Surety, by doing and suffering in our na-
ture all that was requisite, while his divine nature stamped an infinite
value on his obedience unto death. The eternal Word, the only begot-
ten Son of God was under no obligation to assume our nature ; and when
he had seen good to assume it, he was not Ijound to live a number of years
here on earth, obedient to the law, both in its ceremonial and moral re-
quirements, amidst hardships, sufferings, and temptations of every kind ;
except, as he had undertaken to be our Surety. In this sense he himself
had no need of that righteousness which he finished for our justification.
And assuredly he was under no obligation, as a perfectly holy man, to
suffer any thing, much less to submit to the violent, torturing, and igno-
minious death upon the cross. That part of his obedience, which con-
sisted iu enduring agony, and pain in body and soul, was only needful, as
he bare our sins, and gave himseli a sacrifice to God for us. Indeed, his
righteousness is not^ tlie less his own, by being imputed to us : for believers
are considered as one with him, and thus " made the righteousness of God
in him," and we are justified in virtue of this umon. He was able by his
temporal sufferings and death to pay our debts, and ransom our inherit-
ance ; thus delivering us from eternal misery which else had been inevit-
able, and bringing us to eternal life which had otherwise been unattain-
able ; and the law of love, to which as a man he became subject, required
him to do this ; for if we *' loved our neighbour a^^ourselves," we should
be v/illing to submit to any inferior loss, hardship, or suffering, to rescue
an enemy or strang^er from a gieater and more durable misery, which he
has no other way of escaping ; or to secure to him a more valuable ssO
permanent advantage, which can no otherwise be obtained.
9?
254 Happy tfftcU of looking to the Cross,
my good Christian's burden fall from off his shoulder, and that
made him give three leaps for joy ?
Gr.'H, Yes, it was the belief of this that cut off those strings,
that could not be cut by other means ; and it was to give him a
proof of the virtue of this, that he was suffered to carry his bur-
den to the Cross.
Chr, i thought so ; for though my heart was lightful and joy
ous before, yet it is ten times more lightsome and joyous now.
And I am persuaded by what I have felt, (though I have felt
but little as yet,) that if the most burdened man m the world
was here, and did see and believe as 1 now do, it would make
his heart the more merry and blithe.
Gr.-IL There is not only comfort, and the ease of a burden
brought to us, by the sight and consideration of these ; but an
endeared affection begot in us by it : for who can (if he does
but once think that prirdon comes not only by promise, but
thus,) but be affected with the w;iy and means of redemption,
and so with the man that hath wrought it for him !
Chr. True : methinks it makes my heait bleed to think, that
he should bleed for me. Oh ! thou loving One ! Oh ! thou
blessed One ! Thoi:^eservest to have me ; thou hast bought
me ; thou deservest to have me all ; thou hast paid for me ten
thousand times more than I am worth ! — No marvel that this
made the water stand in my husband's eyes, and that it made
him trudge so nimbly on : 1 am persuaded he wished me with
him : but, vile wretch that I was ! 1 let him come all alone.
O Mercy, that thy father and mother were here ; yea, and Mrs.
Timorous also : nay, I wish now Wiih. all my he irt, that here
was Mvidam Wanton too. Surely, surely, their hearts would be
affected ; nor could the fear of the one, nor the powerful lusts
of the other, prevail with them to go home again, and refuse
to become good Pilgrims. (Ji)
Gr,-H* You speak now in the warmth of your affections :
(Jt) When believer?, ' in the warmth of their affections,'' feel the hum-
bling, melting, endearing, and sanctifying effects of contemplating i he glo-
ry of the Cross, and the love of Christ in dying for sinners ; and consider
themselves as the special objects of that inexpressible compassion and kind-
ness : they are apt to conclude that the bebe! of the propositions, that
Christ loves them and died for them, and that Goi is reconciled to them. i>to-
duces the change by its own influence : and would affect the most c^unjil
hearts in the same manner, could men be persuaded to believe it. For
they vainly imagine that apprehensions of the severity of divine justice,
and the dread of vengeance, are the sources of the enmity which sinners
Warm affections by special Grace, 25$
tvill it, think you, be always thus with you ? Besides, that is
not communicated to every one, nor to every one that did see
your Jesus bleed. There were that stood by, and that saw the
blood run from the heart to the ground, and yet were so far off
manifest against God. Hence very lively and affectionate Christians have
frequently been prone to sanction the unscriptural tenet, that the justify-
ing act of faith consists in assured It/ believing that Christ died for me in
particular, and that God loce>> me ; and to consider this appropriation as
preceding repentance, and every other gracious disposition ; and as in
some sense the cause of regeneration, winning the heart to love God, and
to rejoice in him, and lu obeying his commandments. From this doctrine
others have inferred, that if all meu, and even devils too, believ^jd the love
of God to them, and his purpose at length to make them happy, they
would be won over from rebellion against him, which they persist in from
a mistaken idea that he is their implacable enemy : and they make this
one main argument, m support ol die saiiuary tendency of the iinal resti-
tution scheme. Bm all these opinions arise irom a lalse and flattering es-
timate of human a.;tOre ; iur ihe carnal mind nates the scriptural charac-
ter of God and tne glory displayed in the Cros*, even more than that
which shmes forth in the fiery law. Ind ^d if we take away toe ojjaisivt
part of tt»e gospel, the honour it puts upon the law an l its awful sancUons,
and the exhibition it makes oi the divine justice and holiness, it will give
the proud carnal heart but little umbrage^il we^dmit that men's aver-
sion to God and f^ligion arise from miaapprelieusion^ and not from despe-
rate wickedness, many will endure the dootrinf*. A reconciliation, in
which God assures the sinner that he has torgiven him, even belore he
has repented of uis sins, will suit man's pride ; and ii he nas been previ-
ously fri ;hted, a great flow of affections may loilow : but the event will
prove, that they differ essentially froiii spiritual love of God, gratitude,
holy joy, and i;euuine humiliai.on, whicii arise :roni a true perception of
the glorious perfections oi God, the righteousness oi his law and govern-
ment, the real naturf of redemption, and the odiousness and desert of ^in.
. In short, all sucli ichemcs reiuier regent ration neeaie.ts ; or substitute some-
thing else in ibs steal, which is eri'eclii'i i y a natural /^rocew, and not by
the ncm-creatbiq poircr of ire Holy c/;irt7.— ^Bui, when l.hl^ divme agent
has communicated lire to the soid, and a capacity is pioduced oi perceiv-
ing and relishing spiritual excellency, the enmity against God receiv*»s a
mortal wound : from that season the n/ore his real character and glory
are known, the greater sp'ritual affection will be excited,' and a propor-
lionabla trauaibrmation into the same holy image efiected. Then the view
'uthe Cros?, is the grand display <«i all the harmontous pertiections of the
Caodhead, softens, humbles, and meliorates the heart : while the persaa-
sicn oi an interest in these blessing, and an admiring sense of having re-
ceived such inconceivable favours irom this glorious and holy Lord God,
will still further elevate the soul above all low pursuits, and constrain it
to the most unreserved and self-denying obedience. But, while the heart
remains unregenerate, the glory of God and the ^^ospel will either be mis-
understood, or hated in proportion as it is discov.^red. Such views and
affections therefore as have been described, spring from special grace ; and
256 Three Men hung in Chains.
this, that, instead of lamenting, they laughed at him; and in
stead of becoming his disciples, did harden their hearts against
him. So that all that you have, my daughters, you have by pe-
culiar impression made by a divine contemplation upon what I
have spoken to you. Remember that it was told 3^ou, that the
hen by her common call, gives no meat to her chickens. This
you have therefore by a special grace.
Now 1 saw still in my dream, that they went on until they
were come to the place that Simple, and Sloth, and Presump-
tion, lay and slept in, when Christian went by on pilgrimage :
and behold they were hanged up in irons a little way off on the
other side.
Then said Mercy to him that was their guide and conductor,
* What are these three men ? and for what are they hanged
there V
Gr,-H, These three men were men of bad qualities ; they
had no mind to be Pilgrims themselves, and whomsoever they
could they hindered : they were for sloth and folly themselves,
and whomsoev* r they could persuade, they made so too ; and
withal taught tr.em to presume that they should do well at last.
They were asleep when Christian went by ; and now you go
by, they are h mged.
Mer. But could they persuade any one to be of their opi-
nion ?
Gr.'H, Yes, they turned several out of the way. There
was Slow-pace, (hey persuaded to do as they. They also pre-
vailed with one Short- wind, v/ith one No-heart, with one Lin-
ger-after-lust, and with one Sleepy-head, and with a young wo-
man, her name wns Dull, to turn out of the way and become as
they. Besides, they brouofht up an ill report of your Lord,
persuading others that he was a hard U'sk-master. They also
brought up an evil report of the good land, saying it was not
half so good as some pretended it wfis. They also began to
vilify his servant^, and to count the best of them meddlesome,
troublesome, busy-bodies : further, they would call the bread
are not prod'^cedby the natural efficacy of any sentiments, but by the im-
mediate influences of the Holy Spirit ; so that even true believer?, though
they habitually are persuaded of their interest in Christ, and the love of
God to them, are only at times thus filled with holy affections ; nor will
the same contemplacioiis constantly excite similar rxercises ; but they of-
ten bestow much }:ains to g-et their mind? affected by them in vain ; while
at other times a single glance of thought fills them with the most ferveut
emotions of holy love and joy.
spring at the hill Difficulty dirty, 2^7
of God husks ; the comforts of his children, fancies ; the tra-
vail and labour of Pilgrims, things to no purpose, (i)
Nay, said Christiana, if they were such, they should never
be bewailed by me • they have but what they deserve ; and
I think it well that they stand so near the highway, that others
may see and take warning. But had it not betn well if their
crimes had been engraven on some pillar of iron or brass, and
left here where they did their mischiefs, for a caution to other
bad men ?
Gr. H. So it is, as you may well perceive, if you will go a
little to the wall.
Mer, No, no ; let them hang, and their names rot, and their
crimes live for ever against them : I think it is a high favour
that they are hanged before we came hither ; who knov\s else
what they might have done to such poor women as we are ?
Then she turned it into a song, saying : —
» Now then you three hang there, and be a sign
To all that shall against the truth combine,
And let hin that comes alter fear this end,
If unto Pilgrims he is not a friend.
And thou, my soul, of all such men beware,
That unto holiness opposers are.'
Thus they went on, till they came at the foot of the hill Dif-
ficulty, where again their good friend Mr. Great-heart took an
occasion to tell them what happened there when Christian
himself went by.* So he hud them tirst to the spring: Lo,
saith he, this is the spring that Christian drank of before he
* Part 1. p. 61—64.
(t) The dreadful falls and awf d deaths of some professors are often
made notorious, for a warning to oth-rs ; and to put them upon their
guard against superficial, slothful, and ? resumptuous men, who draw aside
many from the holy ways of God. The name of the persons thus de-
luded show the reasons why men listen to deceivers; for these are only
the occasions of their turning aside, the cause lies in the concealed lusts of
their own hearti. The transition is very easy from orthodox notions and
profession without experience, to false and loose sentiments, and then to
open ungodliness.
These lines are here inserted under a plate :
Behold here how the slothful are a si<*Tj
Hung up 'cause holy ways they did cfecline :
See here too, how the child doth play the man.
And weak grow strong, when Great-heart leadt the ytat.
Kk 22*
258 Men will not he kept from hy-ways,
went up this hill ; and then it was clear and good, but now it
is dirty with the feet of some, that are not desirous that Pil-
grim? here should quench their thirst.*" Thereat Mercy said,
' And why so envious, trow V But said the guide, it will do, if
taken up and put into a vessel that is sweet and good ; for then
the dirt will sink to the bottom, and the water come out by
itself more clear. Thus therefore Christiana and her com-
panions were compelled to do. They took it up, and put it
into an earthen pot, and s6 let it stand till the dirt was gone to
the bottom, and then they drank thereof, (k)
Next he showed them the two by-ways that were at the foot
of the hill, where Formality and Hypocrisy lost themselves.
* And,' said he, ' these are dangerous paths :• two were here
cast away when Christian came by. And althougli you see
these ways are since stopped up with chains, posts, and a ditch,
yet there are they that will choose to adventure here, rather
than take the pains to go up this hill.'
Chr. " The way of transgressors is hard :"t it is a wonder
that they can get into those ways without danger of breaking
their necks.
Gr.-H. They will venture ; yea, if at any time any of the
King's servants do happen to see them, and doth call upon
them, and tell them, that they are in the wrong ways, and do
bid them beware of the danger, then they railingly return them
answer, and say, " As for the word that thou hast spoken unto
us in the name of the King, we will not hearken unto thee ; but
we will certainly do whatsoever thing goeth out of our mouth. "|
Nay, if you look a little further, you shall see that these ways
are made cautionary enough, not only by these posts, and ditch,
and chain, but also by being hedged up ; yet they will choose
to go there, (l)
* Ezck. xxxiv. 18. t Prov. xiii. 15. J Jer. xliw 16, 17.
(k) This passag^e shows, that the preaching of the gospel was especially
intended by the springs in the former part of the work. Since that had
been published, the author had witnessed a departure from the simplicity
of the gospel, as it has been before observed.* This mignt be dom? unad-
visedly in those immediately concerned ; but it originated from the dev^i--
ces of evil men, and the subtlety of Satan. They, however, who lionestly
and carefully aimed to distin^^uish between the precious and the vile,
might separate the corrupt part from the truths of God, and from the lat-
ter derive comfort and establishment.
(/) The express declarations, commandments and warnings of Scripture ;
and the heart-searching doctrine and distinguishing application of faithful
* Note (k) p. 221.
Tke Pilgrims climb the hill, and rest in the arbour, 259
Chr. They are idle ; they love not to take pains ; up-hili
way is unpleasant to them. So it is fulfilled unto them as it is
written. — ** The way of the slothful man is as an hedge of
thorns."* Yea, they will rather choose to walk upon a snare,
than to go up this hill, and the rest of this way to the City.
Then they set forward, and began to go up the hill, and up
the hill they went ; but before tl\ey got up to the top, Chris-
tiana began to p tnt, and said, I dare say this is a breathing hill j
no marvel if they that love their ease more than their souls,
choose to themselves a smoother way. Then said Mercy, I
must sit down ; also the least of the children began to cry :
Come, com»i, said Great-heart, sit not down here, for a littlej
above is tlie Prince's arbour. Then he took the little boy by
the hand, id led him thereto.
When tliey w*^re c^-me to the arbour, they were very wil-)
ling to sit down, for they were all in a pelting heat. Then said
Mercy, how sweet is rest to them that labour !t And how good
is the Prince of Pilgrims, to provide such resting places for
them ! Of this arbour 1 have heard much ; but I nev<}r saw it
before. But here let us beware of sleeping : for, as I have
heard that it cost poor Christian dear.
Then said Mr. Great-heart to the little ones, Come, my
pretty boys, how do you do ? What think you now of going on
pilgrimage ? * Sir,' said the least, ' I was almost beat out of
heart ; but I thank you for lending me a hand at my need. And
I remember now what my mother hath told me, namely. That
the way to heaven is as a ladder, and the way to hell is as down
a hill. But 1 had rather go up the ladder to life, than down
the hill to death.'
Then said Mercy, ' But the proverb is, To go do-scn the hill is
easy :' but James said, flbr that wms his name,) * The day is
coming, when, in my opinion, going down the hill will be the
hardeft of all.' ' 'Tis a good lioy,' said his master, ' thou hast
given her a right answer.' Then Mercy smiled, but the little .
boy did blush. f
* Prov. XV. 19. t Matt. xi. 28.
ministers, su5iciently hede:e up all those by-ways, into which professors
are tempted to turn aside : but carnal self-love, and desire of ease to the
flesh, (which always opposes fts own crucifixicu,) induce numbers to break
through all obstacles, and to risk their eternal interests, rather than deny
themselves, and endure hardship in the way to heaven. Nor will teachers
be wanting to flatter them with the hoyc of being saved by notionally be-
lieving certain doctrines, while \h&j practically XxB^i the whole word of
God as a lie I
i
260 Being refreshed, they go forward.
* Come,' said Christiana, * will you eat a bit to sweeten your
mouths, while you sit here to rest your legs ? For I have here
a piece of poineajranate, which Mr. Int'^rpreter put into my
hand just when 1 came out of his doors ; he gave me also a
piece of an honey-comb, md a little bottle of spirits.' * I
thought he gave you something,' said Mercy, ' because he called
you aside.' ' Yes, so he did,' said the other. ' Bat,' said
Christiana, * it shall be still as I said it should, when at first we
came from home : thou shalt be a sharer in all the good that I
have, because thou so willingly didst become my companion.'
Then she gave to them, and they did eat, both Mercy an«i the
boys. And said Christiana to Mr. Great-heart, ' !Sir, will you
do as we?' But he answered, * You are going on pilgrimage,
and presently I shall r^'turn : much good may what you have
do to you. At home 1 eat the same every day.'
Now when they had eaten and drunk, and had chatted a little
longer, their guide said to them, * The ddy wears away ; if you
think good, let us prep ire to be going.' So they got up to go,
and the little boy* went before : but Christiana forgot to take
her bottle of spirits with her ; so she sent her little boy back
to fetch it. Then said Mv:;rcy, ' I think this is a losing place.
Here Christian lost his roll ; and here Christiana left her bottle
behind her : Sir, what is the cause of this ?' So their guide
made answer, and said, ' The cause is sleep or forgetfulncss ;
some sleep w^hen they should keep awake, and some forget
when they should remember ; and this is the very cause, why
often at the resting places some Pilgrims in some things come
oif losers. Pilgrims should wiitch and remember what they
have already received under their greatest enjoyments ; but
for want of doing so, oftentimes their rejoicing ends in tears,
and their sun-shine in a cloud : — witness the story of Christian
at this place.'
When they were come to the place where Mistrust and
Timorous met Christian, to persuade him to go back for fear
of the lions, they perceived as it were a stage, and before it,
towards the road, a broad plate, with a copy of verses written
thereon, and underneath, the reason of raising up of that stage
in that place rendered. The verses were —
» Let him that sees that Stage, take heed
Upon his heart and tongue :
Lest if he do not, here he speed
As some have long agonc'
The Lions hacked by Giant Grim. 26.1
The words underneath the verses were, * This stnge was
built to punish such upon, who, through timorousness or mis-
trust, shall be afraid to go further on pilgrimage . also on this
stage both Mistrust and Timorous were burnt through the
tongue with a hot iron, for endeavouring to hinder Christian on
on his journey.'
Then said Mercy, This is much like to the saying of the
Beloved, *' VVhat shall be given unto thee ; or what shall be
done unto thee, thou false tongue ? sharp arrows of the mighty,
with coals of juniper."* (m)
^o they went on till they came within sight of the lions, j
Now Mr. Great-heart was a strong man, so he was not afraid
of a lion ; but yet when they were come up to the place where
the lions were, the boys that went before were glad to cringe
behind, for they were afraid of the lions : so they stcpt back
and went behind. At this, their guide smiled, and said, *Hovv
now, my boys, do you love to go before when no danger doth
approach, and love to come behind so soon as the lions appear V
Now as they went on, Mr. Great-heart drew his sword, with
intent to make a way for the Pilgrims in spite of the lions.
Then there appeared one, that it seems had taken upon him to
back the lions : and he said to the Pilgrims' guide, ' VVhat is
the cause of your coming hither V Now the name of that rnati
was Grim, or Bloody-man, because of his slaying of Pilgrims ;
and he was of the race of the giants.
Then said the Pilgrims' guide, ' These women and children
are going on pilgrimage ; and this is the way they must go, and
go it they sh ill, in spite of thee and the lions.'
Grim. This is not their way, neither shall they go therein.
I am come forth to withstand them, and to that end will back
the lions.
Now, to say the truth, by reason of the fierceness of the
lions, and of the grim carriage of him that did back them, this
* Psa. cxx. 3, 4. t Part i. p. 66.
(m) The word Da\ iJ - unifies Beloved. We should be very cautious
not to spsak any thin^, which may discourasre such as seem disposed to a
religious liie ; lest we should be found to have abetted that enemy, who
spares no j ains to seduce them back again into the world. Even the un-
believing tears and complaints ot weak and tempted Christians should be
depressed before persons of this descr ption : how great then will be the
guilt of those wlio stifle their own convictions, and act contrary to theiy
conscience, from fear of reproach or persecution, and then employ them-
6«lve8 in dissuading others from serving God 1
25<j Giant Grim is slain hy Great-Heart,
way had of late lain much unoccupied, and was almost all grown
over with grass.
Then said Christiana, * Though the highways have been un-
occupied heretofore, and thouo;h the travellers have been made
in times past to walk through by-paths, it must not be so now
I am risen, " Now i am risen a mother in Israel."*
Then he swore by the lions, but it should : and therefore
bid them turn aside, for they should not have passage there.
But their guide made first his approach unto Grim, and l.ud so
heavily on him with his swoni, that he forced him to retreat.
Then s ud he that attempted to back the lions, ' Will you
slay me upon mine own ground ?'
Gr.-H. It is the King's highway that we are m, and in this
way it is that thou hast pi iced th.- li-^ns ; but these women and
these ciiil<!;e ., a );Jj^ , ^veik, shall hold oo their way in «pite ol
the lions. And with that he gave him h downright blow and
brought him upon his kne^s. With this Mow also he broke
his helmet, and with the next he cut off an arm. Then did the
gi mt roar so hiiieouslv thit his voice fri2;hted the women ; and
y»»t they were o;lid to see him lie sprawling on the gronn'^ — ■
Kow the lions were chained, and so of themselves could do no-
thmg. Wherefore, when oU Grim, that intended to back them,
was dead. Great- he 'rt s ad to the Pilgrims, * Come now, nnd
follow me, and no hurt sh ill happen to you from the lions.'
They therefore went on, but tho vyoraen trembled as they
passed by them ; the boys dso looked as if they would die, but
they all got by without further hurt, (n)
* Jud-es V. 6, ".
(n) It IS not very easy to detei mine the prtcise idea of the aathor, ia
each of the Giauls, who assault thp Pilgrims, and are slain by the con-
ductor and his assistants. Some have sujiposed that tm belief is here
meant : but Grim, or oloo ly-taaa. seems ao^ to be apposite names for this
inward foe ; nor can it be conceivetl that I'/nbelief sliouLJ ciore violently
assaalt those, who are under the care of a valiant conductor, than it had
done the solitary Pilo-rims. I apprehend, theretore, that this Giant was
intended for the emblem of certam active men, who busied themselves in
framing- and executing persecuting; statutes ; which was done at the time
when this was written more violently than it had been befor/^. Thus the
temptation to fear man, which at ail tunes assaults the believer, when re-
quired to make a^i open profession of his faith, as exceedin«^ly increased :
and, as heavy fines and :<evel*e ()enalties, in accession to reproach and con-
temjjt, deterred men from joining themselves in communion with dis-
senting churches, that way was almost uuocc pied, and the travellers went
through by-paths, accoiding to the author's sentiments on the subject.—
They arrive at the Porter^s Lodge. £63
Now, when they were within sight of the Porter's lodge,
they soon came up unto it ; but they made the more haste after
this to go thither, because it is dangerous travelUng there in
the night. So when they were come to the gate, the guide
knocked, and the porter cried, ' Who is there ?' But as soon as
♦he guide had said, ' It is I,' he knew his voice, and came down ;
)T the guide had oft before that come thither as a conductor of
Pilgrims. When he was come down, he opened the gate, and,
seeing the guide standing just before it, (for he saw not the wo-
men, for they were behind him,) he said unto him, ' How now,
Mr. Great-heart, whnt is your business here so late at night V
' I have brought,' said he, *some Pilgrims hither, where, by my
Lord's commandment, they must lodge. [ had been here some
time ago, had I not been opposed by the giant that used to back
the lions. But I, afer a long and tedious combat with him,
have cut him off, and have brought the Pilgrims hither in
saf ty.'
For, Will not you go in, and stay till morning ?
Gr,-H, No. 1 will return to my Lord to-night.
CVir. Oh, Sir, I know not how to be willing you should leave
IS in our pilgrimage, you have been so l^iithiul and so loving to
as, you have fought so stoutly for us, you have been so hearty
m counselling of us, that I shall never forget your favour to-
wards us.
Then said Mercy, ' O, that we might have thy company to
our journey's end ! How can such poor women as we hold out
in a way so full of troubles as this way is, without a friend or
defender V
Then said James, the youngest of the boys, ' Pray, Sir, be
persuaded to go with us and help us, because we are so weak,
and the way so dangerousuas it is.'
Gr,'IL 1 am at my Lord's commandment : if he shall allot
me to be your guide quite through, I will willingly wait upon
But the preaching of the gospel, by which the ministers of Christ wielJed
the sword of the Spirit, overcame this enemy : for the example and ex-
hortations of such courageous combatants animated even weak believers
lo overcome their fears, and to act according to their consciences, leaving
the event to God. This seems to have been the authors meaning ; and
perhaps he also intended to encourage his brethren boldly to persevere in
resisting such persecuting statutes, confidently expecting that they should
prevail for the repeal of them ; by which, as by the death of the Giant,
\he Pilgrims might be freed from additional terror, in acting consistently
with thtir avowed principles.
264 Christians love to see one another.
you. But here you failed at first ; for when he bid me come
thus far with you, then you should have begged me of him to
have gone quite through with you, and he would have granted
your request, (o) However, at present I must withdraw ; and
so, good Christiana, Mercy, and my brave children, adieu.
Then the Porter, Mr. Watchful, asked Christiana of her
country, and of her kindred : and she said, ' I came from the
city of Destruction ; I. am a widow-woriKin, and my husband
is dejid, his name was Christian, the Pilgrim.' ' How !' said
the porter, * was he your husband ?' * Yes,' said she, ' and these
are his children ; and this, (pointing to Mercy,) is one of my
town's-women.' Then the porter rang his bell, as at such time
he is wont, and there came to the door one of the damsels,
whose name was Humble-mind. And to her the porter said,
* Go tell it within, that Christiana, the wife of Christian, and
her children, are come hither on pilgrimage.' She went in,
therefore, and told it. But, oh, what noise for gladness was
there, when the damsel did but drop that out of her mouth !
So they came with haste to the porter, for Christiana stood
still at the door. Then some of the most grave said unto her,
* Come in Christiana, come in, thou wife of that good man,
come in, thou blessed woman, come in, with all that are with
thee.' So she went in, and they followed her that were her
children and her companions. Now when they were gone in,
they were had into a large room, and bid to sit down : so they
sat down, and the chief of tho house were called to see and wel-
come the guests. Then they came in, and, understanding who
they were, did salute each other with a kiss, and said, ' Wel-
come, ye vessels of the grace of God, vrelcome unto us who are
your faithful friends.' (p)
(o) We are repeatedly reminded, with g:reat propriety, that we ought
to be very particular and explicit in our prayers, especially in every thing
pertaining to our spiritual advantage. The removal of faithful ministers,
or the fear of losing them, may often remind Christians that ' here they
have failed :' they have not sufRciently valued and prayed for them ; or,
making sure of their continuance, from apparent probabilities, they have
not made tliat the subject of their peculiar requests, and therefore are re
buked by the loss of them.
(j)) " Angels rejoice over one sinner that repenteth ;" and all, wlio truly
love the Lord, will gladly welcome such as appear to be true believers,
into their most endeared felhnvship : yet there are certain individuals,
who, being related to those that have greatly interested their hearts, or
having long been remembered in their prayer?, are welcomed with singu-
lar 'o^- and satisfaction, and who^e professed faith animates them in a pe-
culiar manner.
They feast on the Paschal Lamh. 266
Now, because it was somewhat late, and because the Pil-
grims were weary with their journey, and also made faint with
the sight of the light, and the terrible lions, they desired as
soon as might be, to prepare to go to rest. ' Nay,' said those of
the family, ' refresh yourselves with a morsel of meat :' for they
had prepared for them a lamb, with the accustomed sauce
thereto.* (9) For the porter had heard before of their coming,
and had told it to them within. So when they had supped,
and ended their prayer with a psalm, they desired they might
go to rest. * But let us,' said Christiana, ' if we may be so bold
as to choose, be in that chamber that was my husband's, when
he was here.' So they had them up thither, and they all lay
in a room. When they were at rest, Christiana and Mercy
entered into discourse about things that were convenient.
Chr, Little did I think once, when my husband went on pil-
grimage, that I should ever have followed him.
Mer. And you as little thought of lying in his bed, and in his
chamber to rest, as you do now. (r)
Chr, And much less did I ever think of seeing his face with
comfort, and of worshipping the Lord the King with him ; and
yet now I believe I shall !
Mer, Hark, don't you hear a noise ?
* Exod. xii. 3. John i. 29.
(g) The passover was a prefiguration of the sufferings of Christ, and
the believer's acceptance of him ; of his professed reliance on the atoning
sacrifice, preservation from wrath, and the deliverance from the bondage
of Satan, to set out on his heavenly pilgrimage. And the Lord's supper
is a commemorative ordinance of a similar import ; representing the body
of Christ broken for our sins, and his blood shed for us ; the application
of these blessings to our souls by faith, the profession of this faith and of
love to him and his people, influencing us to devoted self-denying obedi-
ence : and the effects which follow from thus * feeding on Christ in our
hearts by faith with thanksgiving,' in strengthening us for every conflict
and service to which we are called. *' The unleavened bread of sincerity
and truth," and ^^ the bitter herbs" of godly sorrow, deep repentance, mor-
tification of sin, and bearing tlie Cross, accompany the spiritual feast ; and
even render it more relishing to the true believer, as endearing to him
Christ and his salvation.
(r) A marginal note here says, * Christ's bosom is for all Pilgrims.' The
sweet peace arising from calm confidence in the Saviour, the consolations
of his Spirit, submission to his will, and the cheerful obedience of fervent
love, gives rest to the soul, as if we were reclining on his bosom with the
beloved disciple.*
* Part 1. p. 74.
LI . 23
266 Mercy relates her dream ;
Chr, Yes, *tis, as I believe, a noise of music for joy that we
are here.
Mer. Wonderful ! Music in the house, music in the heart,
and music also m heaven, for joy that we are here.
Thus they talked awhile, and then betook themselves to
sleep. So in the morning when they were awaked, Christiana
said to Mercy, ' What was the matter that you did laugh in your
sleep to-night? I suppose you was in a dream.'
Mer. So I was, and a sweet dream it was ; but are you sure
I laughed ?
Chr. Yes ; you laughed heartily ; but pr'ythee, Mercy, tell
me thy dream.
Mer. \ was a dreaming that I sat all alone in a solitary place,
and was bemoaning of the hardness of my heart. Now 1 had
not sat there long, but methought many were gathered about
me to see me, and to hear what it was that I said. So they
hearkened, and I went on bemoaning the hardness of my heart.
At this, some of them laughed at me, some called me fool, and
son»^. began to thrust me about. With that, methought I looked
up, and saw one coming with wings towards me. So he cnmo
directly to me, and said, * Mercy, what aileth thee?' Now
when he had heard me make my complaint, he said, * Peace be
to thee :' He also wiped mine eyes with his handkerchief, and
clad me in silver and gold. He put a chain upon my neck, and
ear-rings in mine ears, and a beautiful crown upon my head.*
Then he took me by the hand, and said. 'Mercy, come after
me.' So he went up, and I follow^ed, till we came at a golden
gate. Then he knocked : and, when they within had opened,
the man went in, and I followed him up to a throne, upon
which one sat, and he said to me, ' Welcome, daughter.' The
place looked bright and twinkling, like the stars, or rather like
the sun, and 1 thought that I saw your husband there. So 1
awoke from my dream. But did 1 laugh ?
Chr. Laugh ! ay, and well you might, to see yourself so well.
For you must give me leave to tell you, that it was a goud
dream ; and that as you have begun to find the first part true,
so you shall find the second at last, (s) *" God speaks once,
* Ezek. xvi. 8—13.
{s) They who feel and lameift the hardness of their heartF, and earne'-t-
ly pray that they may he humbled, softened, and filled with the love
of Christ, may be assured that Iheir sorrow shall be turned into joy :
thou«^h they must exprct to be ridiculed hy such as know not their owm
hearts. The assurancv-j that iiie dream should be accoinphched, is ground
Christiana^ s remarks on it, 267
yea twice, yet man perceiveth it not ; in a dream, in a vision
of the night, when deep sleep falleth upon men, in slumbering
upon the bed."* We need not, when in bed, to lie awake to talk
with God ; he can visit us while we sleep, and cause us then to
hear his voice. Our heart oft-times wakes when we sleep ;
and God can speak to that, either by words, by proverbs, by
signs and similitudes, as well as if one was awake.
Mer, Well, I am glad of my dream, for I hope ere long to
see it fulfilled, to the making me laugh agam.
Chr, I think it is now high time to rise, and to know what
we must do.
Mer, Pray, if they advise us to stay a while, let us willingly
accept of the proffer. I am the willinger to stay a while here,
to grow better acquainted with these maids ; methinks Pru-
dence, Piety, and Charity have very comely and sober coun-
tenances.
Chr. We shall see what they will do. — So when they were
up and ready, they came down, and they asked one another of
their rest, and if it was comfortable or not.
' Very good,' said Mercy, ' it was one of the best night's
lodgings that ever I had in my life.'
Then said Prudence and Piety, if you will be persuaded to
stay here a while, you shall have what the house will afford.
' Ay, and that with a very good will,' said Charity. — 'So they
consented, and staid there about a month or above, and became
very profitable one to another. And, because Prudence
would see how Christiana had brought up her children, she
asked leave of her to catechise thorn : so she gave her free
consent. Then she began with the youngest, whose name was
James. And she said, * Come, James, canst thou tell me who
made thee ?'
Jam. God the Father, God the Son, and God the Holy
Ghost.
Pr, Good boy. And canst thou tell who saved thee ?
Jam, God the Father, God the Son, and God the Holy
Ghost.
Fr. Good boy still. But how doth God the Father save
thee?
* Job. xxxiii. 14 — 10.
cd oa the effects produced upou Mercy's heart ; and there is no danger
of delusion, -when so scriptural an encouragement is inferied even from a
dream.
268 Prudence catechises James ^ Joseph,
Jam, By his grace, {t)
Pr, How doth God the Son save thee ?
Jam, By his righteousness, and blood, and death, and hte.
Pr, And how doth God the Holy Ghost save thee ?
Jam, By his illumination, by his renovation, and by his pre- .
servation.
Then said Prudence to Christiana, ' You are to be com-
mended for thus bringing up your children. I suppose I need
not ask the rest these questions, since the youngest of them can
answer them so well. I will therefore now apply myself to
the next youngest.'
Then she said, ' Come, Joseph, (for his name was Joseph,)
will you let me catechise you V
Jos. With all my heart.
Pr. What is man ?
Jos, A reasonable creature, made so by God, as my brother
said.
Pr, What is supposed by this word saved ?
Jos. That man by sin has brought himself into a state of
captivity and misery.
Pr. What is supposed by his being saved by the Trinity ?
Jos. That sin is so great and mighty a tyrant, that none can
pull us out of its clutches, but God ; and that God is so good
and loving to man, as to pull him indeed out of this miserable
state.
Pr, What is God's design in saving poor man ?
Jos. The glorifying of his name, of his grace j and justice, &:c,
and the everlasting happiness of his creature.
Pr. Who are they that must be saved ?
Jos, Those that accept of his salvation, (m)
(i) Grace, in this connexion, si^ifies unmerited mercy or favour, from
which all the blessin^fs of salvation flow. The FsUher freely gave his Son
to be our Redeemer, and now freely communicates his Spirit, throas:h the
merits and mediation ot the Son, to be our San» ifier ; and thus, with .
Christ, he freely gives all thin2:s to those, who are enabled truly to believe
in him. The important, but much neglected duty of catechising children
is here very properly inculcated ; without attention to which, the minis-
ter's labours, both in public preaching and private instruction, will be un-
derstood in a very imperfect degree ; and any revival of religion that
takes place, will probably die with the generation to which it is vouch-
safed.
iu) The young pupil is not here taught to answer sysiemalically^ • AU
thy elect :' but practically^ ' Those that accept of his salvation.' This is
perfectly consistent with the other ; but it is suited to instruct and en-
Samuel and Matthew. 269
' Fr. Good boy, Joseph ; thy mother hath taught thee well,
and thou hast hearkened to what she has said unto thee.
Then said Prudence to Samuel, (who was the eldest son but
one,) ' Come, Samuel, are you willing that I should catechise
you also V
Sam, Yes, forsooth, if you please. ^
Pr, What is heaven ?
Sam, A place and state most blessed, because God dwelleth
there.
Pr, What is hell ?
Sam, A place and state most woful, because it is the dwell-
ing-place of sin, the devil, and death.
Pr, Why wouldest thou go to heaven ?
Sam. That I may see God, and serve him without weariness ;
that I m ly see Christ, and love him everlastingly ; that 1 may
have that fulness of the Holy Spirit in me, that I can by no
means here enjoy.
Pr, A very good boy, and one that has learned well. — Then
she addressed herself to the eldest, whose name was Matthew :
and she said to him, ' Come., Matthew, shall I also catechise
your
Alat. With a very good will.
Pr. I ask, then, if there was ever any thing that had a being
antecedent to, or before God ?
Mat. No ; for God is eternal ; nor is there any thing, ex-
cepting himself, that had a being until the beginning of the first
day : ** For in six days the Lord made heaven and earth, th:5
sea, and all that in them is."
Pr. What do you think of the Bible ?
Mat, It is the holy word of God.
Pr. Is there nothing written therein but what you under-
stand ?
Mat, Yes, a great deal.
Pr, What do you do when you meet with places therein that
you do not understand ?
courage the learner who would be perplexed, stumbled, or misled by the
other view of the same truth. Thus our Lord observed to his disciples,
*' 1 have many things to say unto you, but ye cannot bear them now ;"
and Paul fed the Corinthians, "with milk, and not with meat ; for they
were not able to bear it/* How beneficial would a portion of the same
heavenly wisdom prove to the modern friends of evangelical truth ! And
how absurd is it to teach the hardest lessons to the youngest scholars in the
school of Christ.
23*
270 Mercy has a Suitor,
Mat, I think God is wiser than L (w) I pray also that he
will please to let me know all therein, that he knows will be
for my good.
Pr, How believe you as touching the resurrection of the
dead ?
Mat. I believe they shall rise, the same that was buried ;
the same in nature though not in corruption. And I believe
this upon a double account : — First, because God has promised
it : — Secondly, because he is able to perform it.
Then said Prudence to the boys, ' You must still hearken to
your mother, for she can learn you more. You must also dili-
gently give ear to what good talk you shall hear from- others :
for your sakes do they speak good things. Observe also, and
that with carefulness, what the heavens and the earth do teach
you ; but especially be much in the meditation of that Book,
that was the cause of your father's becoming a Pilgrim. I, for
my part, my children, will teach you what I can while you are
here, and shall be glad if you will ask me questions that tend
to godly edifying.
Now by that these Pilgrims had been at this place a week,
Mercy had a visiter that pretended some good will unto her,
and his name was Mr. Brisk, a man of some breeding, and that
pretended to religion ; but a man that stuck very close to the
world. So he came once or twice, or more, to Mercy, and of-
fered love unto her. — Now Mercy was of a fair counten.mce,
and therefore the more alluring. Her mind also was, to be
always busying of herself in doing ; ibr when she had nothing
to do for herself, she would be making of hose and garments
for others, and would bestow them upon them that had need.
And Mr. Brisk, not knowing where or how she disposed of
what she made, seemed to be greatly taken, for that he found
(w) We ought not to think ourselves capable of comprehending all the
mysteries of revelation, or informed of all that can be known concerning
'hetn: yet vre should not make our incapacity a reason for neglecting
those parts of Scripture, which we do not at present -understand : but,
uniting humble diii^^ence with fervent prayers, we should wait for fur-
ther light and knowledge, in all things conducive to our good. There
may be many parts of Scripture, which would not be useful to us^ if wo
could understand them ; though they have been, are, or will be useful to
others ; and our inability to discover the meaning of these passages may
teach us linmility, and submission to the decisions of cur infallible In-
structor.
Merey^s Suitor forsakes her, 271
her never idle. * I will warrant her a good housewife,' quoth
he to himself, (a;)
Mercy then revealed the business to the maidens that were
of the house, and inquired of them concerning him, for they
did know him better than she. So they told her, that he was
a very busy young man, and one that pretended to religion ;
but was, as they feared, a stranger to the power of that which
is good.
' Nay, then,' said Mercy, ' I will look no more on him ; for I
purpose never to have a clog to my soul.'
Prudence then rephed, that there needed no great matter
of discouragement to be given to him ; for continuing; so, as
she had begun, to do for the poor, would quickly cool his
courage.
So the next time he comes he finds her at her old work, a
making of things for the poor. Then, said he, ' What, always
at it V ' Yes,' said she, ' either for myself or others.' ' And
what caust thou earn a day ?' quoth he. * I do these things,'
said she, " that 1 may be rich in good works, Inying a good
foundation against the time to come, that I may lay hold of eter-
nal life."* ' Why, pr'ythee, what dost thou do with them ?'
said he. * Clothe the naked,' s;ud she. With that his coun-
tenance fell. So he forebore to come at her again. And when
he was asked the reason why, he said, that * Mercy was a pret-
ty lass, but troubled with ill conditions.'
W^hen he had left her. Prudence said, 'Did I not tell thee,
that Mr. Brisk v/culd soon forsake thee ? yea, he will raise up
an ill report of thee : for, notwithstanding his pretence to re-
ligion, and his seeming love to Mercy, yet mercy and he are of
* 1 Tira.vi. 17— 19.
{x) Designing men will often assume an arprarance of religion, in or-
der to insinuate themselves into the affections of such pious young- women,
as are on some accounts agreeable to them ; and tiius many are drawn
into a most dangerous snare. This iucideni therefore is very properly in-
troduced, and is replete with instruction. At the Fame time an important
intimation is given, concerning the mannei- in which those, who are not
taken up with the care of a family, tuay prof]<ably employ their time,
adorn the gospel, and be useful in the church n^d the community. It is
much better to imitate Dorcas, who '•'•through faith obtained a good re-
port," in making garments f »r the poor ; than to waste time and money in
. frivolous amusements, or needless decorations ; or even in the more ele-
gant and fashionable accomplishments.
£72 Matthew is Sick.
tempers so different, that 1 believe they will never come toge-
ther/ (y)
Mer. 1 might have had husbands before now, though I spoke
not of it to any ; but they were such as difl not like my condi-
tions, though never did any of them find tault with my person.
So they and I could not agree.
Pr. Mercy in our days is little set by, any further than as to
its name: the practice, uhich is set forth by the conditions,
there are but few that can abide.
Well, said Mercy, if nobody will have me I will die a maid,
or my conditions shall be to me ;is a husband ; for I cannot
change my nature : anfi to have one that lies cross to me in
this, that 1 purpose never to idmit of as long as I live. I had
a sister, named Bountiful, married to one of these churls : but
he and she could never agree ; but, because my sister was re-
solved to do as she had begun, that is, to show kindness to the
poor, therefore her husband first cried her down at the cross,
and then turned her out of his <loors.
Pr. And yet he was a prof -^s*:^ or, I warrant you.
Mer. Yes, such a one as he ^vas, rnd of such as the world is
now full : but I am for none v thein all.
Now Matthew, the eklest son of Christiana, fell sick, and his
sickness was sore upon hi r., for ho was much pained in his
(y) Young people ought not v, holly to follow their own judgments in
this most important concern, on which the comfort and usefulness of their
whole future lives in a great meas re depend : and yet it is equally dan-
gerous to advise with improper couusellors. The names of the maidens of
the hous.3, show wiiat kind of pn^rsons should be consulted : and, when
such friends are of opinio. t tliat thv rf^ is danger of a clog^ instead of a helper^
in the way to heaven, alt who lo^p iheir own souls, will speedily deter-
mine to reject the proposal, how vor agreeable in all other respects. The
apostolical rule, " Only m th'^ Lord," is absolute : The most upright
and cautious may indeed be deceived ; but they, v/ho neglect to ask, or
refusp Vi take counsel, w\ll be ^are to smart for their folly, if they be in-
deed the children of Gi. An unbelieving partner must be a continual
source of anxiety and uneasiii - -s ; a thorn in the side ; and an hindrance to
iHl fn r^i]y 'i'lioiion. r.nd tbn. u'us education of children, who generally ad-
here to the (uaxims and rrdctices of the ungodly party. Nothing tends
more than such marriages, to induce a declining state of religion ; or in-
deed more plainly shows t^ at it is already in a very unprosperous state.
But, wlipn Christians plauily avow their principles, purposes, and rules of
conduct, they may commonly detect and shake off such selfish pretenders :
while the attempts made to injure their characters, will do them no ma-
terial detriment, and will render them the more thankful for having es-
caped the snare.
Gripes of Conscience. 273
bowels, so that he was with it, at times, pulled, as it were, both
ends together. There dwelt also not far from thence, one Mr.
Skill, an ancient and well-approved physician. So Christiana
desired it, and they sent for him, and he came : when he was
entered the room, and had a little observed the boy, he con-
cluded that he was sick of the gripes. Then he said to his
mother, ' What diet hath Matthew of late fed upon V ' Diet,'
said Christiana, * Nothing but what is wholesome.' The phy-
sician answered, ' This boy has been tampering with something
that lies in his maw undigested, and that will not away without
means. And I tell you he must be purged, or else he will die.'
Then said Samuel, * Mother, what was that which my bro-
ther did gather and eat, so soon as we were come from the gate
that is at the head of this way ? You know that there was an
orchard on the left hand, on the other side of the wall, and
some of the trees hung over the wall, and my brother did pluck
and did eat.'
' True, my child,' said Christiana, ' he did take thereof, arid
did eat ; naughty boy as he was ; I chid him, and yet he would
eat thereof.'
Skill. 1 knew he had eaten something that was not whole-
some food ; and that food, to wit, that fruit, is even the most
hurtful of all. It is the fruit of Beelzebub's orchard. I do
marvel that none did warn you of it ; many have died thereof.
Then Christiana beg in to cry ; and she said, ' O naughty
boy ! and O careless mother ! what shall 1 do for my son ?' (^)
Skill, Come, do not be too dejected ;' the boy may do well
again, but he must purge and vomit.
Chr. Pray, sir, try the utmost of your skill with him, what-
ever it costs.
(s) Sin, heedlessly or wilfully committed, aftor the Lord has spoken
peace to our souls, often produces great distress lung afterward ; and some-
times darkness and discouragement oppress the mind, when the special
cause of them is not immediately recolkcted : tor we have grieved the
Holy Spirit and he withholds his consolations. In this case we shoidd
adopt the prayer of Job, '" Do not condenm me ; show me wherelore thou
contendest with me :" and this inquiry will often be answered by the dis-
course of skilful mini«ters, and the faithful admonitions of our fellow
Christians. When hopeful professors are greatly cast dow n, it is not wise
to administer cordials to them immediately : but to propose questions as
may lead to a discovery (»{ the concealed cause of their distress. Thus it
will often be found, ^hat ihey have been tamperin?; with forbidden fruit ;
which discovery may tend to their humiliation, and produce a similar ef-
fect on those who have n^lected their duty, by suffering others to sin
without warning or reproof. ]y[u^
S74 The Pkygicianh Prescription.
SMIL Nay, I hope I shall be reasonable. — So he made him
a purge, but it was too weak ; it was said, it was made of the
blood of a goat, the ashes of a heifer, and with some of the juice
of hyssop, hc."^ When Mr. Skill had seen that that purge was
too weak, he made him one to the purpose ; it was made Ex
Carne et Sanguine Christi :] (you know physicians give strange
medicines to their p;itients :) and it was made up into pills, with
a promise or two, and a proportionable quantity of salt, j Now
he was to take them three at a time, fasting, in a half a quarter
of a pint of the tears of repent jnce.§ When this potion was
prepared, and brought to the boy, he was loth to take it, though
torn with the gripes, as if he should be pulled in pieces.
* Come, come,' said the physician, ' you must take it.' ' It goes
against my stomach,' said the boy. ' 1 must have you take it,'
said his mother. ' 1 shall vomit it up again,' said the boy.
* Pray, sir,' said Christiana to Mr. Skill, ' how does it taste V
* It has no ill taste,' said the doctor ; and with that she touched
one of the pills with the tip of her tongue. * Oh, Matthew,'
said she, * this potion is sweeter than honey. If thou lovest
thy mother, if thou lovest thy brothers, if thou lovest Mercy, if
thou lovest thy life, take it.' So with much ado. after a short
prayer for the blessing of God upon it, he took it, and it wrought
kindly with him. It caused him to purge, to sleep, and to rest
quietly ; it put him into a fine heat and breathing sweat,^ and
rid him of his gripes, (a)
So in a little time he got up, and walked about with a staff,
* Heb. ix. 13, 19. x. 1—4. t John vi. 54—57. lleb. ix. 14.
X Vlark ix. 49. j Zech. xii 10.
► (a) To support the allegory, the author gives the Ph5'siciari's prescrip-
tion in Latin ; but he adds in the margin, with admirable modesty, Thf.
Latin I borrow. — "'• Without the sheddiu;^ of blood, there is no reniissiori of
sins,'* or trie peace of conscience ; '•'•the blood of bulls and ii^oats cannot
take away sin :" nothing, therefore, can bring health and cure, in this cas.o,
but the ^ body ami blood of Christ^'' as broken and shed for our sins. These
blessings are made ours by faith exercised on the p>romises of God ; the
sanctifying grace of the Holy Spirit, which seasons onr words and actions
as with salt, always connects with living faith ; and godly sorrow, working
genuine repentance, is renewed every time we look to Ihe Saviour, whom
we have pierced by our recent offence", and of whom we a^ain seek for-
giveness. The natural pride, stoutness, and unbelief of our hearts, render
us very reluctant to this humihating method of recovering peace and spi-
ritual strength; and this often })roion^!- our distress : yet nothin.g- yields
more unalloyed comfort, than thus abasm;:; ourselves before God, and re-
lying on bis mercy through the atonement and mediation of his beloved
Bon.
Matthew^ s Questions to Prudence ^ 275
md would go from room to room, and talk with Prudence, Pie-
y, and and Charity, of his distemper, and how he was healed.
So when the boy was healed, Christiana asked Mr. Skill,
[lying, * Sir, wh;it will content you for your pains and care to
ne, and of my child V And he s^id, * You must pay the Master
f the College of Physicians, according to rules made in that
ase and provided,'*
But, sir, said she, what is this pill good for else ?
Skill. It is an universal pill ; it is good against all diseases
hat Pilgrims are incident to ; and, when it is well prepared,
nil keep good time out of mind.
Chr. Pray, sir, make me up twelve boxes of them ; for, if I
an get these, I will never take other physic.
Skill, These pills are good to prevent diseases, as well as to
\ire when one is sick. Yea, I d ire say it, and stand to it, that
fa man will but use this physic as he should, it will mude him
ive for ever.t But, good Christiana, thou must give these
►ills no other way, but as I have prescribed : for if you do,
hey will do no good. (^) — So he gave unto Christiana physic
or herself, and her boys, and for Mercy ; and bid Matthew
nke heed how he ate anymore green plumbs ; and kissed him,
nd went his way
It was told you before, that Prudence bid the boys, that if at
ny time they would, they should ask her some questions that
Qischt be profitable, and she would say something to them.
Then Matthew, who had been sick, asked her, Why, for the
nost part, physic should be bitter to our palates ?
Pr. To show how unwelcome the word of God, and the ef-
ccts thereof, are to a carnal heart.
Mat, Why does physic, if it does good, purge, and cause to
omit?
Pr. To show, that the word, when it works effectually,
;leanseth the heart and mind. For, look, what the one doeth
0 the body, the other doeth to the soul.
Mat, What should we learn by seeing the flame of our fire
*Heb. xiii. 11— 15. t John vi. 58.
(6) This hint should be carefully noted. Numbers abuse the doctrine
)f free salvation, by the merit and redemption of Chri&t, and presume on
;or^!\ enesc, when they are destitute of genuine repentancs, and ^ive no
jvidence of sanctiiication. Eut this most efficacious medicine in that case
«riU ^ do no g:ootl ;* or rather the perverse abuse of it will increase tlieir
juiit, and tend to harden their hearts in sin.
276 ^Ind her Answers.
go upwards ? and by seeing the beams and sweet influences of
the sun strike downwards ?
Pr. By the going up of the fire, we are taught to ascend to
heaven, by fervent and hot desires. And by the sun's send-
ing his heat, beams, and sweet influences downwards, w^e are
taught that the Saviour of the world, though high, rciiches
down with his grace and love to us below.
Mat. Where have the clouds their water ?
Pr. Out of the sea.
Mat. What may we learn from that ?
Pr. That ministers should fetch their doctrine from God.
Mat. Why do they empty themselves upon the earth ?
Pr. To show that ministers should give out what they know
of God to the world.
Alat. Why is the rainbow caused by the sun ?
Pr. To show, that the covenant of God's grace is confirmed
to us in Christ.
Mat. Why do the springs come from the sea to us through
the earth ?
Pr. To show, that the grace of God comes to us through the
Dody of Christ.
jVlat. Why do some of the springs rise out of the top of high
hills ?
Pr. To shew, that ihe. Spirit of grace shall spring up
some that are great and mighty, as well as in many that an
poor and low.
Mat. Why doth the fire ihsten upon the candle v/ick ?
Pr. To show, that, unless gr.ice doth kindle upon the hearfl
there will be no true light of life in us.
Mat. Why is the wick, and tallow, and all, spent, to main*
tain the light of the candle ?
Pr. To show, that body and soul, and all, should be at the
service of, and spend themselves to maintain in good condition,
that grace of God that is in us.
Mat. Why doth the pelican pierce her own breast with her
bill ?
Pr. To nourish her young ones w^th her blood, and thereby
to show that Christ the blessed so loveth his young, his people,
as to save them from death by his blood.
Mat. What may one learn by hearing of the cock croAv ?
Pr. Learn to remembcir Peter's sin and Peter's repentance.
The cock's crowing shows also, that day is coming on ; let
I
Eve's Apple. 27?
then the crowing of the cock put thee in mind of that last and
terrible day of judgment.
Now about this time their month was out : wherefore they
signified to those of the house, that it was convenient for them
to up and be going. Then said Joseph to his mother. * It is
convenient that you forget not to send to the house of Mr. In-
terpreter, to pray him to grant that Mr. Great-heart should be
sent unto us, that he may be our conductor, the rest of our
way.' * Good boy,' said she, * I had almost forgot.' So she
drew up a petition, and prayed Mr. Watchful, the porter, to
send it by some fit man, to her good friend Mr. Interpreter ;
who, when it was come, and he had seen the contents of the
petition, said to the messenger, ' Go tell them that I will send
him.' (c)
When the family, where Christiana was, saw that they had
a purpose to go forward, they called the whole house together,
to give thanks to their King, for sending of them such profita-
ble guests as these. Which done, they said unto Christiana,
* And shall we not show thee something according as our cus-
tom is to do to Pilgrims, on which thou mayest meditate when
thou art on the way ?' So they took Christiana, her children,
and Mercy, into the closet, and showed them one of the apples
that Eve ate of, and that she also did give to her husband, and
that for the eating of which they were both turned out of Para-
dise ; and asked her, * What she thought that was ?' Then
Christiana said, ' It is food or poison, I know not which.' So
they opened the matter to her, and she held up her hands and
wondered.* (c?) . ^
* Gen. iii. I — 6 Rom. vii. 24.
(c) This may be applied to the case of persons who are unavoidably
removed from those places, where they first made an open profession of
the faith. The vigilant pastor, who can no longer watch for their souls,
will earnestly recommend them to the care of some other minister, and
join with them in prayer, that the same faithful services, or better, may
be rendered them by other servants of their common Lord.
(d) The nature of the first transgression ; the ambiguous insinuations
by which the tempter seduced Eve, and by her, Adam ; the motives from
which they ate the forbidden fruit ; and the dreadful disappointment that
followed; with all the agjjravations and consequences of that most proli-
fic offence, which contained in it, as in miniature and embryo, all future
sins, are very instructive and affecting to the pious mind. For the enemy
still proceeds against lis, according to the same general plan ; suggestmg;
hard thoughts of God, doubts about the restrictions and threatening of
his word, proud desires of independence or useless knowledge, hankerings
24
57$ Abraham qff^ering up Isaac,
Then they had her to a place and showed her Jacob's lad-
der. Now at that time there was some Angels ascending upon
it. So Christiana looked and looked to see the Angels go up ;
so did the rest of the company.* Then they vvere going into
anothei place, to show them something else : but James said to
his mother, ' Pray bid them stay a little longer, for this is a
curious sight.' So they turned again, and stood feeding their
eyes on this so pleasant a prospect, (c) — After this they had
them into a place where there did hang up a golden Anchor, so
they bid Christiana take it down ; for, s dd they, you shall have
it with you, for it is of absolute necessity that you should, that
you may lay hold of that within the veil, and stand steadfast in
case you should meet with turbulent weather : so they wei*e
glad thereof.t (/) Then they took them, and had them to the
mount upon which Abrah>un our father had offered up Isaac
his son, and showed them the altar, the wood, the lire, and the
knife ; for they remain to be seen to this very day. When
they had seen it, they held up their hands, aod blessed them-
selves, and said, ' O what a man for love to his Master, and for
denial to himself, was Abraham !' After they had showed them
all these things, Prudence took them into a dining-room, where
stood a pair of excellent virginals ; so she played upon them,
and turned what she had showed them into this excellent song,
saying,
' Eve's apple we have showed you ;
Of that be you aware ;
You have seen Jacob's ladder too,
Upon which Angels are ;
* Gen. xxviii. 12. t Joel iii. 16. Heb. vi. 19.
after forbidden indulgence, and hopes of enjoying the pleasures of sin,
without feeling the pun shment denounced against transgressors.
(e) Christ, in his person and omces, is tlie medium of communication
between heaven and -^arth, between God and man : by him sinners come
to God with acceptance, and God dwells with them and is glorified ;
through him they preicut their worship and services, and receive supi.lies
of ail heavenly blessings ; and for his sake angels delight in " ministering
to the heirs of salvation," as instruments of his providential care over them
and all their concerns. This was represented or typified by Jacob's iaddtr.
(/) The hope of glory, or of the fulfillriient of all God's promises to
our souls, is the golden Anchor^ by which we must be kept stcdfast in the
faith, and enco iraged to abide in our proper station, amidst the storms of
temptation, afiliction, and persecution. This it will cert aialy effect ; pro-
vided it be genaiae and living, grounded on the word of God, springing
from faith, in bis ^on, warranted b}' the experience of his grace, and ac-
corr}'panied by prevading deihesof a holy felicity, in the presence, favour,
and service of the Lord.
The Pilgrims depart. f 7^
An Anchor you received have ;
But let not this sufl&ce,
Until with Abra'am you have gave
Your best of sacrifice.
Now about this time one knocked at the door : so the porter
opened, and, behold, Mr. Great-heart was there ! But when
he was come m, what joy was there ! for it Came now fresh
again into their minds, how but a while ago he had slain old
Grim Bloody-man the giant, and had delivered them from the
lions.
Ihen said Mr. Great-heart to Christiana, and to MercT,
* My Lord hath sent each of you a bottle of wine, and also
some parched corn, together with a couple of pomegranates ;
he also hath sent the boys some figs and raisins ; to refresh you
in your way.
Then they addressed themselves to their journey ; and Pru-
dence and Piety went along with them. When they came at
the gate, Christiima asked the porter, if any of Inte went by.
He said, * No, only one, some time since, who also told me,
that of late there had been a great robbery committed on the
King's highway, as you ^o : but, said he, the thieves are taken,
ami will shortly be tried for their lives.' Then Christiana and
Mercy were afraid ; but Matthew said. Mother, fear nothing,
as long as Mr. Great-henrt is to go with us, and to be our con-
ductor. ,
Then said Christiana to the porter, ' Sir, I am much obliged
to you for all the kindnesses that you have showed to me since
I came hither ; and :;|co that you have been so loving and kind
to my children ; l^knovv not how to gratify your kindness ;
wherefore, pray, as a token of my respect to you, accept of
this small mite.' So she put a gold angel in his hand ; and he
made her a low obeisance, and said, " Let thy garments be al-
ways white, and let thy head want no ointment." ' Let Mercy
live and not die, and let not her works be Aiw." And to the
boys he said, * Do you flee youthful lusts, and follow after god-
liness with them that are grave and wise ; so shall you put
gladness into your mother's heart, and obtain prase of all that
are sober-minded.' — So they thanked the porter, and departed.
Now I saw in my dream, th it they went forward, until they
were come to the brow of the hill, where Piety, bethinking
herself, cried out, ' Alas I I have forgot what 1 intended to be-
stow upon Christiana and her companions ; I will go back and
tSO The Valley of Humiliation*
fetch it.' So she ran and fetched it. When she was gone^
Christiana thought she heard in a grove, a httle way off on the
right hand, a most curious melodious note, with words much
like these :
' Through all my life thy favour is
So frankly show'd to me.
That in thy house forevermore
My dwelling place shall be.'
And listening still she thought she heard another answer it,
saying,
' For why ? The Lord our God is good,
His mercy is forever sure :
His truth at all times firmly stood,
And shall from age to age endure.'
So Christiana asked Prudence what it was that made those
curious notes. They are, said she, our country-birds : they
sing these notes but seldom, except it be at the spring, when
the flowers appear, and the sun shines warm, and then you
may hear them all the day long. I often, said she, go to hear
them ; we also oft-times keep them t^me in our house. They
are very fine company for us when we are melancholy ; also
they make the woods and groves, and solitary places, places
desirous to be in.*
By this time Piety was come again ; so she said to Chris-
tiana, Look here, I have brought thee a scheme of all those
things that thou hast seen at our house, upon which thou mayest
look when thou findest thyself forgetful, and call those things
again to remembrance, for thy edification and comfort.
Now they began to go down the hill to the Valley of Humi-
liation. It was a steep hill, and the way was slippery ; but
they were very careful ; so they got down pretty well"! When
they were down in the valley. Piety said to Christiana, this is
the place where your husband met with the foul fiend Apollyon,
and where they had the great fight that they had ; I know you
cannot but have heard thereof. But be of good courage, as
long as you have Mr. Great-heart here to be your guide and
conductor, we hope you will fare the better. — So when these
two had committed the Pilgrims unto the conduct of their guide,
he went forward, and they went after.
* Sol. Song ii. 11,12.
' Slips are the occasions of conflicts. 28 1
Then said Mr. Great-heart, We need not be so afraid of this
valley, for here is nothing to hurt us, unless we procure it our-
selves. It is true. Christian did here meet with Apollyon,
with whom he had also a sore combat ; but that fray was the
fruit of those slips that he got in his going down the hill : for
they that get slips there, must look for combats ^here.* And
hence it is that this valley h<is got so hard a name. For the
common people, when they hear that some frightful thmg has
befallen such a one, in such a place, art; of opinion that that
place is haunted with some foul fiend, or evil spirit ; when,
alas ! it is for the fruit of their doing, that such things do befall
them there.
This valley of Humiliation is of itself as fruitful a place as
any the crow flies over ; and f am persuaded, if we could hit
upon it, we might find som<^where hereabout somvUhing that
might give us an account, why Christian was so hardly beset in
this place. . .
Then James said to his mother, * Lo, yonder stands a pillar,
and it looks tis if something was written thereon ; let us go and
see what it is.' So they went, and found there written, ' Let
Christian's slips, before he came hither, and the burden that
he met with in this place, be a warning to thosa th.it come af-
ter.' * Lo,' said the guide, * did 1 not tell you that there was
something hereabouts that would give iniimation of the reason
why Christian was so hard beset in this place ?' Then, turning
to Christiana, he said, * No disparagement to Christian, more
than to many others whose hap and lot it was. For it is easier
going up than down this hill, and that can be said but of few
hills in all these parts of the world. But we will leave the
good man, he is at rest, he also had a brave victory over his
enemy : let Hipi grant that dwelleth above,'^that we fare no
worse^ when we come to be tried, than he !' (g)
t Part i. p. 78—81.
Xg) As the author here evidently alluded to some particulars in his own
experience, a more explicit account of these slips woviid have been very
interesting and instructive ; but as it is, we can only conjecture hi." mean-
in*. He probably referred to some erroneous conclusions which he had
formed, concerning the measure of Vae Lord's dea]ing:s with his people,
and the nature of their situation in this world. Having^ obtained peace
and comfort, and enjoyed sweet satisfaction in communion with his bre-
thren, he expected the continuance of this happy frame, and considered it
as the evidence of his acceptance : so that afflictions and humiliating dis-
coveries of the evils of his heart, by interrupting his comforts, induced
Kn 24*
tag The Shepherd's Boy.
But we will come again to this valley of Humiliation. It i«
the best and most fruitful piece of ground in all these parts. It
is a fat ground ; and, as you see, consisteth much in meadows ;
and if a man was to come here in the summer-time, as we do
now, if he knew not any thing before thereof, and if he also
delighted himself in the sight of his eyes, he might see that
which would be delightful to him. Behold, how green this
valley is ; also how beautiful with lilies.* I have also known
many labouring men that have got good estates in this valley
of HumiUation ; (for " God resisteth the proud, but giveth
more grace to the humble ;") for indeed it is a very fruitful
soil, and doth bring forth by handfuls. Some also have wished,
that the next way to their Father's house w ere here, that they
might be troubled no more with either hills or mountains to go
over : but the way is the vvay, and there is an end. (h)
Now as they were going along, and talking, they espied a
boy feeding his father's sheep. The boy was in very mean ■
clothes, but of a fresh and well-favoured countenance ; and as
he sat by himself he sung. ' Hark,' said Mr. Great-heart, ' to
what the shepherd's boy saith :' so they hearkened, and he
said —
' He that is down, needs fear no fall :
He that is low, no pride :
He that is humble ever shall
Have God to be his Guide.
* Sol. Song ii. 1. James iv. 6. 1 Pet. v. 5.
him to conclude that his past experience was a delusion, and that God
was become his enemy ; and this unscriptural way of judging concerning
his state seems to have made way for the dark temptations that followed.
Were it not for such mistakes, humiliating dispensations and experiences
would not have any necessary connexion with terror ; and they would
give less occasion to temptations, than prosperity and comfort do : while
a lowly condition is exemrjted from the numberless snares, incumbrances,
and anxieties of a more exalted station ; and humility is the parent of pa-
tience, meekness, contentment, thankfulness, and every holy disposition
that can enrich and adorn the soul. A far greater proportion of believers
are foutid in inferior circumstances, than among the wealthy ; and they
who are kept low commonly thrive the best, and are mo^t simple and dili-
gent. Without poverty of spirit, we cannot possess *' the unsearchable
riches of Christ •." and more promises are made to the humble, than to any
other character whatsoever.
(h) The consolations of humble believers, even in their lowest abase-
ment, when favoured by the exhiUrating and fertilizing beams of the Son
of Righteousness, are represented under this emblem. The lilies are the
barmless and holy disciples of Christ, who adorn a poor and obsQtirc con-
Advantages of a lowly condiiian. - 2&S
/ ' I am content with what 1 have,
Little be it or much :
And, Lord, contentmfent still I crave,
Because thou savest such.
Fulness to such a burden is
That go or pilgrimage :
Here little, and hereafter bliss,
Is best from age to age.'*
Then said the guide, ' Do you hear him ? I will dare to saj
this boy lives a merrier life, and wears more of the herb called
htarVs-ease in his bosom, than he that is clad in silk and velvet.
But we will proceed in our discourse.' {%)
In this valley our Lord formerly had his country-house, he
loved much to be here : he loved also to walk in these mea-
dows, and he found the air was pleasant. Besides, here a man
shall be free from the noise, and from the hurry ings of this life :
all states are full of noise and confusion, only the valley of Hu-
miliation is that empty and solit.iry place. Here a man shall
not be let and hindered in his contemplation, as in other places
he is apt to be. This is a valley that nobody walks in, but
those that love a Pilgrim's life. And though Christian had the
hard hap to meet with Apollyon, and to enter with him in a
brisk encounter ; yet 1 must tell you, that in former times men
have met with Angels here, have found pearls here, and have
in this place found the words of hfe.t
Did I say our Lord had here in former days his country-
house, and that he loved here to walk ? I will add, in this
place, and to the people that live md trace these grounds, he
has left a yearly revenue, to be f lithfully paid them at certain
seasons for their maintenmce by the way, and for their further
encouragement to go on their pilgrimage. (A:)
^ Heb. xiii. 5. t Hos. xii. 4, 5.
dition of life ; and who are ati ornament to religion, being " clothed with
humility." Many grow rich in faith ano good works in retirement and
obscurity; and become averse, even at the call of duty, to emerge from
it, lest any advancement shoi^ld lead them mto temptation, stir up their
pride, or expose them to en¥v and contention.
(i) Perhaps the ShephmTs boy may reter to the obscure but quiet sta-
tion of some pastors over small congregations, who live almost unknown
to their brethren, but are in a measure useful, and very comfortable.
(k) Our Lord chose retirement, poverty, and an obscure station, as the
rest and delight of his own mind ; as remote from bustle and contention,
and favourable to contemplation and devotion : so that his appearance in
» public character, and in crowded scenes, for the good of mankind .imd
I
284 Mercy is well in the valley.
Now, as they went on, Samuel said to Mr. Great-heart, * Sir,
I perceive that in this valley tny father and Apollyon had their
battle ; but whereabout was the fight ? for I perceive this val-
ley is large.'
Gr.'H, Your father had the battle with Apollyon, at a place
yonder before us, in a narrow passage just beyond Forgetful
Green. And indeed that place is the most dangerous place in
all these parts : for if at any time Pilgrims meet with any brunt,
it is when they forget what favours they have received, and
how unworthy they are of them. (/) This is the place also,
where others have been hard put to it. — -But more of the nlice
when we are come to it ; for 1 persu;^de myself, tiic?t to Itiis
dny there remains either some sign of the battle, or some mon-
ument to testify that such a battle was there fought.
Then said Mercy, I think I am as well in this valley as I
have been any where else in all our journey : the place, me-
thinks, suits with my spirit. I love to be in such places, where
there is no rattling with coaches, nor rumbling with wheels :
methinks, here one may, w^ithout much molestation, be tiiink-
ing what he is, whence he came, what he has tlone, and to what
the King has called him : here one may think, and break at
heart, and melt in one's spirit, until one's eyes become " as the
fishpools of Heshbon." They that go rightly through this
*' Valley of Baca, make it a w^ell ; the rain, that God sends
down from heaven upon them that are here, also filleth the
pools." This valley is that from whence also the King will give
the glory of the Father, was a part of his self-demnl.ia which " he pleased
not himself." — Indeed there is a peculiar congeniality between a lowly
mind, and a lowly condition : and as much violence is done to the inclina-
tions of the humble, when they are rendered conspicuous and advanced
to high stations, as to those of the haughty, when h^are thrust down
into obscurity and neglect. Other men seem to be banisfted into this \^ al-
ley ; but the poor in spirit love to walk in it : and, tljough some believers
here struggle with distressing temptations, others in passing through it
enjoy much communion with God.
(J.) When consolations and privileges betray us into forgHfulness of our
entire unwortbiness of such special f;. ' r.iliatiug dispensations
commonly ensue; and these sometime- v excite murmurs and
forgetfulness of past mercies. Thus Satii . .^ -— •■- ojportnnity of assault-
ing the soul with dreadful temptations : and, while at one moment hard
thoughts of God, or doubts concerning the truth «>f his word, are suggest-
ed to our minds ; at the next we may be affrighted by our own dreadful
rebellion and ingratitude, prompted to condemn ourselves as hypocrites,
and almost drireu to despair.
Memorials of Christian'' s conflict, 266
to them their vineyards ;^ and they that go through it shall sing
as Christian did, for all he met with Apollyon.
' It is true,' said their guide,' ' I have gone through this val-
ley many a time, and never was better than when here. I
have also been a conductor to several Pilgrims, and they have
confessed the same. *' To this man will 1 look," saith the
King, *' even to him that is poor, and of a contrite spirit, and
that trembleth at my word."
Now they were come to the place where the aforementioned
battle was fought. Then said the guide to Christiana, her
children, and Mercy, ' This is the place : on this ground Chris-
tian stood, and up there came Apollyon against him : and, look,
did not I tell you, here is some of your husband's blood upon
these stones to this day. Behold, also, how here and there are
yet to be seen upon the place some of the shivers of Apollyon's
broken darts. See also how they did beat the ground with
their feet as they fought, to make good their places against
each other ; how also, with their by-blowa, they did split the
very stones in pieces : verily Christian did here play the man,
and showed himself, as stout as Hercules could, had he been
there, even he himself. When Apollyon was beat, he made
his retreat to the next valley, that is called the Valley of the
Shadow of Death, unto which we shall come anon. Lo, yon-
der also stands a monument, on which is engraven this battle,
and Christian's victory, to his fame throughout all ages.' (in)
So because it stood just on the way-side before them, they
stepped to it, and read the writing, which word for word was
this —
* Hard by here was a battle fought,
Most 8tran«fe, and yet most true :
0hristian and Apollyon sought
Each other to subdue.
* Sol. Song vii. 4. Psa. Ixxxiv. 5 — 7. Hos. ii. 15. f
(»i) We ought carefully to study the records left us of the temptations,
conflicts, faith, patience, and victori*^ s of other believer? : we should mark
well, what wounds they received, and by what misconduct they were oc-
casioned, that we may watch and pray lest we iall in like manner. We
ou2;ht carefully to observe, how ihey successfully repelled the various as-
Baults of the tempter, that we may learn to resist him, stedfast in the faith ;
and in general, their triumphs should animate us, to " put on," and keep
on, ^nhe whole armour of God, that we may be enabled to withstand ia
the evil day.*' — On the other hand, such as have been rendered victorious
should readily speak of their experiences amoro^ those thai fear God, that
they may be cautioned, instructed, and encourag^ed by their example.
286 James is sick.
The man so bravely play'd the man,
He made the fiend to fly :
Of which a monument I stand,
The same to testify.'
When they had passed by this place, they come upon the
borders of the Shadow of Death, and this valley was longer
than the other ; a place also most strangely haunted with evil
things, as many are able to testify : but these women and 'hil-
dren went the better through it, because they had day-light,
an(j because Mr. Great-heart w is their conductor.
When they were entered upon this valley, they thought that
they heard a groaning, as of dead men ; a very great groaning.
They thought also that they did hear words of lamentation,
spoken as of some in extreme torment. These things made
the boys to quake, the women also looked pale and wan ; but
their guide bid them be of good confort.
So they went on a little tarther, and they though that th(^.y
felt the ground begin to shake under them, as if some hollotv
place was there ; they he ml also a kind of hissing, as of se^
pents, but nothing as yet appeared. Then said the boj^s, ' Are
we not yet at the end of this doleful phice V But the guide also
bid them be of good courage, and look well to their feet, lest
haply, said he, you be tiken in some snare, (ti)
Now James began to be sick, but I think the cause thereof
W'^s fear ; so his mother gave him some of that glass of spirits
that she had given her at the Interpreter's house, and three of
the pills that Mr. Skill had prepared, and the boy began to re-
vive. Thus they wem on, till they came to about the middle
of the valley ; and then Christiana said, ' Methinks I see some-
(n) The meaning of this valley has been stated in^he notes on the
first part of this work ; and the interpretation there ^ven is here con-
firraed. As it relates chiefly to the influence, vvhich *^ the Prince of the
power of the air'' possesses over the imagination ; it must vary exceeding-
ly, according to the constitution, animal spirits, health, education, and
strength of mind orjudgment, ofdifi'er^nt ijersons. They, who are happily
incapable of understanding either the allegory or the explanation, sho lid
bew/^re of despismg or condemning such as hare been thi's hara;s&d.
Antl, on the other hand, these should take care not to consider such
tem})tations as proofs of spiritual advancement : or to yield to them, as !
they were essential to maturity of grace and expeeience ; by uhich mean
Satan often attains dreadful advanfasres. It is most advisable tor tempted
persons to consult some able, judicious minister, or compassionate and esta-
blished Christian, who?e counsel a^d prayers may be singularly useful ia
this case ; observing the assistance which Great-heart gave to the Pil-
gfrims, in passing through the valley.
The Pilgrims alarmed by a Fiend. 287
tiling yonder upon the road before us ; a thing, of a shape
such as I have not seen.' Then said Joseph, ' Mpther, what
is it ?' * An ugly thing, child ; an ugly thing,' said sSe. ' But
mother, what is it like ?' said he. ' 'Tis like, I cannot tell
what,' said she. ' And now it is but a little way off.' Then
said she, * It is nigh.'
• Weil,' said Mr. Graat-heart, * Let thenri that are most afraid,
keep close to me.' So the fiend came on, and the conductor
met it ; but when it was just come to him, it vanished to all
their sights : then remembered they what had been said some
time ago ; '* Resist the devil, and he will flee from you."
I hey went therefore on, as being a little refreshed ; but
they had not gone far, before Mercy, looking behind her, saw,
as she thought, sometliing almost like a lion, and it came a great
padding pace after her ; and it had a hollow voice of roaring ;
and at every roar that it gave, it made the valley echo, and all
their hearts to ache, save the heart of him that was their guide.
So it came up ; and Mr. Great-heart went behind, and put the
Pilgrims all before him. The lion also came on apace, and
Mr. Great-heart addressed himself to give him battle. But
when he saw that it was determined that resistance should be
made, he also drew back, and came no further.*
Then they went on again, and their conductor did go before
them, till they came to a place were was cast up a pit the whi^le
breadth of the way ; and, before they could be prepared to go
over that, a great mist and a darkness fell upon them, so that
they could not see. Then said the Pilgrims, ^ Alas ! now what
shall we do ?' But their guide made answer, ' Fear not, stand
still, and see what an end will be put to this also.' So they
staid there, because their path was marred. They then also
thought they did hear more apparently the noise and rushing
of the enemies ; the fire also, and smoke of the pit was much
easier to be discerned. Then said Christiana to Mercy, ' Now
I see what my poor husband went through ; I have heard much
of this place, but I never was here before now. Poor man 1
he went here ail alone, in the night ; he had night almost quite
through the way : also these fiends w^ere busy about him, as if
they would have torn him in pieces. Many have spoke of it,
but none tell what the valley of the Shadow of Death should
mean until they come'into it themselves. '' The heart knows its
own. bitterness ; a stranger i:iternieddleth not with its joy."
To be here is a fearful thing.'
'-^ 1 Pet. V. 8.
28S They pray and are delivered.
Gr,'H, This is like doing business in great waters, or like go-
ing down into the deep ; this is like being in the heart of the
sea, and like going down to the bottom of the mountains ; now
it seems as if'' the earth with its bars, were about us for ever."
*' But let them that walk in darkness, and have no hght, trust
in the name of the Lord, and stay upon their God." For my
part, as I have told you already, 1 have gone often through this
valley ; and have been much harder put to it than 1 now am ;
and yet you see I am alive. I would not boast, for that I am
not mine own Saviour. But 1 trust we shall have a good de-
liverance. Come, pray for light to him that can lighten our
darkness, and that can rebuke, not only these, but all the ba-
tans in hell.
So they cried and prayed, and God sent light and deliver-
ance ; for there was now no let in their way, no not there,
where but now they were stopt with a pit. Yet they were
not got through the Valley : so they went on still, and beheld
great stinks and loathsome smells to the great annoyance of
them. Then said Mercy to Christiana, ' There is not such
pleasant being here as at the Gate, or at the Interpreter's, or
at the house where we lay last.' (o)
' O but,' said one of the boys, ' it is not so bad to go through
here, as it is to abide here always ; and, for aught 1 know, one
reason why we must go this way to the house prepared for us,
is, that our home might be made the sweeter to us.'
' 'tVell said, Samuel,' quoth the guide, ' thou hast now spoke
like a man.' ' Why, if ever I get out h^re again,' said the boy,
* I think I shall yjrize light and good way better than ever 1 did
in all my life.' (p) Then said the guide, ' We shall be out by
and by
(c) Whatever attempts Satan may make to terrify the believer, resolute
resistcince by faith in Christ will drive him away : but if fear induces men
to neglect the means of grace, he will renew his assaults on the imagina-
tion, whenever they attempt to pray, read the scripture, or attend on any
duty ; till for a time, or finally, they give up their religion. In this case,
therefore, determined perseverance in opposition to every terrifying sug-
gestion is our only safety. Yet sometimes temptations may be so multi-
plied and varied, that it may seem impossible to proceed any further ; and
the mind of the harassed believer is envelo})ed in conlusion and dismay,
as if an horrible pit were about to swallow him up, or the Prince of dark-
ness to seize upon him. But the counsel of some experienced friend or
minister, exciting confidence in the power, mercy, and faithfulness of God,
and encouraging him to " pray without ceasing," will at length make way
for his deliverance.
(77) Shoiild any one, by hearing the believer say, " The sorrows of
death compassed me, and the pains of hell gat hold upon me,"' be tempted
Heedless slain and cast into a ditch, - 2 J&
So on they went, and Joseph said, ' Cannot we see to the
end of this valley as yet ?' Then said the guide, * Look to your
feet ; for we sliall presently be among snares.' So they look-
ed to their feet, and went on ; but were troubled much with
the snares. — Now when they were come among the snares,
they espied a man cast into the ditch on the left hand, with his
flesh all rent and torn. Then said the guide, * That is one
Heedless, that was going this way ; he has lain there a great
while. There was one Take-heed with him when be was
taken and slain, but he escaped their hands. You cannot ima-
gine how many are killed hereabouts, and yet men are so fool-
ishly venturous, as to set out lightly on pilgrimage, and to come
without a guide. Poor Christian, it was a wonder that he here
escaped I but he was beloved of his God ; also he had a good
heart of his own, or else he could never have done it.* (q)
Now they drew towards the end of the way ; and just there
where Christian had seen the cave when he went by, out thence
came forth Maul, a giant. This Maul did use to spoil young
Pilgrims with sophistry ; and he called Great-heart by his
name, and said unto him, ' How many times have you been for-
bidden to do these things V Then said Mr. Great-heart, ' VVhat
things ?' * What things !' quoth the giant ; ' you know what
* Part i. p. 87.
to avoid all religious duties, company, end reflection?, lest he should ex-
perience similar terrors, let him well weigh this observation ; *■ It is not so
bad to go through here, as to abide here always.' — Nothing can be more
absurd, than to neglect religion, lest the fear of hell should discompose a
man's mind, when such noiiilect exposes him to the eternal endurance of
it : whereas the short taste of distress, which may be experienced by the
tempted believer, will make redemption more precious, and render peace,
comfort, and heaven at last, doubly delightful I \
» (jq) The discouragement of dark temptations is not so formidable, in the
judgment of experienced Christians, as the snares connected with them :
for, while numbers renounce tiieir profession, to get rid of their disquie-
tude ; many are seduced into some false doctrine that may sanction negli-
gence, and quiet their consciences by assenting to certain notions, without
regarding the state of their hearts, or what passes in their experience ;
and others are led to spend all their time in company, or even to dissipate
the gloom by engaging in worldly amusements, because retirement exposes
them to these suggestions. In short, the enemy endeavours to terrify ihe
professor, that he may drive him away from God, entangle him in heresy,
or draw him into sin ; in order to destroy his soul, or at least ruin his
credit and prevent his usefulness. But circumspection and prayer con-
stitute our best preservative ; through which, they who take heed to their
steps escape, while the heedless are taken and destroyed, for a v/arning to
those that come after.
290 Great-hearth battle with Maul, the giant,
things : but 1 will put an end to your trade.' * But pray,' said
Mr. Great-heart, * before we fall to it, let us underataud where-
fore we must light.' (Now the women and children stood trem-
bling, and knew not what to do.) Quoth the giant, ' You rob
the country, and rob it with the worst of thieves.' * These
are but generals,' said Mr. Great-heart, ' come to particulars,
man.'
Then said the giant, ' Thou practisest the craft of a kidnap--
per ; thou gatherest up women and children, and carriest them
into a strimge country, to the weakening of my master's kmg-
dom.' — But now Great-heart replied, ' I am a servant of the
God of heaven ; my business is to persuade sinners to repent-
ance ; 1 am commanded to do my endeavour to turn men, wo-
men and children " from darkness to light, and from the power
of Satan to God ;" and if this be indeed the ground of thy quar-
rel, let us fall to it as soon as thou wilt.'
Then the giant came up, and Mr. Great-heart went to meet
him : and as he went he drew his sword ; but the giant had a
club. — So without more ado they fell to it, and at the first blow
the giant struck Mr. Great-heart down upon one of his knees ;
with that the women and the children cried : so Mr. Great-
heart, recovering himself, laid about him in a full lusty man-
ner, and gave the giant a wound in his arm ; and he fought
for the space of an hour, to that height of heat, that the breath
came out of the giant's nostrils, as the heat doth out of a boil-
ing cauldron.
Then they sat down to rest them, but Mr. Great-heart be-
took himself to prayer, ; also the women and children did no-
thing but sigh and cry all the time that the battle did last.
When they had rested them and taken breath, they both fell
to it again ; and Mr. Great-heart with a full blow fetched the
giant down to the ground. ' Nay, hold, let me recover,' quoth
he : so Mr. Great-heart let him ffjirl}^ get up. So to it they
went again, and the giant missed but little of breaking Mr.
Great-heart's skull with his club.
Mr. Great-heart, seeing that, runs to him in the full he<^!t of
his spirit, and pierced him under the fifth rib ; with that the
giant began to faint, and could hold up his cJub no longer.
Then Mr. Great-heart seconded his blow, and smote the head
of the giant from his shoulder?. Then the women and children
rejoiced, and Mr. Great-heart also praised God for the deliver-
ance he had wrought.
The Pilgrim'* s discourse about the battle, 291
When this was done, they among them erected a pillar, and
fastened the giant's head thereon, and wrote under it in letters
that passengers might read :
. * He that did wear this head, was one
That Pilgrims did misuse ;
He stopp'd their way, he spared none.
But did them all abuse :
Until that I, Great-heart, arose.
The Pilg:rim's gnide to be :
Until »hat I did Ijim oppose.
That was their enemy.' (t)
Now I saw that they went to the ascent, that was a little way
off cast up to be a prospect for Pilgrims, Tthat was the place
from whence Christian had the lirst sight ot" Faithl'ul, his bro-
ther.)* Wherefore here they sat down und rested ; they also
here did eat and drink, and make merry, for that they had got-
ten deliverance from this so dangerous an enemy. As they sat
thiis and did eat, Christiana asked the guide if he had got no
hurt in the battle ? Then said Mr. Gre^t-heart, ' No, save* a
little on my flesh ; yet that also shall be so far from being to
my detriment, that it is at present a prouf of my love to my
(r) This giant came out of the cave, where Pope and Pagan had resided.
He is therefore the cwiblem ot those formal superstitious teachers, and
those speculating mor*ih!»ts, who in protestant countries have too gen^n-al-
}y succeeded the Romish priests and the heathen philosoihers, in keeping
i men ig;iorant of the way of salvation, and in ppyding I y their sophistry
r such as seem to be seriously disposed. These persons often rei)resent
I faithful ministers, who '..raw otf their auditors, by preaching "repentance
^ towards God, and faith towards our Lord Jesus Christ," as robbers and
\ kidnappers ; they terrify many, (especially when they have the power of
enforcing penal statutes,) from professing or heai ing the gospel, and act-
^ ing according to their consciences ; and they put tr*e.faith of God's servants
^ to a severe tr^al. Yet perseverance, patience, and prayrr, v\ ill obtain the
victory ; and they that are strong will be instrumental in animating the
feeble to go on their way rejoicing and praising God. But though these
" enemies may be baffled, disabled, or apparentlj^ slam, it will appear that
they have left a posterity on earth, to rovile, injure, and oppose the spirit-
ual worshippers of God in every generation. The club with which the
giant was armed, may mean the secular arm or • ower by which opposers ,
of the gospel are generally desirous of enforcing their arguments and per-
suasions. " We have a law, and by our law he ought to die ;" thjs deci-
sion, like a heavy club, seems capable of bearing all down before it : nor
can any withstand its force, but those who rely on Him that is stronger
than all.
* Part i. p. 93.
592 Honest f from the town of Stupidity,'
Master and you, and shall be a means, by grace, to increase my
.reward at last.'
Chr, But was you not afraid, good sir, when you saw him
come with his club ?
* It is my duty,' said he, * to distrust my own fibility, that I
may have reliance on Him that is stronger than all.'*
Chr. But what did you think, when he fetched you down to
the ground at the first blow ?
' Why I thought,' quoth he, ' that so my Master himself was
served, and yet he it v, as that conquered at last.'
Mat, When you all have thought what you pleese, I think
God has been wonderful good unto us.^ both in bringing us out
of this valley, and in delivering us out of the hind of this ene-
my ; for my part, I see. no reason why we should distrust our
God any more, since he has now, and in such a place as this,
given us such testimon}^ of bin love as this.
Then they got up and went forward. — Now a little before
them stood an oak : and under it, when they come to it, they
found an old Pilgrim fast asleep : they knew that he was a Pil-
grim by his clothes, and his staff, and his girdle.
So the guide, Mr. Great-heart, awaked him ; and the old
gentlf^man, as he lifted up his eyes, cried out, * Whu's the
matter? Who are you ? and what is your business here ?'
Gr.'H. Come, mui, be not so hot, here is none but friends.
— Yet the old man gets up, and stands upon his ^uard, and will
know of them what they were. Then said the guide, ' My
name is Great-heart ; I am the guide of these Pilgrims, which
are going to the Celestial Country.'
Then said Mr. Honest, ' I cry your mercy ; I feared that
you had been of the company of those that sometime ago did
rob Little-faith of his money ; bat now I look better about me,
I perceive you are hoaester people.' (5)
* 2 Cor. iv.
(.?) The allesfory requires us to suppose, that there were some places
in which the Pil;i:rims might safely sleep ; so that nothing disadvanta-
geous to the character of this old disciple seems to have been intended. —
An avowed dependence on Christ for righteousness, a regard to the word
of God, and an apparent sincerity in word and deed, mark a man to be a
Pilgrim, or constitute a professor of the gospel: but we should not too
readily conclude every professor to be a true believer. The experienced
Christian will be afraid of new acquaintance ; in his most unwatchful
seasons he will be readily excited to look about him ; and will be fully
convinced that no enemy can hurt him, unless he is induced to yield to
temptation and oommit sin.
His hehaviGur to the Pilgrims, £95
Gr.-H, Why, what woiiki or could you have done, or helped
yourself, if we indeed had been of that company ?
Hon. Done ! why 1 would have fought as long as breath had
been in me ; and had I so done, I am sure you could never have
given me the worst on't ; for a Christian can never be over-
come, unless he should yield himself.
* Well said, father Honest,' quoth the guide : * for by this I
know^ thou art a cock of the right kind, for thou hast said the
truth.'
Hon, And by this also I know that thou kncwest what true
pilgrimage is : for all others do think, tliat we are thfe soonest
overcome of 'any.
'« Gr,-H, Well, now we are happil}' met, let me crave your
name, and the name of the place where you came from ?
Hon, My name I cannot : but I came from the town of Stupi-
dity ; it lieth about four degrees beyond the city of Destruction.
Gr,-H. Oh ! are you that countryman then? I deem I have
half a guess of you : your name is old Honesty, is it not ? — So
the old gentleman blushed, and said, * Not Honesty in the ab-
stract : but Honest is my nafhe, and 1 wish that my nature may
agree to what I am called.'
* But, sir,' said the old gentleman, * how could you guess
that I am such a man, since I can^c from such a place ?' (t)
Gr,-H, I have heard of you before, by my Master ; for he
knows all things that are done on the earth : but 1 have often
wondered that any should come from your p4ace, for your town
is worse than is the city of Destruction itself.
Hon, Yes, we lie more oflf from the sun, and so are more
cold and senseless ; but was a man in a mountain of ice, yet if
the Son of Righteousness will arise upon him, his frozen heart
shall feel a thaw. And thus it has been with me. («)
(/) Honesty in the abstract seems to mean sinless perfection. The Pil-
grim was a soQnd character, but conscious of many imperfections, of which
he was ashamed, and from which he sought deliverance. The nature of
faith, hope, love, patience, and other boly dispositions is described in scrip-
ture, as a man would define gold, by its essential properties. This shows
what they are in the abstract : but as exercised by us, they are always
mixed with considerable alloy ; and ' we are richer or poorer in this rer
spect, in proportion to the degree of the gold or of the alloy which is found
in our characters.
(u) The Lord sometimes calls those sinners, whose character, connex-
ions, and situation, seem to place them at the greatest distance from him :
that the riches of his mercy and the power of his grace may be thus ren-
dered the more conspicuous and illustrious.
25*
,t94 Fearing f a troublesome Pilgrim,
Gr,'H, I believe it, father Honest, I believe it ; for I know
the thing is true.
Then the old gentleman saluted all the Pilgrims with a holy
kiss of charity ; and asked them of their fiimes, and how they
had fared since they had set out on their pilgriruage.
Then said Christi jnn, ' My name, 1 suppose, you have heard
of; good Christian was my husband, and these four were his
children.' — But can you think how the old gentleman was
taken, when she told him who she was : He skipped, he smil-
ed, and blessed them with a thousand ^ood wishes ; saying, •■ I
have heard much of your husband, and of his travels and wars,
which he underwent in his diys. Be it spoken to your com-
fort, the name of your husbiind rings ;iil over these parts of the
w^orld ; his taith, his courage, his enduring, and his sincerity
under all, has made his name famous.' — Then he turned him
to the boys, and asked of them their names, which they told
him. And then said he unto them, * Matthew, be thou like
Matthew the publican, not in vice but in virtue. Samuel,' said
he, ' be thou like Samuel the pioph^^t, a man of faith and pray-
er. Joseph,' said he, ' be thou like Joseph in Potiphar's house,
chaste, and one that flees from temptation. And James, be
thou like James the Just, :aid like James the brother of our
Lord.'*'^ Then they told him of Mercy, and how she had left
her town and her kindred to come along with Christiana and with
her sons. At that the old honest man said, ' Mercy is thy name :
by mercy shalt thou be sustained, and carried through all those
difficulties that shall assault thee in thy way, till thou shalt come
thither, where thou shalt look the Fountain of mercy in the
face with comfort.'
All this while the guide, Mr. Great-heart, was very well
pleased, and smiled upon his companions.
Now, as they wah. d together, the guide asked the old gen-
tleman, ' If he did not know one Mr. Fearing, that came on pil-
grimage out of his parts ?'
' Yes, very well,' said he. ' He was a man that had the root
of the matter in him ; but he was one of the most troublesome
Pilgrims that I ever met with in all my days.'
Gr,-H. I perceive you knew him ; for you have given a
very right character of him.
Hon. Knew him ! I was a great companion of his ; I w^s
* Matt. X. 3. Psa. xxjix. 6. Gen. kxsk. Acta i. 13> 14.
His conduct at first setting out* 295
with him most an end ; when he first began to think of what
would come upon us hereafter, I was with him.
Gr,-H I was his guide from m}' Master's house to the gate
of the Celestial City.
Hon, Then you knew him to he a troublesome one.
Gr.-H. I did so ; but I could very well bear it ; for men of
my calling are oftentimes intrusted with the conduct of such as
he was. (w)
Hon. Well then, pray let us hear a little of him, and how he
managed himself under your conduct.
Gr,-H, Why, he was dways afraid that he should come
short whither he had a desire to go. Every thing frighted
him that he heard any body spe ik of, that had but the least ap-
pearance of opposition in it. I he ir that he lay roaring at the
Slough of Despond, for above a month together ; nor durst he,
for all he saw several go over before him, venture, though
they many of them offered to lend him their hand ! He would
not go back again neither ! The Celestial City ! he said he
should die if he came not to it , and yet he was dejected at
every difficulty, and stumbled at every straw that any body cast
in his way. — Well, after he had lain at the Slough of Despond
a great while, as I have told you, one sun-shine morning, I
don't know how, he ventured, ;md so got over ; but when he
was over he would scarce believe it. He had, 1 think, a Slough
of Despond in his mind, a slough that he carried every where
with him, or else he could never have been as he was. So he
came up to the gate (you know what I mean,) that stands at
(w) The character and narrative of Fearing has been generally admir-
ed by experienced readers, as drawn and arranged with great judgment,
and in a very affecting manner. Little-fajth, mentioned in the First Part,
was faint-hearted and distrustful ; and thus he contracted guilt, and lost
his comfort : but Fearinc;: dreaded sin, and coming short of heaven, more
than all that flesh could do unto him. He was alarmed at the least ap-
pearance or report of opposition ; but this arose more from conscious
weakness, and the fear of being overcome by temptation, than from a re-
luctance to undergo derision or persecution. The peculiarity of this de-
scription of Christians must be tracecl back to constitution, habit, first im-
pressions, disproportionate and partial views of truth, and improper in-
structions : these concurring with weakness of faith, and the common in-
firmities of human nature, give a cast to their experience and character,
which renders them uncomfortable to themselves, and troublesome to
others. Yet no competent judges doubt but they have the root of the
matter in them ; and none are more entitled to the patient, sympathizing,
and tender attention of ministers and Christians.
296 H^5 conduct at first setting out,
the head o{ this way. ; and there also he stood a good while,
before he would venture to knock. When the gite was open-
ed, he would give back, and give place to others, and say, that
he was not worthy : for dl he got before some to the gate, yet
many of them vv^ nt in before him. Fhere the poor man would
stand shaking and shrinking ; 1 dare say it would have pitied
one's heart to have seen inm :— nor would he go' back again.
At last he took the hamjner that hanged at the gate in his hand,
and gave a small rap or two : then oae opened to him, but he
-brunk back as before. He that opened, stepped out after him,
and said, * Thou trembling one, whi't wuntest thou V With that
he fell down to to the ground. He that spake to him, wonder-
ed to see him so faint. He s-iid to him, ' Peace to thee ; up,
for I have set open the door to thee ; come in, for thou art
blessed.' With that he got up, and went in trembling ; and
when that he was in, lie was ash^'mi-d to show his face. Well,
after he had been entertained thv^re awhile, (as you l^now how
the manner is,) he was bid go on his way, and also told the way
lie should take. So he went till he came to our house : but
as he behaved himself at the gate, so he did- at my Master the
Interpreter's door. He lay thereabout in the cold a good while,
before he would venture to call : yet he would not go back :
and the nights were lon^; and cold then. Nay, he had a note
of necessity in his bosom to my Master, to receive him, and
grant him the comfort of his house, and also to allow him a
tout and valiant conductor, because he was himself so chicken-
hearted a man ; and yet for all thnt, he w is afraid to call at the
door. So he lay tfp ana down thereabouts, till, poor man ! he
was almost starved : yea, so great was his dejection, that,
though he saw several others for knocking got in, yet he was
afraid to venture. At last, 1 think, 1 looked out of the window,
and, perceiving a man to be up and down about the door, I
went out to hiin, and asked what he was ; but, poor man ! the
water stood in his eyes : so I perceived what he wanted. I
went therefore in, and told it m the house, and we showed the
thing to our Lord ; so he sent me out again to entreat him to
come in ; but, I dare say, I had hard work to do it. At last
he came in ; and, I will say that tor my Lord, he carried it
wonderfully loving to bin. There were but a few good bits at
the table, but some of it was laid upon his trencher. Then he
presented the note ; imd my Lord looked thereon, and said his
desire should be granted. So when he had been there a good
His conduct at the Cross. 297
while, he seemed to get some heart, and to be a httle more com-
forted. For my Master, you must know, is one of very tender
bowels, especially to them that are afraid : wherefore he car-
ried it so towards him, as might tend most to his encourage-
ment. Well, when he had a sight of the things of the place,
and was ready to hike his journey to go to the City, my Lord,
as he did to Christian before, gave him a bottle of spirits, and
some comfortable things to eat. Thus we set forward, and I
went before him ; but the man was but of few words, only he
would sigh aloud.
When we were come to where the three fellows were hang-
ed, he said, that he doubted that that would be his end also.
Only he seemed glad when he saw the Cross and the Sepulchre.
There 1 confess he desired to stay a little to look, and he seem-
ed for a while after to be a little comforted.
When he came to the hill Difficulty, he made no stick at that,
nor did he much fear the lions : for you must know, that his
trouble was not about such things as these ; his fear was about
his acceptance at last.
I got him in at the house Beautiful, I think, before he was
willing ; also when he was in, I brought him acquainted with
the damsels that were of the phice, but he was ashamed to
make himself much for comp my : he desired much to be alone,
yet he always loved good tilk, nnd often would get behind the
screen to hear it : he also loved much to see ancient things,
and to be pondering them in his mind. He told me afterward,
that he loved to be in those two houses from which he came
last, to wit, at the gate, and that of the Interpreter, but that he
durst not be so bold as to ask. (a:)
(x) Christians, who resemble Fearing, are g;reatly retarded in their pro-
gress by discouraging apprehensions ; they aie av>t to spend too much time
in unavailing complaints; they do not duly profit by the counsel and as-
sistance of their brethren ; and they often neglect the pro}>er means uf get-
ting relief from their terrors : yet they cannot think of giving up 'heir
feeble hopes, or of returnii^g to their forsaken Worldly pursuits and plea-
sures. They are, indeed, helped forward, through the mercy of God, in
a very extraordinary manner : yet they still remain exposed to alarms and
discouragements, in every stage of their pilgrimage : nor can they ever
habitually rise superior to them. 'hey are afraid even of relying on
Christ for salvation ; because they have not distinct views of his love, and
the methods of his grace ; and imagine some other qualification to be ne-
cessary, besides the willingness to seek, knock, and ask for the promised
blessings, with a real desire of obtaining them. They imagine, that there
has been something in their past life, or that there is some peculiarity in
pp
298 His conduct in the valley of the Shadow of Death.
AVhen we went also from the house Beautiful, down the hill,
into the valley of Humiliation, he went down as well as ever I
saw a man in my life : for he cared not how mean he was, so
he might be happy at kst. Yea, [ think there was a kind oi
sympathy betwixt thit valley and him : for I never saw him
better in all his pilgrimage, than he was in that valley.
Here he would he down, embrace the ground, and kiss the
very flowers that grew in this valley.* He would now be up
every morning by break of day, tracing aad walking to and fro
in the valley.
But when he was come to the entrance of the valley of the
Shadow of Deith, ( thoiight I should have lost my man ; not
for that he had inclifts^itioas to go back, (that he always abhor-
red,) but he was ready fo die for fear. 'Oh the hobgobhns
v/ill have me, the hobgoblins will have me !' cried he ; and ]
could not beat him out oh't. He made such a noise, and such
an outcry here, that h,id they but beard him, it was enough tc
encourage them to come and fall upon us. But this 1 took ver^i
^ Lf^m. iii. 27—29.
their present habits and propensities, and way of apply in ^^ to Christ, whicl^
may exchide them trom the^tneral benefit : so that they pray with diffi-
dence ; and being consciously naworthy, can hardly believe that the Lord
resfards them, or will ^rant their requosts. They are also prone to o/er-
look the most decigiVv^ evidences of their reconciliation to God ; aidtc
persevere in arguinsr with perverse ingenuity aiiainst their own manifesi
happiness. The same mixture of humility' and unbelief renders persons
of this description backward m associating with their brethren, and in fre-
quenting those companies in which they might obtain further instruction
for they are afra d of being consid-sred as believers, or even serious inqui-
rers ; so that affectiona.te and earnest persuasion is requisite to prevail
witii them to join in those reli.jio is exercises by^ which Christians espe-
cially receive the teachint^ of the Holy Spirit. Yet this arises not from
disinclination, but difFide.ice ; and though they are often peculiarly fa-
voured with seav.^ns of grea? comfort, to counterbalance their dejections;
yet they never hear or read of those who " have drawn back to perdition,''
but they are terrified with the idea, that they shall shortly resemble them :
so that every warning given agam.>t hypocrisy and self-deception seems to
point them out by name, and every new discovery of any lault or mistake
111 iheir views, temper, or cond ict, seems to decide their doom. At the same
time, they are often remarkably melted into humble admiring gratitude,
by contemplFitin<4: the love and sulfferiugs of Christ, and seem to delight in
hearing of that subject abo . e all others. They do not peculiarly fear dif-
ficulties, self-denial, reproaches or persecution, which deter numbers from
making an open profession of reii°;ion : and yet they are more backward
in this respect than others? ; because they deem themselves unworthy to
be admitted to such privileges, and into such society ; or else are appre-
hensive of being finally separated from them, or becoming a disgrace to
His conduct at ^^ inity Fair* 299
great notice of, that this valley was as quiet when he went
through it, as ever I knew it before or since. I suppose those
enemies here had now a special check from our Lord, and a
command not to meddle until Mr. Fearing was passed over it.(2/)
It would be too tedious to tell you ol all ; we will therefore
only mention a passage or two more. When he was come to
Vanity-Fair, I thought he would have fought with all ti c men
in the Fair ; I feared there we shouki both have been knocked
on the head, so hot was he against their fooleries. Upon the
Enchanted Ground, he also was very wakeful. But, when he
was come at the River where was no bridge, there again he
was in a heavy case : * Now, now,' he said, ' he should be
drowned for ever, and so never see that face with comfort, that
he had come so many miles to behoki.' And here also 1 took
notice of what was very remark^^ble; the water of that River
was lower at this time than ever i saw it in all my life : so he
went over at last, not much above wet-shod. When he was
going up to the Gate, I began to take my leave of him, and to
\iish him a good reception above ; so he said, * I shall, I shall :'
then parted we asunder, and i saw him no more.
Hon, Then, it seems, he was well at last ?
Gr,-H, Yes, yes, I never had doubt about him ; he was a
man of a choice spirit : only he w ts alw.iys kept very low, and
that made his life so burdensome to himself, and so very trou-
blesome to others.* He was. above many, tender of sin ; he
was so afraid of doing injuries to others, that he would often
deny himself of that which is lawful, because he would not of-
fend.t
Hon, But what should be the reason thfit such a good man
should be all his days so much in the dark ?
Gr,-H, There are two sorts of reasons for it ; one is, The
* Psa. Ixxxviii. t Rom. xiv. 21. I Cor. viii. 13.
(/;) A low and obscure situation suits the disposition of the persons here
described : they do not object to the most humiliating \TLews of their own
hearts, of human nature, or of the way of salvation ; they are little tempt-
ed to covet eminence among^ their brethren, and find it easier "to esteem
otliers better than themselves," than persons oi a different frame of mind
can well conceive. — On ^he other iiand, their imaginations are peculiarly
. susceptible of impressions, and of the temptations represented by the val-
ley of the Shadow of Death : so that in this respect they need more than
others the tender and patient instructions of fs^ithful. ministers : while they
repeat the same complaints, and urge the same objections againt them-
selves, that have already been obviated again and again. But the tender
compassion of the Lord to them should suggest an useful instruction to his
servants, on this part of tSieir work.
300 Remarks on Fearing^s charcuter,
wise God will have it so ; some must pipe and some must
weep :* now Mr. Fearing was one that played upon the bass.
He and his fellows sound the sackbut, whose notes are more
doleful than notes of other music are : though, indeed, some
say, the bass is the ground of music. And, for my part, I care
not at all for that profession, that begins not in heaviness of
mind. The first string that the musician usually touches is the
bass, when he intends to put all in tune : God also plays upon
this string first, when he sets the soul in tune for himself. Only
there was the imperfection of Mr Fearing, he could play upon
no other music but this, till towards the latter end.
[I make bold lo talk thus metaphorically, for the ripening of
the wits of young readers ; .;nd because, m the book of Reve-
lation, the saved are compared to a company of musicians, that
play upon their trumpets and harps, and sing their songs be-
fore the throne. t]
Hon. He was a very zealous man, as one may see by what
relation you have given of him. Difficulties, lions, or Vanity-
Fair, he feared not at all : it was only sin, death, and hell, that
were to him a terror ; because he had some doubts about his
interest in that Celestial Country.
Gr.'H. You say right ; those were the things that were his
troubles : and they, as you have well observed, arose from the
weakness of his mind thereabout, not from weakness of spirit,
as to the practical part of a pilgrim's life. I dare believe, that,
as the proverb is, ' He could have bit a fire-brand, had it stood
in his way :' but those things, with which he was oppressed,
no man ever yet could shake off w^ith ease.
Then said Christiana, ' This relation of Mr. Fearing has
done me good : I thought nobody had been like me ; but I see
there was some semblance betwixt this good man and I. Only
we differ in two things : his troubles were so great, that they
brake out ; but mine I kept within. His also lay so hard upon
him, they made him that he could not knock at the houses pro-
vided for entertainment ; but my troubles were always such as
made me knock the louder.'
Mer. If I might also speak my mind, I must say, that some-
thing of him has also dwelt in me ; for 1 have ever been more
afraid of the Lake, and the loss of a place in Paradise, than I
have been at the loss of other things. O ! thought 1, may I
* Matt. xi. 16—18. t Rev. xiv. % 3.
A commendation of Godly fear. 301
have the happiness to have a habitation there, it is enough,
though I part with ail the world to win it.
Then said Matthew, ' Fear was one thing that made me think
that I was far from having that within me that accompanies sal-
vation ; but if it was so with such a good man as he, why may
it not also go well with me ?'
* No fears, no grace,' said James. * Though there is not al-
ways grace where there is the fear of hell ; yet to be sure
there is no grace where there is no fear of God.'
Gr,-H. Well said, James ; thou hast hit the mark ; for "the
fear of God is the beginning of wisdom ;*' and, to be sure, they
that want the beginning, have nether middle nor end. But we
will here conclude our discourse of Mr. Fearing, after we have
*?cnt after him his farewell.
♦ WTiilst, Master Fearing, thou didst fear
Thy God, and wast afraid
Of doing any thing, while here.
That would have thee betray'd :
And didst thou fear the lake and pit ?
Would others did so too \
For as for them, that want thy wit,
They do themselves undo.' (z)
Now I saw that they all went on in their talk ; for, after Mr.
Great-heart had made an end with Mr. iFearing, Mr. Honest
(s) No Christians are more careless about the opinion of the world, or
more zealous against its vanities, than persons of this description ; or more
v/atchful in times of ease and prosperity ; but the prospect of death is of-
ten a terror to them ; especially when they suppose it to be at hand ; yet
they often die with retnarkable composure and comfort. Few ministers,
who have had an opportunity of carefully observing the people intrusted
to their pastoral care, can help thinking of some individual, who might
seem to have been the original of this admirable portrait : which is full
of instruction both to them^ and the limid, but conscious part of their con-
gret(ations. Indeed numbers, who are not characteristically Fearfuls,
have something of the same disposition in many particulars. But such as
fear reproach and self-denial more than those things which this good man
dreaded, bear a contrary character, and are travelling the road to an op-
posite place : and even they whose confidence of an interest in Christ far
exceeds the degree of their humiliation, conscientiousness, abhorrence of
sin, and victory over the world, may justly be suspected of having begun
their religion in a wrong manner ; as they more resemble the stony-ground
hearers, who " receive the word with joy, but have no root in themselves,"
than those who " sow in tears, to reap in joy." For " godly sorrow work-
eth repentance unto salvation, not to be repented of.''
26
302 Self-wiirs plea for his Principles,
began to tell them t)f another, but his name was Mr. Self-will.
' He pretended himself to be a Pilgrim,' said Mr. Honest : ' but,
I persuade myself, he never came in at the gate that stands at
the held oi the way.'
Gr.'H. Had you ever any talk with him about it?
Hon. Yes, more than once or twice : but he would always
be like himself, self-willed. He neither cared for man, nor
arguia 3nt, nor examplf : what his mind prompted him to, that
woul'i he do ; and nothing else could he be got to.
Gr.'H. Pray what principles did he hold ? for I suppose
you can tell.
Hon. He held, that a man might follow the vices as well as
the virtues of the Pilgrims ; and that if he did both he should
be certainly saved.
Gr.-H. How I If he had siiid, it is possible for the best to be
gudty of the vices, as we'l as partake of the virtues of the Pil-
grims, he could not much have been blamed. For indeed we
are exempted from no vice absolutely, but on condition that
we watch and strive. But this, I perceive, is not the thing :
but, if I understand you right, your meaning is, that he was of
the opinion, that it was allowable so to be.
Hon. Ay, ly, sO i mean ; and so he believed and practised.
Gr.-H. But -vhat grounds had he for so saying ?
Hon. VVhy, he said he had the Scriptures for his warrant.
Gr.-H. Pr'ythee, Mr. Honest, present us with a few parti-
culars.
Hon. So I will. He said, to have to do with other men's
wives, had been practised by Dnvid, God's beloved ; and there-
fore he could do it. He said, to have more women than one,
was a thing that ^olomon practised ; and therefore he could do
it. He said that Sarah and the godly midwives of Egypt lied,
and so did Rahab ; and therefore he could do it. He said,
that the disciples went, at the bidding of their Master, and took
away the owner's ass ; and therefore he could do so too. He
said, that Jacob got the inheritance of his father in a way of
guile and dissimulation ; and theretbre he could do so too.
Gr.'H. Highly base, indeed! and are you sure he was of
this opinion ?
Hon. \ have heard him plead for it, bring Scripture for it,
bring \rguments for it, &:c.
Gr.-H. An opinion that is not fit to be with any allowance
m the world I
Self'Wiirs Principles confuted by Great-heart. 303
Hon. You must understand me right : he did not say that
any man might do this ; but that those who had the virtues of
those that did such things, might also do the same.
Gr.'H. But what more false than such a conclusion ? for this
is as much as to say, that, because good men heretofore have
sinned of infirmity, therefore he had allowance to do it of a pre-
sumptuous mind : or if, bee luse a child, by the blast of wind,
or for that it stumbled at a stone, fell down, and defiled itself in
mire, therefore he might wilfully lie down and wallow like a
boar therein ! Who could have thought^ that any one could so
far have been blinded by the power of lust ? But what is
written must be true : *« They stumbled at the word, being
; disobedient ; whereunto also they were appointed."* His
supposing that such may have the godly man's virtues, who ad-
dict themselves to his vices, is also a delusion as strong as the
other. It is just as if the dog should say, ' I have or may hive
the qualities of a child, because I lick up its stinking excre- .
ments.' "To eat up the sin of God's people,"! is no sign of v
one that is possessed with their virtues. Nor can I believe, I
that one that is of this opinion, can at present have faith or love «
in him. — But I know vou h ive made strong objections against
him ; pr'ythee what can he s;ty for himself?
Hon. Why, her says, to do this by way of opinion, seems
abundantly more honest than to do it rind yet hold contrary to
it in opinion.
Gr.'H A very wicked answer ; for, though to let loose the
bridle to lusts, while our opinions are again«^t such things, is
bad ; yet to sin, and ph;ad a toleration to do so, is worse : the
one stumbles beholders accidentally, the other leads them into
the snare.
Hon. There are many of this man's mind, that have not this
m uvs mouth ; and that makes going on pilgrimage of so little
esteem as it is. (a)
* 1 Pet. ii. 8. t Hos. iv. 8.
(a) The author peculiarly excels in contrasting his characters, of which
a striking instance here occurs. The precedinj^ episode relates'to a very
conscientious Christian, who, throus^h weak faith and misapprehension,
a rried his self-suspicion to a troublesome and injurious extreme: and
V, e have next introduced a false professor, who, pretending: to strong faith,
made his own obstinate self-will the only rale of hi« conduct. Yet in re-
ality this arises from total unbelief: for the word of God declares such
persons to be unregenerate, under the wrath of God, <•* in the gall of bit-
terness and the bond of iniquity." — It would hardly be imagined, that men
304 A false Alarm.
Gr.'H. You have said the truth, and it is to be lamented ';
but he that feareth the King of Paradise shall come out of
them all.
Chr. There are strange opinions in the world ; I know one
that said it was time enough to repent when he came to die.
Gr.-IL Such are not over- wise ; that man would have been
loath, might he have had a week to run twenty miles for his
life, to have deferred that journey to the last hour of that week.
Hon, You say right ; and yet the generahty of them that
count themselves Pilgrims, do indeed do thus. I am, as you
see, an old man, and have been a traveller in this road many a
day ; and I have taken notice of many things.
I have seen some, that set out as if they would drive all the
world before them, who yet have, in few days, died as they in'
the wilderness, and so never got sight of the promised land. —
I have seen some, thiit have promised nothing, at first setting
out to be Pilgrim.s, and that one would have thought could not
have lived a day, that yet proved very good Pilgrims. — I have
seen some who have run hastily forward, that again have, after
a little time, run just a^ last back again. — I have seen some
who have spoken very well of a Pilgrim's life at first, that atl:er
a while have spoken as much against it. — I have heard some,
when they first set out for Paradise, say positively, ' There is
such a place ;' who, when they have been almost there, have
come back again, and said, ' There is none.* — I have heard
some vaunt what they would do, in case they should be oppos-
ed, that have, even at a false alarm, fled faith, the Pilgrim's
way, and all.
could be foand maintaining sucli detestable sentiments as are here stated,
did not facts most a^viuliy prove it ! We need not, however, spend time
in exposing such a character : a g;enera:] expression of the deepest detesta-
tion may suffice ; for none who liave been given up to such strong delu-
sion, can reasonably be supposed accessi:>le to the words of truth and so-
berness. Nor can they succeed in perverting others to such palpable and
gross absurdities and abominable tenets ; except they meet with those,
that have long provoked God, by endeavouring to reconcile a wicked life
with the hope of salvation. But it may properly be observed, that seve-
ral expre.-iions, which seem to represent faith as an assurance of a per-
sonal interest in Christ; or to intrmate, that believers have 7iothing to do
witJt, th& lawy even as tfie rule of their conduct; with many unguarded as-
sertions concerning the liberty of the gospel, and indiscriminate declama-
tions against doubts, fears, and a legal spirit, have a direct tendency to
prepare the mind of impenitent sinners, to receive the poisonous princi-
ple's of avowed Autinomians. Pi'luch harm has been done in this way, and
great disgrace brought upwn the gospel : for there are many of this man's
mind, who have not this man's moul}:.
They enter an Inn kept hy Gains, S05
Now as they were thus in their way, there came one run*
«ing to meet them, and said, * Gentlemen, and you of the
weaker sort, if you love life, shift for yourselves, for the rob-
bers are before you.'
Then said Mr. Great-heart, 'They be the three that set
upon Little-faith heretofore. Well,' said he, ' we are ready
for them.' So they went on their way. Now they looked at
every turning, when they should have met with the villains ;
but, whether they heard of Mr. Great-heart, or whether they
had some other game, they came not up to the Pilgrims.
Christiana then wished for an Inn for herself iud her chil-
dren, because they were weary. Then said Mr. Honest,
* There is one a little before us, where a very honourable dis-
ciple, one Gains, dwells.'* So they all concluded to turn in
thither ; and the rather, because' the old gentleman gave him
go good a report. — So when they came to the door, they went
in not knocking ; for folks use not to knock at the door of an
Inn. Then they called for the master of the house, and he
came to the^p. So they asked if they might lie there that night ?
Gat. Yes, gentlemen, if you be true men ; lor 'my house is
for none but Pilgrims. (6) Then was Christiana, Mercy, and
the boys, more glad, for that the Inn-keeper was a lover of
Pilgrims. So they called for rooms, and he showed them one
for Christiana and her chiKlren, an^l Mercy, and another for
Mr. Great-heart and the old gentleman.
Then said Mr. Great«-heart, ' Good Gaius, what hast thou
for supper ? for these Pilgrims have come far to-day, and are
weary.'
' It is late,' said Gaius, ' so we cannot^onveniently go out to
seek food, but such as I have you shall be welcome to, if that
will content you.'
Gr.'H. We will be content with what thou hast in the house ;
forasmuch as I have proved thee, thou art never destitute of
that which is convenient.
Then he went down and spake to the cook, whose nfane was
Taste-that-which-is-good, to get ready supper for so many Pil-
* Rom. xvi. 23.
(6) The spiritual refreshment arising from experimental and affection-
ate conversation with Christian friends, seems to be here more especially
intended : yet the name of Gaius suggests also the importance of the apos>
tie's exhortation, " Use hospitality without grudgmg." This ought to be
attended to, even in respect to tho«e with whom we have hitherto had no
acquaintance, provided their characters are properly certified tg us ; f(rr
we are all breUiren in Christ.
€tq 26* ,
306 Great ^heart celebrates Christianas Ancestors.
grims. — This done, he comes up again, saying, * Come, my
good friends, you are welcome to me, and I am glad that I have
a house to entertain you ; and while supper is making ready,
if you please, let us entertain one another with some good dis-
course.' So they all said. Content.
Then said Gains, ' Whose wife is this aged matron ? and
whose daughter is this young damsel ?'
Gr,-H. The woman is the wife of one Christian, a Pilgrim
m former times ; and these are his four children. The maid
is one of her acquaint-ance ; one that she hath persuaded to
come with her on pilgrimage. The boys take all after their
frither, and covet to tread in his steps : yea, if they do but see
Tiuy place where the old Pilgrim hath lain, or any print of his
foot, it ministereth joy to their hearts, and they covet to lie or
tread in the same.
Then said Gains, ' Is this Christian's wife, and are these
Christian's children ? I knew your husband's father, yea, also
his fither's f>ther. Many have been good of this stock ; their
vacestors first dwelt at Antioch.* Christian's progenitors, (I
suppose yon have heard your husband talk of them,) were
very worthy men. They have, above any that I know, show-
ed themselves men of great virtue and courage, for the Lord
of the Pilgrims, his ways, and them that loved him. I have
heard of many of your husband's relatione, that have stood all
:rialir for the sake of the truth. Stephen, that was one of the
first of the fiimily from w^hence your husband sprung, was
knocked on the head with stones.j James, another of this ge-
neration, was slain with the edge of the sword. | To say nothing
of Paul and Peter, men anciently of the family from whence
your husband came, there was Ignatius, who was cast to the
lions ; Romanus, whose flesh was cut by pieces from his bones ;
and Polycarp, that played the man in the fire. There was he
hat was hanged up in a basket in the sun, for the wasps to eat ;
and he whom they put into a sack, and cast him into the sea to
be drowned. It would be impossible utterly to count up all
that family, that have suffered injuries and death for the love
of a Pilgrim's life. Nor can I but be glad, to see that thy hus-
band has left behind him four such boys as these. I hope they
will bear up their father's name, and tread in their father's
steps, and come to their father's end.'
* Acts xi. .26. -f Acts vii. 59, 60. + Acts ii. 2>
A Commendation of Women. 307
Gr.'H, Indeed, sir, they are likely lads : they seem to
choose heartily their father's ways.
Gat. That is what I said ; wherefore Christian's family is
like still to spread abroad upon the face of the ground, and yet
to be numerous upon the face of the earth : wherefore let
Christiana look out some damsels for her sons, to whom they
may be betrothed, that the name of their father and the house
of his progenitors may never be forgotten in the world.
Hon. It is pity his family should full and be extinct.
Gai. Fall it cannot, but be diminished it may ; but let Chris-
tiana take my advice, and that's the way to uphold it.
' And Christiana,' said this Inn-keeper, * I am glad to see
thee and thy friend Mercy together here, a lovely couple. And
may 1 advise. Take Mercy into a nearer relation to thee : if
she will, let her be given to Matthew, thy eldest son ; it is the
way to preserve a posterity in the earth.' — So this match was
concluded, and in process of time they were married : but more
of that hereafter, (c)
Gains also proceeded, and said, ' I will now speak on the
behalf of women, to take away their reproach. For as death
and the curse came into the world by a woman, so also did life
and health : " God sent forth his Son made of a woman."*
Yea, to show how much those that came after did abhor the
* Gen. iii. Gal. iv. 4.
(c) The author availed himself of the opportunity, here presented him,
of giving his opinion on a very important subject, about which religious
persons often hold different sentiments- He evidently intended to say,
that he deemed it generally most safe and advantageous to the parties
themselves, ami most conducive to the spread and permanency of true re-
ligion, for young Christians to marry ; provided it be done in the fear of
God, and according to the rules of his word. Yet we cannot suppose but
he would readily have allowed of excef)tions to this rule : for there are
individuals, who, continuing single, employ that time and those talents in
assiduously doing good, which in the married state must have been greatly
abridged or preoccupied ; and thus they are more extensively useful than
their brethren. Yet, in common cases, the training up of a family, by
the combined efforts of pious parents, in honesty, sobriety, industry, and
the principles of true religion, when united with fervent prayer, and the
persuasive eloquence of a good example, is so important a service to the
church and to the community, that few persons are capable of doing
greater or more permanent good in any other way. But this requires
strict attention to the rules of scripture, in every step of these granfl con-
cerns : for children, brought up in ungodliness and ignorance, among those
who are strangers to the gospel, are far more hopeful, than such as have
received a bad education, witnessed bad examples, and imbibed worldly
principles, in the families of evangelical professor.".
308 What the Supper consisted of,
act of the mother, this sex in the Old Testament coveted chil-
dren, if happily this or that woman might be the mother of ihe
Saviour of the v/orld. I will Seiy again, that when the Saviour
was come, women rejoiced in him before either man or An-
gel."^ I read not that ever mun did give unto Christ so much as
one groat ; but the women " followed him, and ministered to
him of their subst mce." It was a woman that w -shed his feet
with tears, and a woman that anointed his body to the burial.
They were women that wept, when he was ^oiogto the Cross ;
an I women that followed him from the Crobs, md that sat by
his Sepulchre when he Wiis buried. f hey were w^omen that
were first with him at his resurrection morn ; and w^omen that
brouirht tidings first to his disciples, that he ^vas risen from the
de id.t Women thereibre are hi^^^hly f ivoured, and show by
these things, that they are sliarers with us in the grace of life.'
Now the cook sent up to signify that supper was almost rea-
dy ; and sent one to \\y the cloth, and the trenchers, and to
set the salt and bread in order. • ^
Then said Matthew, ' The sight of this cloth, and of this
forerunner of the supper, begetteth in me a greater appetite
to my food than 1 had before.'
Gai. So let all ministering doctrines to thee, in this.life, be-
get in thee a greater desire to sit at the supper of the great
King in his kingdom ; for all prertciiing, books, and ordinances
here, are but as the laying of the trenchers, and as setting of
salt upon the board, when compared with the feast that our
Lord ^vill make us when we coiiie to his house.
So supper came up ; and firii a heave- shoulder and a rvave-
hreast were set on the table before them ; to show that they
must begin the meal with prayer and praise to God.J The
heave-shoulder David lifterf his heart up to God with ; and
with the wave-br-ast, where his heart 1 ly, with that he used
to lean upon his harp when ae played. — These two dishes v/ere
very fresh and good, and they all rite heartily thereof.
The next th'^y brougnt up v -. i bottle of wine, as red as
blood. So G iiis said to them, ' Drink freely, this is the true
juice of the vine that makes glad the heart of God and man.'
So they drank and were merry. § — The next was a dish of milk
* Luke ii. t Luke vii. 37—50 viii. 2, 3. xxiii. 27. xxiv. 22, 23^.
John ii. 3. xi. 2. Matt, xxvii. 55, 56—61. :(: Lev. vii. 32—34. x.
14, 15. Psa. XXV. 1. Heb. xiii. 15. § Deut, xxxii. 14. Judges ix.
13. Joha XV. 5.
The Apples and the JVuis. 309
well crumbed : but Gaius said, ' Let the boys have that, that
they may *' grow thereby."* — 1 hen they brought up in course
a dish of butler and honey. Then said Gaius, ' Eat freefy of
this, for this is good to cheer up and strengthen your judgments
and understandings.' This was our Lord's dish when he was
a child : *' Butter and honey shall he eat, that he may know to
refuse the evil and choose the good."! — Then they brought
him up a dish of apples, and they were very good tasted fruit.
Then said Matthew, « May we eat apples, since they were
such by and with which the serpent beguiled our first mother V
Then said Gaius,
» Apples were they with which we were beguil'd,
Yet 5m, uot apples, hath our souls defil'd ;
Apples forbid, if ate, corrupt the blood ;
To eat such wbeu commanded, does us good :
Drink of his flagons, then, thou Church, his Dove,
And eat his apples, who are sick of love.'
. Then said Matthew, * I made the scruple, because a while
since. I was sick with eating of fruit.'
Gat, Forbidden fruit will make. you sick, but not what our
Lord has tolerated.
While they were thus talking, they were presented with ano-
ther dish, and it was a dish of nuts. J Then said some at the
table, * Nuts spoil tender teeth, especially the teeth of the
children.' Which when Gaius heard, he said :
* Hard texts are nuts, (I will not call them cheaters,)
Whose shells do keep their kernels from the eaters :
Ope then the shells, and you shall have the meat ;
They here are brought for you to crack and eat.' (d)
^- 1 Pet. ii. 1, 2. t Isa. vii. 15. J Sol. Song vi. 11.
(d) The different parts of social worship and Christian fellowship are
here allegorically described. 1 he heave-shoulder and wave-breast prescri-
bed in the ceremonial law, seem to have typified the power and love of
our great High Priest ; and to have conveyed an instruction to the priests
to do their work with all their might, and with their whole heart : but
they are here supposed to be also emblems of fervent prayer and grateful
praise. The wine represents the exhilarating remembrance of the love of
Christ in shedding his blood for us, and the application of the blessing to
ourselves by living faith. The milk is the emblem of the plain, simple,
and important instructions of sqripturo, as brought forward by believers,
when they meet together, for their edification. The butter and honey may
denote those animating views of God, and realizing anticipations of hea-
venly joy, which tend greatly to establish the judgment, instruct the un-
derstanding, and determine the affections in cleaving to the good part that
310 •i riddle answered by Gains.
.Then they were very merry, and sat at the table a longtime,
talking of many things. Then said the old gentleman, 'My
good hindlord, while ye are cracking your nuts, if you please,
do you open this riddle :
A man there v/as, (though some did count him mad,)
The more he cast away the more he had.'
Then they all gave good heed, wondering what good Gaius
would say ; so he sut still a while, and then thus replied ;
' He who thus bestow? his goods upon the poor,
Shall have as much agam, and ten times more.'
Then said Joseph, ' I dare say, sir, I did not think you could
have tound it out.'
* Oh,' s lid Gaius, ' I have been trained up in this way a gree^
while : nothing teaches like experience : I have learned of
mv Lord to be kind ; and h^ve ibund by experience, that I
h >ve guned thereby. " There is th.it scattereth, and yet in-
cr J jseth ; and there is th it withholdeth more than is meet, but
it tendeth to poverty :*' " There is that m keth himself rich,
yet hath nothing : there is th.it maketh himself poor, yet hath
great riches.'"*
Then Samuel whispered to Christiana, his mother, and said,
^ Mother, this is a very good man's house ; let us st ^y here a
good whde, and let my brother Matthew be married here to
Mercy before we go any further.'
The which Gaius the host overhearing, said, ' With a very
good will, my child.'
So they stud here more than a month, and Mercy was given
to Matthew to wif \
While they staid here, Mercy, as her cystom was, would be
* Prov. xi. 24. xiii. 7.
the believer hath chosen. i he apples re)^-resent the promises and privi
le:;es, which believers possess bycommunon with Ciirist, in his ordi
nanccf- ;'" anvl the nuts si;<niiy such difficult subjects as experience vmu
observation enable mature Christians to understand ; and wh.ch amply
repay the pains of endeavouring to penetraty their meaning, though they
are not proj er for the discussiorj ol young converts. Whatever unbebev
crs may thini, a company of Christiaiis, employing themselves in the
manner here described, have far sweeter enjoyments than they ever expe-
rienced when en-ap-ed m the mirth, diversions, and pleairures of the
world : for these are merely the shadow of joy, but religion puts us in
possession of the substance.
* Sol. Song ii. 3.
A riddle answered by Honest, 311
making coats and garments to give to the poor, by which she
brought up a very good report upon Pilgrims, (c)
But to return again to our story. Alter supper the lads de-
sired a bed, for they were weary with travelling : then Gaius
called, to show then their chamber ; but, said Mercy, ' I will
have them to bed.' So she had them to bed, and they slept
well : but the rest sat up all night ; for Gaius and they were
such suitable company, that they could not tell how to part.
Then after much talk of their Lord, themselves, and their jour-
ney, old Mr. Honest, (he that put forth the riddle to Gaius,)
began to nod. Then said Great- heart, ' What, sir, you begin
to be drowsy ! come, rub up, now here is a riddle for you.'
Then said Mr. Honest, ' Let us hear it.*
Then said Mr. Great-heart,
* He that will kill, rausl first be overcome :
Who live abroad would, first must die at home.'
.' Ha r said Mr. Honest, ' it is a hard one, hard to expound,
and harder to practise. But come, landlord,' said he, ' I will,
if you please, leave my part to you ; do you expound it, and I
will hear what you say.'
' No,' said Gaius, ' it was put to you, and it is expected you
should answer it.' Then said the old gentleman,
* He first by grace- must conquered be.
That sin would mortify :
Who, that he lives, would convince me,
Unto himself must die.'
' It is right,' said Gaius ; * good doctrine and experience
teach this. For, until grace displays itself, and overcomes the
soul with its glory, it is altogether without heart to oppose sin ;
besides, if sin is Satan's cords, by which the soul lies bound,
how should it moke resistance, before it is loosed from that in-
firmity ? (/) Nor will any, that knows either reason or grace,
(e) If our love to sinners be only shown by seeking their spiritual good,
it -.vill be considered as a mere bigoted desire to proselyte them to our
sect or party : but uniform, diligent, and expensive endeavours to relieve
their temporal wants are intelligible to every man, and bring a good re-
port on the profession of the gospel.*
(/) The gracious operations of the Holy Spirit are here meant. These
ovf.-icome our natural pride, love of sin, and aversion from God and reli-
gion ; and then we repent, believe in Christ, are justified by faith, mortify
Min, die to ourselves, and live to God in righteousness and true holiness
I =«• Matt. v. 16.
312 Question proposed by Honest answered,
believe that such a man can be a living monument of grace,
that is a slave to his own corruption. — And now it comes in my
mind I will tell you a story worth the hearing. — There were
two men that went on pilgrimage, the one began when he was
young, the other when he was old ; the young man had strong
corruptions to grapple with, the old man's were weak with the
decays of nature : the young man trode his steps as even as
did the old one, and was every way as light as he : who now,
or which of them, had their graces shining clearest, since both
seemed to be alike V
Hon, The young man's, doubtless. For that which heads
it against the greatest opposition gives best demonstration that
it is strongest ; especially when it also holdeth pace with that
that meets not with half so much ; as to be sure old age does
not. — Besides, I have observed, that old men have blessed
themselves with this mistake ; namely, taking the decays of
nature for a gracious conquest over corruptions, and so have
been apt to beguile themselves. Indeed, old men, that are
gracious, are best able to give advice to ihem that are young,
because they have seen most of the emptiness of things ; but
yet, for an old and a young man to set out both together, the
young one has the advantage of the fairest discovery of a work
of grace within him, though the old man's corruptions are na-
turally the weakest. (^) i
(g-) Old age affords great advantag;es in oyercoming some corrupt pro-
pensities : yet habits of indulgence often more than counterbalance the
decays of nature ; and avarice, suspicion, and peevishness, with other
evils, gather strength as men advance in years. It is theretbre in some
particulars only, that age has the advanta^fe over youth ; and as some old
men imagine that they have renounced sin, because they are no longer
capable of committing the crimes in which they once lived ; so there are
young men, who presume that they shall live to be old, and imagine that
repentance will then be comparatively easy to them : whereas sin, in one
form or other, gathers strength and establishes its dominion, as long as it
is permitted to reign in the soul. The instruction, however, that is here
conveyed, is very important, provided it be properly understood ; for if
we do not estimate the advantages of our situation, we connot determine
how far external amendment results from internal renovation. During
tedious diseases, or in the immediate prospect oi death, men often feel very
indifferent to the world^ set against sin, dismclined to former indulgencies,
and earnest about salvation : yet returning health, business, company,
and temptation, terminate such promising appearances. Many suppose
themselves to be very good tempered, while every one studies to oblige
them; yet provocation excites vehement anger and resentment in the v
breast : nay, riches and honour while at a great distance seem to have no ':
Great-heart Jights giant Slay-good* 3 1 3
Thus they sat talking till break of day. Now when the fa-
mily was up, Christiana bid her son James that he should read
a chapter ; so he read the fifty-third of Isaiah. When he had
done, Mr. Honest asked. Why it was said that the Saviour is
Said to come " out of a dry ground ;*' and also that he had " no
form or comeliness in him ?"
Then said Mr. Great-heart — To the first, I answer, be-
cause the church of the Jews, of which Christ came, had then
lost almost all the sap and spirit of religion. To the second, I
say, the words are spoken in the person of the unbeliever, who,
because they want the eye that can see into our Prince's heart,
therefore they judge of him by the meanness of his outside.
Just like those that know not that precious stones are covered
over with a homely crust ; who, when they have found one,
because they know not what they have found, cast it again
away, as men do a common stone.
- ' Well,' said Gains, * now you are here, and since, as I know,
Mr. Great-heart is good at his weapons, if you please, after we
have refreshed ourselves, we will walk into the fields, to see if
we can do any good. About a mile from hence, there is one
Slay -good, a giant, that does much annoy the King's highway
in these parts ; and I know whereabout his haunt is : he is
master of a number of thieves : it would be well if we could
clear these parts of him.'
So they consented, and went, Mr. Great-heart with his swocd^
helmet, and shield, and the rest with spears and staves.
When they came to the place where he was, they found him
with one Feeble-mind in his hand, whom his servants had
brought unto him, having taken him in the way. Now the gi-
ant was rifling him, with a purpose, after that, to pick his
bones ; for he was of the nature of flesh-eaters.
Well, as soon as he saw Mr. Great-heart and his friends at
tiie mouth of the cave, with their weapons, he demanded what
they wanted,
Gr,'H. We want thee, for we are come to revenge the quar-
rels of the many that thou hast si lin of the Pilgrims, when thou
hast dragged them out of the King's highway ; wherefore come
out of thy cave. — Se he armed himself, and came out ; and to
the battle they went, and fought for above an hour, and then
stood still to take wind.
charms for those, who are powerfully attracted by their maguetical infltt:
ence, when placed within their reach !
Rr 27-
314 Great-heart kills giant Slay-good*
Then said the giant, ' Why are you here on my ground V
Gr.-H, To revenge the blood of Pilgrims, as I also told thee
before. — So Ihey went to it again, and the giant made Mr.
Great-heart give back ; but he came up again, and in the great-
ness of his mind he let fly with such stoutness at the giant's
head and sides, that he made him let his weapon fall out of his
hand ; so he smote and slew him, and cut off his head, and
brought it away to the Inn. He also took Feeble-mind, the
Pilgrim, and brought him with him to his lodgings. When
they were come home, they showed his head to the family, and
set it up. as they had done others before, for a terror to those
that shall attempt to do as he, hereafter, (h)
Then they asked Mr. Feeble-mind, how he fell into his
hands ?
Then said the poor man, ' I am a sickly man, as you see, and
because death did usually once a day knock at my door, I
thought I should never be well at home : so I betook myself to
a Pilgrim's life ; und have travelled hither from the town of
Uncertain, where I and my father were born. I am a man of
no strength at all of body, nor yet of mind ; but would, if I
could, though I can but crawl, spend my life in the Pilgrim's
(Jl) The refreshment of divme consolations, and Christian fellowship, is
intended to prepare us for vig^orousiy maintaining; the good light of faith ;
not only against the enemies of our own souls, but also against the op-
posers of our holy religion, accordiiii? to the talents intrusted to us, and
the duties of our several stations. We are soldiers belonging to one great
army under the command of the Captain of our salvation ; and we ought
to strive against sin, and " contend for the faith once delivered to the
saints," by our profession, example, pruyers, converse, and every other
method authorized by the word of God. All that love the Lord are our
brethren ; and every thing that can mislead, dismay, or hinder any of
them, should be considered as an adversary to the common cause ; and we
should counteract with meekness, but with firmness and decision, all the
endeavours of those, who obstruct men in th<? ways of the Lord, or turn
them aside into by-paths. It does not, however, clearly appear what par-
ticular description of opposers were represented by Slay-good : whether
the author had in view certain selfish and malignant persecutors, who in-
timidated professors by fines and imprisonment, to the hazard of their lives,
or of their souls ; or some plausible heretics, who '•^ taught things which
they ought not, for filthy lucre's sake," to the total ruin of many that seem-
ed hopeful, and the great detriment of others who were weak in faith and
unestablished in judgment. The conflict seems merely to denote the ef-
forts which Christians should make to ])revent tlie effect of such opposition
and delusion, and to remove such occasions of" mischief out of the way ;
as also to show that the strong in alth are peculiarly culled to these ser-
vices, and ought not to shrink from hardship, danger, and suffering, in so
good a cause.
Feeble-mind's account of his pilgnmage. 315
^ay. — When I came at the gate that is at the head of the way,
the Lord of that place did entertain me freely ; neither object-
ed he against my weakly looks, nor against my feeble mind ;
hut gave me such things as were necessary for my journey,
and bid me hope to the end. — When I came to the house of the
Interpreter, I received much kindness there ; and because the
hill of Difficulty was judged too hard for me, I was carried up
that by one of his servants. — Indeed 1 have found much relief
from Pilgrims, though none was willing to go so softly as I am
forced to do : yet still as they came on, the^ bid me be of good
cheer, and said, that it was the will of their Lord, that " com-
fort" should be given *'to the feeble-minded ;"* and so went
on their own pace. — When 1 was come to Assault-lane, then
this giant met with me, and bid me prepare for an encounter ;
but alas ! feeble one that I was ! 1 had more need of a cordial :
so he came up and took me. I conceived he should not kill
me :* also when he had gotten me into his den, since I went not
with him willingly, 1 believed I should come out alive again ;
for I have heard, that not nny Pilgrim, that is taken captive by
violent hands, if he keeps heart-whole towards his Master, is,
by the laws ol Providence, to die by the himd of the enemy.
Robbed I looked to be, and robbed to be sure 1 am ; but I am,
as you see, escaped with life, for the v.'hich I thank my King as
author, and you as the means. Other brunts I also look for ;
but this I have resolved on, to wit, to rnn when I can, to go
when I cannot run, and to creep when i cr.nnot go. As to the
main, 1 thank him that loved me, I -mi fixed : my way is before
me, my mind is beyond the ri?er thnt has no bridge ; though
I am, as you see, but of a feeble mind.' (i)
* 1 Thess. V. 14.
(t) The character of Feeble-mind seen<s to CDmcide in some things with
that of Fearing; and in others with the description of Little-laith. Con-
stitutional timidity and lowness of spirits, arisin;^; from a feeble frame and
frequent sickness, while they are frequently the means ot exciting men to
relio;ion, give also a peculiar cast to their views and the nature of their
profession; tend to hold them under per})etual discourag-ements, and unfit
them for hard and perilous ser voices. This seems implied in the name
given to the native place of Feeble-mind : his uncertainty or hesitation in
his religious profession was the effect of his natural turn of mind, which
was opposite to the sanguine and confidt nt. Yet this timid and discou-
raged irresolution is often connected with evident sincerity and remarka-
ble perseverance in the ways of God. The principal difference between
Feeble-mind and Fearing seems to be this : that the former was more
afraid of opposition, and the latter more doubtful about the event ; which
perhaps may intimate, that Slay-good rather represents persecutors than
deceivers.
31^ J^Qt-right struck dead hy lightning.
Then said Mr. Honest, * Have not you some time ago been
acquainted with one Mr. Fearing, a Pilgrim V
Feebl, Acquainted with him ! yes : he came from the town
of Stupidity, which lies four degrees northward of the city of
Destruction, and as many off of where I was born ; yet we
were well acquainted, for indeed he was my uncle, my father's
brother ; he and 1 have been much of a temper : he was a lit-
tle shorter than I, but yet we were much of a complexion.
Hon, I perceive you know him ; and I am apt to believe
also that you were related one to another, for you have his
whitely look, a cast like his with your eye, and your speech
is much alike.
Feebl. Most have said so that have known us both ; and, be-
sides, what I have read in him, I have for the most part found
in myself.
' Come, sir,' said good Gaius, *be of good cheer ; you are
welcome to me, and to my house, and what thou hast a mind
to, call for freely ; and what thou wouldest have my servants
<]o for thee, they will do it with a ready mind.'
Then said Mr. Feeble-mind, ' i his is an unexpected fa-
vour, and as the sun shining out of a very dark cloud. Did
giant Slay-good intend me this favour when he stopped me,
and resolved to let me go no further ? Did he intend, that af-
ter he had rifled my pocket, I should go to " Gaius mine host ?"
Yet so it is.'
Now just as Mr. Feeble-mind and Gaius were thus in talk,
there comes one running, and called at the door, and told, that
about a mile and a half off there was one Mr. Not-right, a Pil-
grim, struck dead upon the place where he was, with a thun-
derbolt.
' Alas !' said Mr. Feeble-mind, ' is he slain ? He.overtook nie
some days before I came so far as hither, and would be my
company-keeper : he also was with me when Slay -good the
giant took me, but he was nimble of his heels, and escaped :
but, it seems, he escaped to die, and I was took to Uve.' (k)
(k) Here again we meet with a contrast between a feeble believer and
a specious hypocrite. The latter eludes persecution by time-serving, yet
perishes in his sins : the former suffers and trembles, yet hopes ; is deli-
vered and comforted, and finds his trials terminate in his greater advan-
tage. The frequency with which this difference is introduced, and the
variety of character by which it is illustrated, shows us how important
the author deemed it, to warn false professors at the same time that we
comfort the feeble-minded, and to mark as exactly as we can the discrimi- J
aating peculiarities of their aim and experience* M
I
Matthew and Merty are married. 31 1
! What, one would think, doth seek to slay outright,
Ofttimes delivers from the saddest plight.
That very Providence, whose face is death,
Doth ofttimes, to the lowly, iift^ bequeath.
I taken was, he did escape and tiee :
Hands crosa'd gave death to him, and life to me.'
Now about this time Matthew arid Mercy were married : also
6aius gave his daughter Phebe to James, Matthew's brother,
to wife. After which time they staidabout ten days at Gaius's
house ; spending their time, and the season, hke as Pilgrims
used to do.
When they were to depart, Gaius made them a fe^st, and
they did eat ami drink, and were r/ierry. Now the hour was
come that they must be gone ; wheretbre Mr. Great-heart call-
ed for a reckoning. But Gains told him, that at his house it
was not the custom of Pilgrims to p;.y for their entertainment.
He boarded them by the year, hut looked for his pa^ from the
Good Samaritan, who had promised him. at his return, whatso-
ever charge he was ^dt with them, faithfully to repay him.*
Then said Mr. Great- iieart to him, — *' Beloved, thou doest
faithfully whatsoever thou !-oest to the brethren and to stran-
gers, which have borne witness of thy charity before the
church ; whom if thou yet bring forward on their journey, af-
ter a godly sort, thou sh dt do well."!
Then Gains took his leave of them all, and his children, and
particularly of Mr. Feeble-mind : he also gave him something
to drink by the way.
Now Mr. Feeble-mind, when they were going out at tne
door, made as if he intended to linger. The which when Mr.
Great-heart espied, he said, ' Come, Mr. Feeble-mind, pray
do you go along with us, I will be your conductor, and you
shall fare as the rest.'
Feebl. Alas ! I want a suitable companion ; you are all lusty
and strong : but I, as you see, am weak ; I chouse therefore'
rather to come behind, lest by reason of my many infirmities,
I should be both a burden to myself and to you. I am, as 1
said, a man of a weak and a feeble mind, and shall be offended
and made weak at that which others can bear. I shall like no
laughing : I shall like no gay attire : I shall like no unprofita-
ble questions. Nay, £ am so weak a man, as to be offended
with that which others have a liberty to do. I do not know all
* Luke X. 34, 35. t 3 John 5, 6.
27*
Ji8 Great-heart encourages Feehl&-mmd.
the truth : I am a very ignorant Christian man : sometimes, if
I hear some rejoice in the Lord, it troubles me, because I can-
not do so too. It is with me, as it is with a weak man among
the strong, or as a lamp despised. " He that is ready to slip
with his feet, is as a lamp despised in the thought of him that
is at ease ;"* so that I know not what to do.
' But, brother,' said Mr. Great-heart, ' 1 have it in commis-
sion to '* comfort the feeble-minded," and to support the weak.
You must needs go along with us : we will wait for you, we
will lend you our help ;'we will deny ourselves of some things, .
both opinionative and practical, for your sake ; we will not en-
ter into " doubtful disputations" before you ; we will be made
all things to you, rather than you shall be left behind. 't (/)
Now all this while they were at Gaius's door ; and behold,
as they were thus in the heat of their discourse, Mr. Ready-to-
halt came by, with his crutches in his hand, and he also was
going on Pilgrimage. J
Then said Mr. Feeble-mind to him, * How camest thou
hither ? I was but now complaining that 1 had not a suitable
companion ; but thou art according to my wish. Welcome,
welcome, good Mr. Ready-to-halt, 1 hope thou and I may be
some help.'
' I shall be glad of thy company,' said the other ; ^ and good
* Job xii. 5. t Rom. xiv. 1 Cor. viii. ix. 22. % Psa. xxxviii. 17.
(Q Weak believers are conscientious even to scrupulosity : so far from
allowing themselves in the practice of known sin, or the omission of evi-
dent duty, they are prone to abridge themselves in thinj^s which are in-
different ; they often impose rules on themselves which they do not expect
others to observe ; and sometimes are sensible that their uneasiness, at the
liberty used by their^Dretliren, arises from ignorance and low attainments :
and therefore they deem it better to live retired, than to burden others
with their peculiarities, or be grieved with thin-rs which every where
meet their observation. But there are persons, that expect to be encou-
raged as weak believers, who are far removed from such scrupulousness ;
and v.hose weakness consists merely in an inability to maintain an unwa-
vering confidence, while they live in a loose and negligent manner. These
seem more to resemble Not-right than Feeble-mind. They that are in-
deed weak believers, should learn from thia passage, to beware of censori-
ousness, and of making themselves a standard for others : and their stronger
brethren should be reminded not to despise or grieve them, by an inexpe-
dient use of their liberty. (The author, in a marginal note, has marked
Great-heart's answer as a Christian spirit.) They will, however, com-
monly find associates, in some measure of their own turn, who are often
more useful to them, than siich as cannot eiitirely sympathize with their
feelings.
Ready 'to 'halt joins them. 319
Mr. Feeble-mind, rather than we will part, since we are thus
happily met, I will lend thee one of my crutches.'
' Nay,' said he, * though I thank thee for thy good will, I am
not inclined to halt befere I am lame. Howbeit, I think, when
occasion is, it may help me against a dog.'
Ready-to-halt. If either myself or my crutches can do thee a
pleasure, we are both at thy command, good Mr. Feeble-mind.
Thus therefore they went on. Mr. Great-heart and Mr.
Honest went before, Christiana and her children went next,
and Mr. Feeble-mind and iMr. Ready-to-halt came behind with
his crutches. Then said Mr. Honest, 'Pray, sir, now we are
upon the road, tell us pome profitable things of some that have
gone on pilgrimage before us.'
Gr.-H. With a good will. I suppose you have heard how
Christian of old did meet with ApoUyon in the valley of Humi-
liation, and also what hard work he had to go through the val-
ley of the Shadow of Death. Also I think you cannot but have
heard how Faithful was put to it by Madam Wanton, with Adam
the First, with one Discontent, and Shame : four as deceitful
villains as a man can meet with upon the road.
Hon. Yes, I believe I heard of all this : but indeed good
Faithful was hardest put to it with Shame : he was an unweari-
ed one.
Gr.-H, Ay : for as the Pilgrim well said, * He of all men
had the wrong name.'
Hon. But pray, sir, where was it that Christian and Faithful
met Talkative ? that same was a notable one.
Gr.-H. He was a confident fool ; yet many follow his ways.
Hon. He had like to have beguiled Faithful.
Gr.-H. Ay, but Christian put him into a way quickly to fiiid
him out.
Thus they went on till they came to the place where Evan-
gelist met with Christian and Faithful, and prophesied to them
what they should meet with at Vanity-Fair.
Then said their guide, ' Hereabouts did Christian and Faith-
ful meet with Evangelist, who prophesied to them of what trou-
bles they should meet with at Vanity-Fair.'
Hon. Say you so ? I dare say it was a hard chapter that then
he did read unto them, (m)
(m) The near prospect of persecution is formidable even to true be-
lievers, notwithstanding all the encouragements of God's word. It is
therefore very useful to realize such scenes to our minds, and to consider
3^0 FaiihfuVs Suferings, — By-ends^ Instability.
Gr,-H. It was so, but then he gave them encouragement
withal. But what do we talk of them ? they were a couple ol"
lion-like men ; they had s^t their faces like flints. Do not you
remember huw undaunted they were when they stood before
the judge ?
Hon. Well, Faithful bravely su£fered.
Gr.-H. So he did, and as brave things came on't : for Hope-
ful and some others, as the story relates, were converted by
his death.*
Hon, Well, pray go on ; for you are well acquainted with
things.
Gr.-H, Above all that Christian met with after he had pass-
ed through Vanity-Fair, one By-ends was the arch one.
Hon. By-ends ! What was he ?
Gr.'H, A very arch fellow, a downright hypocrite , one
that would be rdigious, which way ever the world went but
so cunning that he would be sure never to lose or to sujSer for
it. He had bis mode of religion for every fresh occasion and
his wife was as good at it as he. He would turn and change
from opinion to opinion ; yea, and plead for so doins: too. But
as fir as 1 could learn, ha came to an ill-end with his by-ends;
nor did 1 ever hear, that riny of his children were ever of any
esteem with any that truly fear God.t
Now by this time they were come within sight of the town,
of Vanity, where Vanity-Fair is kept. So when they saw that
they were so near the town, they consulted with one another
how they should pass through the town : and some said one
thing, and some another. At last Mr. Great-heart said, ' 1 have
as you may understand, often been a conductor of Pilgrim-
through this town : now I am acquainted with one Mr. Mnason,
a Cyprusian by nation, and an old disciple, at who^e house we
may lodge. If you think good,' siiid he, * we will turn in there.'
' Content,' said old Honest ; ' Content,' said Christiana ;
' Content,' said Mr. Feeble-mind ; and so they said all. Now
you must think it was even-tide by that they got to the outside
of the town ; but Mr. Great-heart knew the way to the old
* Part i. p. 107—141. t Part i. p. 142—166.
how we should feel were they actually present ; that we may be pre-
served from self-confidence ; excited to diligence in every thing connected
with the assurance of hope ; put on our guard against every action or en-
gagement which might weaken our confidence in God ; and pray without
ceasing, for that measure of wisdom, fortitude, patience, meekness, faith
and love, which might be sufiicicnt for us, should matters come to the worsh
The Pilgrims are entertained by Mnason, 321
man's house. So thither they came ; and he called at the
door, and the old man within knew his tongue so soon as ever
he heard it : so he opened, and they all came in. Then said
Mnason, their host, * How far have ye come to-day ?' So they
said, ' From the house of Gains our friend.' * I promise you,'
said he, ' you have gone a good stitch ; you may well be wea-
ry ; sit down.' So they sat down.
Then said their guide, * Come, what cheer, good sirs ? I
dare say you are welcome to my friend.'
* I also,' said Mr. Mnason, * do bid you welcome ; and what-
ever you want, do but say, and we will do what we can to get
it for you.
Hon, Our great want, a while since, was harbour and good
company, and now I hope we have both.
Mnas, For harbour, you see what it is ; but for good com-
pany, that will appear in the trial.
' Well,' said Mr. Great-heart, ' will you have the Pilgrims
into their lodging ?'
' I will,' said Mr. Mnason. So he had them to their respec-
tive places ; and also showed them a very fair dining-room,
where they might be, and sup together, until time was come to
go to rest.
Now when they were set in their places, and were a little
cheery after their journey, Mr. Hon'^st asked his landlord, if
there were any store of good people in the town ?
Mnas. We have a few ; for indeed they are but a few, when
compared with them on the other side.
Hon, But how shall we do to see some of them ? for the
sight of good men, to them that are going on pilgrimage, is like
to the appearing of the moon and stars to them that are going
a journey, (n)
Then Mr. Mnason stamped with his foot, and his daughter
Grace came up : so he said unto her, ' Grace, go you, tell my
friends, Mr. Contrite, Mr. Holy-man, Mr. Love-saints, Mr.
Dare-not-lie, and Mr. Penitent, that 1 have a friend or two at
my house, that have a mind this evening to see them.'
So Grace went to call them, and they came ; and, after sa-
lutation made, they sat down together at the table.
- (n) Even in those populous cities, where vanity most prevails, and
.where persecution at ^ome seasons has most raged, a remnant of real
Christians generally reside ; and believers will in everyplace inquire after
such persons and associate with them.*
* Psa, cxix. 63. 1 John iii. 14.
S3 -^
322 They are visited li/Mnchon'^s Friends,
Then said Mr. Mnason, their landlord, * My neighbours, I
have, as you see, a company of strangers come to my house :
they are Pilgrims : they come from afar, and are going to Mount
Zion. But who,' quoth he, ' do you think this is ?' (pointing
his finger at Christiana.) ' It is Christiana, the wife of Chris-
tian, that famous Pilgrim, who, with Faithful his brother, were
so shamefully handled in our town.' — At that they stood amaz-
ed, saying, ' We little thought to see Christiana, when Grace
came to call us : wherefore this is a very comfortable surprise.'
Then they asked her about her welfare, and if these young
men were her husband's sons. And when she had told them
they were, they said, ' The King, whom you love and serve,
make you as your father, and bring you where he is in peace.'
Then Mr. Honest, when they were all sat down, asked Mr
Contrite, and the rest, in what posture their town was at pre-
sent.
Contr. You may be sure we are full of hurry in fair-time. It
is hard keepmg our hearts and spirits in good order, when we
are in a cumbered condition. He that lives in such a place as
this, and that has to do with such as we have, has need of an
item, to caution him to t ike he< d every moment of the day.
Hon. But how are your neiu,hbours now for quietness ?
Contr. They are much more moderate now than formerly.
Yoy know how Christian and Faithful .were used at our town :
but of late, I say, they have been f«r more moderate. I think
the blood of Faithful lieth with load upon them till now ; for
since they burned him, they have been ashamed to burn any
more : in those days we were afraid to walk the streets, but
now we can show our heads. Then the name of a professor
was odious ; now, especially in some parts of our town, (for
you know our town is larg *,) religion is counted honourable.
Then said Mr. Contrite to them, * Pray how fareth it with
3^ou in your pilgrimage ? How stands the country affected to-
wards you ?'
Hon. It happens to us, as it happenetb to way-faring men :
sometimes our way is clean, sometimes foul, sometimes uphill,
sometimes downhill ; we are seldocj at a certainty : the wind
is not always on our backs, nor is every one a friend that we
meet with in the way. We have met with some notable rubs
already : and what are yet behind we know not ; but, for the
most part, we find it true that has been talked of old, — * A good
man must suffer trouble.'
IVhat the Pilgrims had met mth» 353
Contr, You talk of rubs : what rubs have you met withal ?
Hon. Nay, ask Mr. Great-heart, our guide, for he can give
the best account of that.
Gr.-H, We have been beset three or four times already.
First, Christiana and her children were beset with two ruffians,
that they feared would take away their lives. We were beset
with giant Bloody-man, giant Maul, and giant Slay-good. In-
loed we did rather beset the last, than were beset of him.
And tlius it was : after we had been some time at the house of
Gdius mine host, and of the whole church," we were minded
upon a time to take our weapons with us, and so go see if we
:nul(l light upon any of those that were enemies to Pilgrims ;
for we heard that there was a notable one thereabouts. Now
Gains knew his haunt better than I, because he dwelt therea-
bouts : so we looked and looked, till at last we discerned the
mouth of his cave ; then we were glad, and plucked up our
pirits. So we approached up to his den ; and lo, when we
came there, he had dragged, by mere force, into his net, this
poor man, Mr. Feeble-mind, and was about to bring him to his
end. But when he saw us, supposing, as we thought, he had
another prey, he left the poor man in his house, and came out.
So we fell to it full sore, and he lustily laid about him ; but in
conclusion, he was brought down to the ground, and his head
cut off, and set up by the way-side, for a terror to such as
should after practise such ungodliness. That I tell you the
truth, here is the man himself to affirm it, who was as a lamb
taken out of the mouth of the lion.
Then said Mr. Feeble-mind, ' I found this true, to my cost
and comfort : to my cost, when he threatened to pick my bones
every moment ; and to my comfort, when I saw Mr. Great-
heart and his friends, with their weapons, approach so near for
mv deliverance.'
Then said Mr. Holy-man, ' There are two things that they
have need to be possessed of, that go on pilgrimage ; courage,
and an unspotted life. If they have not courage, they can
never hold on their way ; and if their lives be loose, they will
make the very name of a Pilgrim stink.'
Then said Mr. Love-saint, ' I hope this caution is not need-
ful among you : but truly there are many that go upon the
road, that rather declare themselves strangers to pilgrimage,
than strangers and Pilgrims in the earth.
Then said Mr. Dare-n6t-lie, ' It is true, they neither have
324 Occurrences at the town of Vanity*
the Pilgrim's weed, nor the Pilgrim's courage : they go not
uprightly, but all awry, with their feet : one shoe goeth in-
ward, another outward, and their hosen out behind ; here a
rag, and there a rent, to the disparagement of their Lord.'
' These things,' said Mr. Penitent, ' they ought to be trou-
bled for ; nor are the Pilgrims like to have that grace upon
them and their Pilgrim's progress as they desire, until the way
is cleared of such spots and blemishes.'
Thus they sat talking and spending the time until supper was
set upon the table. Unto which they went and refreshed their
weary bodies : so they went to rest. Now they staid in the
Fair a great while, at the house of Mr. Mnason, who, in pro-
cess of time, gave his daughter Grace unto Samuel, Christiana's
son, and his daughter Mariha to Joseph.
The time, as I said, that they lay here was long : for it was
not now as in former times. Wherefore the Pilrgims grew ac-
quainted with many of the good people of the town, and did
them what service they could. Mercy, as she was wont, la-
boured much for the poor ; wherefore their bellies and backs ^
blessed her, and she was there an ornament to her profession.
And, to say the truth for Grace, Phebe, and Martha, they were
all of a very good nature, and did much good in their places.
They were also all of them very fruitful ; so that Christiana's
name, as was said before, was hke to live in the world.
While they lay here, there came a monster out of the woods,
and slew many of the people of the town. It would also carry
away the ir children, and teach them to suck its v/helps. Now
no man in the town durst so much as face this monster ; but all
rcen fled when they heard of the noise of his coming. The
monster was like unto no one beast upon the earth ; its body
v*'as ''like a dragon, and it had seven heads and ten horns."^
It made great havoc of children, and yet it was governed by a
woman. This monster propounded conditions to men ; and
such men as loved their lives more than their souls, accepted
of those conditions.
Now Mr. Great-heart, together with those who came to visit
the Pilgrims at Mr. Mnason's house, entered into a covenant
to go and engage this beast, if perhaps they m.ight deliver the
people of this town from the paws and mouth of this so devour-
ing a serpent.
Then did Mr. Great-heart, Mr. Contrite, Mr. Holy-man,
* Rev. xii. 3.
A moniter does great miscJitef, 325
Mr. Dare-not-lie, and Mr. Penitent, with their weapons, g6
forth to meet him. Now the monster, at first, was very ram-
pant, and looked upon these enemies with great disdain ; but
they so belaboured him, being sturdy men at arms, that they
made him make a retreat : so they came home to Mr. Mnason's
house again.
I he monster, you must know, had his certain seasons to
come out in, and to make his attempts upon the children of the
people of the town ; also these seasons did these valiant wor-
thies watch him in, and did continually assault him ; insomuch
that in process of time he became not only wounded, but lame ;
also he had not made the havoc of the townsmen's children as
formerly he has done. And it is verily believed by some, that
this beast will certainly die of his wounds. This therefore
made Mr. Great-heart and his follows of great fame in this
town ; so that many of the people, that wanted their taste of
things, yet had a reverend esteem and respect for them. Upon
this account therefore it was, that these Pilgrims got not much
hurt here. True, there were some of the baser sort, that
could see no more than a mole, nor understand more than a
beast ; these had no reverence for these men, nor took they
notice of their valour and adventures, (o)
Well, the time drew on that the Pilgrims must go on their
way ; therefore they prepared for their journey. They sent
for their friends ; they conferred with them ; they had some
time set apart therein, to commit each other to the protection
of their Prince. There were again that brought them of such
things as they had, that were fit for the weak and the strong,
for the women and the men, and so laded them with such things
as were necessary.* Then they set forward on their way ;
* Acts xxviii. 10.
(o) This seems to refer to the prevalence of popery for some time before
the revolution in 1688 ; by which many nominal protestants were drawn
aside, and numbers of children educated in the principles of that dark su-
perstition. The favour or frown of the Prince and his party operated so
powerfully, that worldly men in general yielded to the imposition : but
several persons among- the non-conformists, as well as the established
church, did eminent service at that crisis by their preaching and writings,
in exposing the delusions and abominations of that monstrous religion ;
and these endeavours were eventually the means of overturning the plan
formed for the re-establishment of popery in Britian. The disinterested
and bold decided conduct of many dissenters, on this occasion, procured
considerable favour, both to them and their brethren, with the best friends
of the nation : but the prejudices of others prevented them from reaping
ch/ the advantage from it that they ought to have done.
28
'«^
326 Tlie Hill Lucre, and Pillar of Salt.
dnd their friends accompanying them so far as was convenient,
they again committed each other to the protection of their
King, and departed.
They, therefore, that were of the Pilgrims' company, went
on, and Mr. Great-heart went before them. Now the'women
and children, being weakly, they were forced to go as they
could bear ; by this means Mr. Ready-to-halt and Mr. Feeble-
mind had more to sympathize with their condition.
When they were gone from the townsmen, and when their
friends had bid them farewell, they quickly came to the place
where Faithful was put to death : therefore they made a stand,
and thanked Him that had enabled him to bear his cross so
well ; and the rather, because they now found that they had a
benefit by such a man's sufferings as he was. They went on,
therefore, after this, a good way further, talking of Christian
and Faithful ; and how Hopeful joined himself to Christian, af-
ter that Faithful was dead.**
Now they were come up with the hill Lucre, where the sil-
ver mine was, which took Demas off from his pilgrimage, and
into which, as some think. By-ends fell and perished : where-
fore they considered that. But when they were come to the
old monument that stood over against the hill Lucre, to wit, to
the pillar of salt ^ that stood also within view of Sodom, and its
stinking lake,! they marvelled, as did Christian before, that
men of that knowledge and ripeness of wit, as they were,
should be so blind as to turn aside here. Only they consider-
ed again, that nature is not afi<^cted with the harms that others
have met with, especially if that thing, upon which they look,
has an attracting virtue upon the foolish eye.
1 saw now that they went on till they came to the river that
was on this side of the Delectable Mountains ;J to the river
where the tine trees grow on both sides ; and whose leaves, if
taken inwardly, are good against surfeits, § where the meadows
are green all the year long, and v/here they might lie down
safely.
By this river-side, in the meadows, there were cotes and
folds for sheep, a house built for the nourishing and bringing
up of those lambs, the babes of those women that go on pil-
grimage. Also there was here T'ne that was intrusted with
them, who could have compassion, and that could gather those
lambs with bis arm, and carry them in his bosom, and that
* Parti, p. 133. t Part i. p. 148. J Part i. p. 149. { P^a. xxiii.
The Pilgrims go to Doubting Castle, 327
could gently lead those that were with young.* Now to the
care of this Man Christiana admonished her four daughters to
commit their little ones, that by these waters they might be
housed, harboured, succoured, and nourished, and that none of
them might be lacking in time to come. This Man, if any of
them go astray, or be lost, he will bring them again ; he will
also bind up that which was broken, and will strengthen them
that are sick.j Here they will never want meat, drink, and
clothing ; here they will be kept from thieves and robbers ; for
this Man will die before one of those committed to his trust
shall be lost. Besides, here they shall be sure to have good
nurture and admonition ; and shall be taught to walk in right
paths, and that you know is a favour of no small account. (j>)
Also ht-re, as you see, are delicate waters, pleasant meadows,
dainty flowers, variety of trees, and such as bear wholesome
fruit : fruit not like that which Matthew ate of, that fell over
the wall out of Beelzebub's garden ; but fruit that procureth
health where there is none, and that continueth and increaseth
where it is.
So they were content to commit their httle ones to him ; and
that which was also an encouratroment to them so to do was,
for that all this was to be at the charge of the King ; and so
was an hospital to young children and orphans.
Now they went on ; and when they wr-re come to By-path
Meadow, to the stile over which Christian went with his fellow
Hopeful, when they were taken by giant Despair, and put into
Doubting C.istle ; they sat down anfl consulted what was best
to be done ; to wit, now they were so strong, and had got such
f*Heb. V. 2. Isa. Ixiii. t Jer. xxiii. 4. Ezek.xxxiv.il — 16.
(p) Under this emblem we are taught the importance ol rarly recom-
mending our children to the laithful care of the Lord Je5>us, by fervent
prayer, with earnest desires of their eternal good, above all secular advan-
tEj^es whatsoever : consequently we ought to keep them at a distance
from such places, connexions, books, and c'»mpaijieb, as may corrupt their
principles and morals ; to instil such pious instructions a? th^y are capa-
ble of receiving ; to bring them early under the preaching of the gospel
and to the ordinances of Qod ; and to avail ourselves of every help, in
thus ''training them up in the nurture and admonition of the Lord." For
depraved natural propensities, the course of the world, the artifices of Sa-
tan, the inexperience, credulity, and sanguine expectations of youth, the
importance of the case, and the precepts of Scripture, concur in requiring
this conduct of us. Yet, after all, our minds must be anxious about the
event, in proportion a? we value their souls, except as we find relief by
commending them to the faithful care of that tender Shepherd, who "ga-
thers the lambs with his arm, nad carries them in his bosom,"
32» To assault giant Despair.
a man as Mr. Great-heart for their conductor, whether th^y
had not best to make an attempt upon the giant, demolish his
Casfle, and if there were any Pilgrims in it, to set them at li-
berty, before they went any further.* — So one said one thing,
and another said to the contrary. — One questioned if it was
lawful to go upon unconsecrated ground ; another said they
might, provided their end was good. — But Mr. Great-heart said,
' Though that assertion offered last cannot be universally true^
yet I have a commandment to resist sin, to overcome evil, to
fight the good fight of faith : and, I pray, with whom should I
fight this good fight, if not with giant Despair ? I will therefore
attempt the taking away of his life, and the demolishing ot
Doubting-Castle.' ^Then said he, ' Who will go with me ?'
Then said old Honest, ' I will.' ' And so zve will too,' said
Christiana's four sons, Matthew, Samuel, James, and Joseph :
for they were 3^oung men and strong.t
So they left the women on the road, and with them Mr.
Feeble-mind and Mr. Ready-to-halt, with his crutches, to be
their guard, until they came back ; for in that place, though
giant Despair dwells so near, they keeping in the road, '' a lit-
tle child might leui them.'' J
So Mr. Gre it-heart, oh! Honest, and the four young men
went to go up to Doubting-Castle, to look for giant Despair.
When they came at the Caslle-g.ite, they knocked for entrance
with an unu&ual noise. With tli-it the old giant comes to the
gate, and Diffidence his wife follows. Then said he, ' Who and
what is he that is so hardy, as at\er this manner to molest the
giant Despair ?^ Mr. Great-heart replied, ' It is 1, Great-heart,
one of the King of the Celestial Country's conductors of Pil-
grims to their place : and I dem md of thee, that thou open thy
gates for my entrance ; prepare thyself also to fight, for I am
come to take away thy head, and to demolish Doubting-Castle.'
Now giant Despair, because he was a giant, thought no man
could overcome him ; and again, thought he, ' Since heretofore
I have made a conquest of Angt Is, shall Great-heart make me
afraid ?' So he harnessed himself, and went out : he had a cap
of steel upon his head, a bre;ist-plate of fire girded to him, and
he came out m iron shoes, with a great club in his hand. Then
these six men made up to him, and beset him behind and be-
fore : also when Diffidence, the giantess, came up to help him,
old Mr. Honest cut her down at one blow. Then they fought
for their lives, and giant ^Despair was brought down to the
* Part i. p. 154— 162. t IJohn ii. 13, 14. Jlsa. xi.6.
They release two Pilgrims. 3^9
ground, but was very loth to die : he struggled hard, and
hail, as they say, as many lives as a cat ; but Great- heart was
his death ; for he left him not till he had severed his head from
his shoulders.
I hen they fell to demolishing Doubting-Castle, and that you
know might with ease be done, since giant Despair was dead.
They were sev«^n (iays in destroying of that : and in it, of Pil-
grims, they found one Mr. Despondency, almost starved to
death, and one Much-afraid, his daughter ; these two they saved
alive. But it would have made you have wondered to h<ive
seen the de id bodies that lay here and therc^ in the Castle-yard,
and how full of dead men's bones the dungeon was.
When Mr. Great- heart and his companions had performed
this exploit, they took Mr. Despondency, and his daughter
Much- ifr<»id, into their protection ; for they were honest peo-
ple, though they were prisoners in Doubting-Castle, to that
giant Despair. They therefore, I gay, took with them the
head of the giant, (for his body they had buried under a heap
of stones ;) and down to the road and to their companions they
came, and showetl them what they had done. Now when Fee-
ble-mind and Jieady-to-halt saw that it was the head of giant
Despair indeed, they were very jocund and merry. Now
Christiana, if need was, could play upon the viol, and her
daughter Mercy upon the lute: so since they were so merrily
disposed, she played them a lesson, and Ready-to-halt would
dance. iSo he took Despondency's daughter, named Much-
afr lid, by the h md, and to dancing they went, in the road.
True, he could not dance without one crutch in his hand ; but
I promise you, he footed it well : also the girl w;is to be com-
mended, for she answered the music handsomely.
As for Mr. Despondency, the music was not much to him : he
was for feeding rather than dancing ; for that he was almost
starved. So Christiana gave him some of her bottle of spirits,
for present relief, and then prepared him something to eat ;
and in a little time the old gentleman came to himself, and be-
gan to be finely revived.
Now 1 saw in my dream, when all these things were finish-
ed, Mr. Great-heart took the head of giant Despair, and set it
upon a pole by the highway-side right over against the pillar
that Christian erected for a caution to Pilgrims that came after,
to take heed of entering into his grounds, {q)
^ (q The following liaes are here added, as in other places ; —
* Though Doubting-Castlfi be demolished,
T t And Giant Despair too Jias lost his head ; ^ ^^^ '
330 They erect a Monument.
Then he wrote under it, upon a marble stone, these verses
following : —
* This is the head of him, whose name only,
In former time, did Pilgrims terrify.
His C-astle's down, and Ditfidence, his wife,
Brave master Great-heart has bereft of life.
Despondency, his daughter Much-afraid,
Great-heart for them also the man has play'd.
Who hereof doubts, if ht'll but cast his eye
Up hither, may his scruples satisfy.
This head also, when doubtmg cripples dance,
Doth show from fears they have delivei-ance.'
When those men had thus bravely showed themselves against
Sm can rebuild the Castle, maket remain.
And make Despair the Giant live again.' —
Indeed they seem to be much wanted ; for the exploit of destroying
Doubting-Castle, and killing giant Despair, is more liable to exception than
any incident in the whole work. To relieve the minds of such as are dis-
couraged in the path oi duty, or when mquiring the way of salvation, is
doubtless a most important service in tht^ cause oi Christ. This is repre-
sented by the attempts made to mend the road over the Slough of De-
spond ; bat By-path .'.leadow ought to lead to Doubting-Castle ; such in-
ward distresses are as useful to Christians as any other rebukes and cor-
rections, by which their loving Friend readers them v/atchful and circum-
spect. Could this order be reversed, it would jjive strength to tempta-
tion, and tend to embolden men to seek relief from difficulties by trans-
gression-; for the apprehensior! of subsequent distress is one grand pre-
ventive, e-^-en to the bedever, when such measures are suggested to his
mind. Indeed this is the Lord's method of performing his covenant to his
people ; *•■ I will," says he, " put my fear in their hearts, that they shall
not depart from me.'"* If therefore love be not in lively exercise, he has
so ordered it, that /car should intervene, to prevent worse consequences
So that, when believers have not only departed from the way, but have
also fallen asleep on foi bidden ground, their alarms and doubts are salu-
tary, though often groundless and extreme; and should any man, by
preaching or writing, be able to prevent ail the despondings of such per
sons, previous to their repentance and lis happy effects, he would subserve
the design of the tempter, and counteract the Lord's plan. We can, with
propriety, do no more in this case, than encourage the fallen to repent and
seek forgiveness, by the general truths, invitations, and promises of Scrip
ture ; and comfort them, when penitent, by suitable topics, " that they
may not be swallowed up of overmuch sorrow." — But though this part of
the allegory is liable to some objection, or capable of being abused : yet
it is probable, that the author only intended to show, that the labours of
faithful ministers, with the converse and prayers of such believers as are
strong in faith, may be very useful in recovering the fallen, and relievin*
them that are ready to despond ; and of thus preventing the more durable
tu3 dreadful effects of the weak believer's transgressions.
* Jer, xxxii. 40.
The Delectable Mountains. 33 1
Boubting-Castle, and had slain giant Despair, they went for-
ward, and went on till they came to the Delectable Mountains,
where Christian and Hopeful refreshed themselves with the
varieties of the place. They also acquainted themselves with
the Shepherds there, who welcomed them, as they had done
Christian before, unto the Delertcble Mountains.
Now the Shepherds seeing so great a train follow Mr. Great-
heart, (for with him they were well acquainted,) they said unto
him, 'Good sir, you have got a goodly company here ; pray
where did you find all these V
Gr.-H. * First, here is Christiana and her train,
Her son?, and her sons" wives, who, Hke the wain,
Keep by the 1 1^ and uo by compass steer
From sin to jj;i aCe, else they had not been here.
Next, here's old Honest come on pilgrimage ;
Ready-to-halt too, who, I dare engage.
True-hearted is, and so is Feeble-mind,
Who willing was not to be left behind.
Despondency, good man, is coming after,
And so also is Much-afraid, his daughter.
May we have entertainment here, or must
W e further go ? Let's know whereon to trust.'
Then said the Shepherds, ' This is a comfortable company ;
you are welcome to us, for we have for the feeble, as for the
strong : our Prince has an eye to what is done to the least of
these :* therefore infirmity must not be a block to our enter-
tainment.' So they had them to the Palace-doors, and then
said unto them, ' Come in, Mr. Feeble-Mind : come in, Mr.
Ready-to-halt : come in, Mr. Despondency, and Mrs. Much-
afraid his daughter.' 'These, Mr. Great-heart,' said the
Shepherds to the guide,' * we call in by name, for that they are
most siibjiict to draw back ; but as for you, and the rest that
are strong, we leave you to your wonted liberty.' Then said
Mr. Great-heart, ' This day I see that grace doth shine in your
faces, and that you are my Lord's Shepherds indeed ; for that
you have not pushed these diseased neither with side nor
shoulder, but have rather strewed their way into the palace
with flowers as you should.'!
So the feeble and weak went in, and Mr. Great-heart and
the rest did follow. When they were also sat down, the Shep-
herds said to those of the weakest sort, * What is that you
would have ? For,' said they, * all things must be managed
here to the supporting of the weak, as well as the warning of
the unruly.*
* Matt. xxy. 40. t Ezek. xxxiy. 21, '
3^ Mount Marvel, and Mount Innocence,
So they made them a feast of things easy of digestion, and
that were pleasant to the palate and nourishing : the which
when they had received, they went to their rest, each one re-
spectively unto his proper place. When morning was come,
because the mountams were high, and the day clear ; and be-
cause it was the custom of the Shepherds to show the Pilgrims,
before their departure, some rarities ; therefore, after they
were ready, and had refreshed themselves, the Shepherds took
them out into the fields, and showed them first what they had
showed to Christian before.*
Then they had them to some new places The first was
Mount Marvel, where they looked, and beheld a man at a dis-
tance, that tumbled the hills about ||ith words. Then they
asked the Shepherds what that should mean ? So they told
them, that that man was the son of one Mr. Great-grace, [of
whom you read in the first part of the records of the Pilgrim'' s
Progress :] and he is set there to teach Pilgrims how to believe
down, or to tumble out of their ways, what difficulties they
should meet with, by faith. t ' Then,' said Mr. Great-heart,
* 1 know him ; he is a man above many.' (r)
Then they had them to another place, called Mount Inno-
cence : and there they saw a man clothed all in white ; and
two men. Prejudice and Ill-will, continually casting dirt upon
him. Now behold, the dirt, whatsoever they cast at him,
would in a little time fall off ag tin, ami his garment would look
as clear as if no dirt had been cast thereat. Then said the
Pilgrims, * What means this ?' The Shepherds answered,
* This man is named Godlv-man, and the garment is to show
tbeinnocency of his hfe. Now those that throw dirt at him,
* Part i. p. 161—169. t Mark xi. 23, 24.
(r) Faith, exercised on the promise?, and accordio;^ to the warrant of
Scripture, engages the arm of omnipotence on our side, as far as our duty
or advantage, and the glory of God are concerned : so that strong faith
will remove out of our w^y, every obstacle which prevents our progress.
But many things seem to us to be insurmountable obstacles which are
merely trials of our patience, or " thorns in the flesh" to keep us humble ;
no degree of faith therefore will remove them ; but believing prayer will
be answered by inward strength communicated to our souls. " The grace
of the Lord Jesus will be sufficient for us :" " his strength will be perfect-
ed in our weakness :" the burning bush shall not be consumed : and we
shall be enabled to proceed, though in great weakness and with many
trembling apprehensions. On the other hand, real hinderances frequently
obstruct our path, " because of our unbelief," aud because we neglect the
proper means of increasing our faith.*
* Matt. XTii. 19—21.
Mount Chanty* Fool and Wani-wii, 333
are such as hate his well-doing ; but as you see the dirt will
not stick upon his clothes, so it shall be with him that lives
truly innocently in the world. Whoever they be that would
make such men dirty, they labour all in vain ; for God, by
that a little time is spent, will cause that their innocence shall
break forth as the light, and their righteousness as the noon-
day.' {s)
Then they took them, and had them to Mount Charity,
where they showed them a man that had a bundle of cloth lying
before him, out of which he cut coats and garments for the poor
that stood about him ; yet his bundle or roll of cloth was never
the less. Then said they, ' What should this be ?' ' This is,'
said the Shepherds, ' to show you, that he that has a heart to
give of his labour to the poor, shall never want wherewithal.
*' He that watereth, shall be watered himself." And the cake
that the widow gave to the prophet, did not cause that she had
ever the less in her barrel.'
They had them also to the place where they saw one Fool,
and one Want- wit, washing of an Ethiopian, with an intentioa
to make him white ; but the more they washed him, the black-
er he was. Then they asked the Shepherds, what that should
mean ? So they told tfiem, saying, ' Thus shall it be with the
vile person ; all means used to get such a one a good name,
shall in conclusion tend but to make him more abominable.
Thus it was with the Pharisees, and so it shall be with all hy-
pocrites.' ^
Then said Mercy, the wife of Matthew, to Christiana, her
mother, * 1 would, if it might be, see the hole in the hill, or
that commonly called the by-way to hell.' So her mother
brake her mind to the Shepherds * Then they went to the
door ; (it was on the side of a hill ;) and they opened it. and
bid Mercy hearken a while. So she hearkened, and heard one
* Part 1. p. 67. 68.
(«) This and the subsequent emblems are sufficiently explained^ and
only require to be duly considered with reference to their practical im-
port. It may, however, be observed, \hat some godly men have been du-
rably suspected of crimes charged upon them by prejudiced persons, of
which they are entirely mnocent : ynt, perhaps, this will be found to have
originated from some misconduct in other respects, or from want of cir-
cumspection in " avoiding the appearance of evil :" so that the general
rule may be allowed to be valid ; and they who feel themselves to be ex-
ceptions to it will do well to examine whether they have not, by indiscre-
tion, at least, exposed themselves to this painful trial. I apprehend most
of us have cause enough in this respect for humiliatioii and patience.
334 The wonderful Looking-glass.
saying, ' Cursed be my father, for holding of my feet back from
the way of peace and life :' And another said, ' O that 1 had
been torn in pieces, before I had, to save my life, lost my soull'
And another said, 'If I were to live again, how would 1 deny
mvself, rather th.m come to this place !' Then there was as if
the very earth groaned and quaked under the feet of this young
woman for fear ; so she looked white, and came trembling
away, saying, ' Blessed be he and she that is delivered from
this place.'
Now when the Shepherds had shown them all these things,
then they had them back to the palace, and entertained them
with what the house would afford : but Mercy being a young
and breeding woman, longed for something that she saw there,
but was ashamed to ask. Her mother-in-law then asked her
what she niled ? for she looked as one not well. Then said
Mercy, * There is a looking-glass hangs up in the dining-room,
off which I cannot take my mind ; if therefore I have it not, I
think I shall miscarry. Then said her mother, ' I will mention
thy wants to the Shepherds, aad they will not deny it thee.'
But she said, ' I am ashamed that these men should know that
I lonjied.' ' N<iy, my daughter,' said she, ' it is no shame, but
a virtue, to long tor such a thing as thtit.' So Mercy said,
* Then, mother, if you please, ask the Shepherds if they are
willing to sell it.'
Now the glass was one of a thousand. It would present a
man, one way, with his own features exactly ; and turn it but
another way, and it would show one the very face and simili-
tude of the Prince of the Pilgrims himself. Yes, I have talked
with them that can tell, md they have said, that they have seen
the very crown of thorns upon his he.id, by looking in that
glass ; they have therein also seen the holes in his hands, in
his feet, and his side. Yea, such an excellency is there in
that gl >ss, that it will show him to one where they have a mind
to see him ; whether living or dend, whether in earth or in
henven ; whether in a state of humiliation, or in his exaltation ;
whether coming to suffer, or coming to reign.*
Christiana therefore went to the Shepherds apart, (now the
names ofthe Shepherds were Knowledge, Experience, VVat«h-
ful, and Sincere,!; and said unto them, ' There is one of my
daughters, a breeding woman, that, 1 think, doth long for some-
* James i. 23,^25 1 Cor. xiii . 2 Cor. iii. 18. t Part i. p. 165.
Presents made to the Pilgrims. S3S
tiling that 'she hath seen in* this house, and she thinks she shall
miscarry, if she should by you be denied.'
Exper. Call her, call her ; she shall assuredly have what we
can help her to. — So they called her, and said to her, ' Mercy,
what is that thing thou wouldst have ?* Then she blushed, and
said, ' The great glass that hangs up in the dining-room.' So
Sincere rwn and fetched it, .md with a joyful consent it was giv-
en her. Then she bowed her head, and gave thanks, and said,
* By this I know that I have obtained favour in your eyes.' {t)
I'hey also gave to the other young wofeien such things as
they desired, and to their husbands great commendations, for
that they had joined with Mr. Great-heart, to the slaying of gi-
ant Despair, and the demohshing of Doubting-Castle. — About
Christiana's neck the Shepherds put a br icelet, and so they did
about the necks of her four daughters ; also they put ear-rings
in their ears, andjewels on their foreheads.
When they were minded to go hence, they let them go in
peace, but give not to them those certain cautions w^hich before
were given to Christim and his companion. The reason was,
for that these had Great-heart to be their guide, who was one
that was well acquainted with things, and so could give them
their cautions more seasonable ; to wit, even then when the
dansjer was nigh the approaching. What cautions Christian and
his companion had received of the. Shepherds,* they had also
lost by that th • time was come that they had need to put them
in practice. Wherefore, here was the advantage that this com-
pany had over the other, (u)
* Parti, p. 169.
(f) The Holy Scriptures, revealing to us the mysteries and perfectioua
of God, showing us our own real character and condition, and discorering;
Christ and his salvation to otir souls, are represented under this emblem.
F.very true believer longs to be more completely acquainted with them
from day to day, and to look into them continuEllly.
(u) The author embraces every opportunity of pointing out the im-
portant advantages of the pastoral office, when faithfully executed ; by
which he meant the regular care of a stated ministet' over a company of
professed Christians who are his peculiar charge, have voluntarily placed
t!ie;n£elves under his instruction?, seek counsel from him in all their diffi-
culties, anl pay regard to his f)rivate admonitions; being convinced that
he uprightly seeks their spiritual vvelfare, and is capable of promoting it.
Nothing so much tends to the establishment and consistent conduct of be-
lievers, or Ihe perniamnt success of the gospel, as a proper reciprocal at-
tention of pastors and their flocks to each other. A general way of preach-
ing and hearing, \^th little or no connexion, cordial, unreserved inter-
course, or even acquaintance, between ministers and their congregations ;
3J6 Turn-a'ssayi of Apcsiasy.
From hence they went on singing, and they said,—
' Behold, how fitly are the Tables set
For their relief that Pilgrims are become,
And how they us receive without one let,
That make the other life the mark and home.
What novelties they have, to us they give,
That we, though Pilgrims, joyful lives may\ive.
They do upon us, too, such things bestow,
That show we Pilgrims are, where'er we go.'
When they were gone from the Shepherds, they quickly
Game to the place where Christian met with one Turn-.iw.iy,
that dwelt in the town of Apostasy.^ Wherefore of him Mr.
Great-heart, their guide, did now put them in mind, saying,
* This is the place where Christian met with one Turn-away,
who carried with him the character of his rebellion at his back.
And this I have to say concerning this man ; — he would heark-
en to no counsel, but, once a falling, persuasion could not stop
him. When he came to the place where the Cross and the
Sepulchre was, he did miet with one that bid him look there,
but he gnashed with his teeth, and stamped, and said, he was
resolved to go back to his o^n town. Before he came to the
gate, he met with Evangelist, who offered to lay hands on him
to turn him into the way again. But this Turn-away resisted
him, and having done much despite unto him, h^got away over
the wall, and so escaped his hand.'
Then they went on : and, just at the place where Little-
faith formerly was robbed, there stood a man with his sword
t Part i. p 148.
with continual changes from one place to another, may tend to spread a
superficial knowledge of evan=(elical truth more widely: but, through the
want of seasonable reproof, counsel, encouragement, or admonition, the
general directions delivered from the pulpit will seldom be recollected
when they are most wanted. Hence it is, that professors so often miss
their way, are taken in the Flatterer's net, and fall asleep on the Enchant-
ed Ground : and h m:thful guide, ever at hand, to give the caution or di-
rection at the time, is the proper remedy, for which no adequate substi-
tute can be found. But, as it is much easier to preach at large on general
topics, and. after a few sermons delivered in one congregation, to go over
the same ground again in another place ; than to perform duly the several
parts of the arduous ofiice, which is sustained by the stated pastor of a re-
gular congregation : and as it is far mor-^ agreeable fo nature, to be ex-
empted from private admonitions, than to 'e troubled with them, it may
be feared, that this important subject will not at present be duly attend-
ed to.
Valiant'for 'truth's victory over three assailants. 337
drawn, and his face all bloody. Then said Mr. Great-heart,
* What art thou ?' The man made answer, saying, * I am one
whose name is Valiant-for-truth ; I am a Pilrgim, and am going
to the Celestial City. Now, as I was in my way, there were
three men that did beset me, and propounded unto me these
three things : — Whether I would become one of them ? — Or
go back from whence I came ? — Or die upon the place ? To
the first I answered, I had been a true man a long season, and
therefore it could not be expected that I now should cast in my
lot with thieves.* Then they demanded what 1 would say to
the second. So I told them the place from whence I came,
had I not found incommodity there, I had not forsaken it at all ;
but finding it altogether unsuitable to me, and very unprofitable
for me, I forsook it for this way. Then they asked me what I
said to the third ? And i told them, Mylife cost more dear far,
than that I should lightly give it away : Besides, you have no-
thing to do to put things to my choice ; wherefore at your
peril be it if you meddle. Then these three, to wit. Wild-head,
Inconsiderate, and Pragmatick, drew upon me, and I also drew
upon them. So we fell to it, one against three, for the space
of three hours. They have left upon me, as you see, some of
the marks of their valour, and have also carried away with
them some of mine. They are but just now gone : I suppose
they might, as the saying is, hear your horse dash, and so they
betook themselves to flight, (w)
* Prov. i. 10—19
{w) From the names given to the opponents, with whom this Pilgrim
fought, we may infer, that the author meant to represent by them certain
wild enthusiasts, who, not having ever duly considered any religious sub-
ject, officiously intrude themselves in the waj ol professors ; to perplex
their minds, and persuade them, that unless they adopt their reveries or
superstitions, they cannot be saved. An ungovernable imagination, a
mind incapable of sober reflection, and a dogmatizing spirit, characterize
these enemies of the truth : they assa,ult religious persons with specious
reasonmgs, cavilling objections, confident assertions, hitter reproaches,
proud boastings, sarcastical censures, and rash judgments : they endeavour
to draw them over to their party, or to drive them from attending to re-
ligion at all ; or to terrify them with the fears of damnation, in their pre-
sent endeavours to serve God, and find his salvation. Whatever company
of persons we suppose that the author had in view, we may learn from
the passage what our strength, nope, and conduct ought to be, when we
are thus assaulted. The word o^ God, used in faith, and with fervent and
persevering prayer, will enable us at length to silence such dangerous as-
Sadaots : and if wp be valiant for the t' uth^ and meekly contend for it,
amidst revilings, menaces, and contempt., wr may hope to confirm others
also, and to promote the common cause.
Ww 29
338 He shows how he left Dark-land,
Gr,-H, But here was great odds, three against one.
VaL 'Tis true ; but little or more are nothing to him that
has the truth on his side. '* Though an host should encamp
against me," said one, " my heart shall not fear : thougii war
shall rise against me, in this will I be confident." ' Besides,'
said he, ' I ha\ e read in some records, that one man has fought
an army : and how many did Samson slay with the jaw-bone
of an ass ?'
Then said the guide, ' Why did you not cry out, that some
might have come in for your succour ?'
VaL So I did to my King, who I knew could hear me, and
afford invisible help, and that was enough for me.
Then said Great-heart to Mr. Vahant-for-truth, * Thou hast
worthily behaved thyself; let me see thy sword.' So he show-
ed it him. When he had taken it into his hand, and looked
thereon a while, he said, 'Ha! it is a right Jerusalem blade.'
Val. It is so. Let a man have one of these blades, with a
hand to wield it, and skill to use it, and he may venture upon
an angel with it. He need not fear its holding, if he can but
tell how to lay on. Its edge will never blunt. It will cut flesh
and bones, and soul and spirit and all.
Gr,-H. But you fought a great while ; I wonder you was not
weary.
Val. I fought till my sword did cleave to my hand, and then
they were joined together, as if a sword grew out of my arm ;
and when the blood run through my fingers, then I fought with
most courage.
Gr.-H. Thou hast done well ; thou hast '* resisted unto
blood, striving against sin ;" thou shalt abide by us, come in
and go out with us, for we are th}^ companions.
Then they took him and washed his wounds, and gave him
of what they had to refresh him ; and so they went together.
Now as they went on, because Mr. Great-heart was delighted
in him, (for he loved one greatly that he found to be a man of
his hands ;) and becc^use there were in company them that were
feeble and weak, therefore he questioned with him about many
things; as first, what countryman he was ?
VaL I am of Dark -land, for there 1 was born, and there my
father and mother are still.
' Dark-1 md !' said the Guide : ' doth not that lie on the same
coast with the city of Destruction ?'
VaL Yes, it doth. Now tiiat which caused me to come on
pilgrimage, was this : We had Mr. Tell-true come into our
Knowledge of each other in glory. 32tB
parts, and he told it about what Christian had done, that went
from the city of Destruction ; namely, how he had forsaken
his wife and children, and had betaken himself to a Pilgrim's
life. It was also confidently reported, how he had killed a
serpent, that did come out to resist him in his journey ; and
how he got through to whither he intended. It was also told,
what w^elcome he had to all his Lord's lodgings, especially when
he came to the gates of the Celestial City ; for there, said the
man, he was received with sound of trumpet, by a company of
Shining Ones. He told it also, how all the bells in the City did
ring for joy at his reception, aad what golden garments he was
clothed with ; with niany other things that now I shall forbear
to relate. In a word, that man so told the story of Christian
and his travels, that my heart fell into a burning heat to be
gone after him : nor could ftther or mother stay me. So 1 got
from them, and am come thus far on my way. ^
Gr,'IL You came in at the gate, did you not?
VaL Yes, yes ; for the same man also told us, that all would
be nothing, if we did not begin to enter this way at the gate.
' Look you,' said the guide to Christiana, ' the pilgrimage of
3^our husband, and what he has gotten thereby, is spread abroad
far and near.'
VaL VVhy, is this Christian's wife ?
Gr.-H, Yes, that it is ; and these are also her four sons.
Val. What I and going on pilgrimage too ?
Gr,-H. Yes, verily, they are following after.
Val. It glads me at heart ; good man, how joyful will he be,,
when he shall see them, that would not go with him, to enter
before him in at the gates into the Celestid City !.
Gr.-H. Without doubt it will be a comfort to him ; for, next
to the joy of seeing himself there, it will be a joy to meet there
his wife and children.
Val. But, now you are upon that, pray let me hear your
opinion about it. Some make a question whether we shall
know one another when we are there.
Gr.-H. Do they think they shall know themselves then, or
that they shall rejoice to see themselves in that bliss ? And if
they think they sh ill know and do these, why not know others,
and rejoice in their welfare also ? Again, since relations are
our second self, though that state will be dissolved, y*^t why
may it not be rationally concluded that we shall be more glad
to see them there, than to see they are wanting ?
340 Objections against a pilgrim's life.
Val, Well, I perceive whereabouts you are as to this. Hay^
you any more things to ask me about my beginning to come on
pilgrimage ?
Gr.-H. Yes ; was your father and mother willing that you
should become a Pilgrim ?
VaL Oh no 1 they used all means imaginable to persuade me
to stay at home.
Gr.-H, What could they say against it ?
Val. They said, it was an idle life ; and, if I myself were
not inclined to sloth and laziness, I would never countenance
a Pilgrim's condition, (.r)
Gr.-H. And what did they say else ?
Val. Why, they told me that it was a dangerous way : yea,
the most dangerous way in the world, say they, is that which
the Pilgrims go.
Gr.-H. Did they show you wherein this way is dangerous ?
Val. Yes ; and that in many particulars.
Gr.-H. Name some of them.
Val. They told me of the Slough of Despond, where Chris-
tian was well nigh smothered. They told me, that there were
archers standing ready in Beelzebub's Castle, to shoot them
who should knock at the Wicket gate for entrance. They told
me also of the vvood and dark mountains, of the hill Difficulty,
of th( lions ; and also of the three giants, Bloody-man, MhuI,
and Si y-good : they said, moreover, that there was a foul fiend
(x) This hath been the reproach cast on reliafion m every age. Pha-
raoh said to Moses and the Israelites, •' Y'^* are idle, ye are idle ; thereJore
ye say, let us go and do sacrifice to the Lord." Men naturally imagine,
that time spent in the immediate service of God is wastf^d : should a
Christian Iheretbre employ as many hour? every week, m reading the
Scn[)tures, m secret and social prayer, m pious discourse, and m attendmg
on public ordinances, as his neighbour devotes to amusement and sen.'-ual
indulgence ; an outcry .ould Sjeedily be made, about his idling away his
time, and being in ti^.e way to beggar his lamily I As this must be expect-
ed, li behooves all believers to avoid every appearance of evil, and by ex-
emplary diligence in their proper employments, a careful redemption of
time, a prudent frugality in their expensps, and a good management of all
their affairs, to "put to silence the ignorance of loolish men." For there
are too many favourers of the gospel, who give plausibility to these slan-
ders, by r'lnning from place to j>lace, that they may hear every new
preacher ; whih the duty of the family, and of their station in the com-
munity is miserably neglected. They "walk disorderly, working not at
all, but are busy-bodies :" from these we ought to withdraw, and against
such professors we should protest : lor they are " ever learning, but never
able to come to the knowledge of the truth."
Gr.-H, and Valiant-for-truili discourse, J41
haunted the valley of Humiliation ; and that Christian was by
him almost bereft of Ufe. Besides, said they, you must go over
the valley of the Shadow of Death, where the hobgoblins are,
where the light is darkness, where the way is full of snares,
pits, traps, and gins. — They told me also of giant Despair, of
Doubting-Castle, and of the ruin that the Pilgrims met with
there. Further, they said I must go over the Enchanted
Ground, which was dangerous. And that after all this, 1 should
find a river over which I should find no bridge ; and that that
river did he betwixt me and the Celestial Country.
Gr,'H. And was this all ?
Val. No ; they also told me, that this way was full of de-
ceivers ; and of persons that lay in wait there, to turn good
men out of their path.
Gr.'H, But how did they m;dve that out ?
FaL They told me that Mr. VVorldly-wiseman did lie there
in wait to deceive. They also s>iid, that there was Formality
and Hypocrisy continually on the road. They said also,, that
By-ends, Talkative, or Demas, would go near to gather me up :
that the Flatterer would catch m^ in his net ; or that, with
greer\-headed Ignorance, I would presume to go on to the gate,
from whence he ivas sent back to the hole, that was in the side
of the hill, and made to go the by-way to hell.
Gr.'H, I promise you, this was enough to discourage thee.
But did they make an end there ?
VaL No, stay. They told me also of many that tried that^
way of old, and that had gone a great way therein, to se^ if they
could find something of the glory then, that so many had so
much talked of from time to time : and how they came back
again, and befooled themselves for setting a. foot out of doors
in that path ; to the satisfaction of the country. And they
named several that did so, as Obstinate and Phable, Mistrust
and Timorous, I urn-away and old Atheist, with several more ;
who they said, had some of them gone far to see what they
could find ; but not one of them found so much advantage by
going, as amounted to the weight of a feather, (jf)
(y) Worldly people, in opposing the gospel, descant abundantly on the
folly and hypocrisy of religious persons ; they pick up every vague report
that they hear to their disadvantage, and narrowly watch for the halting
of such as they are acquainted with ; and then they form general conclu-
sions, from a few particular, distorted, and uncertain stories ! Thus they
endeavour to prove, that there is no reality in religion, that it is impossi-
ble to find the way to heaven, and that it is better to be quiet than to be-
29*
34 i Gr.'H. and ValianUf or -truth discourse,
Gr,'H. Said they any thing more to discourage you ?
Val. Yes ; they told me of one Mr. Fearing, who was a Pil-
grim ; and how he found his way so sohtary, that he neyer had
a comfortable hour therein : also that Mr. Despondency had
like to have been starved therein : yea, and also (which I had
almost forgot) Christian himself, about whom there has been
such a noise, after all his ventures for a Celestial Crown, was
certainly drowned in the black river, and never went a foot fur-
ther, however it was smothered up.
Gr,-H. And did none of these things discourage you ?
Val, No ; they seemed as so many nothings to me.
Gr.'H. How came' that about ?
Val. Why, I still beUeved what Mr. Tell-true had said, and
that carried me beyond them all.
Gr.'H. Then this was your victory, even your faith ?
Val. It was so : I believed, and therefore came put, got into
the way, fought all that set themselves against me, and, by be-
lieving, am come to this place.
* Who would true valour see
Let him come hither ;
One here will constant Ije,
Come wind, come weather ;
There's no discouragement
Shall make him once relent
His first avow'd intent
To be a Pilgrim.
Whoso beset him round
With dismal stories,
Do but themselves confoundi
His strength the more is.
No lion can him fright ;
He'll with a giant fight
But he will have a right
To be a Pilgrim.
stow pains to no purpose. This frivolous sophistry is frequently employ-
ed, after all other arguments have been silenced. — But it is vain to deny
the existence of hypocrites and deceivers ; or to excuse the evils to which
they object : on the contrary, we should allow these representations, as
far as tliere is any appearance of truth in them ; and then show that this
teaches us to beware lest we be deceived, and to try every doctrine by
the touchstone of God's word ; that counterfeits prove the value of the
thing counterfeited ; that we should learn to distinguish between the pre-
■z iou3 and the vile ; and, finally, that while danger may attead a religioui
rMofcssion, irreligiou ensures destruction.
Dangers of the Enchanted Ground. 343
Hobgoblin nor foul fiend
Can daunt his spirit ;
He knows, he at the end
Shall life inherit.
Then, fancies, fly away,
He'll not fear what men say,
He'll labour night and day
To be a Pilgrim.
By this time, they were got to the Enchanted Ground, where
the air natur;illy tended to make one <lrowsy :* and that place
was all grown over with briers and thorns, excepting here and
there, where was an Ench mted Arbour, upon which if a man
sits, or in which if a mm sleeps, 'tis a question, say some, whe-
ther ever he shall rise or wake .giin in this world. Over this
forest therefore the^ went, both one and another ; and Mr.
Great-heart went before, for that he was the guide, and Mr.
Valiant-for-iruth came behind, being rear-guard ; for fear lest
perad venture some fiend, or dragon, o? giant, or thief, should
fall upon their rear, »nd so do mischief They went on here,
each man with his sword drawn m his hand, for they knew it
was a dangerous place. Also they cheered up one another, as
well as they could ; Feeble-mind, Mr. Great-heart commanded,
should come up after him, and Mr. Despondency was under
the eye of Mr. Valiant-for-truth.
Now they had not gone far, but a great mist and darkness fell
upon them all ; so that they could scarce, for a great while, -
one see the other : wherefore th'^y were forced, for some time,
to feel for one another by wonls, for they walked not by sight.
But any one must think, that here was but sorry going tor the
best of them all ; but how much the worse was it for the wo-
men and children, who both of feet and heart also were but
tender ! Yet nevertheless so it was, that through the encou-
raging words of him that led in the front, and of him that
brought them up behind, they made a pretty good shift to wag
along.
The way was also here very wearisome, through dirt and
flabbiness. Nor was there, on all this ground, so much as one
inn or victualling-house, wherein to refresh the feebler sort.
Here therefore was grunting, and puffing, and sighing ; while
one tumbled over a bush, another sticks fast in the dirt ; and
the children, some of them lost their shoes in the mire ; while
t)ne cries out, ' I am down ;* and another, * Ho, where are you V
* Parti, p. 184—192.
344 They come to an Arhour.
And a third, ' The bushes have got such fast hold on me, I
think I cannot get away from them.'
Then they came to an arbour, warm, and promising much
refreshing to the Pilgrims : for it was finely wrought above-
head, beautified with greens, furnished with benches and set-
tles. It had in it a soft couch, where the weary might lean.
This, you must think, all things considered, was tempting ; for
the Pilgrims already began to be foiled with the badness of the
w.ij ; but there was not one of .them that made so much as a
mvjtion to stop there. Yea, for aught I could perceive, they
continually gave so good heed to the advice of their guide ; and
he did so faithfully tell them of dangers, and of the nature of
d:ingers, when they were at them, that usually, when they
were nearest to them, they did most pluck up their spirits,
and hearten one another to deny flie flesh. — The arbour was
called the Slothful's Friend, on purpose to allure, if it might
be, some of the Pilgrims there to take up their rest wben
weary. {2)
1 saw then in my dream, that they went on in this their soli-
(s) This view, of the Enchanted Graund seems to vary from that which
LIS been considered in the First Part. The circumstances of believers
who are deeply engaged in business, and constrained to spend much time
amono^ worldly people, may here be particularly intended. This may
?ometim^-3 be unavoidable ; but it is enchanted ground : many professor?,
fascinated by the advantages and connexions thus presented to them, fall
asleeji, and wake no more : and others are entangled by those thorns and
briars, which " choka the word, and render it unfruitful." The more
soothing the scene the greater the danger, and the more urgent need is
there for watchfulness and circumspection : the more vigilant believers are,
the greater uneasiness will such scenes occasion them ; as they v ill be so
long out of their proper element : and the weaker and more unestablished
men are, the more apt will they be, in such circumsiances, to yield to dis-
couragement. The society and counsel of faithful ministers and Christian
friends may help ihem to get on : but they will often feel that their path
is miry and slippery, entangling and perplexmg, dark and wearisome to
heir souls. Yet if this be the case, their sighs, complaints, and" prayers»
re hopeful symptoms : but when worldly employments and connexion?,
v.hich perhaps at first were*in a s-nse unavoidable, induce prosperity; and
men seek comfort /rom this prosj;erny, instead of considering it as a snare
or burden, or improving it as a talent; then the professor falls asleep in
the enchanted arbour. It behooves, however, all who love their souls, to
shun that hurry of business, and multiplicity of affairs and projects, into
which many are betrayed by degrees, in order to supply increasing ex-
penses, that might be avoided by strict frugality and more moderate de-
sires : for these things lade the soul with thick clay ; are a heavy weight
to the most upright ; render a man's way doubtful and joytess j and" drown
many in destruction and perdition."
Great-heart consults his Map, ^40
tary ground, till they came to a place at which a man is apt to
lose his way. Now, though, when it was light, their guide
could well enough tell how to miss those ways that led wrong,
yet in the dark he was put to a stand : but he had in his pocket
a map of all ways leading to or from the Celestial City ; where-
fore he struck a light (for he never goes also without his
tinder-box,) and takes a view of his book or map, which bids
him be careful in th it pi ice to turn to the right-hand. And
had he not here been cireful to luok in his map, they had in
all probability been smothered in the mud ; for just a little be-
fore them, and that at the end of the cleanest way too, was a
pit, none knows how deep, full of nothing but mud, there made
on purpose to destroy the Pilgrims in.
Then thought I with myself, who, that goeth on pilgrimage,
but would have one of these maps about him, that he may look
when he is at a stand, which is the way he must take, (a)
They went on, then, in this Enchanted Ground, till they
came to where there was another arbour, and it was built by
the highway-side. And in that arbour there lay two men,
whose names were Heedless and Too-bold. These two went
thus far on pilgrimctge ; but here, being wearied with their
journey, sat down to rest themselves, and so fell f^st asleep.
"When the Pilgrims saw them, they i-stood still, and shook their
he ids ; for they knew that the sleep ts were in a pitiiul case.
Then they consulted what to do, whether to go on, .;nd leave
them in their sleep, or step to thein and try to awake them.
So they concluded to go to th^^m and awake them ; that is, if
they could ; but with this caution, namely, to take heed that
themselves did not sit down,' nor embrace the offered benefit
of that arbour. .
So they went m, and spake to the men, and called each by
his name, (for the guide, it seems, did know them,) but there
was no voice, nor answer. Then the guicie did shake them, and
do what he could to disturb them. Then said one of them, " I
will pay you when I take my money.' At which the guide
shook his head. * 1 will fight so long as I can hold my sword in
(a) This emblem inculcates tlie duty oi constant attention to the pre"
cepts and counsels of Scripture, as well as reliance on its promises ; and of
an habitual api)iication to the Lord by prayer, to teach us the true mean-
ing nf his word, that we may learn the way of peace and safely, in the
most difficult ami doubtful cases ; and the advantage of consulting such
ministers, as are -lopt experienced in the ways of God, and most conver-
eant with his sacr' •■ .trades.
346 27ic Pilgrim^ s press forward,
my hand,' said the other. At that one of the children laughed.
Then said Christiana, ' Whal is the meaning of this ?' Then
the guide said, " They talk in their sleep ; if you do strike
them, or beat thorn, or whatever else you do unto them, they
will answer you Jifter this fashion ; or, as one of them said in
old time, when the waves of the sea did beat upon him, and he
slept as one upon the mast of a ship, '' When I do awake, I
will seek it yet again."* You know, when men talk in their
sleep, they say any thing, but their words are not governed
either by faith or reason. There is an incoherency in their
words now ; even as there w s before, betwixt their going on
pilgrimage and their sitting down here. This then is the mis-
chief on't, when heedless ones go on pilgrimage ; twenty to one
but they are served thus. For this Enchanted Ground is one
of the last refuges that the er; my to Pilgrims has ; wherefore
it is, as you see, placed almost at the end of the way, and so it
standeth against us with the more advantage. ' For when,'
thinks the enemy, ' will these fools be so desirous to sit down,
as when they are we .ry ? And at what time so likely to be
weary, as when they r.re almost at their journey's end V There-
fore it is, I say, that the Enchanted Ground is placed so nigh
to the Land of Beulah, and so n^ar the end of their race.
Wherefore let Pilgrims look to themselves, lest it happen to
them as it has done to these, that as you see, are fallen asleep,
lid none can awake them.' (b)
Then the Pilgrims desired, with trembling, to go forward :
only they prayed their guide to strike a light, that they might
go the rest of the way by the help of the light of a lantern. So
* Prov. xxij!. 34, 35.
(b) Such men as take up a profession of the gfospel, in a heedless man-
ner, and proceed with an overbearing confidence, the result of pride and
jgnoranrp, may long maintain a form ot ^■odline?3, though \i be a weari-
ness to them : but after a time they wi'i gradually be drawn back into the
world, retaming nothin^r of their t r>ligion, excef.t certain distorted doc-
trinal notions. They find excuses for their conduct from false maxims,
and bad exar-iples ; they fall asleep lu the arms of worldly prosperity ;
nothin... can nwaken them to fear, or self-suspicion ; but they will, as it
AVfre, talk in their sleep about religion, in so incoherent a manner, as to
xcitp the laughter of children ; while they who understand the case will
wad their deplorable delusion. Such awful examples should excite us
lO redoubled diliirence, in searchin*^ the Scriptures, and m prayer; lest we
too should be overcome with a destructivf- sleep, and perish in this fasci-
nating way. For scenes of worldly prosperity have detected the hypo-
crisy of many, who have long perievered in an unsuspected profession,
amidst difficulties and trials.
They find Standfast on his knees, 347
he struck a light, and they went by the help of that through the
rest of this way, though the darkness was very great.*
But the children began to be sorely weary ; and they cried
out unto him that loveth Pilgrims, to make their way more
Comfortable. So by that they had gone a little further, a wind
arose, that drove away the fog ; so the air became more clear.
Yet they were not olf, by much, of the Enchanted Ground, but
only now they could see one another better, and aiso the way
wherein they should walk.
Now when they were almost at the end of this Ground, they '
perceived, that a little before them was a solemn noise of one
that was much concerned. So they went on, and looked before
them : and behold they saw, as they thought, a man upon his
knees, with hands and eyes lifted up, and speaking, as they
thought, earnestly to one that was above. They drew nigh,
but could not tell what he said ; so they went softly till he had
done. When he had done, he got up, and began to run towards
the Celestial City. Then Mr. Great-heart called after him,
saying, ' Soho, friend, let us have your company, if you go, as
I suppose you do, to the Celestial City.' So the man stopped,
and they came up to him : but so soon as Mr. Honest saw him;
he said, ' I know this man.' Then said Mr. Valiant-for-truth,
' Pr'ythee, who is it ?' * 'Tis one,' said he, * that comes from
whereabouts 1 dwelt : his name is Standfast ; he is certainly a
right good Pilgrim.'
So they came up to one another : and presently Standfast
said to old Honest, ' Ho ! father Honest, are you there ?' ' Ay,'
said he, * that I am, as sure as you are there.' ' Right glad am
I,' said Mr. Standfast, 'that I have found you on this road.'
* And as glad am [,' said the other, * that I espied you on your
knees.' Then Mr. Standfast blushed, and said, ' But why, did
you see me ?' * Yes, that I did,' quoth the other, ' and with my
heart was glad at the sight.' ' Why, what did you think ?' said
Standfast. ^ Think !' said old Honest, ' what should I think !
I thought we had an honest .man upon the ro td, therefore should
have his company by and by.' * If you thouulit not amiss, how
happy am I ; but, if I be not as I should, 'tis I done must bear
. it.' * That is true,' said the other ; ' but your fear doth fur-
ther confirm me, that things are right betwixt the Prince of
Pilgrims and your soul : for he saith, '• Blessed is the man that
r.v^reth always."
f^al. Well, but brother, I pray thee tell us, what was it that
^2Pet. i. 19.,
348 Standfast's Temptations from Madam Bubble,
was the cause of thy being upon thy knees even now ? Was it
for some obligations laid by special mercies upon thee, or how ?
St. Why, we are, as you see, upon the Enchanted Ground ;
and, as I was coming along, 1 was musing with myself of what
a dangerous nature the road in this place was ; and how many,
that had come thus far on pilgrimage, had here been stopped
and been destroyed. I thought also of the manner of death, with
which this place destroyeth men. Those that die here, die of
no violent distemper : the death which such do die, is not
grievous to them ; for he that goeth away in a sleep, begins
that journf^y with desire and pleasure : yea, such acquiesce in
the will of that disease.
' Then Mr. Honest interrupting of him, said, « Did you see
the two men asleep in the arbour V
St. Ay, ay, I saw Heedless and also Too-bold there ; and,
for aught I know, there they will he until they rot :* but let
me go on with my tale. — As I was thus musing, as 1 said, there
was one in pleasant attire, but old, who presented herself unto
me, and offered me three things ; to wit, her body, her purse,
and her bed. Now the truth is, 1 was both weary and sleepy :
I am also as poor as an owlet, and that perhaps the witch knew.
Well, I repulsed her once and twice ; but she put by my re-
pulses and smiled. Then 1 began to be angry ; but she mat-
tered that nothing at all. Then she made offers again, and
said, ' If I would be ruled by her, she would make me great
and happy ; for,' said she, ' I am the mistress of the world, and
men are made happy by me.' Then 1 asked her name, and
she told me it was Madam Bubble. This set me further from
her ; but she still followed me with enticements. Then 1 be-
took me, as you see, to my knees, and with hands lifted up,
and cries, I prayed to him that had said he would help. So
just as you came up, the gentlewoman went her way. Then I
continued to give th inks for this great deliverance ; for I verily
believe she intended no good, but rather sought to make a stop
of me in my journey, (c)
Hon. Without doubt her designs were bad. But stay, now
you talk of her, methinks 1 either have seen her, or have rea^
some story of her.
* Prov. X. 7.
(f) The case of Standfast shows us, that when believers feel the propen-
sity of their hearts to yield to worldly proposals, it renders them jealous
of themselves, excites them to earnest jjrayer, and thus eventually tends
to preserve them from the fatal delusions.
Great-hearVs account of her, 349
iSi^ Perhaps you have done both.
\ Hon. Madam Bubble ! Is she not a tall, comely dame, some-
thing of a swarthy complexion ?
St. Right, you hit it, she is just such a one.
Hon. Doth she not speak very smoothly, and give you a
smile at the end of every sentence ?
St. You fall right upon it agiin, for these are her very ac-
tions.
Hon, Doth she not wear a great purse by her side ? and is
not her hand often in it fingering her money, as if that was her
heart's delight ?
St. 'Tis just so : had she stood by all this while, you could
not more amply have set her forth before me, and have better
described her features.
Hon. Then he that drew her picture was a good limner, and
he that wrote of her said true.
Gr.'H. i his woman is a witch ; and it is by virtue of her
sorceries, that this ground is enchanted : whoever doth lay
their head down in her lap, had as good lay it down upon that
block over which theaxedolh hang; and whoever lays his
eyes upon her beauty, is counted the enemy of God.* This
is she that maintaineth in their splendour ail those that are the
enemies of Pilgrims. Yea, this is she that hath brought off
many a man from a Pilgrim's life. She is a great gossipper ;
she is always, both she and her daughters, at one Pilgrim's
heels or another, now commending, and then preferring, the
excellencies of this life. She is a bold and impudent slut ;
she will talk with any man. She always laugheth poor Pil-
grims to scorn ; but highly commends the rich. If there be
one cunning to get money in a place, she will speak well of him
from house to house. Sh6 loveth banqueting and feasting main-
ly well ; she is always at one full table or another. She has
given it out it some places that she is a goddess, and therefore
some do worship her. She has her time and open places of
cheating ; and she will say, and avow it, that none can show a
good comparable to her's. She promiseth to dwell with chil-
dren's children, if they would but love and make much of her.
She will cast out of her purse gold like dust, in some places,
and to some persons. She loves to be sought after, spoken
well of, and to lie in the bosoms of men. She is never weary
of commending her commodities, anu she loves them most that
* James iv. 4. 1 John ii. 14, 15.
30
350 They come to the land of Beulah,
think best of her. She will promise crowns and kingdoms, if
they will but take her advice : yet many hHth she brought to
the halter, and ten thousand times more to hell.
' Oh !' said Standfast, * what a mercy it is that I did resist
her ! for whither might she have drawn me !'
Gr.-H. Whither! nay, none but God knows. But in gene-
ral, to be sure, she would have drawn thee into "many foolish
and hurtful lusts, which drown men in destruction and perdi-
tion."* It W.JS she that set Absalom against his father, and
Jeroboam against his master. It was she that persuaded Judas
to sell his Lord, imd that prevailed with Demas to forsake the
godly Pilgrim's life : none can tell of the mischief she doth.
She makes variance betwixt rulers ana subjects, betwixt pa-
rents and children, betwixt neighbour and neighbour, betwixt
a man and his wife, betwixt a man and himself, betwixt the
flesh and the spirit. — Wherefore, good master Standfast, be as
your name is ; and " when you have done all, stand."
At this discourse there was, among the Pilgrims, a mix
ture of joy and trembling, but at length they brake out, and
* What danger is the Pilgrim in
How many are his foes I
How many ways there are to sin
No living mortal knows.
Some in the d^tch spoii'd are, yea, can
Lie tumbling in the mire :
Some, though they shun the frying-pan,
Do leap into the fire.'
After this, I beheld, until they were come unto the Land of
Beulah, where the Sun shineth night and day.t Here, because
they were weary, they betook themselves a while to rest ; and
because this country was common for Pilgrims, and because
these orchards and vineyards that were here belonged to the
King of the Celestial Country, therefore they were licensed to
make bold with any of his things. But a little while soon re-
fresh'^d them here ; for the bells did so ring, and the trumpets
continually sounded so melodiously, that they could not sleep ;
and yet they received as much refreshing as if they slept their
sleep Lover so soundly. Here also all the noise of them that
walked in the streets, was, * More Pilgrims are come to town.*
* 1 Tim. vi. 9. t Part i. p. 199.
A message sent to Christiana. 351.
And another would answer, saying, * And so many went over
the water and were let in at the golden gates to-day.' They
would cry again, ' There is now a legion of Shining Ones just
come to town : by which we know that there are more Pil-
grims upon the road ; for here they come to wait for them,
and conifort them after their sorrow.' Then the Pilgrims got
up, and walked to and fro : but how were their eyes now filled
with celestial visions ! In this land they heard nothing, saw no-
thing, felt nothing, smelt nothing, tasted nothing, that was of-
fensive to their stomach or mind ; only, when they tasted of
the water of the river, over which they were to go, they
thought thnt tasted a little bitterish to the palate, but it proved
sweet when it was down, (^d)
In this place there was a record kept of the names of them
that had been Pilgrims of old, and a history of all the famous
acts that they had done. It was here also much discoursed,
how the river to some has its flowings, and what ebbings it has
had while others have gone over. It has been it a manner dry
for some, while.it has overdowed its banks for others.
In this place the children of the town would go into the
King's gardens and gather nosegays for the Pilgrims, and
bring them to them with afl'ection. Here also grew camphire,
and spikenard, saffron, calamus, and cinnamon, with all the
trees of fr.mkincense, myrrh, and aloes, nith til chief spices.
"With these the Pilgrims' chambers were perfumed while they
staid here ; and with these were their bodies anointed to
prepare them to go over the river, when the time appointed
was come^
Now while they lay here, and waited for the good hour,
there was a noise in the town, that there was a post come
from the Celestial City, with matter?* oi' great importance to
one Christiana, the wife of Christian, the Pilgrim. So in-
(rf) The lively exercise o; faith and hope, th<' anticipation of heavenly
felicity, and the consolations of the Holy SMiril, soon make the believer
forg^et his conflicts and sorr'ows, or only remember them to enhaucn his
grateful joy. This description represents the happy state of those that
live in places, favoured with iriaay lively Christians, united in heart and
judgement ; and where instances of perssons dying; triumphantly are often
reported or witnessed. It has frequently been observed, that a^cd be-
lievers, in such circumstances, have been remarkably delivered from fears
and temptations, and amn^ated by the hopes and earnests of heaven; so
that while death seemed bitter to nature, it became pleasant to the soul,
to think of the joy and glory that would immediately follow it.
3j62 Christiana called to pass the River.
quiry was made for her, and the house was found out wher,e
she was ; so the post presented her with a letter : the con-
tents were, ' Hail, good woman ! 1 bring thee tidings, that
the Master calleth for thee, and expecteth that thou shouldest
stand in his presence, in clothes of immortality, within these
ten days.'
When he had read this letter to her, he gave her therewith
a sure token that he was a true messenger, and was come to
bid her make haste to be gone. The token was, — An arrow
sharpened with love, let easily into her heart, which, by de-
grees, wrought so effectually with her, that at the time ap-
pointed she must be gone, (e)
When Christiana saw thjst her time was come, and that
she was the tirst of triis company that was to go over, she
called for Mr. Great-heart, her guide, and told him how mat-
ters were. So he told her, ' He was heartily glad of the news,
and could have been glad had the post come for him.' Then
she bid that he should give advice how all things should be
prepared for her journey. So he tolJ her, saying, ' Thus and
thus it must be ; and we that survive, will accompany you to
the river side.'
Then she crdled for her children, and gave them her bless-
ing ; and told them that she had read with comfort the mark
that was set in thc.ir foreheads, snd was glad to see them with
her there, and that they had kept their garments so white.
Lastly, she beqm^athed to the poor that little she had, and
commanded her tfons and daughters to be ready against the mes-
senger should come for them.
WHien she hud spoken these words to her guide, and to her
children, she called for Mr. V^aliant-for-truth. and said unto
him, ' Sir, you have in all places showed yourself true-hearted ;
be faithful unto derith, and my King will give you a crown of
life. I would also entreat you to have an eye to my children :
and if at any time you see them faint, speak comfortably to
them. For my daughters, my sons' wives, they have been
(e) These messeng:ers seem to be merely emblems of the different dis-
eases or decays, by which the Lord take« do %vq the earthly tabernacle,
-when he sees rood u> recel^'e the souls of his people into his immediate
presence, h) plain langua;^e, it was re-jorted that Christiana was sick and
near death, and she herself became sensible of her situation. ' The arrow
sharpened by love, implies, that the • me, manner, and circumstances, of
the believer's death are appointed by Him "who loved us, and gave him-
self for us :" He, as it were, says to the dying saint, " It is I, be not afraid.''
Christiana exTiortsher children and companions. 353
faithful, and a fulfilling of the promise upon them will be their
end.' — But she gave Mr. Standfast a ring.
Then she called for old Mr. Honest, and said of him, ** Be-
^hold an Israelite indeed, in whom is no guile." Then said
he, * I wish you a fair day, when you set out for Mount Zion,
and shall be giad to see that you go over the river dry-shod.'
But she answered, * Come wet, come dry, 1 long to be gone;
for, however the weather is in my journey, I shall have time
' enough, when I come there, to sit down and rest me, tind dry
, me.'
Then camein thntgood man, Mr. Ready-to-halt, to see her.
So she said to him, * Thy travel hitherto has been with difii-
culty ; but that will make thy rest the sweeter. But watch
and be ready ; for at an hpur when you think not, the messen-
ger may come.'
After him came in Mr. Despondency, and his daughter
Much-afraid ; to whom she said, ' You ought with thankful-
ness, for ever to remember your deliver :nce from the hand
of giant Despair, and out of Doubting-Castle. The effect
of that mercy is, that you are brought with safety hither. Be
yet watchful, and cast away fear ; be sober, and hope to the
end.'
Then she «aid to Mr. Feeble-mind, ' Thou wast delivered
from the mouth of giant Slay-goofl, that thou mightest live in
.the hght of the living for ever, and see tbe King with comfort :
only 1 advise thee to repent thee of thy iptnets to fear, and
doubt of his goodness, before he sends for thee : lest thou
sbouldest, when he comes, be forced to stand before him, for
that fault, with blushing.' (/)
(/) The address made by Christiana to each of the company, and the
circumstances of her passing the river, are well deserving of attention ;
but require no comment. When such belie v<^rs as have long walked ho-
nourably, are enabled to bear a dying testimony to the truth, and to re-
commend the ways of the Lord with the last remains of their breath, a
great effect will often be produced : but th»^ confidence of some professors,
in these circumstances, has a very difft^rent tendency. Many excellent
persons, however, are incapacitated from speaking much in their last
hours ; and we ought by no means to judge of men's characters on these
grounds : for it is remarkable, that the Scripture is generally silent about
the manner in which its worthies terminated their lives ; and a very few
exceptions are found to this rule. We are particularly instructed in the
nature of their faith, and its effects upon their conduct during life ; and
thence we may assuredly infer, that they died in the Lord, and entered
into rest.
Yy 30*
364 She passes the River triumphantly.
Now the day drew on that Christiana must be gone. So
the road was full of people, to see her take her journey.
But behold, all the banks beyond the river were full . of
horses and chariots, which were come down from above to
accompany her to the City-gate. . So she came forth, and
entered the river, with a beckon or farewell to those that
followed her to the river-side. The last words that she was
heard to say, were, ' I come, Lord, to be with thee, and bless
thee.' *
So her children and friends returned to their places, for that
those that waited for Christiana had carried her out of their
sight. So she went >aid called, and entered in at the g ite, with
all the ceremonies of joy that her husband Christian had en-
tered with before her.
At her departnre the children wept. But Mr. Great-
heart and Mr. Vahant-for- truth played upon the well-tuned
cymbal and harp for joy. So all departed to their respective
places, (g)
In process of time, there came a post to the town again,
and his business was with Mr. Ready-to-halt. So he inquired
him out, and said, ' I am come to thee in the name of Him.
whom thou hast loved and followed, though upon crutches :
and my message is, to tell thee, that he expects thee at his
table, to sup with him in his kingdom, the next day after
Easter : wherefore prepare thyself for thy journey.' (/^) —
Then he also gave him a token that he was a true messenger,
saying, *' 1 have broken the golden bowl, and loosed the silver
cord."* (i)
* Eccles. xii. 1 — 7.
(g) The happy death of an eminent Christian is a loss to relatives and
connexions, to the church and the cooimunity ; and in t'rs ' u^w may be
lamented : but it often yields great encoura§;ement to ministers and other
spectators of the interesting scene, and excites their adoring praise and
thanksgivings.
(Ji) Evident decays of natural powers as effectually convince the ob-
serving person that death approaches, as if a messenger had been sent to
inform him. But men in general cling to life, wilfully overlook such
tokens, and try to keep up to the last the vain hope of recovering : and
others, by a kind of cruel compassion, soothe them in the delusion : so that
numbers die suddenly o{ chronical disorders, even as if they had been shot
through the heart. Perhaps, however, the author had some peference
to those inexplicable presages of death, which some persons evidently ex-
perience.
(i) These tokens are taken from a well-known portion of Scrip-
\ Ready-tO'halt and Feeble-mind pass the River, 355
After this, Mr Ready-to-halt called for his fellow Pilgrims,
and told them, saying, ' I am sent for, and God shall surely
visit you also. So he desired Mr. Valiant-for-truth to make
his will ; and because he hati nothing to bequeath to them that
should survive him, but his crutches and his good wishes,
therefore thus he said, ' These crutches 1 bequeath to my son
that shall tread in my steps, with an hundred warm wishes that
he may prove better than 1 have been.'
I hen he thanked Mr. Great-heart for his conduct and kind-
ness, and so addressed himself to his journey. — When he came
to the brink of the river, he said, now I shall have no more
need of theso crutches, since yonder are chariots and horses
for me to ride on.' The last words he was heard to say, were,
' Welcome, life !' So he went his wny.
After this, Mr. Feeble-mind had tidings brought him, that
the post sounded his horn at his chamber-door. Then he
came in, and told him, saying, ' I com>5 to tell thee, that thy
Master hath need of thee ; and that in a very little time thou
must behold his face in brightness. And take this as a token
of the truth of my message : " Those that look out at the win-
dows shall be darkened."
Then Mr. Feeble-mind called for his frinds, and told them
what errand had been brought unto him, and what token he
had received of the truth of the message. Then he said, ' Since
I have nothing to bequeath to any, to what purpose should I
make a will ? As for my feeble mind, that 1 will leave behind,
for that I have no need of it in the place whither 1 go ; nor is
it worth bestowing upon the poorest Pilgrims : wherefore
when I am gone I desire that you, Mr. Valiant-for-truth, would
bury it in a dunghill.' This done, and the day being come in
which he was to depart, he entered the river as the rest : his
last words were, '• HolU out, faith and patience.' So he went
over to the other side.
When days had many of them passed away, Mr. Despon-
dency was sent for ; for a post was come, and brought this
message to him : ' Trembling man, these are to summon thee
lure ;* but it would be inconsistent with the plan of this work, to enter on a
particular explanation of them. The dealings of the Lord are here repre-
sented, as uniformly gentle to the feeble, trembling, humble believers ;
and the circumstances of their deaths conparatively encouraging and
easy,
* Eccles, xii. 1 — 7.
366 Despondency, Much-afraid, Honesty
to be ready with, the King by the next Lord's day, to shout for
joy, for thy dehverance from all thy doubtings. — And,' said the
messenger, ' that my message is true, take this for a proof:'
so he gave " a grasshopper to be i burden unto him." — Now
Mr. Despondency's daughter, whose name w is Much-afraid,
said, when she hiui heard what was done, ' that she should go
with her father.' Then Mr. Despondency said to nis friends,
* Myself and my daughter, you know what we have been, and
how troublesomely we have behaved ourselves in every compa-
ny ; — my will, and my daughter's is that uur desponds and slav-
ish fears be by no ra.m ever received, from the day of our de-
parture, for ever : for I know that ifter my deach they will of-
fer themselves to others. For, to be plain with you, they are
guests which we entertained wht n we first began to be Pilgrims,
and could never shake them on Jter : and they will walk about
and seek entertainment of the Pilgrims ; but, for our sakes,
shut the doors upon them.'
When the time was come for them to depart, they went Up
to the brink of the river. The last words of Mr. Desponden-
cy were, ' Farewell, night ! Welcome day !' — His d.iughter
went through the river singing, but none could understand
what she said.
Then it came to pass a while after, that there was a post in
the town, that inquired for Mr. Honest. So he came to his
house, where he was, and delivered to his hands these lines :
' Thou art commanded to be ready against this day se'nnight^
to present thyself before thy Loj*d, at his Father's house.
And, for a token that my message is true, " All the daughters
of music shall be brought low." — Then Mr. Honest called for
his friends, and said unto them, ' I die, but sh dl make no will.
As for my ho/iesty, it shall go with me ; let him that comes af-
ter be told of this.'
When the day that he was to be gone was come, he address-
ed himself to go over the river. Now the river at that time
overflowed the banks in some places; but Mr. Honest, in his
lifetime, had spoken to one Good-conscience to meet him
there ; the which he also did, and lent him his hand, and so
helped him over. The last words of Mr. Honest were, " Grace
reigns !" So he left the world.
After this it was noised about that Mr. Valiant-for-truth was
taken with a summons by the same post as the other ; and had
this for a token that the summons was true, that *' his pitcher
And Valiant-f or 'truth, pass nex-tj ' 357
vi^as broken at the fountain.^* When he understood it, he call-
ed for his friends, and told them of it. Then said he, ' I am
going to my Father's ; and though with great difficulty I got
hither, yet now I do not repent me of all the trouble I have
been at to arrive where [ am. My sword I give to him that
shall succeed me in my pilgrimage, and my courage and skill
to him that can get it. My marks and scars I carry with me,
to be a witness for me, that I have fought his battle, who now
will be my Re warder.'
When the day that he must go hence was come, many ac-
companied him to the river-side, into which as he went he said,
" Death, where is thy sting ?" and as he went down deeper, he
said, '* Grave, where is thy victory ?'' So he passed over, and '
all the trumpets sounded for him on the other side.
Then there came forth a summons for Mr. Standfast. This
Mr. Standfast was he that the Pilgrims found upon his knees
in the Enchanted Ground, and the post brought it him open in
his hands. The contents whereof were, that he must prepare
for a change of hfe, for his Master was not willing that he
should be so far from him any longer. At this Mr. Standfast
was put into a muse. ' Nay,' said the messenger, * you need
not doubt of the truth of my mess.ige ; for here is a token of
the truth thereof—" T'ly wheel is broken at the cistern."
Then he called to him Mr. Great-heart, who was their guide,
and Sriid unto him, * Sir, although it was not my h.»p to be much
m your good company in the days of my pilgrimage, yet, since
the time I knew you, you h ive been profitable to me. When
I came from homp, I left behind me a wife and live small chil-
dren ; let me entreat you, at your return, (for 1 know that you
go and return to your iVl aster's house, in hopes that you may
be a conductor to r.iore of the holy Pilgrims ;) that you s.^nd
to my family, and let them be acquainted with all that hath and
shall happen unto me. Tell them, moreover, of my happy
arrival at this place, and of the present and late blessed con-
dition that I am in. Tell them also of Christian and Christiana
his wife, and how she and her childrrm came after her hus-
band. Tell them pIso of what a happy end she made, and
whither she is gone. — I have little or nothing to send to my fa-
mily, except it be my prayers and tears for them ; of which
it will suffice if you acquaint them, if peradventure they may
prevail.'
When Mr. Standfast had thus set things in order, and the
358 Standfast's passage. He speaks in the River,
time being come for him to haste him away, he also went down
to the river. Now there was a great calm at that time in the
river ; wherefore Mr. Standfast, when he was about half way
in, stood a while and talked to his companions that had waited
upon him thither : and he said, » This river has been a terror
to many : yea, the thoughts of it also have often frightened
me : now, methinks, 1 stand easy ; my foot is fixed upon that
on which the feet of the priests that bare the ark of the cove-
nant stood, while Israel wxnt over this Jordan.'* The waters,
indeed, are to the palate bitter, and to the stomach cold ; yet
the thoughts of what I am going to, and of the conduct that
waits for me on the other side, doth he as a glowing coal at my
heart. I see myself now at the end of my journey ; my toil-
some days are ended. I am going to see that head that was
crowned with thorns, and that face that was spit upon for me.
I have formerly lived by hearsay cmd faith ; but now i go
where 1 shall live by sight, and shall be with Him in whose
company i delight myself. 1 have loved to hear my Lord spo-
ken of; and wherever 1 have seen tbe print oi'his shoe in the
earth, there 1 have coveted to set my foot too. His name has
been to me as a civet-box ; yea, sweeter th.m all perfumes.
-Hl^ yoic^ to aie has been most sweet ; and his countenance I
have more desired than they tiiat have most desired the light
of the sun. His words I did use to gather for my ibod, and
for antidotes against my f;intings. He has held me, and has
kept me from mine iniquities ; yea, my steps have been
strengthened in his way.' (k)
* Josh. iii. 17.
(Jc) This speech has been justly admired, as one of the most striking
passage? in the whole work : but it is *o plain, that it only requires an
attentive reader. It may, however, be worthy of our obse^vatiou^that in
all the instances before us the Pilgrims are represented as resting their
only dependence, ai the closing scene, on the mercy of God, through the
righteousness and uionement of his Son : and yet recollecting thair con-
scious integrity, boldness in professing and contending for the truth, love
to the cause, example, and words of ChfiSt, obedience to his precepts, de-
light in his ways, preservation from tiieir own iniquities, and consistent
behaviour, as evidences that their ;aith was living, and t'neir hope war-
ranted ; and .n this way the retrospect conduced to their encouragemeut.
]\I6reover, ihey all concur in declaring, that whde they left their infirmi-
ties behind them, they should take ther graces along 'vith ihem,an(3 that
'* their works w^ould follow them." — Thus the script iral mean is exactly
maintained, between those who place their supposed good works as the
And entess the City in triumph, 35^
Now, while he was thus in discourse, his countenance
changed ; his "strong man bowed under him:" and, after he
had said, * Take me, for 1 come unto thee,' he ceased to be
seen of them.
But glorious it was to see, how the open region was filled
with horses and chariots, with trumpeters and pipers, with
singers and players on stringed instruments, to welcome the
Pilgrims as they went up, and followed one another in at the
beautiful Gate of the City. (/)
foundatio7i of their hope ; and those, who would exclude even real good
works irom being so much as looked upon, as evidential of saving faith,
or as in any way giving encouragement to the believer in his dying
hour.*
(Z) The view given in this place, of the peaceful and joyful death of
the Pilgrims, cannot but affect every reader in some degree ; and many
perhaps may be ready to say, " Let me die the death of the righteous, and
let my last end be like his :" but, except they make it their principal
concern to live the life of the righteous, such a wish will most probably
be irustrated ; and every hope grounded on it is evidently presumptuous,
as the example oi Balaam sufficiently proves. — If any man, tlierefore,
doubt whether this allegory do indeed describe the Rise and Progress of
religion in the soul ; the beginning, continuance, and termination of the
godly man's course to heaven ; let him diligently search the Scriptures,
and fervently pray to God, from whom alone " cometh every good and
perfect gift." to enable liim to determine this question. But let such as
own themselves to be satisfied that it does, beware lest they rest on this
assent and notion, in the pleasure of reading an ingenious work on the sub-
ject, or in the ability of developing many of the author's emblems. Let
them beware, lest they be fascinated, as it were, into a persuasion, that
they actually accompany the Pilgrims in the life of faith, and walkmg
with God, in the same measure, as they keep pace with the author, in
discovering and approving the grand outlines of his plan. And let every
one carefully examine his stale, sentiments, experience, motives, tempers,
affections and conduct, by the various characters, incidents, and observa-
tions, that pass under his review ; assured that this is a matter of the
greatest consequence. We ought not indeed to call any man master^ or
subscribe absolutely to all his sentiments ; yet the diligent joracficaZ stu-
dent of Scripture can scarcely doubt, but that the warnings, counsels, and
instructions of this singular work, agree in general with that sacred touch-
stone ; or that characters and actions will at last be approved or con-
demned by the Jud^e of the world, in a great degree according to the
sentence passed on them in this wise and faithful book. The Lord grant
that both ths writer and readers of these observations " may find mercy
in that day," and be ac.dressed in these gracious words, " Come, ye blessed
of my Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you, from the foundation
of the world."
* 2 Tim. iv. 6—8.
360 Conclusion »
As for Christiana's children, the four boys that Christiansi
brought, with their wives and children, I did not stay where
I was till they were gone over. Also since 1 came away, I
heard one say, they were yet jdive, and so would be for
the increase of the church in that place where they were, for
a time.
Shall it be my lot to go that way afinn, I may give those that
desire it, an account of what I here am silent about ; mean
time, I bid my reader
Farewell*
THE END,
v/
14 DAY USE
RETURN TO DESK FROM WHICH BORROWED
LOAN DEPT.
This book is due on the last date stamped below, or
on the date to which renewed.
Renewed books are subject to immediate recall.
— ■'■^ ! n
*v£C'Q LD
P^i^^64'iim
..M^'^^lf
RE^)'^A-U
st-
JUN 25 1962 ,
^
m
^'
Ri^^CD LP
r-. ^JO
MAY 18 '65 -8 AM
w^-
sa
lSe'652W
^.
»^EC1S> LJC
rCC
O l-D
^
APR 0'G4-1b;PM ^^G1B'
:6^ 'XP^
-^te
*7
•^^/l^l
LD 21A-50m-8,'61
(C1795sl0)476B
General Library
University of California
Berkelev
YA 01530